This is a modern-English version of Anne of Avonlea, originally written by Montgomery, L. M. (Lucy Maud). It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

[Illustration]

ANNE OF AVONLEA

by Lucy Maud Montgomery

To
my former teacher
HATTIE GORDON SMITH
in grateful remembrance of her
sympathy and encouragement.

I
An Irate Neighbor

A tall, slim girl, “half-past sixteen,” with serious gray eyes and hair which her friends called auburn, had sat down on the broad red sandstone doorstep of a Prince Edward Island farmhouse one ripe afternoon in August, firmly resolved to construe so many lines of Virgil.

A tall, slim girl, “half-past sixteen,” with serious gray eyes and hair that her friends called auburn, sat down on the wide red sandstone doorstep of a Prince Edward Island farmhouse one warm August afternoon, determined to translate as many lines of Virgil as she could.

But an August afternoon, with blue hazes scarfing the harvest slopes, little winds whispering elfishly in the poplars, and a dancing slendor of red poppies outflaming against the dark coppice of young firs in a corner of the cherry orchard, was fitter for dreams than dead languages. The Virgil soon slipped unheeded to the ground, and Anne, her chin propped on her clasped hands, and her eyes on the splendid mass of fluffy clouds that were heaping up just over Mr. J. A. Harrison’s house like a great white mountain, was far away in a delicious world where a certain schoolteacher was doing a wonderful work, shaping the destinies of future statesmen, and inspiring youthful minds and hearts with high and lofty ambitions.

But on an August afternoon, with blue haze covering the harvest fields, gentle breezes playfully rustling through the poplars, and a vibrant display of red poppies contrasting against the dark thicket of young firs in a corner of the cherry orchard, it was a better time for daydreams than for studying dead languages. The Virgil soon fell unnoticed to the ground, and Anne, her chin resting on her clasped hands and her eyes fixed on the beautiful cluster of fluffy clouds piling up just over Mr. J. A. Harrison’s house like a giant white mountain, drifted away into a delightful world where a certain schoolteacher was doing remarkable work, shaping the futures of upcoming leaders and inspiring young minds and hearts with great aspirations.

To be sure, if you came down to harsh facts . . . which, it must be confessed, Anne seldom did until she had to . . . it did not seem likely that there was much promising material for celebrities in Avonlea school; but you could never tell what might happen if a teacher used her influence for good. Anne had certain rose-tinted ideals of what a teacher might accomplish if she only went the right way about it; and she was in the midst of a delightful scene, forty years hence, with a famous personage . . . just exactly what he was to be famous for was left in convenient haziness, but Anne thought it would be rather nice to have him a college president or a Canadian premier . . . bowing low over her wrinkled hand and assuring her that it was she who had first kindled his ambition, and that all his success in life was due to the lessons she had instilled so long ago in Avonlea school. This pleasant vision was shattered by a most unpleasant interruption.

To be sure, if you looked at the harsh facts . . . which, it must be said, Anne rarely did until she had to . . . it didn't seem likely that there was much potential for future celebrities at Avonlea school; but you could never know what might happen if a teacher used her influence for good. Anne had certain idealistic beliefs about what a teacher could achieve if she approached it the right way; and she was caught up in a delightful daydream, forty years later, with a famous person . . . exactly what he was famous for remained conveniently vague, but Anne thought it would be nice if he became a college president or a Canadian premier . . . bowing low over her wrinkled hand and telling her that it was she who had first sparked his ambition, and that all his success in life was thanks to the lessons she had given him so long ago at Avonlea school. This pleasant vision was abruptly interrupted by a rather unpleasant distraction.

A demure little Jersey cow came scuttling down the lane and five seconds later Mr. Harrison arrived . . . if “arrived” be not too mild a term to describe the manner of his irruption into the yard.

A shy little Jersey cow came scurrying down the lane, and five seconds later, Mr. Harrison showed up... if "showed up" isn't too gentle a term to describe the way he burst into the yard.

He bounced over the fence without waiting to open the gate, and angrily confronted astonished Anne, who had risen to her feet and stood looking at him in some bewilderment. Mr. Harrison was their new righthand neighbor and she had never met him before, although she had seen him once or twice.

He jumped over the fence without bothering to open the gate and angrily faced a surprised Anne, who had gotten to her feet and was looking at him in confusion. Mr. Harrison was their new next-door neighbor, and she had never met him before, even though she had seen him once or twice.

In early April, before Anne had come home from Queen’s, Mr. Robert Bell, whose farm adjoined the Cuthbert place on the west, had sold out and moved to Charlottetown. His farm had been bought by a certain Mr. J. A. Harrison, whose name, and the fact that he was a New Brunswick man, were all that was known about him. But before he had been a month in Avonlea he had won the reputation of being an odd person . . . “a crank,” Mrs. Rachel Lynde said. Mrs. Rachel was an outspoken lady, as those of you who may have already made her acquaintance will remember. Mr. Harrison was certainly different from other people . . . and that is the essential characteristic of a crank, as everybody knows.

In early April, before Anne returned home from Queen's, Mr. Robert Bell, whose farm bordered the Cuthbert place on the west, had sold his property and relocated to Charlottetown. His farm was purchased by a man named J. A. Harrison, who was from New Brunswick, and that was pretty much all anyone knew about him. However, within a month of arriving in Avonlea, he had gained a reputation for being an oddball... "a crank," as Mrs. Rachel Lynde put it. Mrs. Rachel was quite forthright, as anyone who has met her can attest. Mr. Harrison certainly stood out from others, which is the defining trait of a crank, as everyone knows.

In the first place he kept house for himself and had publicly stated that he wanted no fools of women around his diggings. Feminine Avonlea took its revenge by the gruesome tales it related about his house-keeping and cooking. He had hired little John Henry Carter of White Sands and John Henry started the stories. For one thing, there was never any stated time for meals in the Harrison establishment. Mr. Harrison “got a bite” when he felt hungry, and if John Henry were around at the time, he came in for a share, but if he were not, he had to wait until Mr. Harrison’s next hungry spell. John Henry mournfully averred that he would have starved to death if it wasn’t that he got home on Sundays and got a good filling up, and that his mother always gave him a basket of “grub” to take back with him on Monday mornings.

At first, he managed his own household and had openly declared that he didn't want any foolish women hanging around his place. The women of Avonlea got their revenge by spreading outrageous stories about his cooking and home life. He had hired little John Henry Carter from White Sands, and it was John Henry who started the tales. For starters, there was never a set time for meals at the Harrison’s. Mr. Harrison “grabbed a bite” whenever he felt hungry, and if John Henry happened to be there, he could have some too; otherwise, he had to wait until Mr. Harrison got hungry again. John Henry sadly claimed that he would have starved if it weren't for the fact that he returned home on Sundays for a good meal, and his mother always sent him back with a basket of food on Monday mornings.

As for washing dishes, Mr. Harrison never made any pretence of doing it unless a rainy Sunday came. Then he went to work and washed them all at once in the rainwater hogshead, and left them to drain dry.

When it came to washing dishes, Mr. Harrison never pretended to do it unless it was a rainy Sunday. Then he would get to work and wash them all at once in the rainwater barrel, and leave them to drain.

Again, Mr. Harrison was “close.” When he was asked to subscribe to the Rev. Mr. Allan’s salary he said he’d wait and see how many dollars’ worth of good he got out of his preaching first . . . he didn’t believe in buying a pig in a poke. And when Mrs. Lynde went to ask for a contribution to missions . . . and incidentally to see the inside of the house . . . he told her there were more heathens among the old woman gossips in Avonlea than anywhere else he knew of, and he’d cheerfully contribute to a mission for Christianizing them if she’d undertake it. Mrs. Rachel got herself away and said it was a mercy poor Mrs. Robert Bell was safe in her grave, for it would have broken her heart to see the state of her house in which she used to take so much pride.

Once again, Mr. Harrison was “tightfisted.” When he was asked to contribute to Rev. Mr. Allan’s salary, he said he’d wait to see how much value he got from the preaching first... he didn’t believe in buying a pig in a poke. And when Mrs. Lynde went to ask for a donation for missions... and also to see inside his house... he told her there were more sinners among the old woman gossips in Avonlea than anywhere else he knew, and he’d gladly contribute to a mission to convert them if she’d take it on. Mrs. Rachel managed to leave and said it was a blessing that poor Mrs. Robert Bell was already in her grave, as it would have broken her heart to see the condition of her house, which she used to take so much pride in.

“Why, she scrubbed the kitchen floor every second day,” Mrs. Lynde told Marilla Cuthbert indignantly, “and if you could see it now! I had to hold up my skirts as I walked across it.”

“Honestly, she scrubbed the kitchen floor every other day,” Mrs. Lynde told Marilla Cuthbert angrily, “and if you could see it now! I had to lift my skirts as I walked across it.”

Finally, Mr. Harrison kept a parrot called Ginger. Nobody in Avonlea had ever kept a parrot before; consequently that proceeding was considered barely respectable. And such a parrot! If you took John Henry Carter’s word for it, never was such an unholy bird. It swore terribly. Mrs. Carter would have taken John Henry away at once if she had been sure she could get another place for him. Besides, Ginger had bitten a piece right out of the back of John Henry’s neck one day when he had stooped down too near the cage. Mrs. Carter showed everybody the mark when the luckless John Henry went home on Sundays.

Finally, Mr. Harrison had a parrot named Ginger. No one in Avonlea had ever owned a parrot before, so this was considered quite improper. And what a parrot it was! If you believed John Henry Carter, there had never been such a foul-mouthed bird. It cursed like crazy. Mrs. Carter would have pulled John Henry away immediately if she had been sure she could find him another place to go. On top of that, Ginger had bitten a chunk right out of John Henry’s neck one day when he leaned too close to the cage. Mrs. Carter showed everyone the mark whenever the unfortunate John Henry went home on Sundays.

All these things flashed through Anne’s mind as Mr. Harrison stood, quite speechless with wrath apparently, before her. In his most amiable mood Mr. Harrison could not have been considered a handsome man; he was short and fat and bald; and now, with his round face purple with rage and his prominent blue eyes almost sticking out of his head, Anne thought he was really the ugliest person she had ever seen.

All these thoughts raced through Anne's mind as Mr. Harrison stood before her, clearly speechless with anger. Even at his friendliest, Mr. Harrison wouldn’t have been called handsome; he was short, overweight, and bald. Now, with his round face flushed purple from rage and his bulging blue eyes nearly popping out of his head, Anne thought he was truly the ugliest person she had ever seen.

All at once Mr. Harrison found his voice.

All of a sudden, Mr. Harrison found his voice.

“I’m not going to put up with this,” he spluttered, “not a day longer, do you hear, miss. Bless my soul, this is the third time, miss . . . the third time! Patience has ceased to be a virtue, miss. I warned your aunt the last time not to let it occur again . . . and she’s let it . . . she’s done it . . . what does she mean by it, that is what I want to know. That is what I’m here about, miss.”

“I’m not going to tolerate this anymore,” he sputtered, “not for another day, do you hear me, miss? Goodness, this is the third time, miss... the third time! Patience has run out, miss. I warned your aunt last time not to let it happen again... and she’s done it... she’s allowed it to happen... what does she think this means? That’s what I want to know. That’s why I’m here, miss.”

“Will you explain what the trouble is?” asked Anne, in her most dignified manner. She had been practicing it considerably of late to have it in good working order when school began; but it had no apparent effect on the irate J. A. Harrison.

“Can you explain what the problem is?” asked Anne, in her most dignified way. She had been practicing it a lot lately to make sure it was in good shape when school started; but it didn’t seem to have any effect on the angry J. A. Harrison.

“Trouble, is it? Bless my soul, trouble enough, I should think. The trouble is, miss, that I found that Jersey cow of your aunt’s in my oats again, not half an hour ago. The third time, mark you. I found her in last Tuesday and I found her in yesterday. I came here and told your aunt not to let it occur again. She has let it occur again. Where’s your aunt, miss? I just want to see her for a minute and give her a piece of my mind . . . a piece of J. A. Harrison’s mind, miss.”

"Is there trouble? Goodness, there's enough trouble, I’d say. The issue is, miss, I found your aunt's Jersey cow in my oats again, just half an hour ago. That’s the third time, you know. I found her last Tuesday and again yesterday. I came here and told your aunt to make sure it doesn’t happen again. And here we are. Where’s your aunt, miss? I just want to speak with her for a moment and give her a piece of my mind... a piece of J. A. Harrison’s mind, miss."

“If you mean Miss Marilla Cuthbert, she is not my aunt, and she has gone down to East Grafton to see a distant relative of hers who is very ill,” said Anne, with due increase of dignity at every word. “I am very sorry that my cow should have broken into your oats . . . she is my cow and not Miss Cuthbert’s . . . Matthew gave her to me three years ago when she was a little calf and he bought her from Mr. Bell.”

“If you’re talking about Miss Marilla Cuthbert, she isn’t my aunt, and she’s gone to East Grafton to visit a distant relative who is really sick,” Anne said, adding more dignity to every word. “I’m really sorry that my cow got into your oats... she’s my cow, not Miss Cuthbert’s... Matthew gave her to me three years ago when she was just a calf, and he bought her from Mr. Bell.”

“Sorry, miss! Sorry isn’t going to help matters any. You’d better go and look at the havoc that animal has made in my oats . . . trampled them from center to circumference, miss.”

“Sorry, miss! Saying sorry isn’t going to fix this. You should go check out the mess that animal has caused in my oats... it’s trampled them all over, miss.”

“I am very sorry,” repeated Anne firmly, “but perhaps if you kept your fences in better repair Dolly might not have broken in. It is your part of the line fence that separates your oatfield from our pasture and I noticed the other day that it was not in very good condition.”

“I’m really sorry,” Anne said firmly, “but maybe if you took better care of your fences, Dolly wouldn’t have gotten in. It’s your section of the line fence that separates your oat field from our pasture, and I noticed the other day that it wasn’t in great shape.”

“My fence is all right,” snapped Mr. Harrison, angrier than ever at this carrying of the war into the enemy’s country. “The jail fence couldn’t keep a demon of a cow like that out. And I can tell you, you redheaded snippet, that if the cow is yours, as you say, you’d be better employed in watching her out of other people’s grain than in sitting round reading yellow-covered novels,” . . . with a scathing glance at the innocent tan-colored Virgil by Anne’s feet.

“My fence is fine,” snapped Mr. Harrison, more furious than ever about this invasion into enemy territory. “The jail fence couldn’t keep out a hell of a cow like that. And I can tell you, you redheaded brat, that if that cow is yours, as you claim, you’d be better off keeping her away from other people’s grain than sitting around reading those cheesy novels,” . . . casting a scornful look at the innocent tan-colored Virgil by Anne’s feet.

Something at that moment was red besides Anne’s hair . . . which had always been a tender point with her.

Something at that moment was red besides Anne’s hair . . . which had always been a sensitive subject for her.

“I’d rather have red hair than none at all, except a little fringe round my ears,” she flashed.

“I’d rather have red hair than none at all, just a little bit around my ears,” she said.

The shot told, for Mr. Harrison was really very sensitive about his bald head. His anger choked him up again and he could only glare speechlessly at Anne, who recovered her temper and followed up her advantage.

The comment hit home since Mr. Harrison was really sensitive about his bald head. His anger surged again, leaving him able only to glare silently at Anne, who regained her composure and took advantage of the moment.

“I can make allowance for you, Mr. Harrison, because I have an imagination. I can easily imagine how very trying it must be to find a cow in your oats and I shall not cherish any hard feelings against you for the things you’ve said. I promise you that Dolly shall never break into your oats again. I give you my word of honor on that point.”

“I can understand you, Mr. Harrison, because I have an imagination. I can easily picture how frustrating it must be to find a cow in your oats, and I won’t hold any grudges against you for what you’ve said. I promise that Dolly will never get into your oats again. You have my word on that.”

“Well, mind you she doesn’t,” muttered Mr. Harrison in a somewhat subdued tone; but he stamped off angrily enough and Anne heard him growling to himself until he was out of earshot.

“Well, just so you know, she doesn’t,” muttered Mr. Harrison in a somewhat quiet tone; but he angrily stomped away, and Anne heard him grumbling to himself until he was out of earshot.

Grievously disturbed in mind, Anne marched across the yard and shut the naughty Jersey up in the milking pen.

Gravely troubled, Anne walked across the yard and locked the mischievous Jersey in the milking pen.

“She can’t possibly get out of that unless she tears the fence down,” she reflected. “She looks pretty quiet now. I daresay she has sickened herself on those oats. I wish I’d sold her to Mr. Shearer when he wanted her last week, but I thought it was just as well to wait until we had the auction of the stock and let them all go together. I believe it is true about Mr. Harrison being a crank. Certainly there’s nothing of the kindred spirit about him.”

“She can’t possibly get out of that unless she tears the fence down,” she thought. “She seems pretty quiet now. I bet she’s made herself sick on those oats. I wish I’d sold her to Mr. Shearer when he wanted her last week, but I thought it would be better to wait until we had the stock auction and let them all go together. I do believe it’s true about Mr. Harrison being a bit odd. There’s definitely nothing kindred about him.”

Anne had always a weather eye open for kindred spirits.

Anne had always kept an eye out for like-minded people.

Marilla Cuthbert was driving into the yard as Anne returned from the house, and the latter flew to get tea ready. They discussed the matter at the tea table.

Marilla Cuthbert was pulling into the yard just as Anne came back from the house, and Anne hurried to get the tea ready. They talked about it at the tea table.

“I’ll be glad when the auction is over,” said Marilla. “It is too much responsibility having so much stock about the place and nobody but that unreliable Martin to look after them. He has never come back yet and he promised that he would certainly be back last night if I’d give him the day off to go to his aunt’s funeral. I don’t know how many aunts he has got, I am sure. That’s the fourth that’s died since he hired here a year ago. I’ll be more than thankful when the crop is in and Mr. Barry takes over the farm. We’ll have to keep Dolly shut up in the pen till Martin comes, for she must be put in the back pasture and the fences there have to be fixed. I declare, it is a world of trouble, as Rachel says. Here’s poor Mary Keith dying and what is to become of those two children of hers is more than I know. She has a brother in British Columbia and she has written to him about them, but she hasn’t heard from him yet.”

"I'll be so relieved when the auction is over," Marilla said. "It's too much responsibility having all this stock around and nobody but that unreliable Martin to take care of them. He still hasn’t come back, and he promised he would definitely return last night if I gave him the day off to go to his aunt’s funeral. I don’t even know how many aunts he has, honestly. That's the fourth one who's died since he started here a year ago. I'll be really grateful when the crop is in and Mr. Barry takes over the farm. We’ll have to keep Dolly locked up in the pen until Martin gets here because she needs to go in the back pasture, and the fences there need to be fixed. I swear, it’s a world of trouble, as Rachel says. Here’s poor Mary Keith dying, and what’s going to happen to her two children is beyond me. She has a brother in British Columbia, and she’s written to him about them, but she hasn’t heard back yet."

“What are the children like? How old are they?”

“What are the kids like? How old are they?”

“Six past . . . they’re twins.”

"6 PM... they’re twins."

“Oh, I’ve always been especially interested in twins ever since Mrs. Hammond had so many,” said Anne eagerly. “Are they pretty?”

“Oh, I’ve always been really interested in twins ever since Mrs. Hammond had so many,” Anne said excitedly. “Are they pretty?”

“Goodness, you couldn’t tell . . . they were too dirty. Davy had been out making mud pies and Dora went out to call him in. Davy pushed her headfirst into the biggest pie and then, because she cried, he got into it himself and wallowed in it to show her it was nothing to cry about. Mary said Dora was really a very good child but that Davy was full of mischief. He has never had any bringing up you might say. His father died when he was a baby and Mary has been sick almost ever since.”

“Wow, you wouldn’t believe it . . . they were so dirty. Davy had been outside making mud pies, and Dora went out to bring him in. Davy pushed her headfirst into the biggest pie, and when she cried, he jumped in too and rolled around in it to show her there was nothing to be upset about. Mary said Dora was actually a really good kid, but Davy was full of trouble. You could say he never really had a proper upbringing. His dad died when he was a baby, and Mary has been sick almost ever since.”

“I’m always sorry for children that have no bringing up,” said Anne soberly. “You know I hadn’t any till you took me in hand. I hope their uncle will look after them. Just what relation is Mrs. Keith to you?”

“I always feel sorry for children who don't have proper raising,” said Anne seriously. “You know, I didn’t have any until you took me under your wing. I hope their uncle will take care of them. What exactly is Mrs. Keith to you?”

“Mary? None in the world. It was her husband . . . he was our third cousin. There’s Mrs. Lynde coming through the yard. I thought she’d be up to hear about Mary.”

“Mary? Not a soul around. It was her husband... he was our third cousin. There’s Mrs. Lynde walking through the yard. I figured she’d want to hear about Mary.”

“Don’t tell her about Mr. Harrison and the cow,” implored Anne.

“Please don’t mention Mr. Harrison and the cow to her,” Anne pleaded.

Marilla promised; but the promise was quite unnecessary, for Mrs. Lynde was no sooner fairly seated than she said,

Marilla promised, but the promise wasn’t really needed because as soon as Mrs. Lynde sat down, she said,

“I saw Mr. Harrison chasing your Jersey out of his oats today when I was coming home from Carmody. I thought he looked pretty mad. Did he make much of a rumpus?”

“I saw Mr. Harrison chasing your Jersey out of his oats today when I was coming home from Carmody. I thought he looked pretty angry. Did he cause a lot of trouble?”

Anne and Marilla furtively exchanged amused smiles. Few things in Avonlea ever escaped Mrs. Lynde. It was only that morning Anne had said,

Anne and Marilla secretly shared amused smiles. Not much in Avonlea ever got past Mrs. Lynde. Just that morning, Anne had said,

“If you went to your own room at midnight, locked the door, pulled down the blind, and sneezed, Mrs. Lynde would ask you the next day how your cold was!”

“If you went to your own room at midnight, locked the door, pulled down the blind, and sneezed, Mrs. Lynde would ask you the next day how your cold was!”

“I believe he did,” admitted Marilla. “I was away. He gave Anne a piece of his mind.”

“I think he did,” Marilla admitted. “I was away. He told Anne exactly what he thought.”

“I think he is a very disagreeable man,” said Anne, with a resentful toss of her ruddy head.

“I think he’s a really unpleasant guy,” said Anne, with a resentful toss of her reddish head.

“You never said a truer word,” said Mrs. Rachel solemnly. “I knew there’d be trouble when Robert Bell sold his place to a New Brunswick man, that’s what. I don’t know what Avonlea is coming to, with so many strange people rushing into it. It’ll soon not be safe to go to sleep in our beds.”

“You never spoke a truer word,” Mrs. Rachel said earnestly. “I knew there’d be trouble when Robert Bell sold his place to a guy from New Brunswick, that’s for sure. I don’t know what Avonlea is coming to, with so many unfamiliar faces pouring in. It won’t be long before it’s not safe to sleep in our own beds.”

“Why, what other strangers are coming in?” asked Marilla.

“Why, what other strangers are coming in?” Marilla asked.

“Haven’t you heard? Well, there’s a family of Donnells, for one thing. They’ve rented Peter Sloane’s old house. Peter has hired the man to run his mill. They belong down east and nobody knows anything about them. Then that shiftless Timothy Cotton family are going to move up from White Sands and they’ll simply be a burden on the public. He is in consumption . . . when he isn’t stealing . . . and his wife is a slack-twisted creature that can’t turn her hand to a thing. She washes her dishes sitting down. Mrs. George Pye has taken her husband’s orphan nephew, Anthony Pye. He’ll be going to school to you, Anne, so you may expect trouble, that’s what. And you’ll have another strange pupil, too. Paul Irving is coming from the States to live with his grandmother. You remember his father, Marilla . . . Stephen Irving, him that jilted Lavendar Lewis over at Grafton?”

“Haven’t you heard? There’s a family of Donnells, for one thing. They’ve rented Peter Sloane’s old house. Peter has hired someone to run his mill. They’re originally from down east, and nobody knows anything about them. Then that lazy Timothy Cotton family is moving up from White Sands, and they’ll just be a burden on everyone. He has tuberculosis… when he isn’t stealing… and his wife is a useless creature who can’t do anything. She washes her dishes sitting down. Mrs. George Pye has taken in her husband’s orphan nephew, Anthony Pye. He’ll be going to school with you, Anne, so expect trouble, for sure. And you’ll have another new student, too. Paul Irving is coming from the States to live with his grandmother. You remember his dad, Marilla… Stephen Irving, the one who ended things with Lavendar Lewis over in Grafton?”

“I don’t think he jilted her. There was a quarrel . . . I suppose there was blame on both sides.”

"I don’t think he dumped her. They had an argument... I guess there was fault on both sides."

“Well, anyway, he didn’t marry her, and she’s been as queer as possible ever since, they say . . . living all by herself in that little stone house she calls Echo Lodge. Stephen went off to the States and went into business with his uncle and married a Yankee. He’s never been home since, though his mother has been up to see him once or twice. His wife died two years ago and he’s sending the boy home to his mother for a spell. He’s ten years old and I don’t know if he’ll be a very desirable pupil. You can never tell about those Yankees.”

“Well, anyway, he didn’t marry her, and they say she’s been really strange ever since... living all alone in that little stone house she calls Echo Lodge. Stephen went off to the States, went into business with his uncle, and married an American. He hasn’t been back home since, although his mom has visited him once or twice. His wife passed away two years ago, and he’s sending their ten-year-old son back to his mother for a while. I’m not sure if he’ll be a very good student. You can never tell with those Americans.”

Mrs Lynde looked upon all people who had the misfortune to be born or brought up elsewhere than in Prince Edward Island with a decided can-any-good-thing-come-out-of-Nazareth air. They might be good people, of course; but you were on the safe side in doubting it. She had a special prejudice against “Yankees.” Her husband had been cheated out of ten dollars by an employer for whom he had once worked in Boston and neither angels nor principalities nor powers could have convinced Mrs. Rachel that the whole United States was not responsible for it.

Mrs. Lynde viewed everyone who wasn’t born or raised on Prince Edward Island with a definite "can anything good come out of Nazareth?" attitude. They might be decent people, sure, but it was safer to be skeptical. She had a particular bias against “Yankees.” Her husband had been swindled out of ten dollars by a boss he worked for in Boston, and no amount of convincing from angels or authorities could make Mrs. Rachel believe that the entire United States wasn’t to blame for it.

“Avonlea school won’t be the worse for a little new blood,” said Marilla drily, “and if this boy is anything like his father he’ll be all right. Steve Irving was the nicest boy that was ever raised in these parts, though some people did call him proud. I should think Mrs. Irving would be very glad to have the child. She has been very lonesome since her husband died.”

“Avonlea school could use some fresh faces,” said Marilla dryly, “and if this boy is anything like his father, he’ll be fine. Steve Irving was the nicest kid ever raised around here, even though some people thought he was stuck-up. I bet Mrs. Irving would be really happy to have her son. She’s been very lonely since her husband passed away.”

“Oh, the boy may be well enough, but he’ll be different from Avonlea children,” said Mrs. Rachel, as if that clinched the matter. Mrs. Rachel’s opinions concerning any person, place, or thing, were always warranted to wear. “What’s this I hear about your going to start up a Village Improvement Society, Anne?”

“Oh, the boy might be okay, but he'll be different from the kids in Avonlea,” said Mrs. Rachel, as if that settled everything. Mrs. Rachel always had strong opinions about any person, place, or thing. “What’s this I hear about you starting a Village Improvement Society, Anne?”

“I was just talking it over with some of the girls and boys at the last Debating Club,” said Anne, flushing. “They thought it would be rather nice . . . and so do Mr. and Mrs. Allan. Lots of villages have them now.”

“I was just discussing it with some of the guys and girls at the last Debating Club,” said Anne, blushing. “They thought it would be pretty nice . . . and so do Mr. and Mrs. Allan. Many villages have them now.”

“Well, you’ll get into no end of hot water if you do. Better leave it alone, Anne, that’s what. People don’t like being improved.”

“Well, you'll get yourself into a lot of trouble if you do. It’s better to just leave it alone, Anne, that’s what. People don’t like being changed.”

“Oh, we are not going to try to improve the people. It is Avonlea itself. There are lots of things which might be done to make it prettier. For instance, if we could coax Mr. Levi Boulter to pull down that dreadful old house on his upper farm wouldn’t that be an improvement?”

“Oh, we’re not looking to change the people. It’s Avonlea itself. There are plenty of things we could do to make it more attractive. For example, if we could persuade Mr. Levi Boulter to take down that ugly old house on his upper farm, wouldn’t that be an improvement?”

“It certainly would,” admitted Mrs. Rachel. “That old ruin has been an eyesore to the settlement for years. But if you Improvers can coax Levi Boulter to do anything for the public that he isn’t to be paid for doing, may I be there to see and hear the process, that’s what. I don’t want to discourage you, Anne, for there may be something in your idea, though I suppose you did get it out of some rubbishy Yankee magazine; but you’ll have your hands full with your school and I advise you as a friend not to bother with your improvements, that’s what. But there, I know you’ll go ahead with it if you’ve set your mind on it. You were always one to carry a thing through somehow.”

“It definitely would,” admitted Mrs. Rachel. “That old wreck has been an eyesore for the community for years. But if you Improvers can get Levi Boulter to do anything for the public that he won’t get paid for, I’d love to see and hear how that happens, seriously. I don’t want to discourage you, Anne, since there could be something to your idea, even though I assume you got it from some trashy Yankee magazine; but you’ll have your hands full with your school and I suggest, as a friend, that you don’t stress over your improvements. But I know you’ll go for it anyway if you’ve made up your mind. You’ve always been someone who gets things done one way or another.”

Something about the firm outlines of Anne’s lips told that Mrs. Rachel was not far astray in this estimate. Anne’s heart was bent on forming the Improvement Society. Gilbert Blythe, who was to teach in White Sands but would always be home from Friday night to Monday morning, was enthusiastic about it; and most of the other folks were willing to go in for anything that meant occasional meetings and consequently some “fun.” As for what the “improvements” were to be, nobody had any very clear idea except Anne and Gilbert. They had talked them over and planned them out until an ideal Avonlea existed in their minds, if nowhere else.

Something about the firm outlines of Anne’s lips suggested that Mrs. Rachel was quite right in her opinion. Anne was determined to create the Improvement Society. Gilbert Blythe, who would be teaching in White Sands but was always home from Friday night to Monday morning, was really into it; and most of the other people were eager to join in anything that meant occasional meetings and some “fun.” As for what the “improvements” would be, no one had a clear idea except Anne and Gilbert. They had discussed and planned these ideas until they had an ideal Avonlea in their minds, if not anywhere else.

Mrs. Rachel had still another item of news.

Mrs. Rachel had one more piece of news.

“They’ve given the Carmody school to a Priscilla Grant. Didn’t you go to Queen’s with a girl of that name, Anne?”

“They’ve handed the Carmody school over to a Priscilla Grant. Didn’t you go to Queen’s with a girl by that name, Anne?”

“Yes, indeed. Priscilla to teach at Carmody! How perfectly lovely!” exclaimed Anne, her gray eyes lighting up until they looked like evening stars, causing Mrs. Lynde to wonder anew if she would ever get it settled to her satisfaction whether Anne Shirley were really a pretty girl or not.

“Yes, definitely. Priscilla is going to teach at Carmody! How absolutely wonderful!” exclaimed Anne, her gray eyes brightening until they resembled evening stars, making Mrs. Lynde wonder once again if she would ever figure out to her satisfaction whether Anne Shirley was actually a pretty girl or not.

II
Selling in Haste and Repenting at Leisure

Anne drove over to Carmody on a shopping expedition the next afternoon and took Diana Barry with her. Diana was, of course, a pledged member of the Improvement Society, and the two girls talked about little else all the way to Carmody and back.

Anne drove to Carmody for some shopping the next afternoon and took Diana Barry along. Diana was, of course, a committed member of the Improvement Society, and the two girls chatted about nothing else the entire trip to Carmody and back.

“The very first thing we ought to do when we get started is to have that hall painted,” said Diana, as they drove past the Avonlea hall, a rather shabby building set down in a wooded hollow, with spruce trees hooding it about on all sides. “It’s a disgraceful looking place and we must attend to it even before we try to get Mr. Levi Boulder to pull his house down. Father says we’ll never succeed in doing that . . . Levi Boulter is too mean to spend the time it would take.”

“The first thing we need to do when we get started is to have that hall painted,” said Diana as they drove past the Avonlea hall, a pretty rundown building nestled in a wooded hollow, surrounded by spruce trees on all sides. “It looks terrible, and we have to take care of it before we even think about getting Mr. Levi Boulder to tear his house down. Dad says we’ll never manage to do that . . . Levi Boulter is too stingy to spend the time it would take.”

“Perhaps he’ll let the boys take it down if they promise to haul the boards and split them up for him for kindling wood,” said Anne hopefully. “We must do our best and be content to go slowly at first. We can’t expect to improve everything all at once. We’ll have to educate public sentiment first, of course.”

“Maybe he’ll let the boys take it down if they promise to carry the boards and cut them up for him for firewood,” Anne said hopefully. “We have to do our best and be okay with starting slowly. We can’t expect to fix everything all at once. We’ll need to change public opinion first, of course.”

Diana wasn’t exactly sure what educating public sentiment meant; but it sounded fine and she felt rather proud that she was going to belong to a society with such an aim in view.

Diana wasn’t completely sure what educating public sentiment meant, but it sounded good and she felt pretty proud that she was going to be part of a society with that goal in mind.

“I thought of something last night that we could do, Anne. You know that three-cornered piece of ground where the roads from Carmody and Newbridge and White Sands meet? It’s all grown over with young spruce; but wouldn’t it be nice to have them all cleared out, and just leave the two or three birch trees that are on it?”

“I came up with an idea last night, Anne. You know that triangular patch of land where the roads from Carmody, Newbridge, and White Sands meet? It’s overrun with young spruce, but wouldn’t it be nice to clear them out and just keep the two or three birch trees that are there?”

“Splendid,” agreed Anne gaily. “And have a rustic seat put under the birches. And when spring comes we’ll have a flower-bed made in the middle of it and plant geraniums.”

“Awesome,” agreed Anne cheerfully. “And let’s put a rustic bench under the birches. When spring comes, we’ll create a flower bed in the middle of it and plant geraniums.”

“Yes; only we’ll have to devise some way of getting old Mrs. Hiram Sloane to keep her cow off the road, or she’ll eat our geraniums up,” laughed Diana. “I begin to see what you mean by educating public sentiment, Anne. There’s the old Boulter house now. Did you ever see such a rookery? And perched right close to the road too. An old house with its windows gone always makes me think of something dead with its eyes picked out.”

“Yeah, but we’ll need to figure out how to keep old Mrs. Hiram Sloane’s cow off the road, or it’ll eat our geraniums,” Diana laughed. “I’m starting to understand what you mean by educating public sentiment, Anne. Look at the old Boulter house. Have you ever seen such a dump? And it’s right by the road, too. An old house with its windows gone always makes me think of something dead with its eyes pecked out.”

“I think an old, deserted house is such a sad sight,” said Anne dreamily. “It always seems to me to be thinking about its past and mourning for its old-time joys. Marilla says that a large family was raised in that old house long ago, and that it was a real pretty place, with a lovely garden and roses climbing all over it. It was full of little children and laughter and songs; and now it is empty, and nothing ever wanders through it but the wind. How lonely and sorrowful it must feel! Perhaps they all come back on moonlit nights . . . the ghosts of the little children of long ago and the roses and the songs . . . and for a little while the old house can dream it is young and joyous again.”

“I think an old, abandoned house is such a sad sight,” said Anne dreamily. “It always seems to me like it's reflecting on its past and mourning for its former joys. Marilla says a large family used to live in that old house a long time ago, and that it was a really beautiful place, with a lovely garden and roses climbing all over it. It was filled with little kids and laughter and songs; and now it’s empty, and nothing ever goes through it except the wind. How lonely and sorrowful it must feel! Maybe they all come back on moonlit nights... the ghosts of the little children from long ago and the roses and the songs... and for a little while the old house can dream it's young and happy again.”

Diana shook her head.

Diana shook her head.

“I never imagine things like that about places now, Anne. Don’t you remember how cross mother and Marilla were when we imagined ghosts into the Haunted Wood? To this day I can’t go through that bush comfortably after dark; and if I began imagining such things about the old Boulter house I’d be frightened to pass it too. Besides, those children aren’t dead. They’re all grown up and doing well . . . and one of them is a butcher. And flowers and songs couldn’t have ghosts anyhow.”

“I can’t picture things like that about places anymore, Anne. Don’t you remember how mad Mom and Marilla got when we imagined ghosts in the Haunted Wood? Even now, I can’t walk through that area comfortably after dark; if I started imagining things about the old Boulter house, I’d be too scared to go by it, too. Plus, those kids aren’t dead. They’ve all grown up and are doing well… and one of them is a butcher. And flowers and songs can’t have ghosts, anyway.”

Anne smothered a little sigh. She loved Diana dearly and they had always been good comrades. But she had long ago learned that when she wandered into the realm of fancy she must go alone. The way to it was by an enchanted path where not even her dearest might follow her.

Anne held back a small sigh. She loved Diana dearly, and they had always been great friends. But she had learned long ago that when she ventured into the world of imagination, she had to go alone. The path to it was an enchanted one, where even her closest friends couldn't follow her.

A thunder-shower came up while the girls were at Carmody; it did not last long, however, and the drive home, through lanes where the raindrops sparkled on the boughs and little leafy valleys where the drenched ferns gave out spicy odors, was delightful. But just as they turned into the Cuthbert lane Anne saw something that spoiled the beauty of the landscape for her.

A thunderstorm popped up while the girls were at Carmody; it didn’t last long, though, and the drive home, through lanes where the raindrops sparkled on the branches and little leafy valleys where the soaked ferns released spicy scents, was lovely. But just as they turned into the Cuthbert lane, Anne saw something that ruined the beauty of the scenery for her.

Before them on the right extended Mr. Harrison’s broad, gray-green field of late oats, wet and luxuriant; and there, standing squarely in the middle of it, up to her sleek sides in the lush growth, and blinking at them calmly over the intervening tassels, was a Jersey cow!

Before them on the right lay Mr. Harrison’s wide, gray-green field of late oats, wet and lush; and there, standing squarely in the middle of it, up to her sleek sides in the thick growth, and calmly blinking at them over the tall tassels, was a Jersey cow!

Anne dropped the reins and stood up with a tightening of the lips that boded no good to the predatory quadruped. Not a word said she, but she climbed nimbly down over the wheels, and whisked across the fence before Diana understood what had happened.

Anne dropped the reins and stood up with a tight-lipped expression that spelled trouble for the lurking horse. She didn’t say a word, but she quickly climbed down over the wheels and dashed across the fence before Diana realized what was going on.

“Anne, come back,” shrieked the latter, as soon as she found her voice. “You’ll ruin your dress in that wet grain . . . ruin it. She doesn’t hear me! Well, she’ll never get that cow out by herself. I must go and help her, of course.”

“Anne, come back,” shouted the latter as soon as she could speak. “You’ll ruin your dress in that wet grain . . . ruin it. She doesn’t hear me! Well, she’ll never get that cow out by herself. I have to go and help her, of course.”

Anne was charging through the grain like a mad thing. Diana hopped briskly down, tied the horse securely to a post, turned the skirt of her pretty gingham dress over her shoulders, mounted the fence, and started in pursuit of her frantic friend. She could run faster than Anne, who was hampered by her clinging and drenched skirt, and soon overtook her. Behind them they left a trail that would break Mr. Harrison’s heart when he should see it.

Anne was sprinting through the grain like a wild person. Diana quickly hopped down, tied the horse securely to a post, pulled the skirt of her cute gingham dress over her shoulders, climbed over the fence, and took off after her frantic friend. She could run faster than Anne, who was slowed down by her wet and clingy skirt, and soon caught up with her. Behind them, they left a path that would break Mr. Harrison’s heart when he saw it.

“Anne, for mercy’s sake, stop,” panted poor Diana. “I’m right out of breath and you are wet to the skin.”

“Anne, please stop,” gasped poor Diana. “I can barely breathe, and you're soaked through.”

“I must . . . get . . . that cow . . . out . . . before . . . Mr. Harrison . . . sees her,” gasped Anne. “I don’t . . . care . . . if I’m . . . drowned . . . if we . . . can . . . only . . . do that.”

“I have to get that cow out before Mr. Harrison sees her,” Anne gasped. “I don’t care if I drown as long as we can just manage to do that.”

But the Jersey cow appeared to see no good reason for being hustled out of her luscious browsing ground. No sooner had the two breathless girls got near her than she turned and bolted squarely for the opposite corner of the field.

But the Jersey cow looked like she had no good reason to be rushed out of her tasty grazing spot. As soon as the two out-of-breath girls got close to her, she turned and dashed straight for the opposite corner of the field.

“Head her off,” screamed Anne. “Run, Diana, run.”

"Block her," Anne yelled. "Run, Diana, run."

Diana did run. Anne tried to, and the wicked Jersey went around the field as if she were possessed. Privately, Diana thought she was. It was fully ten minutes before they headed her off and drove her through the corner gap into the Cuthbert lane.

Diana did run. Anne tried to, and the nasty Jersey ran around the field like she was out of control. Deep down, Diana thought she really was. It took a full ten minutes before they managed to corner her and herd her through the gap into the Cuthbert lane.

There is no denying that Anne was in anything but an angelic temper at that precise moment. Nor did it soothe her in the least to behold a buggy halted just outside the lane, wherein sat Mr. Shearer of Carmody and his son, both of whom wore a broad smile.

There’s no doubt that Anne was far from being in a good mood at that moment. It didn’t help her at all to see a carriage stopped just outside the lane, where Mr. Shearer from Carmody and his son were sitting, both of them wearing big smiles.

“I guess you’d better have sold me that cow when I wanted to buy her last week, Anne,” chuckled Mr. Shearer.

“I guess you should have sold me that cow when I wanted to buy her last week, Anne,” laughed Mr. Shearer.

“I’ll sell her to you now, if you want her,” said her flushed and disheveled owner. “You may have her this very minute.”

“I’ll sell her to you right now, if you want her,” said her flushed and messy owner. “You can have her this very minute.”

“Done. I’ll give you twenty for her as I offered before, and Jim here can drive her right over to Carmody. She’ll go to town with the rest of the shipment this evening. Mr. Reed of Brighton wants a Jersey cow.”

“Done. I’ll give you twenty for her like I said before, and Jim here can take her right over to Carmody. She’ll head to town with the rest of the shipment this evening. Mr. Reed from Brighton wants a Jersey cow.”

Five minutes later Jim Shearer and the Jersey cow were marching up the road, and impulsive Anne was driving along the Green Gables lane with her twenty dollars.

Five minutes later, Jim Shearer and the Jersey cow were walking up the road, while impulsive Anne was cruising down the Green Gables lane with her twenty dollars.

“What will Marilla say?” asked Diana.

"What will Marilla think?" Diana asked.

“Oh, she won’t care. Dolly was my own cow and it isn’t likely she’d bring more than twenty dollars at the auction. But oh dear, if Mr. Harrison sees that grain he will know she has been in again, and after my giving him my word of honor that I’d never let it happen! Well, it has taught me a lesson not to give my word of honor about cows. A cow that could jump over or break through our milk-pen fence couldn’t be trusted anywhere.”

“Oh, she won’t mind. Dolly was my cow, and she probably wouldn’t sell for more than twenty dollars at the auction. But oh no, if Mr. Harrison sees that grain, he’ll know she’s been in again, especially after I promised him I’d never let it happen! Well, I’ve learned my lesson about making promises regarding cows. A cow that can jump over or break through our milk-pen fence can’t be trusted anywhere.”

Marilla had gone down to Mrs. Lynde’s, and when she returned knew all about Dolly’s sale and transfer, for Mrs. Lynde had seen most of the transaction from her window and guessed the rest.

Marilla had gone down to Mrs. Lynde’s, and when she came back, she knew all about Dolly’s sale and transfer, since Mrs. Lynde had seen most of the transaction from her window and figured out the rest.

“I suppose it’s just as well she’s gone, though you do do things in a dreadful headlong fashion, Anne. I don’t see how she got out of the pen, though. She must have broken some of the boards off.”

“I guess it’s for the best that she’s gone, even though you really do things in a reckless way, Anne. I just don’t understand how she got out of the pen; she must have broken some of the boards.”

“I didn’t think of looking,” said Anne, “but I’ll go and see now. Martin has never come back yet. Perhaps some more of his aunts have died. I think it’s something like Mr. Peter Sloane and the octogenarians. The other evening Mrs. Sloane was reading a newspaper and she said to Mr. Sloane, ‘I see here that another octogenarian has just died. What is an octogenarian, Peter?’ And Mr. Sloane said he didn’t know, but they must be very sickly creatures, for you never heard tell of them but they were dying. That’s the way with Martin’s aunts.”

“I didn’t think to check,” said Anne, “but I’ll go and see now. Martin hasn’t come back yet. Maybe some more of his aunts have passed away. It’s kind of like Mr. Peter Sloane and the octogenarians. The other evening, Mrs. Sloane was reading a newspaper and she said to Mr. Sloane, ‘I see here that another octogenarian has just died. What is an octogenarian, Peter?’ And Mr. Sloane said he didn’t know, but they must be really fragile, because you only hear about them when they’re dying. That’s how it is with Martin’s aunts.”

“Martin’s just like all the rest of those French,” said Marilla in disgust. “You can’t depend on them for a day.” Marilla was looking over Anne’s Carmody purchases when she heard a shrill shriek in the barnyard. A minute later Anne dashed into the kitchen, wringing her hands.

“Martin’s just like all the others from France,” Marilla said with disgust. “You can’t count on them for even a day.” Marilla was going through Anne’s shopping from Carmody when she heard a loud scream from the barnyard. A minute later, Anne rushed into the kitchen, wringing her hands.

“Anne Shirley, what’s the matter now?”

“Anne Shirley, what's up now?”

“Oh, Marilla, whatever shall I do? This is terrible. And it’s all my fault. Oh, will I ever learn to stop and reflect a little before doing reckless things? Mrs. Lynde always told me I would do something dreadful some day, and now I’ve done it!”

“Oh, Marilla, what am I going to do? This is awful. And it’s all my fault. Oh, will I *ever* learn to take a moment to think things through before doing something crazy? Mrs. Lynde always said I would end up doing something terrible one day, and now I’ve done it!”

“Anne, you are the most exasperating girl! What is it you’ve done?”

“Anne, you are the most frustrating girl! What have you done?”

“Sold Mr. Harrison’s Jersey cow . . . the one he bought from Mr. Bell . . . to Mr. Shearer! Dolly is out in the milking pen this very minute.”

“Sold Mr. Harrison’s Jersey cow... the one he got from Mr. Bell... to Mr. Shearer! Dolly is out in the milking pen right now.”

“Anne Shirley, are you dreaming?”

"Anne Shirley, are you daydreaming?"

“I only wish I were. There’s no dream about it, though it’s very like a nightmare. And Mr. Harrison’s cow is in Charlottetown by this time. Oh, Marilla, I thought I’d finished getting into scrapes, and here I am in the very worst one I ever was in in my life. What can I do?”

“I only wish I were. There’s no dream about it, though it feels a lot like a nightmare. And Mr. Harrison’s cow is probably in Charlottetown by now. Oh, Marilla, I thought I’d stopped getting into trouble, and here I am in the worst one I’ve ever been in. What can I do?”

“Do? There’s nothing to do, child, except go and see Mr. Harrison about it. We can offer him our Jersey in exchange if he doesn’t want to take the money. She is just as good as his.”

“Do? There’s nothing to do, kid, except go and talk to Mr. Harrison about it. We can offer him our Jersey in exchange if he doesn’t want to take the money. She’s just as good as his.”

“I’m sure he’ll be awfully cross and disagreeable about it, though,” moaned Anne.

“I’m sure he’ll be really upset and difficult about it, though,” complained Anne.

“I daresay he will. He seems to be an irritable sort of a man. I’ll go and explain to him if you like.”

“I bet he will. He seems like an easily irritated kind of guy. I can go and explain it to him if you'd like.”

“No, indeed, I’m not as mean as that,” exclaimed Anne. “This is all my fault and I’m certainly not going to let you take my punishment. I’ll go myself and I’ll go at once. The sooner it’s over the better, for it will be terribly humiliating.”

“No, I’m really not that cruel,” Anne said. “This is all my fault, and I’m definitely not going to let you take my punishment. I’ll handle it myself and I’ll do it right now. The sooner it’s done, the better, because it’s going to be super embarrassing.”

Poor Anne got her hat and her twenty dollars and was passing out when she happened to glance through the open pantry door. On the table reposed a nut cake which she had baked that morning . . . a particularly toothsome concoction iced with pink icing and adorned with walnuts. Anne had intended it for Friday evening, when the youth of Avonlea were to meet at Green Gables to organize the Improvement Society. But what were they compared to the justly offended Mr. Harrison? Anne thought that cake ought to soften the heart of any man, especially one who had to do his own cooking, and she promptly popped it into a box. She would take it to Mr. Harrison as a peace offering.

Poor Anne grabbed her hat and her twenty dollars and was heading out when she happened to look through the open pantry door. On the table sat a nut cake that she had baked that morning… a particularly delicious treat iced with pink frosting and topped with walnuts. Anne had meant it for Friday evening, when the young people of Avonlea were supposed to gather at Green Gables to set up the Improvement Society. But what were those plans compared to the rightfully upset Mr. Harrison? Anne thought that cake should soften the heart of any man, especially one who had to cook for himself, so she quickly put it into a box. She would take it to Mr. Harrison as a peace offering.

“That is, if he gives me a chance to say anything at all,” she thought ruefully, as she climbed the lane fence and started on a short cut across the fields, golden in the light of the dreamy August evening. “I know now just how people feel who are being led to execution.”

“That is, if he gives me a chance to say anything at all,” she thought sadly, as she climbed over the lane fence and took a shortcut across the fields, glowing in the light of the dreamy August evening. “I now understand how people feel when they’re being taken to their execution.”

III
Mr. Harrison at Home

Mr. Harrison’s house was an old-fashioned, low-eaved, whitewashed structure, set against a thick spruce grove.

Mr. Harrison’s house was a traditional, low-roofed, whitewashed building, situated next to a dense spruce forest.

Mr. Harrison himself was sitting on his vineshaded veranda, in his shirt sleeves, enjoying his evening pipe. When he realized who was coming up the path he sprang suddenly to his feet, bolted into the house, and shut the door. This was merely the uncomfortable result of his surprise, mingled with a good deal of shame over his outburst of temper the day before. But it nearly swept the remnant of her courage from Anne’s heart.

Mr. Harrison was sitting on his vine-covered porch in his shirtsleeves, enjoying his evening pipe. When he saw who was coming up the path, he jumped to his feet, rushed into the house, and shut the door. This was just the awkward reaction of his surprise, mixed with a lot of shame over his angry outburst the day before. But it nearly took away the last bit of courage Anne had left.

“If he’s so cross now what will he be when he hears what I’ve done,” she reflected miserably, as she rapped at the door.

“If he’s so angry now, what will he be when he finds out what I’ve done,” she thought sadly, as she knocked on the door.

But Mr. Harrison opened it, smiling sheepishly, and invited her to enter in a tone quite mild and friendly, if somewhat nervous. He had laid aside his pipe and donned his coat; he offered Anne a very dusty chair very politely, and her reception would have passed off pleasantly enough if it had not been for the telltale of a parrot who was peering through the bars of his cage with wicked golden eyes. No sooner had Anne seated herself than Ginger exclaimed,

But Mr. Harrison opened the door, smiling awkwardly, and invited her in with a friendly, if slightly nervous, tone. He had put down his pipe and put on his coat; he offered Anne a very dusty chair in a very polite manner. Their interaction would have gone smoothly if it hadn't been for the parrot, who was eyeing them with mischievous golden eyes, peering through the bars of its cage. As soon as Anne sat down, Ginger exclaimed,

“Bless my soul, what’s that redheaded snippet coming here for?”

“Wow, what’s that redheaded girl coming here for?”

It would be hard to say whose face was the redder, Mr. Harrison’s or Anne’s.

It would be hard to say whose face was redder, Mr. Harrison’s or Anne’s.

“Don’t you mind that parrot,” said Mr. Harrison, casting a furious glance at Ginger. “He’s . . . he’s always talking nonsense. I got him from my brother who was a sailor. Sailors don’t always use the choicest language, and parrots are very imitative birds.”

“Don’t pay attention to that parrot,” Mr. Harrison said, giving Ginger an intense stare. “He’s… he’s always spouting nonsense. I got him from my brother, who was a sailor. Sailors don’t always have the best language, and parrots are really good at mimicking.”

“So I should think,” said poor Anne, the remembrance of her errand quelling her resentment. She couldn’t afford to snub Mr. Harrison under the circumstances, that was certain. When you had just sold a man’s Jersey cow offhand, without his knowledge or consent you must not mind if his parrot repeated uncomplimentary things. Nevertheless, the “redheaded snippet” was not quite so meek as she might otherwise have been.

“So I guess,” said poor Anne, remembering her mission and calming her anger. She couldn’t afford to disrespect Mr. Harrison given the situation, that was for sure. After all, when you’ve just sold a man’s Jersey cow without his knowledge or consent, you can’t be surprised if his parrot is saying rude things. Still, the “redheaded brat” wasn’t quite as submissive as she might have been otherwise.

“I’ve come to confess something to you, Mr. Harrison,” she said resolutely. “It’s . . . it’s about . . . that Jersey cow.”

“I need to tell you something, Mr. Harrison,” she said firmly. “It’s . . . it’s about . . . that Jersey cow.”

“Bless my soul,” exclaimed Mr. Harrison nervously, “has she gone and broken into my oats again? Well, never mind . . . never mind if she has. It’s no difference . . . none at all, I . . . I was too hasty yesterday, that’s a fact. Never mind if she has.”

“Goodness,” Mr. Harrison said anxiously, “has she gone and gotten into my oats again? Well, it doesn’t matter... it really doesn’t matter if she has. It’s no big deal... not at all, I... I was too quick to judge yesterday, that’s true. It’s fine if she has.”

“Oh, if it were only that,” sighed Anne. “But it’s ten times worse. I don’t . . .”

“Oh, if it were just that,” sighed Anne. “But it’s ten times worse. I don’t . . .”

“Bless my soul, do you mean to say she’s got into my wheat?”

“Goodness, are you saying she’s gotten into my wheat?”

“No . . . no . . . not the wheat. But . . .”

“No... no... not the wheat. But...”

“Then it’s the cabbages! She’s broken into my cabbages that I was raising for Exhibition, hey?”

“Then it’s the cabbages! She’s gotten into my cabbages that I was growing for the Exhibition, right?”

“It’s not the cabbages, Mr. Harrison. I’ll tell you everything . . . that is what I came for—but please don’t interrupt me. It makes me so nervous. Just let me tell my story and don’t say anything till I get through—and then no doubt you’ll say plenty,” Anne concluded, but in thought only.

“It’s not the cabbages, Mr. Harrison. I’ll tell you everything . . . that’s why I’m here—but please don’t interrupt me. It makes me really nervous. Just let me finish my story and don’t say anything until I’m done—and then I’m sure you’ll have plenty to say,” Anne concluded, but only in her thoughts.

“I won’t say another word,” said Mr. Harrison, and he didn’t. But Ginger was not bound by any contract of silence and kept ejaculating, “Redheaded snippet” at intervals until Anne felt quite wild.

“I won’t say another word,” Mr. Harrison said, and he didn’t. But Ginger wasn’t restricted by any agreement to stay silent and kept shouting, “Redheaded brat” at different times until Anne felt completely frustrated.

“I shut my Jersey cow up in our pen yesterday. This morning I went to Carmody and when I came back I saw a Jersey cow in your oats. Diana and I chased her out and you can’t imagine what a hard time we had. I was so dreadfully wet and tired and vexed—and Mr. Shearer came by that very minute and offered to buy the cow. I sold her to him on the spot for twenty dollars. It was wrong of me. I should have waited and consulted Marilla, of course. But I’m dreadfully given to doing things without thinking—everybody who knows me will tell you that. Mr. Shearer took the cow right away to ship her on the afternoon train.”

"I locked up my Jersey cow in the pen yesterday. This morning I went to Carmody, and when I got back, I saw a Jersey cow in your oats. Diana and I chased her out, and you wouldn’t believe how difficult it was. I was completely soaked, tired, and frustrated—and just then, Mr. Shearer showed up and offered to buy the cow. I sold her to him right then for twenty dollars. It was a mistake on my part. I should have waited and talked it over with Marilla, of course. But I tend to act without thinking—everyone who knows me would agree. Mr. Shearer took the cow straight away to ship her on the afternoon train."

“Redheaded snippet,” quoted Ginger in a tone of profound contempt.

“Redheaded snippet,” Ginger said with deep disdain.

At this point Mr. Harrison arose and, with an expression that would have struck terror into any bird but a parrot, carried Ginger’s cage into an adjoining room and shut the door. Ginger shrieked, swore, and otherwise conducted himself in keeping with his reputation, but finding himself left alone, relapsed into sulky silence.

At this point, Mr. Harrison got up and, with a look that would have scared any bird except a parrot, moved Ginger’s cage into a nearby room and closed the door. Ginger screamed, cursed, and acted true to his reputation, but when he realized he was alone, he fell into a sullen silence.

“Excuse me and go on,” said Mr. Harrison, sitting down again. “My brother the sailor never taught that bird any manners.”

“Go ahead,” Mr. Harrison said as he sat down again. “My brother the sailor never taught that bird any manners.”

“I went home and after tea I went out to the milking pen. Mr. Harrison,” . . . Anne leaned forward, clasping her hands with her old childish gesture, while her big gray eyes gazed imploringly into Mr. Harrison’s embarrassed face . . . “I found my cow still shut up in the pen. It was your cow I had sold to Mr. Shearer.”

“I went home, and after tea, I went out to the milking pen. Mr. Harrison,”... Anne leaned forward, clasping her hands in her usual childhood way, while her big gray eyes looked pleadingly into Mr. Harrison’s embarrassed face... “I found my cow still locked up in the pen. It was your cow I sold to Mr. Shearer.”

“Bless my soul,” exclaimed Mr. Harrison, in blank amazement at this unlooked-for conclusion. “What a very extraordinary thing!”

“Bless my soul,” exclaimed Mr. Harrison, in complete amazement at this unexpected conclusion. “What a really extraordinary thing!”

“Oh, it isn’t in the least extraordinary that I should be getting myself and other people into scrapes,” said Anne mournfully. “I’m noted for that. You might suppose I’d have grown out of it by this time . . . I’ll be seventeen next March . . . but it seems that I haven’t. Mr. Harrison, is it too much to hope that you’ll forgive me? I’m afraid it’s too late to get your cow back, but here is the money for her . . . or you can have mine in exchange if you’d rather. She’s a very good cow. And I can’t express how sorry I am for it all.”

“Oh, it’s not surprising at all that I keep getting myself and others into trouble,” Anne said sadly. “I’m known for that. You’d think I’d have outgrown it by now . . . I’ll be seventeen next March . . . but it seems I haven’t. Mr. Harrison, is it too much to hope you’ll forgive me? I’m afraid it’s too late to get your cow back, but here’s the money for her . . . or you can take mine in exchange if you’d prefer. She’s a really good cow. And I can’t tell you how sorry I am for everything.”

“Tut, tut,” said Mr. Harrison briskly, “don’t say another word about it, miss. It’s of no consequence . . . no consequence whatever. Accidents will happen. I’m too hasty myself sometimes, miss . . . far too hasty. But I can’t help speaking out just what I think and folks must take me as they find me. If that cow had been in my cabbages now . . . but never mind, she wasn’t, so it’s all right. I think I’d rather have your cow in exchange, since you want to be rid of her.”

“Don’t worry about it,” Mr. Harrison said briskly. “It’s really not a big deal… not a big deal at all. Accidents happen. I can be a bit too quick to react myself… way too quick. But I can’t help but say what I think, and people just have to accept me as I am. If that cow had been in my cabbages now… but never mind, she wasn’t, so it’s fine. I think I’d prefer to take your cow instead, since you want to get rid of her.”

“Oh, thank you, Mr. Harrison. I’m so glad you are not vexed. I was afraid you would be.”

“Oh, thank you, Mr. Harrison. I’m really happy you’re not upset. I was worried you would be.”

“And I suppose you were scared to death to come here and tell me, after the fuss I made yesterday, hey? But you mustn’t mind me, I’m a terrible outspoken old fellow, that’s all . . . awful apt to tell the truth, no matter if it is a bit plain.”

“And I guess you were really nervous to come here and talk to me after all the drama I caused yesterday, right? But don't worry about me, I'm just a really blunt old guy, that’s all… really prone to speaking the truth, even if it’s a little harsh.”

“So is Mrs. Lynde,” said Anne, before she could prevent herself.

“So is Mrs. Lynde,” Anne said before she could stop herself.

“Who? Mrs. Lynde? Don’t you tell me I’m like that old gossip,” said Mr. Harrison irritably. “I’m not . . . not a bit. What have you got in that box?”

“Who? Mrs. Lynde? Don’t tell me I’m like that old gossip,” Mr. Harrison said irritably. “I’m not... not at all. What do you have in that box?”

“A cake,” said Anne archly. In her relief at Mr. Harrison’s unexpected amiability her spirits soared upward feather-light. “I brought it over for you . . . I thought perhaps you didn’t have cake very often.”

“A cake,” Anne said playfully. Feeling relieved by Mr. Harrison’s unexpected friendliness, her spirits lifted and felt light as a feather. “I brought it over for you... I thought maybe you didn’t get cake very often.”

“I don’t, that’s a fact, and I’m mighty fond of it, too. I’m much obliged to you. It looks good on top. I hope it’s good all the way through.”

“I don’t, that’s a fact, and I really like it too. I appreciate it. It looks great on the outside. I hope it’s just as good inside.”

“It is,” said Anne, gaily confident. “I have made cakes in my time that were not, as Mrs. Allan could tell you, but this one is all right. I made it for the Improvement Society, but I can make another for them.”

“It is,” said Anne, cheerfully confident. “I’ve made cakes before that weren’t great, as Mrs. Allan could tell you, but this one is good. I made it for the Improvement Society, but I can whip up another one for them.”

“Well, I’ll tell you what, miss, you must help me eat it. I’ll put the kettle on and we’ll have a cup of tea. How will that do?”

“Well, I’ll tell you what, miss, you have to help me eat it. I’ll put the kettle on and we’ll have a cup of tea. How does that sound?”

“Will you let me make the tea?” said Anne dubiously.

“Can I make the tea?” Anne asked uncertainly.

Mr. Harrison chuckled.

Mr. Harrison laughed.

“I see you haven’t much confidence in my ability to make tea. You’re wrong . . . I can brew up as good a jorum of tea as you ever drank. But go ahead yourself. Fortunately it rained last Sunday, so there’s plenty of clean dishes.”

“I see you don’t have much faith in my tea-making skills. You’re mistaken... I can brew as good a pot of tea as you’ve ever had. But go ahead and do it yourself. Luckily, it rained last Sunday, so there are plenty of clean dishes.”

Anne hopped briskly up and went to work. She washed the teapot in several waters before she put the tea to steep. Then she swept the stove and set the table, bringing the dishes out of the pantry. The state of that pantry horrified Anne, but she wisely said nothing. Mr. Harrison told her where to find the bread and butter and a can of peaches. Anne adorned the table with a bouquet from the garden and shut her eyes to the stains on the tablecloth. Soon the tea was ready and Anne found herself sitting opposite Mr. Harrison at his own table, pouring his tea for him, and chatting freely to him about her school and friends and plans. She could hardly believe the evidence of her senses.

Anne jumped up quickly and got to work. She rinsed the teapot several times before letting the tea steep. Then she swept the stove and set the table, taking the dishes out of the pantry. The condition of that pantry shocked Anne, but she wisely kept quiet. Mr. Harrison directed her to where the bread and butter and a can of peaches were. Anne decorated the table with a bouquet from the garden and ignored the stains on the tablecloth. Soon, the tea was ready, and Anne found herself sitting across from Mr. Harrison at his own table, pouring tea for him and chatting easily about her school, friends, and plans. She could hardly believe what was happening.

Mr. Harrison had brought Ginger back, averring that the poor bird would be lonesome; and Anne, feeling that she could forgive everybody and everything, offered him a walnut. But Ginger’s feelings had been grievously hurt and he rejected all overtures of friendship. He sat moodily on his perch and ruffled his feathers up until he looked like a mere ball of green and gold.

Mr. Harrison had brought Ginger back, claiming that the poor bird would be lonely; and Anne, feeling generous enough to forgive everyone and everything, offered him a walnut. But Ginger’s feelings had been deeply hurt, and he turned down all gestures of friendship. He sat sulking on his perch and fluffed up his feathers until he looked like a little ball of green and gold.

“Why do you call him Ginger?” asked Anne, who liked appropriate names and thought Ginger accorded not at all with such gorgeous plumage.

“Why do you call him Ginger?” asked Anne, who liked fitting names and thought Ginger didn’t match at all with such beautiful plumage.

“My brother the sailor named him. Maybe it had some reference to his temper. I think a lot of that bird though . . . you’d be surprised if you knew how much. He has his faults of course. That bird has cost me a good deal one way and another. Some people object to his swearing habits but he can’t be broken of them. I’ve tried . . . other people have tried. Some folks have prejudices against parrots. Silly, ain’t it? I like them myself. Ginger’s a lot of company to me. Nothing would induce me to give that bird up . . . nothing in the world, miss.”

“My brother the sailor named him. Maybe it was related to his temper. I really care about that bird, though . . . you’d be surprised how much. He has his faults, of course. That bird has cost me quite a bit in different ways. Some people don’t like his swearing habits, but he can’t be stopped. I’ve tried . . . other people have tried. Some folks have biases against parrots. Silly, right? I like them myself. Ginger is great company for me. Nothing would make me give that bird up . . . nothing in the world, miss.”

Mr. Harrison flung the last sentence at Anne as explosively as if he suspected her of some latent design of persuading him to give Ginger up. Anne, however, was beginning to like the queer, fussy, fidgety little man, and before the meal was over they were quite good friends. Mr. Harrison found out about the Improvement Society and was disposed to approve of it.

Mr. Harrison shot the last sentence at Anne with as much force as if he thought she was secretly trying to convince him to give up Ginger. Anne, however, was starting to like the strange, fussy, jittery little guy, and by the end of the meal, they were pretty good friends. Mr. Harrison learned about the Improvement Society and seemed to be in favor of it.

“That’s right. Go ahead. There’s lots of room for improvement in this settlement . . . and in the people too.”

"That's right. Go ahead. There's plenty of room for improvement in this settlement... and in the people too."

“Oh, I don’t know,” flashed Anne. To herself, or to her particular cronies, she might admit that there were some small imperfections, easily removable, in Avonlea and its inhabitants. But to hear a practical outsider like Mr. Harrison saying it was an entirely different thing. “I think Avonlea is a lovely place; and the people in it are very nice, too.”

“Oh, I don’t know,” Anne replied quickly. To herself or to her close friends, she might admit that there were a few minor flaws, easily fixable, in Avonlea and its residents. But hearing a practical outsider like Mr. Harrison say it was a whole different story. “I think Avonlea is a beautiful place, and the people here are really nice, too.”

“I guess you’ve got a spice of temper,” commented Mr. Harrison, surveying the flushed cheeks and indignant eyes opposite him. “It goes with hair like yours, I reckon. Avonlea is a pretty decent place or I wouldn’t have located here; but I suppose even you will admit that it has some faults?”

“I guess you have a bit of a temper,” Mr. Harrison remarked, looking at the flushed cheeks and angry eyes in front of him. “It fits with hair like yours, I suppose. Avonlea is a pretty nice place or I wouldn’t have moved here; but I think even you have to agree that it has some faults?”

“I like it all the better for them,” said loyal Anne. “I don’t like places or people either that haven’t any faults. I think a truly perfect person would be very uninteresting. Mrs. Milton White says she never met a perfect person, but she’s heard enough about one . . . her husband’s first wife. Don’t you think it must be very uncomfortable to be married to a man whose first wife was perfect?”

“I like it even more because of them,” said loyal Anne. “I don’t like places or people that don’t have any flaws. I think a truly perfect person would be really boring. Mrs. Milton White says she’s never met a perfect person, but she’s heard plenty about one . . . her husband’s first wife. Don’t you think it must be really uncomfortable to be married to a man whose first wife was perfect?”

“It would be more uncomfortable to be married to the perfect wife,” declared Mr. Harrison, with a sudden and inexplicable warmth.

“It would be more uncomfortable to be married to the perfect wife,” declared Mr. Harrison, with a sudden and inexplicable warmth.

When tea was over Anne insisted on washing the dishes, although Mr. Harrison assured her that there were enough in the house to do for weeks yet. She would dearly have loved to sweep the floor also, but no broom was visible and she did not like to ask where it was for fear there wasn’t one at all.

When tea was done, Anne insisted on washing the dishes, even though Mr. Harrison assured her there were plenty in the house to keep them busy for weeks. She really wanted to sweep the floor too, but she couldn't see a broom and didn't want to ask where it was in case there wasn't one at all.

“You might run across and talk to me once in a while,” suggested Mr. Harrison when she was leaving. “’Tisn’t far and folks ought to be neighborly. I’m kind of interested in that society of yours. Seems to me there’ll be some fun in it. Who are you going to tackle first?”

“You might bump into me and chat every now and then,” Mr. Harrison suggested as she was leaving. “It’s not far, and people should be friendly. I’m actually quite interested in your group. Looks like there'll be some fun in it. Who are you planning to approach first?”

“We are not going to meddle with people . . . it is only places we mean to improve,” said Anne, in a dignified tone. She rather suspected that Mr. Harrison was making fun of the project.

“We’re not going to interfere with people . . . we only intend to improve places,” Anne said, sounding dignified. She suspected that Mr. Harrison was mocking the project.

When she had gone Mr. Harrison watched her from the window . . . a lithe, girlish shape, tripping lightheartedly across the fields in the sunset afterglow.

When she left, Mr. Harrison watched her from the window . . . a graceful, youthful figure, skipping playfully across the fields in the glow of the setting sun.

“I’m a crusty, lonesome, crabbed old chap,” he said aloud, “but there’s something about that little girl makes me feel young again . . . and it’s such a pleasant sensation I’d like to have it repeated once in a while.”

“I’m a grumpy, lonely old guy,” he said out loud, “but there’s something about that little girl that makes me feel young again . . . and it’s such a nice feeling I’d like to experience it every now and then.”

“Redheaded snippet,” croaked Ginger mockingly.

“Redhead shorty,” croaked Ginger mockingly.

Mr. Harrison shook his fist at the parrot.

Mr. Harrison shook his fist at the parrot.

“You ornery bird,” he muttered, “I almost wish I’d wrung your neck when my brother the sailor brought you home. Will you never be done getting me into trouble?”

“You stubborn bird,” he muttered, “I almost wish I’d wrung your neck when my brother the sailor brought you home. Will you ever stop getting me into trouble?”

Anne ran home blithely and recounted her adventures to Marilla, who had been not a little alarmed by her long absence and was on the point of starting out to look for her.

Anne ran home happily and shared her adventures with Marilla, who had been quite worried by her long absence and was about to head out to search for her.

“It’s a pretty good world, after all, isn’t it, Marilla?” concluded Anne happily. “Mrs. Lynde was complaining the other day that it wasn’t much of a world. She said whenever you looked forward to anything pleasant you were sure to be more or less disappointed . . . perhaps that is true. But there is a good side to it too. The bad things don’t always come up to your expectations either . . . they nearly always turn out ever so much better than you think. I looked forward to a dreadfully unpleasant experience when I went over to Mr. Harrison’s tonight; and instead he was quite kind and I had almost a nice time. I think we’re going to be real good friends if we make plenty of allowances for each other, and everything has turned out for the best. But all the same, Marilla, I shall certainly never again sell a cow before making sure to whom she belongs. And I do not like parrots!”

“It’s a pretty good world, isn’t it, Marilla?” Anne concluded happily. “Mrs. Lynde was complaining the other day that it’s not much of a world. She said whenever you look forward to something nice, you’re bound to be a bit disappointed... maybe that’s true. But there’s a good side to it too. The bad things don’t usually meet your expectations either... they almost always turn out way better than you think. I was dreading a horrible experience when I went over to Mr. Harrison’s tonight; instead, he was really nice and I had almost a good time. I think we’re going to be really good friends if we just make lots of allowances for each other, and everything has turned out for the best. But still, Marilla, I will definitely never sell a cow again without checking to whom she belongs. And I do not like parrots!”

IV
Different Opinions

One evening at sunset, Jane Andrews, Gilbert Blythe, and Anne Shirley were lingering by a fence in the shadow of gently swaying spruce boughs, where a wood cut known as the Birch Path joined the main road. Jane had been up to spend the afternoon with Anne, who walked part of the way home with her; at the fence they met Gilbert, and all three were now talking about the fateful morrow; for that morrow was the first of September and the schools would open. Jane would go to Newbridge and Gilbert to White Sands.

One evening at sunset, Jane Andrews, Gilbert Blythe, and Anne Shirley were hanging out by a fence in the shade of the gently swaying spruce branches, where a path known as the Birch Path connected to the main road. Jane had come over to spend the afternoon with Anne, who walked part of the way home with her; at the fence, they ran into Gilbert, and all three were now chatting about the important day ahead; because that day was September 1st and school would be starting. Jane was headed to Newbridge while Gilbert was going to White Sands.

“You both have the advantage of me,” sighed Anne. “You’re going to teach children who don’t know you, but I have to teach my own old schoolmates, and Mrs. Lynde says she’s afraid they won’t respect me as they would a stranger unless I’m very cross from the first. But I don’t believe a teacher should be cross. Oh, it seems to me such a responsibility!”

“You both have the upper hand,” Anne sighed. “You’re going to teach kids who don’t know you, but I have to teach my old classmates, and Mrs. Lynde says she’s worried they won’t respect me like they would a stranger unless I’m really strict from the start. But I don’t think a teacher should be strict. It feels like such a huge responsibility!”

“I guess we’ll get on all right,” said Jane comfortably. Jane was not troubled by any aspirations to be an influence for good. She meant to earn her salary fairly, please the trustees, and get her name on the School Inspector’s roll of honor. Further ambitions Jane had none. “The main thing will be to keep order and a teacher has to be a little cross to do that. If my pupils won’t do as I tell them I shall punish them.”

“I think we’ll be fine,” Jane said confidently. She wasn’t worried about trying to be a positive influence. Her goal was to earn her paycheck fairly, make the trustees happy, and get her name on the School Inspector’s honor roll. She had no other ambitions. “The most important thing is to maintain order, and a teacher has to be a bit strict to achieve that. If my students won’t listen to me, I’ll have to discipline them.”

“How?”

“How so?”

“Give them a good whipping, of course.”

“Of course, give them a good beating.”

“Oh, Jane, you wouldn’t,” cried Anne, shocked. “Jane, you couldn’t!

“Oh, Jane, you wouldn’t,” cried Anne, shocked. “Jane, you couldn’t!

“Indeed, I could and would, if they deserved it,” said Jane decidedly.

“Definitely, I could and would, if they earned it,” Jane said firmly.

“I could never whip a child,” said Anne with equal decision. “I don’t believe in it at all. Miss Stacy never whipped any of us and she had perfect order; and Mr. Phillips was always whipping and he had no order at all. No, if I can’t get along without whipping I shall not try to teach school. There are better ways of managing. I shall try to win my pupils’ affections and then they will want to do what I tell them.”

“I could never hit a child,” Anne said firmly. “I don’t believe in it at all. Miss Stacy never hit any of us, and she maintained perfect order; while Mr. Phillips was always hitting and he had no order at all. No, if I can’t manage without hitting, I won’t try to teach school. There are better ways to handle things. I will try to earn my students’ affection, and then they will want to do what I ask.”

“But suppose they don’t?” said practical Jane.

“But what if they don’t?” said practical Jane.

“I wouldn’t whip them anyhow. I’m sure it wouldn’t do any good. Oh, don’t whip your pupils, Jane dear, no matter what they do.”

“I wouldn’t hit them anyway. I’m sure it wouldn’t help. Oh, don’t hit your students, Jane dear, no matter what they do.”

“What do you think about it, Gilbert?” demanded Jane. “Don’t you think there are some children who really need a whipping now and then?”

“What do you think about it, Gilbert?” asked Jane. “Don’t you think some kids really need a spanking every now and then?”

“Don’t you think it’s a cruel, barbarous thing to whip a child . . . any child?” exclaimed Anne, her face flushing with earnestness.

“Don’t you think it’s a cruel, barbaric thing to whip a child . . . any child?” exclaimed Anne, her face flushing with seriousness.

“Well,” said Gilbert slowly, torn between his real convictions and his wish to measure up to Anne’s ideal, “there’s something to be said on both sides. I don’t believe in whipping children much. I think, as you say, Anne, that there are better ways of managing as a rule, and that corporal punishment should be a last resort. But on the other hand, as Jane says, I believe there is an occasional child who can’t be influenced in any other way and who, in short, needs a whipping and would be improved by it. Corporal punishment as a last resort is to be my rule.”

“Well,” Gilbert said slowly, caught between what he truly believed and his desire to meet Anne’s expectations, “there’s something to consider on both sides. I don’t think children should be whipped much. I agree with you, Anne, that there are usually better ways to manage things, and that physical punishment should only be a last resort. But on the other hand, as Jane mentioned, I think there are some kids who can’t be influenced any other way and who, frankly, might actually benefit from a whipping. For me, physical punishment as a last resort will be the rule.”

Gilbert, having tried to please both sides, succeeded, as is usual and eminently right, in pleasing neither. Jane tossed her head.

Gilbert, trying to satisfy both sides, ended up, as often happens and is perfectly understandable, pleasing neither. Jane flipped her hair.

“I’ll whip my pupils when they’re naughty. It’s the shortest and easiest way of convincing them.”

“I’ll punish my students when they misbehave. It’s the quickest and simplest way to get them to listen.”

Anne gave Gilbert a disappointed glance.

Anne cast a disappointed look at Gilbert.

“I shall never whip a child,” she repeated firmly. “I feel sure it isn’t either right or necessary.”

“I will never hit a child,” she repeated firmly. “I’m confident it’s neither right nor needed.”

“Suppose a boy sauced you back when you told him to do something?” said Jane.

“Suppose a guy talked back to you when you told him to do something?” said Jane.

“I’d keep him in after school and talk kindly and firmly to him,” said Anne. “There is some good in every person if you can find it. It is a teacher’s duty to find and develop it. That is what our School Management professor at Queen’s told us, you know. Do you suppose you could find any good in a child by whipping him? It’s far more important to influence the children aright than it is even to teach them the three R’s, Professor Rennie says.”

“I’d keep him after school and talk to him kindly but firmly,” said Anne. “There’s something good in every person if you can discover it. It’s a teacher’s responsibility to find and nurture that. That’s what our School Management professor at Queen’s told us, you know. Do you think you could find any good in a child by punishing him? It’s much more important to positively influence the children than it is even to teach them the three R’s, Professor Rennie says.”

“But the Inspector examines them in the three R’s, mind you, and he won’t give you a good report if they don’t come up to his standard,” protested Jane.

“But the Inspector looks into their skills in the three R’s, just so you know, and he won’t give you a good report if they don’t meet his standards,” Jane protested.

“I’d rather have my pupils love me and look back to me in after years as a real helper than be on the roll of honor,” asserted Anne decidedly.

“I’d prefer my students to love me and remember me as a real support in the years to come rather than being on a hall of fame,” Anne stated firmly.

“Wouldn’t you punish children at all, when they misbehaved?” asked Gilbert.

“Don’t you ever punish kids when they act up?” asked Gilbert.

“Oh, yes, I suppose I shall have to, although I know I’ll hate to do it. But you can keep them in at recess or stand them on the floor or give them lines to write.”

“Oh, yes, I guess I’ll have to, even though I know I’ll hate doing it. But you can keep them in during recess, make them stand on the floor, or have them write lines.”

“I suppose you won’t punish the girls by making them sit with the boys?” said Jane slyly.

“I guess you won’t make the girls sit with the boys as a punishment?” Jane said with a sly smile.

Gilbert and Anne looked at each other and smiled rather foolishly. Once upon a time, Anne had been made to sit with Gilbert for punishment and sad and bitter had been the consequences thereof.

Gilbert and Anne looked at each other and smiled a bit stupidly. Once, Anne had been forced to sit with Gilbert as punishment, and it had turned out sad and bitter for both of them.

“Well, time will tell which is the best way,” said Jane philosophically as they parted.

“Well, time will tell which is the best way,” Jane said thoughtfully as they parted.

Anne went back to Green Gables by way of Birch Path, shadowy, rustling, fern-scented, through Violet Vale and past Willowmere, where dark and light kissed each other under the firs, and down through Lover’s Lane . . . spots she and Diana had so named long ago. She walked slowly, enjoying the sweetness of wood and field and the starry summer twilight, and thinking soberly about the new duties she was to take up on the morrow. When she reached the yard at Green Gables Mrs. Lynde’s loud, decided tones floated out through the open kitchen window.

Anne made her way back to Green Gables along Birch Path, which was shady, rustling, and smelled of ferns, through Violet Vale and past Willowmere, where shadows and light mixed under the fir trees, and down through Lover’s Lane... the spots she and Diana had named a long time ago. She walked slowly, taking in the sweetness of the woods and fields and the starry summer twilight, and thinking seriously about the new responsibilities she would take on tomorrow. When she arrived in the yard at Green Gables, Mrs. Lynde’s loud, firm voice floated out through the open kitchen window.

“Mrs. Lynde has come up to give me good advice about tomorrow,” thought Anne with a grimace, “but I don’t believe I’ll go in. Her advice is much like pepper, I think . . . excellent in small quantities but rather scorching in her doses. I’ll run over and have a chat with Mr. Harrison instead.”

“Mrs. Lynde has come over to give me advice about tomorrow,” thought Anne with a grimace, “but I don’t think I’ll go in. Her advice is kind of like pepper, I believe... great in small amounts but pretty intense in her doses. I’ll head over and have a chat with Mr. Harrison instead.”

This was not the first time Anne had run over and chatted with Mr. Harrison since the notable affair of the Jersey cow. She had been there several evenings and Mr. Harrison and she were very good friends, although there were times and seasons when Anne found the outspokenness on which he prided himself rather trying. Ginger still continued to regard her with suspicion, and never failed to greet her sarcastically as “redheaded snippet.” Mr. Harrison had tried vainly to break him of the habit by jumping excitedly up whenever he saw Anne coming and exclaiming,

This wasn't the first time Anne had rushed over to chat with Mr. Harrison since the infamous incident with the Jersey cow. She had visited him several evenings, and Mr. Harrison and she had become good friends, although there were times when Anne found his proud outspokenness a bit challenging. Ginger still eyed her with suspicion and never missed a chance to greet her with a sarcastic “redheaded snippet.” Mr. Harrison had tried unsuccessfully to break Ginger of this habit by jumping up excitedly whenever he saw Anne approaching and exclaiming,

“Bless my soul, here’s that pretty little girl again,” or something equally flattering. But Ginger saw through the scheme and scorned it. Anne was never to know how many compliments Mr. Harrison paid her behind her back. He certainly never paid her any to her face.

“Wow, look who it is, that charming girl again,” or something just as nice. But Ginger saw right through the act and dismissed it. Anne would never find out how many compliments Mr. Harrison gave about her when she wasn't around. He definitely never said any to her directly.

“Well, I suppose you’ve been back in the woods laying in a supply of switches for tomorrow?” was his greeting as Anne came up the veranda steps.

“Well, I guess you’ve been out in the woods collecting some sticks for tomorrow?” was his greeting as Anne walked up the veranda steps.

“No, indeed,” said Anne indignantly. She was an excellent target for teasing because she always took things so seriously. “I shall never have a switch in my school, Mr. Harrison. Of course, I shall have to have a pointer, but I shall use it for pointing only.”

“No way,” Anne said angrily. She was an easy target for teasing because she always took things so seriously. “I will never have a switch in my school, Mr. Harrison. Of course, I’ll need a pointer, but I will use it for pointing only.”

“So you mean to strap them instead? Well, I don’t know but you’re right. A switch stings more at the time but the strap smarts longer, that’s a fact.”

“So you’re saying we should use the strap instead? I’m not so sure, but you have a point. A switch hurts more in the moment, but the strap stings for a longer time, that’s a fact.”

“I shall not use anything of the sort. I’m not going to whip my pupils.”

“I’m not going to use anything like that. I’m not going to hit my students.”

“Bless my soul,” exclaimed Mr. Harrison in genuine astonishment, “how do you lay out to keep order then?”

“Bless my soul,” Mr. Harrison exclaimed in genuine astonishment, “how do you plan to keep things in order then?”

“I shall govern by affection, Mr. Harrison.”

“I'll lead with kindness, Mr. Harrison.”

“It won’t do,” said Mr. Harrison, “won’t do at all, Anne. ‘Spare the rod and spoil the child.’ When I went to school the master whipped me regular every day because he said if I wasn’t in mischief just then I was plotting it.”

“It won’t work,” said Mr. Harrison, “won’t work at all, Anne. ‘Spare the rod and spoil the child.’ When I was in school, the teacher whipped me every day because he said if I wasn’t up to no good at that moment, I was planning it.”

“Methods have changed since your schooldays, Mr. Harrison.”

“Methods have evolved since your school days, Mr. Harrison.”

“But human nature hasn’t. Mark my words, you’ll never manage the young fry unless you keep a rod in pickle for them. The thing is impossible.”

“But human nature hasn’t changed. Trust me, you’ll never be able to handle the young ones unless you’re ready to discipline them. It’s just not possible.”

“Well, I’m going to try my way first,” said Anne, who had a fairly strong will of her own and was apt to cling very tenaciously to her theories.

“Well, I’m going to try my way first,” said Anne, who had a pretty strong will of her own and tended to hold on tightly to her ideas.

“You’re pretty stubborn, I reckon,” was Mr. Harrison’s way of putting it. “Well, well, we’ll see. Someday when you get riled up . . . and people with hair like yours are desperate apt to get riled . . . you’ll forget all your pretty little notions and give some of them a whaling. You’re too young to be teaching anyhow . . . far too young and childish.”

“You're pretty stubborn, I’d say,” Mr. Harrison expressed. “Well, we’ll see. One of these days when you get fired up... and people with hair like yours are likely to get fired up... you'll forget all your pretty little ideas and really go after some of them. You're too young to be teaching anyway... way too young and immature.”

Altogether, Anne went to bed that night in a rather pessimistic mood. She slept poorly and was so pale and tragic at breakfast next morning that Marilla was alarmed and insisted on making her take a cup of scorching ginger tea. Anne sipped it patiently, although she could not imagine what good ginger tea would do. Had it been some magic brew, potent to confer age and experience, Anne would have swallowed a quart of it without flinching.

Altogether, Anne went to bed that night feeling pretty down. She didn’t sleep well and looked so pale and upset at breakfast the next morning that Marilla got worried and insisted she drink a cup of hot ginger tea. Anne sipped it patiently, even though she couldn’t see how ginger tea would help. If it had been some kind of magic potion that could give her age and experience, Anne would have downed a quart of it without hesitation.

“Marilla, what if I fail!”

“Marilla, what if I mess up!”

“You’ll hardly fail completely in one day and there’s plenty more days coming,” said Marilla. “The trouble with you, Anne, is that you’ll expect to teach those children everything and reform all their faults right off, and if you can’t you’ll think you’ve failed.”

“You won’t completely fail in one day, and there are plenty more days ahead,” Marilla said. “The problem with you, Anne, is that you expect to teach those kids everything and fix all their problems immediately, and if you can’t, you’ll feel like you’ve failed.”

V
A Full-fledged Schoolma’am

When Anne reached the school that morning . . . for the first time in her life she had traversed the Birch Path deaf and blind to its beauties . . . all was quiet and still. The preceding teacher had trained the children to be in their places at her arrival, and when Anne entered the schoolroom she was confronted by prim rows of “shining morning faces” and bright, inquisitive eyes. She hung up her hat and faced her pupils, hoping that she did not look as frightened and foolish as she felt and that they would not perceive how she was trembling.

When Anne arrived at the school that morning . . . for the first time in her life she had walked the Birch Path unaware of its beauty . . . everything was quiet and calm. The previous teacher had taught the children to be in their seats when she arrived, and when Anne walked into the classroom, she was met with neat rows of “shining morning faces” and bright, curious eyes. She hung up her hat and faced her students, hoping she didn’t appear as scared and silly as she felt and that they wouldn’t notice how she was shaking.

She had sat up until nearly twelve the preceding night composing a speech she meant to make to her pupils upon opening the school. She had revised and improved it painstakingly, and then she had learned it off by heart. It was a very good speech and had some very fine ideas in it, especially about mutual help and earnest striving after knowledge. The only trouble was that she could not now remember a word of it.

She had stayed up until almost midnight the night before writing a speech she planned to deliver to her students when school started. She had carefully revised and improved it, then memorized it. It was a really good speech with some excellent ideas, especially about helping each other and working hard to gain knowledge. The only problem was that she couldn't remember a single word of it now.

After what seemed to her a year . . . about ten seconds in reality . . . she said faintly, “Take your Testaments, please,” and sank breathlessly into her chair under cover of the rustle and clatter of desk lids that followed. While the children read their verses Anne marshalled her shaky wits into order and looked over the array of little pilgrims to the Grownup Land.

After what felt like a year to her . . . but was really only about ten seconds . . . she said weakly, “Take your Testaments, please,” and collapsed breathlessly into her chair as the sound of desk lids opening and closing filled the air. While the children read their verses, Anne gathered her scattered thoughts and gazed at the group of little travelers heading into the Adult World.

Most of them were, of course, quite well known to her. Her own classmates had passed out in the preceding year but the rest had all gone to school with her, excepting the primer class and ten newcomers to Avonlea. Anne secretly felt more interest in these ten than in those whose possibilities were already fairly well mapped out to her. To be sure, they might be just as commonplace as the rest; but on the other hand there might be a genius among them. It was a thrilling idea.

Most of them were, of course, quite familiar to her. Her own classmates had graduated the previous year, but the rest had all gone to school with her, except for the first-grade class and ten new students at Avonlea. Anne secretly felt more curious about these ten than about those whose futures were already pretty well figured out to her. Sure, they might be just as ordinary as the others; but on the flip side, there might be a genius among them. It was an exciting thought.

Sitting by himself at a corner desk was Anthony Pye. He had a dark, sullen little face, and was staring at Anne with a hostile expression in his black eyes. Anne instantly made up her mind that she would win that boy’s affection and discomfit the Pyes utterly.

Sitting alone at a corner desk was Anthony Pye. He had a dark, brooding face and was glaring at Anne with a hostile look in his black eyes. Anne immediately decided that she would win that boy’s affection and completely unsettle the Pyes.

In the other corner another strange boy was sitting with Arty Sloane. . . a jolly looking little chap, with a snub nose, freckled face, and big, light blue eyes, fringed with whitish lashes . . . probably the Donnell boy; and if resemblance went for anything, his sister was sitting across the aisle with Mary Bell. Anne wondered what sort of mother the child had, to send her to school dressed as she was. She wore a faded pink silk dress, trimmed with a great deal of cotton lace, soiled white kid slippers, and silk stockings. Her sandy hair was tortured into innumerable kinky and unnatural curls, surmounted by a flamboyant bow of pink ribbon bigger than her head. Judging from her expression she was very well satisfied with herself.

In the other corner, another unusual boy was sitting with Arty Sloane. He was a cheerful-looking little guy, with a flat nose, a freckled face, and big, light blue eyes fringed with pale lashes. He was probably the Donnell boy; and if resemblance meant anything, his sister was across the aisle with Mary Bell. Anne wondered what kind of mother would send her child to school looking like that. She was wearing a faded pink silk dress trimmed with a lot of cotton lace, dirty white kid slippers, and silk stockings. Her sandy hair had been twisted into countless tight and unnatural curls, topped off with a huge pink ribbon bow that was bigger than her head. From the look on her face, she seemed very pleased with herself.

A pale little thing, with smooth ripples of fine, silky, fawn-colored hair flowing over her shoulders, must, Anne thought, be Annetta Bell, whose parents had formerly lived in the Newbridge school district, but, by reason of hauling their house fifty yards north of its old site were now in Avonlea. Three pallid little girls crowded into one seat were certainly Cottons; and there was no doubt that the small beauty with the long brown curls and hazel eyes, who was casting coquettish looks at Jack Gills over the edge of her Testament, was Prillie Rogerson, whose father had recently married a second wife and brought Prillie home from her grandmother’s in Grafton. A tall, awkward girl in a back seat, who seemed to have too many feet and hands, Anne could not place at all, but later on discovered that her name was Barbara Shaw and that she had come to live with an Avonlea aunt. She was also to find that if Barbara ever managed to walk down the aisle without falling over her own or somebody else’s feet the Avonlea scholars wrote the unusual fact up on the porch wall to commemorate it.

A pale little girl with smooth, silky, fawn-colored hair falling over her shoulders must be Annetta Bell, Anne thought. Annetta's parents had previously lived in the Newbridge school district, but after moving their house fifty yards north, they were now in Avonlea. Three pale little girls crowded into one seat were definitely the Cottons; and there was no doubt that the small beauty with long brown curls and hazel eyes, who was giving flirtatious looks at Jack Gills over her Testament, was Prillie Rogerson. Her father had recently remarried and brought Prillie home from her grandmother's in Grafton. A tall, awkward girl in the back seat, who seemed to have too many limbs, was unrecognizable to Anne at first. Later, she found out her name was Barbara Shaw and that she had come to live with an aunt in Avonlea. She would also discover that if Barbara ever managed to walk down the aisle without tripping over her own or someone else's feet, the Avonlea scholars would mark the rare event on the porch wall to commemorate it.

But when Anne’s eyes met those of the boy at the front desk facing her own, a queer little thrill went over her, as if she had found her genius. She knew this must be Paul Irving and that Mrs. Rachel Lynde had been right for once when she prophesied that he would be unlike the Avonlea children. More than that, Anne realized that he was unlike other children anywhere, and that there was a soul subtly akin to her own gazing at her out of the very dark blue eyes that were watching her so intently.

But when Anne's eyes locked onto those of the boy at the front desk looking at her, a strange little thrill ran through her, as if she had discovered her kindred spirit. She knew this had to be Paul Irving, and for once, Mrs. Rachel Lynde was right when she predicted he would be different from the Avonlea kids. More than that, Anne understood that he was unlike any other children anywhere, and there was a soul that resonated with her own looking at her from his deep blue eyes that were studying her so closely.

She knew Paul was ten but he looked no more than eight. He had the most beautiful little face she had ever seen in a child . . . features of exquisite delicacy and refinement, framed in a halo of chestnut curls. His mouth was delicious, being full without pouting, the crimson lips just softly touching and curving into finely finished little corners that narrowly escaped being dimpled. He had a sober, grave, meditative expression, as if his spirit was much older than his body; but when Anne smiled softly at him it vanished in a sudden answering smile, which seemed an illumination of his whole being, as if some lamp had suddenly kindled into flame inside of him, irradiating him from top to toe. Best of all, it was involuntary, born of no external effort or motive, but simply the outflashing of a hidden personality, rare and fine and sweet. With a quick interchange of smiles Anne and Paul were fast friends forever before a word had passed between them.

She knew Paul was ten, but he looked no older than eight. He had the most beautiful little face she had ever seen on a child... features of delicate beauty and refinement, framed by a halo of chestnut curls. His mouth was delightful, full without being pouty, the crimson lips gently touching and curving into finely shaped little corners that almost dimpled. He had a serious, thoughtful expression, as if his spirit was much older than his body; but when Anne smiled softly at him, it disappeared in a sudden responsive smile, which seemed to brighten his whole being, as if some lamp had just been ignited within him, glowing from head to toe. Best of all, it was spontaneous, coming from no external effort or reason, but simply the shining through of a hidden personality, rare, beautiful, and sweet. With a quick exchange of smiles, Anne and Paul became fast friends forever before a word was spoken between them.

The day went by like a dream. Anne could never clearly recall it afterwards. It almost seemed as if it were not she who was teaching but somebody else. She heard classes and worked sums and set copies mechanically. The children behaved quite well; only two cases of discipline occurred. Morley Andrews was caught driving a pair of trained crickets in the aisle. Anne stood Morley on the platform for an hour and . . . which Morley felt much more keenly . . . confiscated his crickets. She put them in a box and on the way from school set them free in Violet Vale; but Morley believed, then and ever afterwards, that she took them home and kept them for her own amusement.

The day passed by like a dream. Anne could never really remember it clearly afterward. It almost felt like she wasn’t the one teaching, but someone else was. She listened to the lessons, worked on problems, and assigned work without really thinking. The kids were pretty well-behaved; there were only two disciplinary issues. Morley Andrews was caught playing with a pair of trained crickets in the aisle. Anne made Morley stand on the platform for an hour and... which Morley felt much more intensely... took away his crickets. She put them in a box and released them in Violet Vale on her way home from school; but Morley believed, both then and always, that she took them home and kept them for herself.

The other culprit was Anthony Pye, who poured the last drops of water from his slate bottle down the back of Aurelia Clay’s neck. Anne kept Anthony in at recess and talked to him about what was expected of gentlemen, admonishing him that they never poured water down ladies’ necks. She wanted all her boys to be gentlemen, she said. Her little lecture was quite kind and touching; but unfortunately Anthony remained absolutely untouched. He listened to her in silence, with the same sullen expression, and whistled scornfully as he went out. Anne sighed; and then cheered herself up by remembering that winning a Pye’s affections, like the building of Rome, wasn’t the work of a day. In fact, it was doubtful whether some of the Pyes had any affections to win; but Anne hoped better things of Anthony, who looked as if he might be a rather nice boy if one ever got behind his sullenness.

The other troublemaker was Anthony Pye, who spilled the last drops of water from his slate bottle down the back of Aurelia Clay’s neck. Anne kept Anthony in during recess and talked to him about what was expected of gentlemen, telling him that they never poured water down ladies’ necks. She wanted all her boys to be gentlemen, she said. Her little lecture was pretty kind and touching; but unfortunately, Anthony remained completely unaffected. He listened to her in silence, with the same moody expression, and whistled mockingly as he left. Anne sighed; then she cheered herself up by remembering that winning a Pye’s affections, like building Rome, wasn’t done in a day. In fact, it was questionable whether some of the Pyes had any affections to win; but Anne hoped for better things from Anthony, who seemed like he could be a pretty nice boy if one ever got past his sulkiness.

When school was dismissed and the children had gone Anne dropped wearily into her chair. Her head ached and she felt woefully discouraged. There was no real reason for discouragement, since nothing very dreadful had occurred; but Anne was very tired and inclined to believe that she would never learn to like teaching. And how terrible it would be to be doing something you didn’t like every day for . . . well, say forty years. Anne was of two minds whether to have her cry out then and there, or wait till she was safely in her own white room at home. Before she could decide there was a click of heels and a silken swish on the porch floor, and Anne found herself confronted by a lady whose appearance made her recall a recent criticism of Mr. Harrison’s on an overdressed female he had seen in a Charlottetown store. “She looked like a head-on collision between a fashion plate and a nightmare.”

When school let out and the kids had left, Anne sank tiredly into her chair. Her head throbbed, and she felt incredibly discouraged. There wasn't really any reason to feel that way since nothing too terrible had happened; but Anne was exhausted and began to think she'd never come to enjoy teaching. And how awful it would be to do something you didn’t like every day for... well, let’s say forty years. Anne wasn't sure if she should cry right then and there or wait until she was safely in her own cozy room at home. Before she could make up her mind, she heard the click of heels and a rustle on the porch floor. Suddenly, Anne was face-to-face with a woman whose appearance reminded her of a recent comment by Mr. Harrison regarding an overly dressed lady he had seen in a Charlottetown store. “She looked like a head-on collision between a fashion plate and a nightmare.”

The newcomer was gorgeously arrayed in a pale blue summer silk, puffed, frilled, and shirred wherever puff, frill, or shirring could possibly be placed. Her head was surmounted by a huge white chiffon hat, bedecked with three long but rather stringy ostrich feathers. A veil of pink chiffon, lavishly sprinkled with huge black dots, hung like a flounce from the hat brim to her shoulders and floated off in two airy streamers behind her. She wore all the jewelry that could be crowded on one small woman, and a very strong odor of perfume attended her.

The newcomer was beautifully dressed in a light blue summer silk, with puffs, frills, and gathers everywhere possible. Her head was topped with a large white chiffon hat, decorated with three long but somewhat flimsy ostrich feathers. A pink chiffon veil, generously dotted with large black spots, draped from the hat brim to her shoulders and flowed off in two light streamers behind her. She wore as much jewelry as could possibly fit on one small woman, and a strong scent of perfume surrounded her.

“I am Mrs. Donnell . . . Mrs. H. B. Donnell,” announced this vision, “and I have come in to see you about something Clarice Almira told me when she came home to dinner today. It annoyed me excessively.”

“I’m Mrs. Donnell . . . Mrs. H. B. Donnell,” this person said, “and I’m here to talk to you about something Clarice Almira mentioned when she came home for dinner today. It really annoyed me excessively.”

“I’m sorry,” faltered Anne, vainly trying to recollect any incident of the morning connected with the Donnell children.

“I’m sorry,” Anne stammered, struggling to remember any event from the morning related to the Donnell kids.

“Clarice Almira told me that you pronounced our name Donnell. Now, Miss Shirley, the correct pronunciation of our name is Donnell . . . accent on the last syllable. I hope you’ll remember this in future.”

“Clarice Almira told me that you pronounced our name Donnell. Now, Miss Shirley, the correct pronunciation of our name is Donnell... with the emphasis on the last syllable. I hope you’ll remember this in the future.”

“I’ll try to,” gasped Anne, choking back a wild desire to laugh. “I know by experience that it’s very unpleasant to have one’s name spelled wrong and I suppose it must be even worse to have it pronounced wrong.”

“I’ll try to,” gasped Anne, fighting back a strong urge to laugh. “I know from experience that it’s really annoying to have your name spelled wrong, and I guess it must be even worse to have it pronounced wrong.”

“Certainly it is. And Clarice Almira also informed me that you call my son Jacob.”

“Of course it is. And Clarice Almira also told me that you call my son Jacob.”

“He told me his name was Jacob,” protested Anne.

“He told me his name is Jacob,” Anne protested.

“I might have expected that,” said Mrs. H. B. Donnell, in a tone which implied that gratitude in children was not to be looked for in this degenerate age. “That boy has such plebeian tastes, Miss Shirley. When he was born I wanted to call him St. Clair . . . it sounds so aristocratic, doesn’t it? But his father insisted he should be called Jacob after his uncle. I yielded, because Uncle Jacob was a rich old bachelor. And what do you think, Miss Shirley? When our innocent boy was five years old Uncle Jacob actually went and got married and now he has three boys of his own. Did you ever hear of such ingratitude? The moment the invitation to the wedding . . . for he had the impertinence to send us an invitation, Miss Shirley . . . came to the house I said, ‘No more Jacobs for me, thank you.’ From that day I called my son St. Clair and St. Clair I am determined he shall be called. His father obstinately continues to call him Jacob, and the boy himself has a perfectly unaccountable preference for the vulgar name. But St. Clair he is and St. Clair he shall remain. You will kindly remember this, Miss Shirley, will you not? Thank you. I told Clarice Almira that I was sure it was only a misunderstanding and that a word would set it right. Donnell. . . accent on the last syllable . . . and St. Clair . . . on no account Jacob. You’ll remember? Thank you.”

“I might have guessed that,” said Mrs. H. B. Donnell, in a tone that suggested you shouldn't expect gratitude from children in this declining age. “That boy has such common tastes, Miss Shirley. When he was born, I wanted to name him St. Clair . . . it sounds so sophisticated, doesn’t it? But his father insisted on Jacob after his uncle. I gave in because Uncle Jacob was a wealthy old bachelor. And guess what, Miss Shirley? When our sweet boy was five, Uncle Jacob actually went and got married, and now he has three boys of his own. Can you believe such ingratitude? The moment the wedding invitation . . . because he had the nerve to send us one, Miss Shirley . . . arrived at our house, I said, ‘No more Jacobs for me, thanks.’ From that day on, I called my son St. Clair, and St. Clair is what I am determined he will be called. His father stubbornly keeps calling him Jacob, and the boy himself has a completely baffling preference for the common name. But he is St. Clair and St. Clair he will stay. You will kindly remember this, Miss Shirley, won’t you? Thank you. I told Clarice Almira that I was certain it was just a misunderstanding and that a word would clear things up. Donnell . . . accent on the last syllable . . . and St. Clair . . . absolutely no Jacob. You’ll remember? Thank you.”

When Mrs. H. B. Donnell had skimmed away Anne locked the school door and went home. At the foot of the hill she found Paul Irving by the Birch Path. He held out to her a cluster of the dainty little wild orchids which Avonlea children called “rice lillies.”

When Mrs. H. B. Donnell left, Anne locked the school door and went home. At the bottom of the hill, she saw Paul Irving by the Birch Path. He held out a bunch of the delicate little wild orchids that the Avonlea kids called “rice lilies.”

“Please, teacher, I found these in Mr. Wright’s field,” he said shyly, “and I came back to give them to you because I thought you were the kind of lady that would like them, and because . . .” he lifted his big beautiful eyes . . . “I like you, teacher.”

“Please, teacher, I found these in Mr. Wright’s field,” he said shyly, “and I came back to give them to you because I thought you were the kind of person who would appreciate them, and because . . .” he lifted his big beautiful eyes . . . “I like you, teacher.”

“You darling,” said Anne, taking the fragrant spikes. As if Paul’s words had been a spell of magic, discouragement and weariness passed from her spirit, and hope upwelled in her heart like a dancing fountain. She went through the Birch Path light-footedly, attended by the sweetness of her orchids as by a benediction.

“You darling,” Anne said, grabbing the fragrant flowers. It was like Paul’s words had cast a spell; all her discouragement and tiredness vanished, and hope bubbled up in her heart like a joyful fountain. She walked through the Birch Path lightly, surrounded by the sweetness of her orchids as if it were a blessing.

“Well, how did you get along?” Marilla wanted to know.

“Well, how did it go?” Marilla asked.

“Ask me that a month later and I may be able to tell you. I can’t now . . . I don’t know myself . . . I’m too near it. My thoughts feel as if they had been all stirred up until they were thick and muddy. The only thing I feel really sure of having accomplished today is that I taught Cliffie Wright that A is A. He never knew it before. Isn’t it something to have started a soul along a path that may end in Shakespeare and Paradise Lost?”

“Ask me that a month from now and I might be able to tell you. I can’t right now... I don’t even know myself... I’m too close to it. My thoughts feel all mixed up like they’ve been stirred until they’re thick and muddy. The only thing I’m really sure I accomplished today is that I taught Cliffie Wright that A is A. He didn’t know that before. Isn’t it something to have started someone on a journey that could lead to Shakespeare and Paradise Lost?”

Mrs. Lynde came up later on with more encouragement. That good lady had waylaid the schoolchildren at her gate and demanded of them how they liked their new teacher.

Mrs. Lynde came by later with more encouragement. That kind lady had stopped the schoolchildren at her gate and asked them how they liked their new teacher.

“And every one of them said they liked you splendid, Anne, except Anthony Pye. I must admit he didn’t. He said you ‘weren’t any good, just like all girl teachers.’ There’s the Pye leaven for you. But never mind.”

“And every one of them said they thought you were great, Anne, except for Anthony Pye. I have to admit he didn’t. He said you ‘weren’t any good, just like all girl teachers.’ There’s the Pye touch for you. But don’t worry about it.”

“I’m not going to mind,” said Anne quietly, “and I’m going to make Anthony Pye like me yet. Patience and kindness will surely win him.”

“I’m not going to worry about it,” Anne said softly, “and I’m going to make Anthony Pye like me eventually. Patience and kindness will definitely win him over.”

“Well, you can never tell about a Pye,” said Mrs. Rachel cautiously. “They go by contraries, like dreams, often as not. As for that Donnell woman, she’ll get no Donnelling from me, I can assure you. The name is Donnell and always has been. The woman is crazy, that’s what. She has a pug dog she calls Queenie and it has its meals at the table along with the family, eating off a china plate. I’d be afraid of a judgment if I was her. Thomas says Donnell himself is a sensible, hard-working man, but he hadn’t much gumption when he picked out a wife, that’s what.”

“Well, you can never predict a Pye,” said Mrs. Rachel cautiously. “They act contrary, like dreams, more often than not. As for that Donnell woman, she won’t get any Donnelling from me, I can assure you. The name is Donnell and always has been. The woman is out of her mind, that’s what. She has a pug dog she calls Queenie, and it eats its meals at the table with the family, using a china plate. I’d be worried about a judgment if I were her. Thomas says Donnell himself is a sensible, hard-working man, but he didn’t have much sense when he chose a wife, that’s for sure.”

VI
All Sorts and Conditions of Men . . . and women

A September day on Prince Edward Island hills; a crisp wind blowing up over the sand dunes from the sea; a long red road, winding through fields and woods, now looping itself about a corner of thick set spruces, now threading a plantation of young maples with great feathery sheets of ferns beneath them, now dipping down into a hollow where a brook flashed out of the woods and into them again, now basking in open sunshine between ribbons of golden-rod and smoke-blue asters; air athrill with the pipings of myriads of crickets, those glad little pensioners of the summer hills; a plump brown pony ambling along the road; two girls behind him, full to the lips with the simple, priceless joy of youth and life.

A September day on the hills of Prince Edward Island; a crisp wind blowing up from the sea over the sand dunes; a long red road winding through fields and woods, looping around a cluster of thick spruces, weaving through a grove of young maples with large, feathery ferns underneath, dipping into a hollow where a brook sparkled as it flowed out of the woods and back in again, basking in the open sunshine between stretches of golden-rod and blue asters; the air alive with the sounds of countless crickets, those happy little residents of the summer hills; a plump brown pony strolling along the road; two girls trailing behind him, filled to the brim with the simple, priceless joy of youth and life.

“Oh, this is a day left over from Eden, isn’t it, Diana?” . . . and Anne sighed for sheer happiness. “The air has magic in it. Look at the purple in the cup of the harvest valley, Diana. And oh, do smell the dying fir! It’s coming up from that little sunny hollow where Mr. Eben Wright has been cutting fence poles. Bliss is it on such a day to be alive; but to smell dying fir is very heaven. That’s two thirds Wordsworth and one third Anne Shirley. It doesn’t seem possible that there should be dying fir in heaven, does it? And yet it doesn’t seem to me that heaven would be quite perfect if you couldn’t get a whiff of dead fir as you went through its woods. Perhaps we’ll have the odor there without the death. Yes, I think that will be the way. That delicious aroma must be the souls of the firs . . . and of course it will be just souls in heaven.”

“Oh, this is a day straight out of Eden, isn’t it, Diana?” . . . and Anne sighed with pure happiness. “The air is magical. Look at the purple hues in the harvest valley, Diana. And oh, can you smell the dying fir? It’s coming from that little sunny hollow where Mr. Eben Wright has been cutting fence poles. It’s bliss to be alive on a day like this; but smelling dying fir is pure heaven. That’s two-thirds Wordsworth and one-third Anne Shirley. It’s hard to believe there’d be dying fir in heaven, isn’t it? Yet, I think heaven wouldn’t be quite perfect if you couldn’t catch a whiff of dead fir while walking through its woods. Maybe we’ll have the scent there without the death. Yes, I think that’s how it’ll be. That delicious aroma must be the souls of the firs . . . and of course, it will just be souls in heaven.”

“Trees haven’t souls,” said practical Diana, “but the smell of dead fir is certainly lovely. I’m going to make a cushion and fill it with fir needles. You’d better make one too, Anne.”

“Trees don’t have souls,” said practical Diana, “but the smell of dead fir is definitely nice. I’m going to make a cushion and fill it with fir needles. You should make one too, Anne.”

“I think I shall . . . and use it for my naps. I’d be certain to dream I was a dryad or a woodnymph then. But just this minute I’m well content to be Anne Shirley, Avonlea schoolma’am, driving over a road like this on such a sweet, friendly day.”

“I think I will . . . and use it for my naps. I’d definitely dream I was a dryad or a woodnymph then. But right now, I’m really happy to be Anne Shirley, the schoolteacher from Avonlea, driving on a road like this on such a lovely, friendly day.”

“It’s a lovely day but we have anything but a lovely task before us,” sighed Diana. “Why on earth did you offer to canvass this road, Anne? Almost all the cranks in Avonlea live along it, and we’ll probably be treated as if we were begging for ourselves. It’s the very worst road of all.”

“It’s a beautiful day, but we definitely don’t have an enjoyable task ahead of us,” sighed Diana. “Why did you even suggest canvassing this road, Anne? Almost all the oddballs in Avonlea live on it, and we’ll probably be treated like we’re begging for ourselves. It’s the absolute worst road of all.”

“That is why I chose it. Of course Gilbert and Fred would have taken this road if we had asked them. But you see, Diana, I feel myself responsible for the A.V.I.S., since I was the first to suggest it, and it seems to me that I ought to do the most disagreeable things. I’m sorry on your account; but you needn’t say a word at the cranky places. I’ll do all the talking . . . Mrs. Lynde would say I was well able to. Mrs. Lynde doesn’t know whether to approve of our enterprise or not. She inclines to, when she remembers that Mr. and Mrs. Allan are in favor of it; but the fact that village improvement societies first originated in the States is a count against it. So she is halting between two opinions and only success will justify us in Mrs. Lynde’s eyes. Priscilla is going to write a paper for our next Improvement meeting, and I expect it will be good, for her aunt is such a clever writer and no doubt it runs in the family. I shall never forget the thrill it gave me when I found out that Mrs. Charlotte E. Morgan was Priscilla’s aunt. It seemed so wonderful that I was a friend of the girl whose aunt wrote ‘Edgewood Days’ and ‘The Rosebud Garden.’”

“That’s why I picked it. Of course, Gilbert and Fred would have taken this road if we had asked them. But you see, Diana, I feel responsible for the A.V.I.S. since I was the first to suggest it, and I think I should handle the most unpleasant things. I’m sorry for your sake, but you don’t have to say anything at the tricky spots. I’ll do all the talking . . . Mrs. Lynde would say I’m more than capable of it. Mrs. Lynde can’t decide if she approves of our project or not. She tends to lean toward it when she remembers that Mr. and Mrs. Allan support it; but the fact that village improvement societies started in the States goes against it. So she’s stuck between two opinions and only success will make us look good in Mrs. Lynde’s eyes. Priscilla is going to write a paper for our next Improvement meeting, and I expect it will be great since her aunt is such a talented writer and I’m sure it runs in the family. I’ll never forget the excitement I felt when I found out that Mrs. Charlotte E. Morgan was Priscilla’s aunt. It felt so amazing to be friends with the girl whose aunt wrote ‘Edgewood Days’ and ‘The Rosebud Garden.’”

“Where does Mrs. Morgan live?”

"Where does Mrs. Morgan live?"

“In Toronto. And Priscilla says she is coming to the Island for a visit next summer, and if it is possible Priscilla is going to arrange to have us meet her. That seems almost too good to be true—but it’s something pleasant to imagine after you go to bed.”

“In Toronto. And Priscilla says she’s coming to the Island for a visit next summer, and if it’s possible, Priscilla is going to set up a time for us to meet her. That seems almost too good to be true—but it’s something nice to think about before you go to sleep.”

The Avonlea Village Improvement Society was an organized fact. Gilbert Blythe was president, Fred Wright vice-president, Anne Shirley secretary, and Diana Barry treasurer. The “Improvers,” as they were promptly christened, were to meet once a fortnight at the homes of the members. It was admitted that they could not expect to affect many improvements so late in the season; but they meant to plan the next summer’s campaign, collect and discuss ideas, write and read papers, and, as Anne said, educate the public sentiment generally.

The Avonlea Village Improvement Society was a real thing. Gilbert Blythe was the president, Fred Wright was the vice-president, Anne Shirley was the secretary, and Diana Barry was the treasurer. They quickly became known as the “Improvers” and planned to meet every two weeks at the members' homes. It was acknowledged that they wouldn't be able to make many changes this late in the season, but they intended to plan for the next summer's initiatives, gather and discuss ideas, write and present papers, and, as Anne put it, raise public awareness overall.

There was some disapproval, of course, and . . . which the Improvers felt much more keenly . . . a good deal of ridicule. Mr. Elisha Wright was reported to have said that a more appropriate name for the organization would be Courting Club. Mrs. Hiram Sloane declared she had heard the Improvers meant to plough up all the roadsides and set them out with geraniums. Mr. Levi Boulter warned his neighbors that the Improvers would insist that everybody pull down his house and rebuild it after plans approved by the society. Mr. James Spencer sent them word that he wished they would kindly shovel down the church hill. Eben Wright told Anne that he wished the Improvers could induce old Josiah Sloane to keep his whiskers trimmed. Mr. Lawrence Bell said he would whitewash his barns if nothing else would please them but he would not hang lace curtains in the cowstable windows. Mr. Major Spencer asked Clifton Sloane, an Improver who drove the milk to the Carmody cheese factory, if it was true that everybody would have to have his milk-stand hand-painted next summer and keep an embroidered centerpiece on it.

There was definitely some disapproval, and... which the Improvers felt even more intensely... a lot of mockery. Mr. Elisha Wright was said to have remarked that a better name for the organization would be the Courting Club. Mrs. Hiram Sloane insisted she heard the Improvers planned to tear up all the roadsides and plant geraniums. Mr. Levi Boulter warned his neighbors that the Improvers would force everyone to tear down their houses and rebuild them according to the society's approved plans. Mr. James Spencer informed them that he wished they would kindly shovel down the church hill. Eben Wright told Anne that he wished the Improvers could persuade old Josiah Sloane to keep his whiskers trimmed. Mr. Lawrence Bell said he would whitewash his barns if that’s what would satisfy them, but he would not hang lace curtains in the stable windows. Mr. Major Spencer asked Clifton Sloane, an Improver who delivered milk to the Carmody cheese factory, if it was true that everyone would have to have their milk stand hand-painted next summer and display an embroidered centerpiece on it.

In spite of . . . or perhaps, human nature being what it is, because of . . . this, the Society went gamely to work at the only improvement they could hope to bring about that fall. At the second meeting, in the Barry parlor, Oliver Sloane moved that they start a subscription to re-shingle and paint the hall; Julia Bell seconded it, with an uneasy feeling that she was doing something not exactly ladylike. Gilbert put the motion, it was carried unanimously, and Anne gravely recorded it in her minutes. The next thing was to appoint a committee, and Gertie Pye, determined not to let Julia Bell carry off all the laurels, boldly moved that Miss Jane Andrews be chairman of said committee. This motion being also duly seconded and carried, Jane returned the compliment by appointing Gertie on the committee, along with Gilbert, Anne, Diana, and Fred Wright. The committee chose their routes in private conclave. Anne and Diana were told off for the Newbridge road, Gilbert and Fred for the White Sands road, and Jane and Gertie for the Carmody road.

Despite . . . or maybe, because human nature is what it is, the Society eagerly got to work on the only improvement they could hope to achieve that fall. At the second meeting in the Barry parlor, Oliver Sloane proposed starting a subscription to re-shingle and paint the hall; Julia Bell seconded it, feeling a bit uneasy that she was doing something not particularly ladylike. Gilbert put the motion to a vote, it was carried unanimously, and Anne dutifully recorded it in her minutes. Next, they needed to appoint a committee, and Gertie Pye, determined not to let Julia Bell take all the credit, boldly suggested that Miss Jane Andrews be the chairperson of the committee. This motion was also seconded and passed, and Jane returned the favor by appointing Gertie to the committee, along with Gilbert, Anne, Diana, and Fred Wright. The committee decided their routes in a private meeting. Anne and Diana were assigned to the Newbridge road, Gilbert and Fred to the White Sands road, and Jane and Gertie to the Carmody road.

“Because,” explained Gilbert to Anne, as they walked home together through the Haunted Wood, “the Pyes all live along that road and they won’t give a cent unless one of themselves canvasses them.”

“Because,” Gilbert told Anne as they walked home together through the Haunted Wood, “the Pyes all live along that road, and they won’t give a penny unless one of their own asks them.”

The next Saturday Anne and Diana started out. They drove to the end of the road and canvassed homeward, calling first on the “Andrew girls.”

The next Saturday, Anne and Diana set out. They drove to the end of the road and made their way home, starting with a visit to the “Andrew girls.”

“If Catherine is alone we may get something,” said Diana, “but if Eliza is there we won’t.”

“If Catherine is alone, we might get something,” said Diana, “but if Eliza is around, we won’t.”

Eliza was there . . . very much so . . . and looked even grimmer than usual. Miss Eliza was one of those people who give you the impression that life is indeed a vale of tears, and that a smile, never to speak of a laugh, is a waste of nervous energy truly reprehensible. The Andrew girls had been “girls” for fifty odd years and seemed likely to remain girls to the end of their earthly pilgrimage. Catherine, it was said, had not entirely given up hope, but Eliza, who was born a pessimist, had never had any. They lived in a little brown house built in a sunny corner scooped out of Mark Andrew’s beech woods. Eliza complained that it was terrible hot in summer, but Catherine was wont to say it was lovely and warm in winter.

Eliza was there... very much so... and looked even grimmer than usual. Miss Eliza was one of those people who make you feel like life is truly a vale of tears, and that a smile, let alone a laugh, is a ridiculous waste of nervous energy. The Andrew girls had been “girls” for over fifty years and seemed likely to stay girls until the end of their lives. It was said that Catherine hadn’t completely given up hope, but Eliza, who was born a pessimist, had never had any. They lived in a little brown house built in a sunny spot carved out of Mark Andrew’s beech woods. Eliza complained that it was unbearably hot in summer, but Catherine often said it was lovely and warm in winter.

Eliza was sewing patchwork, not because it was needed but simply as a protest against the frivolous lace Catherine was crocheting. Eliza listened with a frown and Catherine with a smile, as the girls explained their errand. To be sure, whenever Catherine caught Eliza’s eye she discarded the smile in guilty confusion; but it crept back the next moment.

Eliza was sewing patchwork, not because it was necessary but simply as a protest against the silly lace Catherine was crocheting. Eliza listened with a frown while Catherine smiled as the girls explained their errand. Whenever Catherine caught Eliza’s eye, she dropped the smile, looking guilty; but it quickly returned the next moment.

“If I had money to waste,” said Eliza grimly, “I’d burn it up and have the fun of seeing a blaze maybe; but I wouldn’t give it to that hall, not a cent. It’s no benefit to the settlement . . . just a place for young folks to meet and carry on when they’s better be home in their beds.”

“If I had money to waste,” Eliza said grimly, “I’d just burn it and enjoy watching the fire, but I wouldn’t give a single cent to that hall. It doesn’t help the neighborhood... it’s just a spot for young people to hang out and mess around when they should be at home in bed.”

“Oh, Eliza, young folks must have some amusement,” protested Catherine.

“Oh, Eliza, young people need to have some fun,” protested Catherine.

“I don’t see the necessity. We didn’t gad about to halls and places when we were young, Catherine Andrews. This world is getting worse every day.”

“I don’t see the point. We didn’t wander around to halls and places when we were young, Catherine Andrews. This world is getting worse every day.”

“I think it’s getting better,” said Catherine firmly.

“I think it’s getting better,” Catherine said confidently.

You think!” Miss Eliza’s voice expressed the utmost contempt. “It doesn’t signify what you think, Catherine Andrews. Facts is facts.”

You think!” Miss Eliza’s voice was filled with extreme contempt. “It doesn’t matter what you think, Catherine Andrews. Facts are facts.”

“Well, I always like to look on the bright side, Eliza.”

“Well, I always try to see the silver lining, Eliza.”

“There isn’t any bright side.”

“There’s no bright side.”

“Oh, indeed there is,” cried Anne, who couldn’t endure such heresy in silence. “Why, there are ever so many bright sides, Miss Andrews. It’s really a beautiful world.”

“Oh, there definitely is,” cried Anne, unable to keep quiet about such nonsense. “There are so many bright sides, Miss Andrews. It’s truly a beautiful world.”

“You won’t have such a high opinion of it when you’ve lived as long in it as I have,” retorted Miss Eliza sourly, “and you won’t be so enthusiastic about improving it either. How is your mother, Diana? Dear me, but she has failed of late. She looks terrible run down. And how long is it before Marilla expects to be stone blind, Anne?”

“You won’t think so highly of it after you’ve lived in it as long as I have,” Miss Eliza replied bitterly. “And you won’t be so eager to improve it either. How is your mother, Diana? Oh my, she hasn’t been looking well lately. She seems really worn out. And how long until Marilla expects to be completely blind, Anne?”

“The doctor thinks her eyes will not get any worse if she is very careful,” faltered Anne.

"The doctor believes her eyes won't get any worse if she is really careful," Anne said hesitantly.

Eliza shook her head.

Eliza shook her head.

“Doctors always talk like that just to keep people cheered up. I wouldn’t have much hope if I was her. It’s best to be prepared for the worst.”

“Doctors always talk like that just to keep people positive. I wouldn’t have much hope if I were her. It’s better to be ready for the worst.”

“But oughtn’t we be prepared for the best too?” pleaded Anne. “It’s just as likely to happen as the worst.”

“But shouldn’t we be prepared for the best, too?” Anne urged. “It's just as likely to happen as the worst.”

“Not in my experience, and I’ve fifty-seven years to set against your sixteen,” retorted Eliza. “Going, are you? Well, I hope this new society of yours will be able to keep Avonlea from running any further down hill but I haven’t much hope of it.”

“Not in my experience, and I’ve got fifty-seven years to compare to your sixteen,” Eliza shot back. “Leaving, are you? Well, I hope this new society of yours can stop Avonlea from falling further downhill, but I’m not too optimistic about it.”

Anne and Diana got themselves thankfully out, and drove away as fast as the fat pony could go. As they rounded the curve below the beech wood a plump figure came speeding over Mr. Andrews’ pasture, waving to them excitedly. It was Catherine Andrews and she was so out of breath that she could hardly speak, but she thrust a couple of quarters into Anne’s hand.

Anne and Diana gratefully got out and drove away as quickly as the chubby pony could manage. As they turned the curve below the beech wood, a plump figure came rushing across Mr. Andrews’ pasture, waving at them excitedly. It was Catherine Andrews, and she was so out of breath that she could barely talk, but she shoved a couple of quarters into Anne’s hand.

“That’s my contribution to painting the hall,” she gasped. “I’d like to give you a dollar but I don’t dare take more from my egg money for Eliza would find it out if I did. I’m real interested in your society and I believe you’re going to do a lot of good. I’m an optimist. I have to be, living with Eliza. I must hurry back before she misses me . . . she thinks I’m feeding the hens. I hope you’ll have good luck canvassing, and don’t be cast down over what Eliza said. The world is getting better . . . it certainly is.”

"That's my contribution to painting the hall," she exclaimed. "I'd love to give you a dollar, but I can't take more from my egg money because Eliza would find out if I did. I'm really interested in your group and I believe you’re going to do a lot of good. I'm an optimist. I have to be, living with Eliza. I need to hurry back before she notices I'm gone... she thinks I'm feeding the hens. I hope you have good luck with your fundraising, and don't let what Eliza said get you down. The world is getting better... it truly is."

The next house was Daniel Blair’s.

The next house belonged to Daniel Blair.

“Now, it all depends on whether his wife is home or not,” said Diana, as they jolted along a deep-rutted lane. “If she is we won’t get a cent. Everybody says Dan Blair doesn’t dare have his hair cut without asking her permission; and it’s certain she’s very close, to state it moderately. She says she has to be just before she’s generous. But Mrs. Lynde says she’s so much ‘before’ that generosity never catches up with her at all.”

“Now, it all depends on whether his wife is home or not,” said Diana, as they bumped along a deeply rutted road. “If she is, we won’t get a penny. Everyone says Dan Blair doesn’t even get his hair cut without asking for her permission, and it’s clear she’s quite stingy, to put it mildly. She claims she needs to be careful before she can be generous. But Mrs. Lynde says she’s so careful that generosity never actually catches up with her.”

Anne related their experience at the Blair place to Marilla that evening.

Anne shared their experience at the Blair place with Marilla that evening.

“We tied the horse and then rapped at the kitchen door. Nobody came but the door was open and we could hear somebody in the pantry, going on dreadfully. We couldn’t make out the words but Diana says she knows they were swearing by the sound of them. I can’t believe that of Mr. Blair, for he is always so quiet and meek; but at least he had great provocation, for Marilla, when that poor man came to the door, red as a beet, with perspiration streaming down his face, he had on one of his wife’s big gingham aprons. ‘I can’t get this durned thing off,’ he said, ‘for the strings are tied in a hard knot and I can’t bust ’em, so you’ll have to excuse me, ladies.’ We begged him not to mention it and went in and sat down. Mr. Blair sat down too; he twisted the apron around to his back and rolled it up, but he did look so ashamed and worried that I felt sorry for him, and Diana said she feared we had called at an inconvenient time. ‘Oh, not at all,’ said Mr. Blair, trying to smile . . . you know he is always very polite . . . ‘I’m a little busy . . . getting ready to bake a cake as it were. My wife got a telegram today that her sister from Montreal is coming tonight and she’s gone to the train to meet her and left orders for me to make a cake for tea. She writ out the recipe and told me what to do but I’ve clean forgot half the directions already. And it says, ‘flavor according to taste.’ What does that mean? How can you tell? And what if my taste doesn’t happen to be other people’s taste? Would a tablespoon of vanilla be enough for a small layer cake?”

“We tied up the horse and knocked on the kitchen door. No one came, but the door was open and we could hear someone in the pantry going on quite a bit. We couldn’t catch the words, but Diana said she knew they were swearing by the sound of it. I can’t believe that about Mr. Blair, as he is always so quiet and mild-mannered; but he certainly had good reason, because Marilla, when that poor man came to the door, red as a beet with sweat streaming down his face, was wearing one of his wife’s big gingham aprons. ‘I can’t get this darn thing off,’ he said, ‘because the strings are tied in a hard knot and I can’t break them, so you’ll have to excuse me, ladies.’ We begged him not to mention it and went in to sit down. Mr. Blair sat down too; he twisted the apron around to his back and rolled it up, but he looked so embarrassed and worried that I felt sorry for him, and Diana said she feared we had come at a bad time. ‘Oh, not at all,’ said Mr. Blair, trying to smile… you know he’s always very polite… ‘I’m just a bit busy… getting ready to bake a cake, so to speak. My wife got a telegram today that her sister from Montreal is coming tonight, and she’s gone to the train to meet her and left me instructions to make a cake for tea. She wrote out the recipe and told me what to do, but I’ve completely forgotten half the directions already. And it says, ‘flavor according to taste.’ What does that mean? How can you tell? And what if my taste isn’t the same as other people’s? Would a tablespoon of vanilla be enough for a small layer cake?”

“I felt sorrier than ever for the poor man. He didn’t seem to be in his proper sphere at all. I had heard of henpecked husbands and now I felt that I saw one. It was on my lips to say, ‘Mr. Blair, if you’ll give us a subscription for the hall I’ll mix up your cake for you.’ But I suddenly thought it wouldn’t be neighborly to drive too sharp a bargain with a fellow creature in distress. So I offered to mix the cake for him without any conditions at all. He just jumped at my offer. He said he’d been used to making his own bread before he was married but he feared cake was beyond him, and yet he hated to disappoint his wife. He got me another apron, and Diana beat the eggs and I mixed the cake. Mr. Blair ran about and got us the materials. He had forgotten all about his apron and when he ran it streamed out behind him and Diana said she thought she would die to see it. He said he could bake the cake all right . . . he was used to that . . . and then he asked for our list and he put down four dollars. So you see we were rewarded. But even if he hadn’t given a cent I’d always feel that we had done a truly Christian act in helping him.”

“I felt sorrier than ever for the poor guy. He really didn’t seem to belong where he was at all. I had heard of henpecked husbands, and now I felt like I was seeing one in person. I wanted to say, ‘Mr. Blair, if you’ll give us a donation for the hall, I’ll mix your cake for you.’ But then I thought it wouldn’t be nice to push too hard for a deal with someone in distress. So I offered to mix the cake for him without any strings attached. He jumped at my offer. He said he used to make his own bread before he got married, but he was worried that cake was beyond him, and he hated to let his wife down. He found me another apron, and Diana beat the eggs while I mixed the cake. Mr. Blair ran around gathering the ingredients. He had totally forgotten about his apron, and when he ran, it flowed out behind him, and Diana said she thought she would die laughing at it. He said he could handle baking the cake just fine... he was used to that... and then he asked for our list and jotted down four dollars. So you see, we were rewarded. But even if he hadn’t given us a cent, I’d always feel that we did a truly good deed by helping him.”

Theodore White’s was the next stopping place. Neither Anne nor Diana had ever been there before, and they had only a very slight acquaintance with Mrs. Theodore, who was not given to hospitality. Should they go to the back or front door? While they held a whispered consultation Mrs. Theodore appeared at the front door with an armful of newspapers. Deliberately she laid them down one by one on the porch floor and the porch steps, and then down the path to the very feet of her mystified callers.

Theodore White’s was the next stop. Neither Anne nor Diana had been there before, and they only knew Mrs. Theodore a little, as she wasn't very welcoming. Should they go to the back or front door? While they quietly talked it over, Mrs. Theodore showed up at the front door with a stack of newspapers. She slowly placed them one by one on the porch floor and steps, and then along the path right to the feet of her puzzled visitors.

“Will you please wipe your feet carefully on the grass and then walk on these papers?” she said anxiously. “I’ve just swept the house all over and I can’t have any more dust tracked in. The path’s been real muddy since the rain yesterday.”

“Could you please wipe your feet carefully on the grass and then walk on these papers?” she said anxiously. “I just cleaned the whole house, and I can’t have any more dust brought in. The path’s been really muddy since the rain yesterday.”

“Don’t you dare laugh,” warned Anne in a whisper, as they marched along the newspapers. “And I implore you, Diana, not to look at me, no matter what she says, or I shall not be able to keep a sober face.”

“Don’t you dare laugh,” Anne whispered as they walked past the newspapers. “And I beg you, Diana, don’t look at me, no matter what she says, or I won’t be able to keep a straight face.”

The papers extended across the hall and into a prim, fleckless parlor. Anne and Diana sat down gingerly on the nearest chairs and explained their errand. Mrs. White heard them politely, interrupting only twice, once to chase out an adventurous fly, and once to pick up a tiny wisp of grass that had fallen on the carpet from Anne’s dress. Anne felt wretchedly guilty; but Mrs. White subscribed two dollars and paid the money down . . . “to prevent us from having to go back for it,” Diana said when they got away. Mrs. White had the newspapers gathered up before they had their horse untied and as they drove out of the yard they saw her busily wielding a broom in the hall.

The newspapers spread across the hallway and into a neat, spotless living room. Anne and Diana carefully took the closest chairs and shared their mission. Mrs. White listened politely, only interrupting twice—once to shoo away a pesky fly and once to pick up a small piece of grass that had fallen from Anne's dress onto the carpet. Anne felt terrible about it, but Mrs. White donated two dollars and handed over the cash... “to save us from having to come back for it,” Diana said once they were out of there. Mrs. White had the newspapers all collected before they even untied their horse, and as they drove out of the yard, they saw her happily sweeping the hall.

“I’ve always heard that Mrs. Theodore White was the neatest woman alive and I’ll believe it after this,” said Diana, giving way to her suppressed laughter as soon as it was safe.

“I’ve always heard that Mrs. Theodore White was the tidiest woman alive, and I’ll believe it after this,” said Diana, letting out her suppressed laughter as soon as it was safe.

“I am glad she has no children,” said Anne solemnly. “It would be dreadful beyond words for them if she had.”

“I’m glad she doesn’t have any kids,” Anne said seriously. “It would be terrible beyond description for them if she did.”

At the Spencers’ Mrs. Isabella Spencer made them miserable by saying something ill-natured about everyone in Avonlea. Mr. Thomas Boulter refused to give anything because the hall, when it had been built, twenty years before, hadn’t been built on the site he recommended. Mrs. Esther Bell, who was the picture of health, took half an hour to detail all her aches and pains, and sadly put down fifty cents because she wouldn’t be there that time next year to do it . . . no, she would be in her grave.

At the Spencers’ house, Mrs. Isabella Spencer made everyone miserable by saying something nasty about everyone in Avonlea. Mr. Thomas Boulter refused to donate anything because the hall, built twenty years ago, wasn't on the site he suggested. Mrs. Esther Bell, who looked perfectly healthy, spent half an hour listing all her aches and pains and sadly contributed fifty cents because she wouldn’t be around next year to do it... no, she would be in her grave.

Their worst reception, however, was at Simon Fletcher’s. When they drove into the yard they saw two faces peering at them through the porch window. But although they rapped and waited patiently and persistently nobody came to the door. Two decidedly ruffled and indignant girls drove away from Simon Fletcher’s. Even Anne admitted that she was beginning to feel discouraged. But the tide turned after that. Several Sloane homesteads came next, where they got liberal subscriptions, and from that to the end they fared well, with only an occasional snub. Their last place of call was at Robert Dickson’s by the pond bridge. They stayed to tea here, although they were nearly home, rather than risk offending Mrs. Dickson, who had the reputation of being a very “touchy” woman.

Their worst reception, however, was at Simon Fletcher’s. When they drove into the yard, they saw two faces watching them through the porch window. But even though they knocked and waited patiently and persistently, nobody came to the door. Two clearly upset and offended girls drove away from Simon Fletcher’s. Even Anne admitted that she was starting to feel discouraged. But then things changed. Several Sloane farms came next, where they received generous donations, and from that point on, they did well, with only the occasional slight. Their last stop was at Robert Dickson’s by the pond bridge. They stayed for tea here, even though they were almost home, to avoid upsetting Mrs. Dickson, who had a reputation for being very “sensitive.”

While they were there old Mrs. James White called in.

While they were there, old Mrs. James White stopped by.

“I’ve just been down to Lorenzo’s,” she announced. “He’s the proudest man in Avonlea this minute. What do you think? There’s a brand new boy there . . . and after seven girls that’s quite an event, I can tell you.” Anne pricked up her ears, and when they drove away she said.

“I just came back from Lorenzo’s,” she said. “He’s the proudest guy in Avonlea right now. What do you think? There’s a brand new boy there . . . and after seven girls, that’s a big deal, I can tell you.” Anne perked up, and when they drove away she said.

“I’m going straight to Lorenzo White’s.”

“I’m heading straight to Lorenzo White’s.”

“But he lives on the White Sands road and it’s quite a distance out of our way,” protested Diana. “Gilbert and Fred will canvass him.”

“But he lives on White Sands Road and it’s quite a ways out of our way,” Diana protested. “Gilbert and Fred will check in with him.”

“They are not going around until next Saturday and it will be too late by then,” said Anne firmly. “The novelty will be worn off. Lorenzo White is dreadfully mean but he will subscribe to anything just now. We mustn’t let such a golden opportunity slip, Diana.” The result justified Anne’s foresight. Mr. White met them in the yard, beaming like the sun upon an Easter day. When Anne asked for a subscription he agreed enthusiastically.

“They aren’t going around until next Saturday, and it will be too late by then,” Anne said firmly. “The novelty will be gone. Lorenzo White is incredibly stingy, but he’ll subscribe to anything right now. We can’t let this golden opportunity slip away, Diana.” The outcome proved Anne’s insight right. Mr. White met them in the yard, shining like the sun on Easter day. When Anne asked for a subscription, he agreed eagerly.

“Certain, certain. Just put me down for a dollar more than the highest subscription you’ve got.”

"Sure, sure. Just sign me up for a dollar more than the highest subscription you have."

“That will be five dollars . . . Mr. Daniel Blair put down four,” said Anne, half afraid. But Lorenzo did not flinch.

"That'll be five dollars... Mr. Daniel Blair put down four," said Anne, half scared. But Lorenzo didn't flinch.

“Five it is . . . and here’s the money on the spot. Now, I want you to come into the house. There’s something in there worth seeing . . . something very few people have seen as yet. Just come in and pass your opinion.”

“Five it is . . . and here’s the cash right now. Now, I want you to come inside the house. There’s something in there that’s really worth seeing . . . something very few people have seen so far. Just come in and give your opinion.”

“What will we say if the baby isn’t pretty?” whispered Diana in trepidation as they followed the excited Lorenzo into the house.

“What will we say if the baby isn’t cute?” whispered Diana anxiously as they followed the eager Lorenzo into the house.

“Oh, there will certainly be something else nice to say about it,” said Anne easily. “There always is about a baby.”

“Oh, there will definitely be something nice to say about it,” said Anne casually. “There always is when it comes to a baby.”

The baby was pretty, however, and Mr. White felt that he got his five dollars’ worth of the girls’ honest delight over the plump little newcomer. But that was the first, last, and only time that Lorenzo White ever subscribed to anything.

The baby was cute, though, and Mr. White felt he got his five bucks’ worth from the girls’ genuine joy over the chubby little newcomer. But that was the first, last, and only time that Lorenzo White ever subscribed to anything.

Anne, tired as she was, made one more effort for the public weal that night, slipping over the fields to interview Mr. Harrison, who was as usual smoking his pipe on the veranda with Ginger beside him. Strickly speaking he was on the Carmody road; but Jane and Gertie, who were not acquainted with him save by doubtful report, had nervously begged Anne to canvass him.

Anne, though she was exhausted, made one last push for the greater good that night, sneaking over the fields to talk to Mr. Harrison, who was as usual smoking his pipe on the porch with Ginger beside him. Technically, he was on the Carmody road; but Jane and Gertie, who only knew him through hearsay, had anxiously urged Anne to reach out to him.

Mr. Harrison, however, flatly refused to subscribe a cent, and all Anne’s wiles were in vain.

Mr. Harrison, however, absolutely refused to contribute even a penny, and all of Anne's efforts were pointless.

“But I thought you approved of our society, Mr. Harrison,” she mourned.

“But I thought you were okay with our society, Mr. Harrison,” she said sadly.

“So I do . . . so I do . . . but my approval doesn’t go as deep as my pocket, Anne.”

“So I do . . . so I do . . . but my support doesn’t run as deep as my wallet, Anne.”

“A few more experiences such as I have had today would make me as much of a pessimist as Miss Eliza Andrews,” Anne told her reflection in the east gable mirror at bedtime.

“A few more experiences like I had today would turn me into as much of a pessimist as Miss Eliza Andrews,” Anne told her reflection in the east gable mirror at bedtime.

VII
The Pointing of Duty

Anne leaned back in her chair one mild October evening and sighed. She was sitting at a table covered with text books and exercises, but the closely written sheets of paper before her had no apparent connection with studies or school work.

Anne leaned back in her chair on a mild October evening and sighed. She was sitting at a table filled with textbooks and assignments, but the densely written sheets of paper in front of her had no clear connection to her studies or schoolwork.

“What is the matter?” asked Gilbert, who had arrived at the open kitchen door just in time to hear the sigh.

“What’s wrong?” asked Gilbert, who had arrived at the open kitchen door just in time to hear the sigh.

Anne colored, and thrust her writing out of sight under some school compositions.

Anne colored and shoved her writing out of sight under some school papers.

“Nothing very dreadful. I was just trying to write out some of my thoughts, as Professor Hamilton advised me, but I couldn’t get them to please me. They seem so still and foolish directly they’re written down on white paper with black ink. Fancies are like shadows . . . you can’t cage them, they’re such wayward, dancing things. But perhaps I’ll learn the secret some day if I keep on trying. I haven’t a great many spare moments, you know. By the time I finish correcting school exercises and compositions, I don’t always feel like writing any of my own.”

“Nothing too terrible. I was just trying to write down some of my thoughts, like Professor Hamilton suggested, but I couldn’t make them sound right. They feel so stagnant and silly as soon as I put them on white paper with black ink. Ideas are like shadows... you can’t capture them; they’re such unpredictable, dancing things. But maybe I’ll figure out the secret someday if I keep trying. I don’t have a lot of free time, you know. By the time I finish grading school assignments and compositions, I don’t always feel like working on my own.”

“You are getting on splendidly in school, Anne. All the children like you,” said Gilbert, sitting down on the stone step.

“You're doing great in school, Anne. All the kids really like you,” said Gilbert, sitting down on the stone step.

“No, not all. Anthony Pye doesn’t and won’t like me. What is worse, he doesn’t respect me . . . no, he doesn’t. He simply holds me in contempt and I don’t mind confessing to you that it worries me miserably. It isn’t that he is so very bad . . . he is only rather mischievous, but no worse than some of the others. He seldom disobeys me; but he obeys with a scornful air of toleration as if it wasn’t worthwhile disputing the point or he would . . . and it has a bad effect on the others. I’ve tried every way to win him but I’m beginning to fear I never shall. I want to, for he’s rather a cute little lad, if he is a Pye, and I could like him if he’d let me.”

“No, not all. Anthony Pye doesn’t and won’t like me. What’s worse, he doesn’t respect me . . . no, he really doesn’t. He just looks down on me, and I’m not afraid to admit that it bothers me a lot. It’s not that he’s so terrible . . . he’s just a bit mischievous, but no worse than some of the others. He rarely disobeys me; but when he does follow the rules, it’s with a scornful air of tolerance, as if it’s not worth arguing about, and if he thought it was, he would . . . and that attitude influences the others negatively. I’ve tried everything to win him over, but I’m starting to fear I never will. I want to, because he’s actually a pretty cute little guy, even if he is a Pye, and I could like him if he’d just let me.”

“Probably it’s merely the effect of what he hears at home.”

“It's probably just the result of what he hears at home.”

“Not altogether. Anthony is an independent little chap and makes up his own mind about things. He has always gone to men before and he says girl teachers are no good. Well, we’ll see what patience and kindness will do. I like overcoming difficulties and teaching is really very interesting work. Paul Irving makes up for all that is lacking in the others. That child is a perfect darling, Gilbert, and a genius into the bargain. I’m persuaded the world will hear of him some day,” concluded Anne in a tone of conviction.

“Not entirely. Anthony is a free-spirited little guy and decides things for himself. He’s always chosen male teachers and insists that female teachers aren’t good. Well, we’ll see what patience and kindness can achieve. I enjoy tackling challenges, and teaching is actually really fascinating work. Paul Irving compensates for everything the others lack. That kid is an absolute sweetheart, Gilbert, and a genius to boot. I’m convinced the world will recognize him one day,” Anne concluded with certainty.

“I like teaching, too,” said Gilbert. “It’s good training, for one thing. Why, Anne, I’ve learned more in the weeks I’ve been teaching the young ideas of White Sands than I learned in all the years I went to school myself. We all seem to be getting on pretty well. The Newbridge people like Jane, I hear; and I think White Sands is tolerably satisfied with your humble servant . . . all except Mr. Andrew Spencer. I met Mrs. Peter Blewett on my way home last night and she told me she thought it her duty to inform me that Mr. Spencer didn’t approve of my methods.”

“I like teaching, too,” said Gilbert. “It’s great training, for one thing. Honestly, Anne, I’ve learned more in the weeks I’ve been teaching the young minds of White Sands than I did in all the years I spent in school myself. We all seem to be doing pretty well. The Newbridge people like Jane, from what I hear; and I think White Sands is fairly satisfied with your humble servant... all except for Mr. Andrew Spencer. I ran into Mrs. Peter Blewett on my way home last night, and she told me she felt it was her duty to let me know that Mr. Spencer didn’t approve of my methods.”

“Have you ever noticed,” asked Anne reflectively, “that when people say it is their duty to tell you a certain thing you may prepare for something disagreeable? Why is it that they never seem to think it a duty to tell you the pleasant things they hear about you? Mrs. H. B. Donnell called at the school again yesterday and told me she thought it her duty to inform me that Mrs. Harmon Andrews didn’t approve of my reading fairy tales to the children, and that Mr. Rogerson thought Prillie wasn’t coming on fast enough in arithmetic. If Prillie would spend less time making eyes at the boys over her slate she might do better. I feel quite sure that Jack Gillis works her class sums for her, though I’ve never been able to catch him red-handed.”

“Have you ever noticed,” Anne asked thoughtfully, “that when people say it’s their duty to tell you something, you can expect it to be something unpleasant? Why do they never consider it a duty to share the nice things they hear about you? Mrs. H. B. Donnell came by the school again yesterday and said she felt it her duty to let me know that Mrs. Harmon Andrews didn’t approve of me reading fairy tales to the kids, and that Mr. Rogerson thought Prillie wasn’t improving quickly enough in math. If Prillie spent less time making eyes at the boys over her slate, she might do better. I'm pretty sure Jack Gillis does her class calculations for her, even though I’ve never caught him in the act.”

“Have you succeeded in reconciling Mrs. Donnell’s hopeful son to his saintly name?”

“Have you managed to get Mrs. Donnell’s hopeful son comfortable with his saintly name?”

“Yes,” laughed Anne, “but it was really a difficult task. At first, when I called him ‘St. Clair’ he would not take the least notice until I’d spoken two or three times; and then, when the other boys nudged him, he would look up with such an aggrieved air, as if I’d called him John or Charlie and he couldn’t be expected to know I meant him. So I kept him in after school one night and talked kindly to him. I told him his mother wished me to call him St. Clair and I couldn’t go against her wishes. He saw it when it was all explained out . . . he’s really a very reasonable little fellow . . . and he said I could call him St. Clair but that he’d ‘lick the stuffing’ out of any of the boys that tried it. Of course, I had to rebuke him again for using such shocking language. Since then I call him St. Clair and the boys call him Jake and all goes smoothly. He informs me that he means to be a carpenter, but Mrs. Donnell says I am to make a college professor out of him.”

“Yes,” laughed Anne, “but it was really a tough task. At first, when I called him ‘St. Clair,’ he wouldn’t pay any attention until I’d said it two or three times; and then, when the other boys nudged him, he’d look up with such a hurt expression, as if I’d called him John or Charlie and he couldn’t be expected to know I meant him. So, I kept him after school one night and talked kindly to him. I told him his mom wanted me to call him St. Clair, and I couldn’t go against her wishes. He understood when it was all explained . . . he’s really a very reasonable little guy . . . and he said I could call him St. Clair but that he’d ‘beat up’ any of the boys who tried it. Of course, I had to scold him again for using such terrible language. Since then, I call him St. Clair and the boys call him Jake, and everything goes smoothly. He tells me he wants to be a carpenter, but Mrs. Donnell says I’m supposed to turn him into a college professor.”

The mention of college gave a new direction to Gilbert’s thoughts, and they talked for a time of their plans and wishes . . . gravely, earnestly, hopefully, as youth loves to talk, while the future is yet an untrodden path full of wonderful possibilities.

The mention of college shifted Gilbert's thoughts, and they talked for a while about their dreams and aspirations . . . seriously, passionately, hopefully, just like young people do when the future is still an uncharted path full of amazing possibilities.

Gilbert had finally made up his mind that he was going to be a doctor.

Gilbert had finally decided that he was going to be a doctor.

“It’s a splendid profession,” he said enthusiastically. “A fellow has to fight something all through life . . . didn’t somebody once define man as a fighting animal? . . . and I want to fight disease and pain and ignorance . . . which are all members one of another. I want to do my share of honest, real work in the world, Anne . . . add a little to the sum of human knowledge that all the good men have been accumulating since it began. The folks who lived before me have done so much for me that I want to show my gratitude by doing something for the folks who will live after me. It seems to me that is the only way a fellow can get square with his obligations to the race.”

“It’s an amazing profession,” he said with excitement. “Everyone has to fight for something throughout life… didn’t someone once say that man is a fighting creature?… and I want to fight against disease, pain, and ignorance… which are all connected. I want to contribute my part of honest, real work in the world, Anne… add a bit to the total of human knowledge that all the great people have been building since the beginning. The people who came before me have done so much for me that I want to show my appreciation by doing something for the people who will come after me. It seems to me that’s the only way someone can meet their obligations to humanity.”

“I’d like to add some beauty to life,” said Anne dreamily. “I don’t exactly want to make people know more . . . though I know that is the noblest ambition . . . but I’d love to make them have a pleasanter time because of me . . . to have some little joy or happy thought that would never have existed if I hadn’t been born.”

“I want to bring some beauty into life,” Anne said dreamily. “I don’t necessarily want to make people know more . . . even though I realize that is the highest goal . . . but I’d love to help them have a better time because of me . . . to create some small joy or happy thought that wouldn’t have existed if I hadn’t been born.”

“I think you’re fulfilling that ambition every day,” said Gilbert admiringly.

"I think you’re achieving that goal every day," Gilbert said with admiration.

And he was right. Anne was one of the children of light by birthright. After she had passed through a life with a smile or a word thrown across it like a gleam of sunshine the owner of that life saw it, for the time being at least, as hopeful and lovely and of good report.

And he was right. Anne was one of the children of light by birthright. After she had gone through life with a smile or a kind word scattered across it like a ray of sunshine, the person who lived that life saw it, at least for a while, as hopeful, beautiful, and admirable.

Finally Gilbert rose regretfully.

Finally, Gilbert got up sadly.

“Well, I must run up to MacPhersons’. Moody Spurgeon came home from Queen’s today for Sunday and he was to bring me out a book Professor Boyd is lending me.”

“Well, I have to head up to the MacPhersons’. Moody Spurgeon came back from Queen’s today for Sunday, and he was supposed to bring me a book that Professor Boyd is lending me.”

“And I must get Marilla’s tea. She went to see Mrs. Keith this evening and she will soon be back.”

“And I need to get Marilla’s tea. She went to visit Mrs. Keith this evening and she'll be back soon.”

Anne had tea ready when Marilla came home; the fire was crackling cheerily, a vase of frost-bleached ferns and ruby-red maple leaves adorned the table, and delectable odors of ham and toast pervaded the air. But Marilla sank into her chair with a deep sigh.

Anne had tea ready when Marilla came home; the fire was crackling happily, a vase of frost-bleached ferns and bright red maple leaves decorated the table, and delicious smells of ham and toast filled the air. But Marilla sank into her chair with a deep sigh.

“Are your eyes troubling you? Does your head ache?” queried Anne anxiously.

"Are your eyes bothering you? Does your head hurt?" Anne asked worriedly.

“No. I’m only tired . . . and worried. It’s about Mary and those children . . . Mary is worse . . . she can’t last much longer. And as for the twins, I don’t know what is to become of them.”

“No. I’m just tired . . . and worried. It’s about Mary and the kids . . . Mary is worse . . . she can’t hang on much longer. And as for the twins, I have no idea what’s going to happen to them.”

“Hasn’t their uncle been heard from?”

“Hasn’t anyone heard from their uncle?”

“Yes, Mary had a letter from him. He’s working in a lumber camp and ‘shacking it,’ whatever that means. Anyway, he says he can’t possibly take the children till the spring. He expects to be married then and will have a home to take them to; but he says she must get some of the neighbors to keep them for the winter. She says she can’t bear to ask any of them. Mary never got on any too well with the East Grafton people and that’s a fact. And the long and short of it is, Anne, that I’m sure Mary wants me to take those children . . . she didn’t say so but she looked it.”

“Yes, Mary got a letter from him. He’s working at a lumber camp and 'shacking up,' whatever that means. Anyway, he says he can’t possibly take the kids until spring. He expects to get married then and will have a home to bring them to; but he says she needs to ask some of the neighbors to look after them for the winter. She says she can’t stand the thought of asking any of them. Mary nunca really fit in with the East Grafton people, and that’s a fact. And the bottom line is, Anne, that I’m sure Mary wants me to take those kids . . . she didn’t say it, but she looked like it.”

“Oh!” Anne clasped her hands, all athrill with excitement. “And of course you will, Marilla, won’t you?”

“Oh!” Anne put her hands together, filled with excitement. “And of course you will, Marilla, right?”

“I haven’t made up my mind,” said Marilla rather tartly. “I don’t rush into things in your headlong way, Anne. Third cousinship is a pretty slim claim. And it will be a fearful responsibility to have two children of six years to look after . . . twins, at that.”

“I haven’t decided yet,” Marilla said somewhat sharply. “I don’t jump into things like you do, Anne. Being third cousins isn't a strong enough connection. And it’s going to be quite a responsibility to take care of two six-year-olds... twins, no less.”

Marilla had an idea that twins were just twice as bad as single children.

Marilla thought that twins were just twice as troublesome as single kids.

“Twins are very interesting . . . at least one pair of them,” said Anne. “It’s only when there are two or three pairs that it gets monotonous. And I think it would be real nice for you to have something to amuse you when I’m away in school.”

“Twins are really fascinating… at least one pair,” said Anne. “It’s only when there are two or three pairs that it becomes boring. And I think it would be really nice for you to have something to keep you entertained while I’m at school.”

“I don’t reckon there’d be much amusement in it . . . more worry and bother than anything else, I should say. It wouldn’t be so risky if they were even as old as you were when I took you. I wouldn’t mind Dora so much . . . she seems good and quiet. But that Davy is a limb.”

“I don’t think it would be very fun... more worry and hassle than anything else, I’d say. It wouldn’t be so risky if they were even as old as you were when I took you. I wouldn’t mind Dora so much... she seems nice and calm. But that Davy is a handful.”

Anne was fond of children and her heart yearned over the Keith twins. The remembrance of her own neglected childhood was very vivid with her still. She knew that Marilla’s only vulnerable point was her stern devotion to what she believed to be her duty, and Anne skillfully marshalled her arguments along this line.

Anne loved kids and felt a deep affection for the Keith twins. The memory of her own neglected childhood was still fresh in her mind. She knew that Marilla's only weak spot was her strict dedication to what she thought was her duty, and Anne cleverly crafted her arguments to appeal to this.

“If Davy is naughty it’s all the more reason why he should have good training, isn’t it, Marilla? If we don’t take them we don’t know who will, nor what kind of influences may surround them. Suppose Mrs. Keith’s next door neighbors, the Sprotts, were to take them. Mrs. Lynde says Henry Sprott is the most profane man that ever lived and you can’t believe a word his children say. Wouldn’t it be dreadful to have the twins learn anything like that? Or suppose they went to the Wiggins’. Mrs. Lynde says that Mr. Wiggins sells everything off the place that can be sold and brings his family up on skim milk. You wouldn’t like your relations to be starved, even if they were only third cousins, would you? It seems to me, Marilla, that it is our duty to take them.”

“If Davy is misbehaving, that’s even more reason for him to get proper training, right, Marilla? If we don’t take them, we have no idea who will, or what kind of influences they might be exposed to. What if Mrs. Keith’s neighbors, the Sprotts, ended up taking them? Mrs. Lynde says Henry Sprott is the most foul-mouthed man ever, and that you can’t trust a word his kids say. Wouldn’t it be awful for the twins to pick up anything like that? Or what if they went to the Wiggins’? Mrs. Lynde claims that Mr. Wiggins sells off everything valuable from their place and raises his family on skim milk. You wouldn’t want your relatives to be underfed, even if they’re just distant cousins, would you? It seems to me, Marilla, that we have a responsibility to take them.”

“I suppose it is,” assented Marilla gloomily. “I daresay I’ll tell Mary I’ll take them. You needn’t look so delighted, Anne. It will mean a good deal of extra work for you. I can’t sew a stitch on account of my eyes, so you’ll have to see to the making and mending of their clothes. And you don’t like sewing.”

“I guess it is,” Marilla agreed gloomily. “I suppose I’ll tell Mary I’ll take them. You don’t need to look so happy, Anne. It’s going to mean a lot of extra work for you. I can’t sew a single stitch because of my eyes, so you’ll have to handle making and mending their clothes. And you don’t like sewing.”

“I hate it,” said Anne calmly, “but if you are willing to take those children from a sense of duty surely I can do their sewing from a sense of duty. It does people good to have to do things they don’t like . . . in moderation.”

“I hate it,” said Anne calmly, “but if you’re willing to take care of those kids out of a sense of duty, then I can definitely do their sewing out of a sense of duty too. It’s good for people to have to do things they don't enjoy... in moderation.”

VIII
Marilla Adopts Twins

Mrs. Rachel Lynde was sitting at her kitchen window, knitting a quilt, just as she had been sitting one evening several years previously when Matthew Cuthbert had driven down over the hill with what Mrs. Rachel called “his imported orphan.” But that had been in springtime; and this was late autumn, and all the woods were leafless and the fields sere and brown. The sun was just setting with a great deal of purple and golden pomp behind the dark woods west of Avonlea when a buggy drawn by a comfortable brown nag came down the hill. Mrs. Rachel peered at it eagerly.

Mrs. Rachel Lynde was sitting at her kitchen window, knitting a quilt, just like she had been on an evening several years ago when Matthew Cuthbert drove down over the hill with what Mrs. Rachel called “his imported orphan.” But that had been in spring, and now it was late autumn, with all the trees bare and the fields dry and brown. The sun was setting in a stunning display of purple and gold behind the dark woods west of Avonlea when a buggy pulled by a sturdy brown horse came down the hill. Mrs. Rachel leaned forward to get a better look.

“There’s Marilla getting home from the funeral,” she said to her husband, who was lying on the kitchen lounge. Thomas Lynde lay more on the lounge nowadays than he had been used to do, but Mrs. Rachel, who was so sharp at noticing anything beyond her own household, had not as yet noticed this. “And she’s got the twins with her, . . . yes, there’s Davy leaning over the dashboard grabbing at the pony’s tail and Marilla jerking him back. Dora’s sitting up on the seat as prim as you please. She always looks as if she’d just been starched and ironed. Well, poor Marilla is going to have her hands full this winter and no mistake. Still, I don’t see that she could do anything less than take them, under the circumstances, and she’ll have Anne to help her. Anne’s tickled to death over the whole business, and she has a real knacky way with children, I must say. Dear me, it doesn’t seem a day since poor Matthew brought Anne herself home and everybody laughed at the idea of Marilla bringing up a child. And now she has adopted twins. You’re never safe from being surprised till you’re dead.”

“There’s Marilla coming home from the funeral,” she said to her husband, who was lounging on the kitchen couch. Thomas Lynde spent more time on the couch these days than he used to, but Mrs. Rachel, who was always quick to notice anything outside her own household, hadn’t picked up on this yet. “And she’s got the twins with her… yes, there’s Davy leaning over the dashboard reaching for the pony’s tail and Marilla pulling him back. Dora’s sitting in the seat looking as prim as can be. She always looks like she just got starched and ironed. Well, poor Marilla is going to have her hands full this winter, that’s for sure. Still, I don’t see how she could do anything less than take them, given the situation, and she’ll have Anne to help her. Anne’s absolutely thrilled about the whole thing, and she really has a knack for kids, I must say. Goodness, it feels like it was just yesterday when poor Matthew brought Anne home and everyone laughed at the idea of Marilla raising a child. And now she’s adopted twins. You’re never safe from surprises until you’re gone.”

The fat pony jogged over the bridge in Lynde’s Hollow and along the Green Gables lane. Marilla’s face was rather grim. It was ten miles from East Grafton and Davy Keith seemed to be possessed with a passion for perpetual motion. It was beyond Marilla’s power to make him sit still and she had been in an agony the whole way lest he fall over the back of the wagon and break his neck, or tumble over the dashboard under the pony’s heels. In despair she finally threatened to whip him soundly when she got him home. Whereupon Davy climbed into her lap, regardless of the reins, flung his chubby arms about her neck and gave her a bear-like hug.

The plump pony trotted over the bridge in Lynde’s Hollow and down the Green Gables lane. Marilla’s expression was quite serious. It was a ten-mile trip from East Grafton, and Davy Keith seemed to have an endless need to stay in motion. Marilla couldn’t get him to sit still, and she had been in a constant state of worry the whole time, afraid he might fall off the back of the wagon and hurt himself or tumble over the dashboard under the pony’s hooves. Frustrated, she finally threatened to give him a good spanking when they got home. At that, Davy jumped into her lap, ignoring the reins, wrapped his chubby arms around her neck, and gave her a big bear hug.

“I don’t believe you mean it,” he said, smacking her wrinkled cheek affectionately. “You don’t look like a lady who’d whip a little boy just ’cause he couldn’t keep still. Didn’t you find it awful hard to keep still when you was only ‘s old as me?”

"I don’t think you really mean that," he said, playfully slapping her wrinkled cheek. "You don’t look like the kind of lady who would hit a little boy just because he couldn’t sit still. Didn’t you find it really hard to sit still when you were just as old as I am?"

“No, I always kept still when I was told,” said Marilla, trying to speak sternly, albeit she felt her heart waxing soft within her under Davy’s impulsive caresses.

“No, I always stayed still when I was told,” Marilla said, trying to sound strict, even though she felt her heart softening inside from Davy’s spontaneous hugs.

“Well, I s’pose that was ’cause you was a girl,” said Davy, squirming back to his place after another hug. “You was a girl once, I s’pose, though it’s awful funny to think of it. Dora can sit still . . . but there ain’t much fun in it I don’t think. Seems to me it must be slow to be a girl. Here, Dora, let me liven you up a bit.”

“Well, I guess that was because you were a girl,” said Davy, squirming back to his spot after another hug. “You were a girl once, I guess, though it’s kind of funny to think about. Dora can sit still... but I don’t think there’s much fun in it. It seems to me it must be boring to be a girl. Here, Dora, let me spice things up a bit.”

Davy’s method of “livening up” was to grasp Dora’s curls in his fingers and give them a tug. Dora shrieked and then cried.

Davy's way of "cheering up" was to grab Dora's curls in his fingers and give them a tug. Dora shrieked and then started crying.

“How can you be such a naughty boy and your poor mother just laid in her grave this very day?” demanded Marilla despairingly.

“How can you be such a naughty boy when your poor mother just got buried today?” Marilla asked in despair.

“But she was glad to die,” said Davy confidentially. “I know, ’cause she told me so. She was awful tired of being sick. We’d a long talk the night before she died. She told me you was going to take me and Dora for the winter and I was to be a good boy. I’m going to be good, but can’t you be good running round just as well as sitting still? And she said I was always to be kind to Dora and stand up for her, and I’m going to.”

“But she was glad to die,” Davy said in a hush. “I know, because she told me. She was really tired of being sick. We had a long talk the night before she passed away. She told me you were going to take me and Dora for the winter and I needed to be a good boy. I’m going to be good, but can’t you be good running around just as easily as sitting still? And she said I should always be kind to Dora and stand up for her, and I will.”

“Do you call pulling her hair being kind to her?”

“Do you really think pulling her hair is a kind thing to do?”

“Well, I ain’t going to let anybody else pull it,” said Davy, doubling up his fists and frowning. “They’d just better try it. I didn’t hurt her much . . . she just cried ’cause she’s a girl. I’m glad I’m a boy but I’m sorry I’m a twin. When Jimmy Sprott’s sister conterdicks him he just says, ‘I’m oldern you, so of course I know better,’ and that settles her. But I can’t tell Dora that, and she just goes on thinking diffrunt from me. You might let me drive the gee-gee for a spell, since I’m a man.”

“Well, I’m not going to let anyone else do it,” Davy said, clenching his fists and frowning. “They better try. I didn't hurt her too much… she just cried because she's a girl. I'm glad I'm a boy, but I wish I wasn't a twin. When Jimmy Sprott's sister argues with him, he just says, ‘I’m older than you, so of course I know better,’ and that puts her in her place. But I can't say that to Dora, and she just keeps thinking differently from me. You might let me drive the horse for a while, since I'm a man.”

Altogether, Marilla was a thankful woman when she drove into her own yard, where the wind of the autumn night was dancing with the brown leaves. Anne was at the gate to meet them and lift the twins out. Dora submitted calmly to be kissed, but Davy responded to Anne’s welcome with one of his hearty hugs and the cheerful announcement, “I’m Mr. Davy Keith.”

Altogether, Marilla was a grateful woman when she pulled into her own yard, where the autumn night wind was swirling with the brown leaves. Anne was at the gate to greet them and take the twins out. Dora let herself be kissed without fuss, but Davy greeted Anne with one of his big hugs and the cheerful declaration, “I’m Mr. Davy Keith.”

At the supper table Dora behaved like a little lady, but Davy’s manners left much to be desired.

At the dinner table, Dora acted like a proper lady, but Davy's manners were lacking.

“I’m so hungry I ain’t got time to eat p’litely,” he said when Marilla reproved him. “Dora ain’t half as hungry as I am. Look at all the ex’cise I took on the road here. That cake’s awful nice and plummy. We haven’t had any cake at home for ever’n ever so long, ’cause mother was too sick to make it and Mrs. Sprott said it was as much as she could do to bake our bread for us. And Mrs. Wiggins never puts any plums in her cakes. Catch her! Can I have another piece?”

“I’m so hungry I don’t have time to eat politely,” he said when Marilla scolded him. “Dora isn’t anywhere near as hungry as I am. Look at all the exercise I got on the way here. That cake is really nice and full of plums. We haven’t had any cake at home in ages because Mom was too sick to make it, and Mrs. Sprott said it was all she could do to bake our bread for us. And Mrs. Wiggins never puts any plums in her cakes. Can I have another piece?”

Marilla would have refused but Anne cut a generous second slice. However, she reminded Davy that he ought to say “Thank you” for it. Davy merely grinned at her and took a huge bite. When he had finished the slice he said,

Marilla would have said no, but Anne generously cut a second slice for him. However, she reminded Davy that he should say "Thank you" for it. Davy just grinned at her and took a big bite. After he finished the slice, he said,

“If you’ll give me another piece I’ll say thank you for it.”

“If you give me another piece, I’ll say thank you for it.”

“No, you have had plenty of cake,” said Marilla in a tone which Anne knew and Davy was to learn to be final.

“No, you’ve had enough cake,” Marilla said in a tone that Anne recognized and Davy was about to learn was definitive.

Davy winked at Anne, and then, leaning over the table, snatched Dora’s first piece of cake, from which she had just taken one dainty little bite, out of her very fingers and, opening his mouth to the fullest extent, crammed the whole slice in. Dora’s lip trembled and Marilla was speechless with horror. Anne promptly exclaimed, with her best “schoolma’am” air,

Davy winked at Anne, then leaned over the table, snatched the first piece of cake from Dora just after she had taken a tiny bite, and, opening his mouth as wide as he could, stuffed the entire slice in. Dora's lip quivered, and Marilla was speechless with shock. Anne quickly exclaimed, adopting her best “teacher” manner,

“Oh, Davy, gentlemen don’t do things like that.”

“Oh, Davy, guys don’t do things like that.”

“I know they don’t,” said Davy, as soon as he could speak, “but I ain’t a gemplum.”

“I know they don’t,” Davy said as soon as he could speak, “but I’m not a gemplum.”

“But don’t you want to be?” said shocked Anne.

“But don’t you want to be?” said a shocked Anne.

“Course I do. But you can’t be a gemplum till you grow up.”

"Of course I do. But you can’t be a champion until you grow up."

“Oh, indeed you can,” Anne hastened to say, thinking she saw a chance to sow good seed betimes. “You can begin to be a gentleman when you are a little boy. And gentlemen never snatch things from ladies . . . or forget to say thank you . . . or pull anybody’s hair.”

“Oh, absolutely you can,” Anne quickly replied, thinking she saw a chance to plant some good lessons early on. “You can start being a gentleman when you're just a little boy. And gentlemen never grab things from ladies... or forget to say thank you... or pull anyone's hair.”

“They don’t have much fun, that’s a fact,” said Davy frankly. “I guess I’ll wait till I’m grown up to be one.”

“They don’t have much fun, that’s for sure,” Davy said honestly. “I guess I’ll wait until I’m grown up to be one.”

Marilla, with a resigned air, had cut another piece of cake for Dora. She did not feel able to cope with Davy just then. It had been a hard day for her, what with the funeral and the long drive. At that moment she looked forward to the future with a pessimism that would have done credit to Eliza Andrews herself.

Marilla, with a sense of resignation, had cut another slice of cake for Dora. She wasn't feeling up to dealing with Davy at that moment. It had been a tough day for her, given the funeral and the long drive. At that moment, she viewed the future with a pessimism that would have made even Eliza Andrews proud.

The twins were not noticeably alike, although both were fair. Dora had long sleek curls that never got out of order. Davy had a crop of fuzzy little yellow ringlets all over his round head. Dora’s hazel eyes were gentle and mild; Davy’s were as roguish and dancing as an elf’s. Dora’s nose was straight, Davy’s a positive snub; Dora had a “prunes and prisms” mouth, Davy’s was all smiles; and besides, he had a dimple in one cheek and none in the other, which gave him a dear, comical, lopsided look when he laughed. Mirth and mischief lurked in every corner of his little face.

The twins didn't look much alike, even though both had fair hair. Dora had long, smooth curls that were always perfectly in place. Davy had a bunch of fuzzy yellow ringlets all over his round head. Dora’s hazel eyes were gentle and soft; Davy’s sparkled with mischief like an elf’s. Dora had a straight nose, while Davy’s was adorably snubbed; Dora had a serious mouth, but Davy was all smiles, plus he had a dimple in one cheek and none in the other, giving him a sweet, funny, lopsided look when he laughed. His little face was full of joy and mischief.

“They’d better go to bed,” said Marilla, who thought it was the easiest way to dispose of them. “Dora will sleep with me and you can put Davy in the west gable. You’re not afraid to sleep alone, are you, Davy?”

“They should really get to bed,” Marilla said, thinking it was the simplest way to deal with them. “Dora can sleep with me, and you can put Davy in the west gable. You’re not scared to sleep alone, are you, Davy?”

“No; but I ain’t going to bed for ever so long yet,” said Davy comfortably.

“No; but I’m not going to bed for a long time yet,” said Davy comfortably.

“Oh, yes, you are.” That was all the much-tried Marilla said, but something in her tone squelched even Davy. He trotted obediently upstairs with Anne.

“Oh, yes, you are.” That was all the often-tested Marilla said, but something in her tone silenced even Davy. He followed Anne obediently upstairs.

“When I’m grown up the very first thing I’m going to do is stay up all night just to see what it would be like,” he told her confidentially.

“When I’m grown up, the very first thing I’m going to do is stay up all night just to see what it’s like,” he told her confidentially.

In after years Marilla never thought of that first week of the twins’ sojourn at Green Gables without a shiver. Not that it really was so much worse than the weeks that followed it; but it seemed so by reason of its novelty. There was seldom a waking minute of any day when Davy was not in mischief or devising it; but his first notable exploit occurred two days after his arrival, on Sunday morning . . . a fine, warm day, as hazy and mild as September. Anne dressed him for church while Marilla attended to Dora. Davy at first objected strongly to having his face washed.

In the years that followed, Marilla never thought about that first week of the twins’ stay at Green Gables without feeling a shiver. It wasn’t that it was much worse than the weeks that came after; it just felt that way because it was so new. There was hardly a waking minute of any day when Davy wasn’t causing trouble or planning to cause it; but his first major stunt happened two days after he arrived, on Sunday morning... a lovely, warm day, as hazy and mild as September. Anne dressed him for church while Marilla took care of Dora. Davy initially protested loudly against having his face washed.

“Marilla washed it yesterday . . . and Mrs. Wiggins scoured me with hard soap the day of the funeral. That’s enough for one week. I don’t see the good of being so awful clean. It’s lots more comfable being dirty.”

“Marilla washed it yesterday... and Mrs. Wiggins scrubbed me with harsh soap the day of the funeral. That’s enough for one week. I don’t see the point of being so extremely clean. It’s way more comfortable being dirty.”

“Paul Irving washes his face every day of his own accord,” said Anne astutely.

“Paul Irving washes his face every day on his own,” Anne noted wisely.

Davy had been an inmate of Green Gables for little over forty-eight hours; but he already worshipped Anne and hated Paul Irving, whom he had heard Anne praising enthusiastically the day after his arrival. If Paul Irving washed his face every day, that settled it. He, Davy Keith, would do it too, if it killed him. The same consideration induced him to submit meekly to the other details of his toilet, and he was really a handsome little lad when all was done. Anne felt an almost maternal pride in him as she led him into the old Cuthbert pew.

Davy had been staying at Green Gables for just over forty-eight hours, but he already adored Anne and disliked Paul Irving, whom he had heard Anne praising excitedly the day after he arrived. If Paul Irving washed his face every day, then that was it. He, Davy Keith, would do it too, even if it killed him. The same thought made him willingly go along with the other parts of his grooming, and he actually looked like a handsome little boy when everything was done. Anne felt a sort of motherly pride in him as she took him into the old Cuthbert pew.

Davy behaved quite well at first, being occupied in casting covert glances at all the small boys within view and wondering which was Paul Irving. The first two hymns and the Scripture reading passed off uneventfully. Mr. Allan was praying when the sensation came.

Davy acted pretty well at first, keeping himself busy by sneaking glances at all the little boys he could see and wondering which one was Paul Irving. The first two hymns and the Bible reading went by without any issues. Mr. Allan was praying when the surprising moment happened.

Lauretta White was sitting in front of Davy, her head slightly bent and her fair hair hanging in two long braids, between which a tempting expanse of white neck showed, encased in a loose lace frill. Lauretta was a fat, placid-looking child of eight, who had conducted herself irreproachably in church from the very first day her mother carried her there, an infant of six months.

Lauretta White was sitting in front of Davy, her head slightly bowed and her light hair hanging in two long braids, with a tempting stretch of white neck visible, framed by a loose lace collar. Lauretta was a chubby, calm-looking eight-year-old who had behaved perfectly in church since the very first day her mother took her there when she was just six months old.

Davy thrust his hand into his pocket and produced . . . a caterpillar, a furry, squirming caterpillar. Marilla saw and clutched at him but she was too late. Davy dropped the caterpillar down Lauretta’s neck.

Davy stuck his hand into his pocket and pulled out... a caterpillar, a fuzzy, wriggling caterpillar. Marilla saw and reached for him, but she was too late. Davy dropped the caterpillar down Lauretta’s neck.

Right into the middle of Mr. Allan’s prayer burst a series of piercing shrieks. The minister stopped appalled and opened his eyes. Every head in the congregation flew up. Lauretta White was dancing up and down in her pew, clutching frantically at the back of her dress.

Right in the middle of Mr. Allan’s prayer, a series of piercing screams interrupted. The minister stopped, shocked, and opened his eyes. Every head in the congregation shot up. Lauretta White was jumping up and down in her pew, desperately clutching the back of her dress.

“Ow . . . mommer . . . mommer . . . ow . . . take it off . . . ow . . . get it out . . . ow . . . that bad boy put it down my neck . . . ow . . . mommer . . . it’s going further down . . . ow . . . ow . . . ow. . . .”

“Ow . . . mom . . . mom . . . ow . . . take it off . . . ow . . . get it out . . . ow . . . that bad guy put it down my neck . . . ow . . . mom . . . it’s going further down . . . ow . . . ow . . . ow . . . .”

Mrs. White rose and with a set face carried the hysterical, writhing Lauretta out of church. Her shrieks died away in the distance and Mr. Allan proceeded with the service. But everybody felt that it was a failure that day. For the first time in her life Marilla took no notice of the text and Anne sat with scarlet cheeks of mortification.

Mrs. White stood up and, with a determined look, took the hysterical, squirming Lauretta out of the church. Her screams faded into the distance, and Mr. Allan continued with the service. But everyone felt like it was a failure that day. For the first time in her life, Marilla didn’t pay attention to the sermon, and Anne sat there with bright red cheeks, feeling embarrassed.

When they got home Marilla put Davy to bed and made him stay there for the rest of the day. She would not give him any dinner but allowed him a plain tea of bread and milk. Anne carried it to him and sat sorrowfully by him while he ate it with an unrepentant relish. But Anne’s mournful eyes troubled him.

When they got home, Marilla put Davy to bed and made him stay there for the rest of the day. She wouldn't give him any dinner but allowed him a simple tea of bread and milk. Anne brought it to him and sat sadly by his side while he ate it with unapologetic enjoyment. But Anne’s sorrowful eyes bothered him.

“I s’pose,” he said reflectively, “that Paul Irving wouldn’t have dropped a caterpillar down a girl’s neck in church, would he?”

"I guess," he said thoughtfully, "that Paul Irving wouldn't have dropped a caterpillar down a girl's neck in church, would he?"

“Indeed he wouldn’t,” said Anne sadly.

“Yeah, he wouldn’t,” Anne said sadly.

“Well, I’m kind of sorry I did it, then,” conceded Davy. “But it was such a jolly big caterpillar . . . I picked him up on the church steps just as we went in. It seemed a pity to waste him. And say, wasn’t it fun to hear that girl yell?”

“Well, I guess I kind of regret doing it,” admitted Davy. “But it was such a huge caterpillar . . . I found him on the church steps right as we entered. It felt like a shame to just leave him. And come on, wasn’t it hilarious to hear that girl scream?”

Tuesday afternoon the Aid Society met at Green Gables. Anne hurried home from school, for she knew that Marilla would need all the assistance she could give. Dora, neat and proper, in her nicely starched white dress and black sash, was sitting with the members of the Aid in the parlor, speaking demurely when spoken to, keeping silence when not, and in every way comporting herself as a model child. Davy, blissfully dirty, was making mud pies in the barnyard.

Tuesday afternoon, the Aid Society gathered at Green Gables. Anne raced home from school because she knew Marilla would need all the help she could offer. Dora, looking tidy and put-together in her freshly starched white dress and black sash, was sitting with the Aid members in the parlor, speaking quietly when addressed and staying silent otherwise, behaving completely like a model child. Davy, happily messy, was making mud pies in the barnyard.

“I told him he might,” said Marilla wearily. “I thought it would keep him out of worse mischief. He can only get dirty at that. We’ll have our teas over before we call him to his. Dora can have hers with us, but I would never dare to let Davy sit down at the table with all the Aids here.”

“I told him he could,” Marilla said tiredly. “I thought it would keep him out of more trouble. He can only get dirty doing that. We’ll finish our tea before we call him for his. Dora can join us, but I would never risk letting Davy sit at the table with all the adults here.”

When Anne went to call the Aids to tea she found that Dora was not in the parlor. Mrs. Jasper Bell said Davy had come to the front door and called her out. A hasty consultation with Marilla in the pantry resulted in a decision to let both children have their teas together later on.

When Anne went to invite the kids to tea, she noticed that Dora wasn’t in the living room. Mrs. Jasper Bell mentioned that Davy had come to the front door and took her outside. A quick discussion with Marilla in the pantry led to the decision to let both kids have their tea together later.

Tea was half over when the dining room was invaded by a forlorn figure. Marilla and Anne stared in dismay, the Aids in amazement. Could that be Dora . . . that sobbing nondescript in a drenched, dripping dress and hair from which the water was streaming on Marilla’s new coin-spot rug?

Tea was halfway done when a sad figure burst into the dining room. Marilla and Anne looked on in shock, while the Aids were left speechless. Could that be Dora... that crying mess in a soaked dress, with water streaming down her hair onto Marilla’s new coin-spot rug?

“Dora, what has happened to you?” cried Anne, with a guilty glance at Mrs. Jasper Bell, whose family was said to be the only one in the world in which accidents never occurred.

“Dora, what happened to you?” cried Anne, glancing at Mrs. Jasper Bell with guilt, whose family was rumored to be the only one in the world where accidents never happened.

“Davy made me walk the pigpen fence,” wailed Dora. “I didn’t want to but he called me a fraid-cat. And I fell off into the pigpen and my dress got all dirty and the pig runned right over me. My dress was just awful but Davy said if I’d stand under the pump he’d wash it clean, and I did and he pumped water all over me but my dress ain’t a bit cleaner and my pretty sash and shoes is all spoiled.”

“Davy made me walk the pigpen fence,” cried Dora. “I didn’t want to, but he called me a scaredy-cat. Then I fell off into the pigpen, and my dress got all dirty, and the pig ran right over me. My dress looked terrible, but Davy said if I stood under the pump, he’d wash it clean. I did, and he sprayed water all over me, but my dress isn’t any cleaner, and my pretty sash and shoes are all ruined.”

Anne did the honors of the table alone for the rest of the meal while Marilla went upstairs and redressed Dora in her old clothes. Davy was caught and sent to bed without any supper. Anne went to his room at twilight and talked to him seriously . . . a method in which she had great faith, not altogether unjustified by results. She told him she felt very badly over his conduct.

Anne took care of the table by herself for the rest of the meal while Marilla went upstairs to change Dora back into her old clothes. Davy got into trouble and was sent to bed without dinner. Anne went to his room at twilight and had a serious talk with him... a method she really believed in, and it had somewhat worked in the past. She told him she felt very upset about his behavior.

“I feel sorry now myself,” admitted Davy, “but the trouble is I never feel sorry for doing things till after I’ve did them. Dora wouldn’t help me make pies, cause she was afraid of messing her clo’es and that made me hopping mad. I s’pose Paul Irving wouldn’t have made his sister walk a pigpen fence if he knew she’d fall in?”

“I feel bad about it now,” Davy admitted, “but the problem is I never regret doing things until after I’ve done them. Dora wouldn’t help me make pies because she was afraid of getting her clothes dirty, and that made me really mad. I guess Paul Irving wouldn’t have made his sister walk along the pigpen fence if he knew she’d fall off?”

“No, he would never dream of such a thing. Paul is a perfect little gentleman.”

“No, he would never think of doing something like that. Paul is a perfect little gentleman.”

Davy screwed his eyes tight shut and seemed to meditate on this for a time. Then he crawled up and put his arms about Anne’s neck, snuggling his flushed little face down on her shoulder.

Davy squeezed his eyes shut and seemed to think about this for a moment. Then he crawled up and wrapped his arms around Anne’s neck, burying his warm little face on her shoulder.

“Anne, don’t you like me a little bit, even if I ain’t a good boy like Paul?”

“Anne, don’t you like me just a little, even if I’m not a good guy like Paul?”

“Indeed I do,” said Anne sincerely. Somehow, it was impossible to help liking Davy. “But I’d like you better still if you weren’t so naughty.”

“Of course I do,” Anne said earnestly. Somehow, it was impossible not to like Davy. “But I’d like you even more if you weren't so mischievous.”

“I . . . did something else today,” went on Davy in a muffled voice. “I’m sorry now but I’m awful scared to tell you. You won’t be very cross, will you? And you won’t tell Marilla, will you?”

“I . . . did something else today,” Davy continued in a muffled voice. “I’m sorry now, but I’m really scared to tell you. You won’t be too angry, will you? And you won’t tell Marilla, will you?”

“I don’t know, Davy. Perhaps I ought to tell her. But I think I can promise you I won’t if you promise me that you will never do it again, whatever it is.”

“I don’t know, Davy. Maybe I should tell her. But I can promise you I won’t if you promise me that you’ll never do it again, whatever it is.”

“No, I never will. Anyhow, it’s not likely I’d find any more of them this year. I found this one on the cellar steps.”

“No, I never will. Anyway, it’s not like I’d find any more of them this year. I found this one on the cellar steps.”

“Davy, what is it you’ve done?”

“Davy, what did you do?”

“I put a toad in Marilla’s bed. You can go and take it out if you like. But say, Anne, wouldn’t it be fun to leave it there?”

“I put a toad in Marilla’s bed. You can go and take it out if you want. But hey, Anne, wouldn’t it be fun to leave it there?”

“Davy Keith!” Anne sprang from Davy’s clinging arms and flew across the hall to Marilla’s room. The bed was slightly rumpled. She threw back the blankets in nervous haste and there in very truth was the toad, blinking at her from under a pillow.

“Davy Keith!” Anne jumped out of Davy’s arms and rushed across the hall to Marilla’s room. The bed was a bit messy. She quickly threw back the blankets and there, sure enough, was the toad, blinking at her from under a pillow.

“How can I carry that awful thing out?” moaned Anne with a shudder. The fire shovel suggested itself to her and she crept down to get it while Marilla was busy in the pantry. Anne had her own troubles carrying that toad downstairs, for it hopped off the shovel three times and once she thought she had lost it in the hall. When she finally deposited it in the cherry orchard she drew a long breath of relief.

“How am I supposed to get rid of that disgusting thing?” Anne groaned, shivering. The fire shovel came to mind, so she quietly went to grab it while Marilla was occupied in the pantry. Anne struggled to carry the toad downstairs, as it jumped off the shovel three times, and at one point, she thought she had lost it in the hallway. When she finally set it down in the cherry orchard, she let out a long sigh of relief.

“If Marilla knew she’d never feel safe getting into bed again in her life. I’m so glad that little sinner repented in time. There’s Diana signaling to me from her window. I’m glad . . . I really feel the need of some diversion, for what with Anthony Pye in school and Davy Keith at home my nerves have had about all they can endure for one day.”

“If Marilla knew she’d never feel safe getting into bed again in her life. I’m so glad that little troublemaker turned things around in time. There’s Diana waving to me from her window. I’m glad . . . I really need something to take my mind off things, because with Anthony Pye at school and Davy Keith at home, my nerves have taken just about all they can handle in one day.”

IX
A Question of Color

“That old nuisance of a Rachel Lynde was here again today, pestering me for a subscription towards buying a carpet for the vestry room,” said Mr. Harrison wrathfully. “I detest that woman more than anybody I know. She can put a whole sermon, text, comment, and application, into six words, and throw it at you like a brick.”

“That annoying Rachel Lynde was back again today, bothering me for a donation to buy a carpet for the vestry room,” Mr. Harrison said angrily. “I dislike that woman more than anyone I know. She can sum up an entire sermon, text, comment, and application in just six words and then hit you with it like a brick.”

Anne, who was perched on the edge of the veranda, enjoying the charm of a mild west wind blowing across a newly ploughed field on a gray November twilight and piping a quaint little melody among the twisted firs below the garden, turned her dreamy face over her shoulder.

Anne, who was sitting on the edge of the porch, enjoying the pleasant feel of a gentle west wind blowing across a freshly ploughed field on a gray November evening and humming a charming little tune among the twisted firs below the garden, turned her dreamy face over her shoulder.

“The trouble is, you and Mrs. Lynde don’t understand one another,” she explained. “That is always what is wrong when people don’t like each other. I didn’t like Mrs. Lynde at first either; but as soon as I came to understand her I learned to.”

“The problem is, you and Mrs. Lynde don’t get along,” she explained. “That’s usually what happens when people don’t like each other. I didn't like Mrs. Lynde at first either; but once I figured her out, I started to.”

“Mrs. Lynde may be an acquired taste with some folks; but I didn’t keep on eating bananas because I was told I’d learn to like them if I did,” growled Mr. Harrison. “And as for understanding her, I understand that she is a confirmed busybody and I told her so.”

“Mrs. Lynde might be someone you have to get used to for some people; but I didn’t keep eating bananas just because I was told I’d eventually like them,” Mr. Harrison grumbled. “And when it comes to understanding her, I get that she’s a chronic meddler, and I told her that.”

“Oh, that must have hurt her feelings very much,” said Anne reproachfully. “How could you say such a thing? I said some dreadful things to Mrs. Lynde long ago but it was when I had lost my temper. I couldn’t say them deliberately.”

“Oh, that must have really hurt her feelings,” said Anne with disappointment. “How could you say something like that? I said some awful things to Mrs. Lynde a long time ago, but it was when I had lost my temper. I couldn’t say them on purpose.”

“It was the truth and I believe in telling the truth to everybody.”

“It was the truth, and I believe in being honest with everyone.”

“But you don’t tell the whole truth,” objected Anne. “You only tell the disagreeable part of the truth. Now, you’ve told me a dozen times that my hair was red, but you’ve never once told me that I had a nice nose.”

“But you don’t tell the whole truth,” Anne argued. “You only share the bad parts of the truth. You’ve mentioned a dozen times that my hair is red, but you’ve never once said that I have a nice nose.”

“I daresay you know it without any telling,” chuckled Mr. Harrison.

“I bet you know it without anyone having to say it,” laughed Mr. Harrison.

“I know I have red hair too . . . although it’s much darker than it used to be . . . so there’s no need of telling me that either.”

“I know I have red hair too . . . even though it’s much darker than it used to be . . . so there’s no need to mention that either.”

“Well, well, I’ll try and not mention it again since you’re so sensitive. You must excuse me, Anne. I’ve got a habit of being outspoken and folks mustn’t mind it.”

“Well, well, I'll try not to bring it up again since you're so sensitive. You have to forgive me, Anne. I have a tendency to be blunt, and people shouldn’t take it personally.”

“But they can’t help minding it. And I don’t think it’s any help that it’s your habit. What would you think of a person who went about sticking pins and needles into people and saying, ‘Excuse me, you mustn’t mind it . . . it’s just a habit I’ve got.’ You’d think he was crazy, wouldn’t you? And as for Mrs. Lynde being a busybody, perhaps she is. But did you tell her she had a very kind heart and always helped the poor, and never said a word when Timothy Cotton stole a crock of butter out of her dairy and told his wife he’d bought it from her? Mrs. Cotton cast it up to her the next time they met that it tasted of turnips and Mrs. Lynde just said she was sorry it had turned out so poorly.”

“But they can’t help but care. And I don’t think it helps that it’s your habit. What would you think of someone who walked around sticking pins and needles into people and said, ‘Excuse me, you shouldn’t mind it... it’s just a habit I have’? You’d probably think they were crazy, right? And as for Mrs. Lynde being a busybody, maybe she is. But did you tell her she has a very kind heart, always helps the less fortunate, and never said a word when Timothy Cotton stole a jar of butter from her and told his wife he’d bought it from her? Mrs. Cotton brought it up the next time they met, complaining it tasted like turnips, and Mrs. Lynde just said she was sorry it came out so poorly.”

“I suppose she has some good qualities,” conceded Mr. Harrison grudgingly. “Most folks have. I have some myself, though you might never suspect it. But anyhow I ain’t going to give anything to that carpet. Folks are everlasting begging for money here, it seems to me. How’s your project of painting the hall coming on?”

“I guess she has some good qualities,” Mr. Harrison admitted reluctantly. “Most people do. I have some myself, though you might not think so. But anyway, I’m not going to give anything to that carpet. It feels like people are always asking for money around here. How’s your plan to paint the hall going?”

“Splendidly. We had a meeting of the A.V.I.S. last Friday night and found that we had plenty of money subscribed to paint the hall and shingle the roof too. Most people gave very liberally, Mr. Harrison.”

“Awesome. We had a meeting of the A.V.I.S. last Friday night and found that we had plenty of money pledged to paint the hall and shingle the roof too. Most people contributed very generously, Mr. Harrison.”

Anne was a sweet-souled lass, but she could instill some venom into innocent italics when occasion required.

Anne was a kind-hearted girl, but she could inject some bitterness into innocent words when the situation called for it.

“What color are you going to have it?”

“What color are you going to choose?”

“We have decided on a very pretty green. The roof will be dark red, of course. Mr. Roger Pye is going to get the paint in town today.”

“We’ve chosen a really nice green. The roof is going to be dark red, of course. Mr. Roger Pye is heading into town to pick up the paint today.”

“Who’s got the job?”

“Who has the job?”

“Mr. Joshua Pye of Carmody. He has nearly finished the shingling. We had to give him the contract, for every one of the Pyes . . . and there are four families, you know . . . said they wouldn’t give a cent unless Joshua got it. They had subscribed twelve dollars between them and we thought that was too much to lose, although some people think we shouldn’t have given in to the Pyes. Mrs. Lynde says they try to run everything.”

“Mr. Joshua Pye from Carmody. He’s almost done with the shingles. We had to give him the contract because every one of the Pyes... and there are four families, you know... said they wouldn’t contribute a dime unless Joshua got it. They had pooled together twelve dollars, and we thought that was too much to give up, even though some people think we shouldn’t have given in to the Pyes. Mrs. Lynde says they try to control everything.”

“The main question is will this Joshua do his work well. If he does I don’t see that it matters whether his name is Pye or Pudding.”

“The main question is, will this Joshua do his job well? If he does, I don’t see that it matters whether his name is Pye or Pudding.”

“He has the reputation of being a good workman, though they say he’s a very peculiar man. He hardly ever talks.”

“He's known for being a skilled worker, although people say he’s quite an odd guy. He barely ever speaks.”

“He’s peculiar enough all right then,” said Mr. Harrison drily. “Or at least, folks here will call him so. I never was much of a talker till I came to Avonlea and then I had to begin in self-defense or Mrs. Lynde would have said I was dumb and started a subscription to have me taught sign language. You’re not going yet, Anne?”

“He's definitely strange, that's for sure,” Mr. Harrison said dryly. “At least, people here will say he is. I never talked much until I came to Avonlea, and then I had to start in self-defense, or Mrs. Lynde would have claimed I was mute and started a fundraiser to teach me sign language. You're not leaving yet, are you, Anne?”

“I must. I have some sewing to do for Dora this evening. Besides, Davy is probably breaking Marilla’s heart with some new mischief by this time. This morning the first thing he said was, ‘Where does the dark go, Anne? I want to know.’ I told him it went around to the other side of the world but after breakfast he declared it didn’t . . . that it went down the well. Marilla says she caught him hanging over the well-box four times today, trying to reach down to the dark.”

“I have to. I need to do some sewing for Dora this evening. Plus, Davy is probably breaking Marilla’s heart with some new trouble by now. This morning, the first thing he asked was, ‘Where does the dark go, Anne? I want to know.’ I told him it goes around to the other side of the world, but after breakfast, he insisted it didn’t… that it went down the well. Marilla said she caught him hanging over the well-box four times today, trying to reach down to the dark.”

“He’s a limb,” declared Mr. Harrison. “He came over here yesterday and pulled six feathers out of Ginger’s tail before I could get in from the barn. The poor bird has been moping ever since. Those children must be a sight of trouble to you folks.”

“He's a troublemaker,” Mr. Harrison said. “He came over here yesterday and yanked six feathers out of Ginger's tail before I could make it back from the barn. The poor bird has been sulking ever since. Those kids must be a real hassle for you all.”

“Everything that’s worth having is some trouble,” said Anne, secretly resolving to forgive Davy’s next offence, whatever it might be, since he had avenged her on Ginger.

“Everything that’s worth having takes some effort,” said Anne, secretly deciding to forgive Davy’s next mistake, no matter what it was, since he had gotten back at Ginger for her.

Mr. Roger Pye brought the hall paint home that night and Mr. Joshua Pye, a surly, taciturn man, began painting the next day. He was not disturbed in his task. The hall was situated on what was called “the lower road.” In late autumn this road was always muddy and wet, and people going to Carmody traveled by the longer “upper” road. The hall was so closely surrounded by fir woods that it was invisible unless you were near it. Mr. Joshua Pye painted away in the solitude and independence that were so dear to his unsociable heart.

Mr. Roger Pye brought the hall paint home that night, and Mr. Joshua Pye, a grumpy and quiet man, started painting the next day. He wasn't bothered while working. The hall was located on what people called "the lower road." In late autumn, this road was always muddy and wet, so people heading to Carmody took the longer "upper" road. The hall was so surrounded by fir trees that it was hidden unless you were close by. Mr. Joshua Pye painted away in the solitude and independence that he cherished in his unsocial heart.

Friday afternoon he finished his job and went home to Carmody. Soon after his departure Mrs. Rachel Lynde drove by, having braved the mud of the lower road out of curiosity to see what the hall looked like in its new coat of paint. When she rounded the spruce curve she saw.

Friday afternoon, he wrapped up his work and headed home to Carmody. Shortly after he left, Mrs. Rachel Lynde drove by, having braved the muddy lower road out of curiosity to check out how the hall looked in its fresh coat of paint. When she rounded the spruce curve, she saw.

The sight affected Mrs. Lynde oddly. She dropped the reins, held up her hands, and said “Gracious Providence!” She stared as if she could not believe her eyes. Then she laughed almost hysterically.

The sight affected Mrs. Lynde in a strange way. She dropped the reins, raised her hands, and exclaimed, “Good gracious!” She stared as if she couldn’t believe her eyes. Then she laughed almost uncontrollably.

“There must be some mistake . . . there must. I knew those Pyes would make a mess of things.”

“There has to be some mistake . . . there has. I knew those Pyes would screw everything up.”

Mrs. Lynde drove home, meeting several people on the road and stopping to tell them about the hall. The news flew like wildfire. Gilbert Blythe, poring over a text book at home, heard it from his father’s hired boy at sunset, and rushed breathlessly to Green Gables, joined on the way by Fred Wright. They found Diana Barry, Jane Andrews, and Anne Shirley, despair personified, at the yard gate of Green Gables, under the big leafless willows.

Mrs. Lynde drove home, running into several people on the road and stopping to tell them about the hall. The news spread like wildfire. Gilbert Blythe, studying a textbook at home, heard it from his father's hired boy at sunset and raced breathlessly to Green Gables, joined along the way by Fred Wright. They found Diana Barry, Jane Andrews, and Anne Shirley, looking utterly despairing, at the yard gate of Green Gables, under the big leafless willows.

“It isn’t true surely, Anne?” exclaimed Gilbert.

“It can’t be true, can it, Anne?” exclaimed Gilbert.

“It is true,” answered Anne, looking like the muse of tragedy. “Mrs. Lynde called on her way from Carmody to tell me. Oh, it is simply dreadful! What is the use of trying to improve anything?”

“It is true,” Anne replied, looking like the muse of tragedy. “Mrs. Lynde stopped by on her way from Carmody to tell me. Oh, it’s just awful! What is the point of trying to improve anything?”

“What is dreadful?” asked Oliver Sloane, arriving at this moment with a bandbox he had brought from town for Marilla.

“What’s dreadful?” asked Oliver Sloane, arriving at that moment with a hatbox he had brought from town for Marilla.

“Haven’t you heard?” said Jane wrathfully. “Well, its simply this. . . Joshua Pye has gone and painted the hall blue instead of green . . . a deep, brilliant blue, the shade they use for painting carts and wheelbarrows. And Mrs. Lynde says it is the most hideous color for a building, especially when combined with a red roof, that she ever saw or imagined. You could simply have knocked me down with a feather when I heard it. It’s heartbreaking, after all the trouble we’ve had.”

“Haven’t you heard?” Jane said angrily. “Well, it’s just this... Joshua Pye has gone and painted the hall blue instead of green... a deep, bright blue, the kind they use for painting carts and wheelbarrows. And Mrs. Lynde says it’s the most awful color for a building, especially with a red roof, that she’s ever seen or imagined. You could have knocked me over with a feather when I heard it. It’s so disappointing, after all the trouble we’ve had.”

“How on earth could such a mistake have happened?” wailed Diana.

“How could such a mistake have happened?” cried Diana.

The blame of this unmerciful disaster was eventually narrowed down to the Pyes. The Improvers had decided to use Morton-Harris paints and the Morton-Harris paint cans were numbered according to a color card. A purchaser chose his shade on the card and ordered by the accompanying number. Number 147 was the shade of green desired and when Mr. Roger Pye sent word to the Improvers by his son, John Andrew, that he was going to town and would get their paint for them, the Improvers told John Andrew to tell his father to get 147. John Andrew always averred that he did so, but Mr. Roger Pye as stanchly declared that John Andrew told him 157; and there the matter stands to this day.

The blame for this unforgiving disaster eventually fell on the Pyes. The Improvers had decided to use Morton-Harris paints, and the Morton-Harris paint cans were numbered according to a color card. A buyer selected their shade from the card and ordered by the corresponding number. Number 147 was the desired shade of green, and when Mr. Roger Pye sent word to the Improvers through his son, John Andrew, that he was heading to town and would pick up their paint, the Improvers instructed John Andrew to tell his father to get 147. John Andrew always insisted that he did just that, but Mr. Roger Pye firmly maintained that John Andrew told him 157; and that’s how things remain to this day.

That night there was blank dismay in every Avonlea house where an Improver lived. The gloom at Green Gables was so intense that it quenched even Davy. Anne wept and would not be comforted.

That night, every house in Avonlea where an Improver lived was filled with complete despair. The atmosphere at Green Gables was so heavy that it even affected Davy. Anne cried and refused to be consoled.

“I must cry, even if I am almost seventeen, Marilla,” she sobbed. “It is so mortifying. And it sounds the death knell of our society. We’ll simply be laughed out of existence.”

“I have to cry, even if I’m almost seventeen, Marilla,” she sobbed. “It’s so embarrassing. And it feels like the end of our community. We’ll just be laughed out of existence.”

In life, as in dreams, however, things often go by contraries. The Avonlea people did not laugh; they were too angry. Their money had gone to paint the hall and consequently they felt themselves bitterly aggrieved by the mistake. Public indignation centered on the Pyes. Roger Pye and John Andrew had bungled the matter between them; and as for Joshua Pye, he must be a born fool not to suspect there was something wrong when he opened the cans and saw the color of the paint. Joshua Pye, when thus animadverted upon, retorted that the Avonlea taste in colors was no business of his, whatever his private opinion might be; he had been hired to paint the hall, not to talk about it; and he meant to have his money for it.

In life, just like in dreams, things often happen in unexpected ways. The people of Avonlea weren’t laughing; they were too upset. Their money had gone to paint the hall, and because of that, they felt seriously wronged by the mistake. Public anger was directed at the Pyes. Roger Pye and John Andrew had messed things up together; and as for Joshua Pye, he must be completely clueless not to realize something was off when he opened the cans and saw the paint color. When criticized, Joshua Pye shot back that the Avonlea preferences in colors were none of his concern, no matter what he thought personally; he had been hired to paint the hall, not to discuss it; and he intended to get paid for it.

The Improvers paid him his money in bitterness of spirit, after consulting Mr. Peter Sloane, who was a magistrate.

The Improvers paid him his money with a heavy heart, after talking to Mr. Peter Sloane, who was a magistrate.

“You’ll have to pay it,” Peter told him. “You can’t hold him responsible for the mistake, since he claims he was never told what the color was supposed to be but just given the cans and told to go ahead. But it’s a burning shame and that hall certainly does look awful.”

"You'll need to cover that cost," Peter said to him. "You can't make him accountable for the error, since he says he was never informed about what color it was supposed to be—he was just handed the cans and told to start working. But it's really unfortunate, and that hall definitely looks terrible."

The luckless Improvers expected that Avonlea would be more prejudiced than ever against them; but instead, public sympathy veered around in their favor. People thought the eager, enthusiastic little band who had worked so hard for their object had been badly used. Mrs. Lynde told them to keep on and show the Pyes that there really were people in the world who could do things without making a muddle of them. Mr. Major Spencer sent them word that he would clean out all the stumps along the road front of his farm and seed it down with grass at his own expense; and Mrs. Hiram Sloane called at the school one day and beckoned Anne mysteriously out into the porch to tell her that if the “Sassiety” wanted to make a geranium bed at the crossroads in the spring they needn’t be afraid of her cow, for she would see that the marauding animal was kept within safe bounds. Even Mr. Harrison chuckled, if he chuckled at all, in private, and was all sympathy outwardly.

The unlucky Improvers thought Avonlea would be more against them than ever, but instead, public sympathy turned in their favor. People felt that the eager, enthusiastic little group who had worked so hard for their cause had been treated unfairly. Mrs. Lynde encouraged them to keep going and show the Pyes that there were indeed people in the world who could get things done without creating a mess. Mr. Major Spencer let them know he would clear all the stumps along the road in front of his farm and plant grass there at his own expense; and Mrs. Hiram Sloane stopped by the school one day and signaled for Anne to come out onto the porch to tell her that if the “Sassiety” wanted to plant a geranium bed at the crossroads in the spring, they shouldn’t worry about her cow because she would make sure the troublesome animal stayed in check. Even Mr. Harrison, if he chuckled at all, did so privately, and was all supportive on the outside.

“Never mind, Anne. Most paints fade uglier every year but that blue is as ugly as it can be to begin with, so it’s bound to fade prettier. And the roof is shingled and painted all right. Folks will be able to sit in the hall after this without being leaked on. You’ve accomplished so much anyhow.”

“Don't worry about it, Anne. Most paints get worse every year, but that blue was ugly to start with, so it's likely to fade into something nicer. And the roof is shingled and painted properly. People will be able to sit in the hall now without getting dripped on. You've done so much already.”

“But Avonlea’s blue hall will be a byword in all the neighboring settlements from this time out,” said Anne bitterly.

“But Avonlea’s blue hall will be known everywhere in all the nearby settlements from now on,” Anne said bitterly.

And it must be confessed that it was.

And it has to be admitted that it was.

X
Davy in Search of a Sensation

Anne, walking home from school through the Birch Path one November afternoon, felt convinced afresh that life was a very wonderful thing. The day had been a good day; all had gone well in her little kingdom. St. Clair Donnell had not fought any of the other boys over the question of his name; Prillie Rogerson’s face had been so puffed up from the effects of toothache that she did not once try to coquette with the boys in her vicinity. Barbara Shaw had met with only one accident . . . spilling a dipper of water over the floor . . . and Anthony Pye had not been in school at all.

Anne, walking home from school through the Birch Path one November afternoon, felt convinced once again that life was a really amazing thing. The day had been a good one; everything had gone well in her little kingdom. St. Clair Donnell had *not* fought with any of the other boys over the issue of his name; Prillie Rogerson’s face had been so swollen from toothache that she didn’t even try to flirt with the boys nearby. Barbara Shaw had experienced just *one* mishap... spilling a dipper of water on the floor... and Anthony Pye hadn’t been in school at all.

“What a nice month this November has been!” said Anne, who had never quite got over her childish habit of talking to herself. “November is usually such a disagreeable month . . . as if the year had suddenly found out that she was growing old and could do nothing but weep and fret over it. This year is growing old gracefully . . . just like a stately old lady who knows she can be charming even with gray hair and wrinkles. We’ve had lovely days and delicious twilights. This last fortnight has been so peaceful, and even Davy has been almost well-behaved. I really think he is improving a great deal. How quiet the woods are today . . . not a murmur except that soft wind purring in the treetops! It sounds like surf on a faraway shore. How dear the woods are! You beautiful trees! I love every one of you as a friend.”

“What a lovely month this November has been!” said Anne, who had never quite shaken off her childhood habit of talking to herself. “November is usually such an unpleasant month… as if the year suddenly realized it was getting old and could only weep and worry about it. But this year is aging gracefully… just like a dignified old lady who knows she can be charming even with gray hair and wrinkles. We’ve had beautiful days and delightful evenings. This last couple of weeks has been so peaceful, and even Davy has been pretty well-behaved. I really think he is improving quite a bit. How quiet the woods are today… not a sound except for that gentle wind whispering in the treetops! It sounds like waves on a distant shore. How precious the woods are! You beautiful trees! I love each one of you like a friend.”

Anne paused to throw her arm about a slim young birch and kiss its cream-white trunk. Diana, rounding a curve in the path, saw her and laughed.

Anne stopped to wrap her arm around a slender young birch and kissed its cream-white trunk. Diana, coming around a bend in the path, saw her and laughed.

“Anne Shirley, you’re only pretending to be grown up. I believe when you’re alone you’re as much a little girl as you ever were.”

“Anne Shirley, you’re just pretending to be an adult. I think when you’re by yourself, you’re still as much a little girl as you’ve always been.”

“Well, one can’t get over the habit of being a little girl all at once,” said Anne gaily. “You see, I was little for fourteen years and I’ve only been grown-uppish for scarcely three. I’m sure I shall always feel like a child in the woods. These walks home from school are almost the only time I have for dreaming . . . except the half-hour or so before I go to sleep. I’m so busy with teaching and studying and helping Marilla with the twins that I haven’t another moment for imagining things. You don’t know what splendid adventures I have for a little while after I go to bed in the east gable every night. I always imagine I’m something very brilliant and triumphant and splendid . . . a great prima donna or a Red Cross nurse or a queen. Last night I was a queen. It’s really splendid to imagine you are a queen. You have all the fun of it without any of the inconveniences and you can stop being a queen whenever you want to, which you couldn’t in real life. But here in the woods I like best to imagine quite different things . . . I’m a dryad living in an old pine, or a little brown wood-elf hiding under a crinkled leaf. That white birch you caught me kissing is a sister of mine. The only difference is, she’s a tree and I’m a girl, but that’s no real difference. Where are you going, Diana?”

“Well, you can’t just shake off being a little girl all at once,” Anne said cheerfully. “You see, I was a kid for fourteen years and I’ve only been grown-up for hardly three. I’m sure I’ll always feel like a child in the woods. These walks home from school are almost the only time I have to daydream... except for the half-hour or so before I fall asleep. I’m so busy with teaching, studying, and helping Marilla with the twins that I don’t have another moment to imagine things. You wouldn’t believe the amazing adventures I have for a little while after I go to bed in the east gable every night. I always picture myself as someone really incredible and victorious and fantastic... like a great prima donna, a Red Cross nurse, or a queen. Last night, I was a queen. It’s really wonderful to imagine being a queen. You get all the fun without any of the hassles, and you can stop being a queen whenever you want, which you can’t do in real life. But here in the woods, I prefer to imagine totally different things... like being a dryad living in an old pine or a little brown wood-elf hiding under a crinkled leaf. That white birch you saw me kissing is my sister. The only difference is, she’s a tree and I’m a girl, but that doesn’t really matter. Where are you going, Diana?”

“Down to the Dicksons. I promised to help Alberta cut out her new dress. Can’t you walk down in the evening, Anne, and come home with me?”

“Going over to the Dicksons. I promised to help Alberta make her new dress. Can’t you walk over in the evening, Anne, and come back with me?”

“I might . . . since Fred Wright is away in town,” said Anne with a rather too innocent face.

"I might... since Fred Wright is out of town," said Anne with a somewhat too innocent expression.

Diana blushed, tossed her head, and walked on. She did not look offended, however.

Diana felt her face get warm, flipped her hair, and kept walking. She didn’t seem upset, though.

Anne fully intended to go down to the Dicksons’ that evening, but she did not. When she arrived at Green Gables she found a state of affairs which banished every other thought from her mind. Marilla met her in the yard . . . a wild-eyed Marilla.

Anne really meant to head over to the Dicksons’ that evening, but she didn’t. When she got to Green Gables, she found a situation that pushed all other thoughts out of her mind. Marilla met her in the yard . . . a wild-eyed Marilla.

“Anne, Dora is lost!”

“Anne, Dora's missing!”

“Dora! Lost!” Anne looked at Davy, who was swinging on the yard gate, and detected merriment in his eyes. “Davy, do you know where she is?”

“Dora! Lost!” Anne glanced at Davy, who was swinging on the yard gate, and noticed a spark of amusement in his eyes. “Davy, do you know where she is?”

“No, I don’t,” said Davy stoutly. “I haven’t seen her since dinner time, cross my heart.”

“No, I don’t,” Davy said firmly. “I haven’t seen her since dinner time, I promise.”

“I’ve been away ever since one o’clock,” said Marilla. “Thomas Lynde took sick all of a sudden and Rachel sent up for me to go at once. When I left here Dora was playing with her doll in the kitchen and Davy was making mud pies behind the barn. I only got home half an hour ago . . . and no Dora to be seen. Davy declares he never saw her since I left.”

“I’ve been gone since one o’clock,” Marilla said. “Thomas Lynde got suddenly sick, and Rachel called for me to come right away. When I left, Dora was playing with her doll in the kitchen, and Davy was making mud pies behind the barn. I just got home half an hour ago . . . and no sign of Dora. Davy claims he hasn’t seen her since I left.”

“Neither I did,” avowed Davy solemnly.

“Me neither,” Davy said seriously.

“She must be somewhere around,” said Anne. “She would never wander far away alone . . . you know how timid she is. Perhaps she has fallen asleep in one of the rooms.”

“She has to be nearby,” said Anne. “She would never stray too far on her own... you know how shy she is. Maybe she’s just dozed off in one of the rooms.”

Marilla shook her head.

Marilla shook her head.

“I’ve hunted the whole house through. But she may be in some of the buildings.”

“I’ve searched the entire house. But she might be in one of the other buildings.”

A thorough search followed. Every corner of house, yard, and outbuildings was ransacked by those two distracted people. Anne roved the orchards and the Haunted Wood, calling Dora’s name. Marilla took a candle and explored the cellar. Davy accompanied each of them in turn, and was fertile in thinking of places where Dora could possibly be. Finally they met again in the yard.

A thorough search followed. Every corner of the house, yard, and outbuildings was searched by those two preoccupied people. Anne wandered through the orchards and the Haunted Wood, calling Dora’s name. Marilla took a candle and checked the cellar. Davy joined each of them in turn and came up with lots of ideas about where Dora might be. Finally, they came back together in the yard.

“It’s a most mysterious thing,” groaned Marilla.

“It’s such a mysterious thing,” groaned Marilla.

“Where can she be?” said Anne miserably

“Where could she be?” Anne said sadly.

“Maybe she’s tumbled into the well,” suggested Davy cheerfully.

"Maybe she fell into the well," Davy suggested cheerfully.

Anne and Marilla looked fearfully into each other’s eyes. The thought had been with them both through their entire search but neither had dared to put it into words.

Anne and Marilla glanced anxiously into each other’s eyes. The idea had been on both their minds throughout the search, but neither had the courage to say it out loud.

“She . . . she might have,” whispered Marilla.

“She... she might have,” Marilla whispered.

Anne, feeling faint and sick, went to the wellbox and peered over. The bucket sat on the shelf inside. Far down below was a tiny glimmer of still water. The Cuthbert well was the deepest in Avonlea. If Dora. . . but Anne could not face the idea. She shuddered and turned away.

Anne, feeling weak and unwell, went to the wellbox and looked over. The bucket was resting on the shelf inside. Deep down below, there was a faint glimmer of calm water. The Cuthbert well was the deepest in Avonlea. If Dora... but Anne couldn't bear to think about it. She shivered and turned away.

“Run across for Mr. Harrison,” said Marilla, wringing her hands.

“Go run over to Mr. Harrison’s,” said Marilla, wringing her hands.

“Mr. Harrison and John Henry are both away . . . they went to town today. I’ll go for Mr. Barry.”

“Mr. Harrison and John Henry are both out . . . they went to town today. I’ll go get Mr. Barry.”

Mr. Barry came back with Anne, carrying a coil of rope to which was attached a claw-like instrument that had been the business end of a grubbing fork. Marilla and Anne stood by, cold and shaken with horror and dread, while Mr. Barry dragged the well, and Davy, astride the gate, watched the group with a face indicative of huge enjoyment.

Mr. Barry returned with Anne, holding a coil of rope with a claw-like tool that had been part of a grubbing fork. Marilla and Anne stood by, cold and shaken with fear and anxiety, while Mr. Barry pulled from the well, and Davy, sitting on the gate, watched the group with a look of great amusement.

Finally Mr. Barry shook his head, with a relieved air.

Finally, Mr. Barry shook his head, feeling relieved.

“She can’t be down there. It’s a mighty curious thing where she could have got to, though. Look here, young man, are you sure you’ve no idea where your sister is?”

"She can't be down there. It's really strange where she could have gone, though. Listen, young man, are you sure you have no idea where your sister is?"

“I’ve told you a dozen times that I haven’t,” said Davy, with an injured air. “Maybe a tramp come and stole her.”

“I’ve told you a dozen times that I haven’t,” Davy said, looking hurt. “Maybe a drifter came and took her.”

“Nonsense,” said Marilla sharply, relieved from her horrible fear of the well. “Anne, do you suppose she could have strayed over to Mr. Harrison’s? She has always been talking about his parrot ever since that time you took her over.”

“Nonsense,” Marilla said sharply, feeling relieved from her terrible fear of the well. “Anne, do you think she could have wandered over to Mr. Harrison’s? She’s been going on about his parrot ever since that time you took her there.”

“I can’t believe Dora would venture so far alone but I’ll go over and see,” said Anne.

“I can’t believe Dora would go that far by herself, but I’ll go check it out,” said Anne.

Nobody was looking at Davy just then or it would have been seen that a very decided change came over his face. He quietly slipped off the gate and ran, as fast as his fat legs could carry him, to the barn.

Nobody was looking at Davy at that moment, or they would have noticed a significant change in his face. He quietly climbed off the gate and ran, as fast as his chubby legs could take him, to the barn.

Anne hastened across the fields to the Harrison establishment in no very hopeful frame of mind. The house was locked, the window shades were down, and there was no sign of anything living about the place. She stood on the veranda and called Dora loudly.

Anne hurried across the fields to the Harrison house, feeling pretty discouraged. The house was locked up, the shades were drawn, and there was no sign of life anywhere. She stood on the porch and shouted for Dora.

Ginger, in the kitchen behind her, shrieked and swore with sudden fierceness; but between his outbursts Anne heard a plaintive cry from the little building in the yard which served Mr. Harrison as a toolhouse. Anne flew to the door, unhasped it, and caught up a small mortal with a tearstained face who was sitting forlornly on an upturned nail keg.

Ginger, in the kitchen behind her, yelled and cursed with sudden intensity; but in between his shouting, Anne heard a sad cry from the little building in the yard that Mr. Harrison used as a tool shed. Anne rushed to the door, unlatched it, and picked up a small child with a tear-streaked face who was sitting sadly on an overturned nail keg.

“Oh, Dora, Dora, what a fright you have given us! How came you to be here?”

“Oh, Dora, Dora, what a scare you gave us! How did you end up here?”

“Davy and I came over to see Ginger,” sobbed Dora, “but we couldn’t see him after all, only Davy made him swear by kicking the door. And then Davy brought me here and run out and shut the door; and I couldn’t get out. I cried and cried, I was frightened, and oh, I’m so hungry and cold; and I thought you’d never come, Anne.”

“Davy and I came over to see Ginger,” cried Dora, “but we couldn’t see him after all; Davy just made him swear by kicking the door. Then Davy brought me here, ran out, and shut the door; so I couldn’t get out. I cried and cried, I was scared, and oh, I’m so hungry and cold; and I thought you’d never come, Anne.”

“Davy?” But Anne could say no more. She carried Dora home with a heavy heart. Her joy at finding the child safe and sound was drowned out in the pain caused by Davy’s behavior. The freak of shutting Dora up might easily have been pardoned. But Davy had told falsehoods . . . downright coldblooded falsehoods about it. That was the ugly fact and Anne could not shut her eyes to it. She could have sat down and cried with sheer disappointment. She had grown to love Davy dearly . . . how dearly she had not known until this minute . . . and it hurt her unbearably to discover that he was guilty of deliberate falsehood.

“Davy?” But Anne couldn’t say anything more. She took Dora home with a heavy heart. Her happiness at finding the child safe was overshadowed by the pain caused by Davy’s actions. The weirdness of locking Dora up could have been forgiven easily. But Davy had told lies... outright coldhearted lies about it. That was the harsh reality, and Anne couldn’t ignore it. She could have sat down and cried from pure disappointment. She had come to love Davy dearly... how deeply she hadn’t realized until this moment... and it hurt her tremendously to find out that he was guilty of deliberate dishonesty.

Marilla listened to Anne’s tale in a silence that boded no good Davy-ward; Mr. Barry laughed and advised that Davy be summarily dealt with. When he had gone home Anne soothed and warmed the sobbing, shivering Dora, got her her supper and put her to bed. Then she returned to the kitchen, just as Marilla came grimly in, leading, or rather pulling, the reluctant, cobwebby Davy, whom she had just found hidden away in the darkest corner of the stable.

Marilla listened to Anne’s story in a silence that didn’t promise anything good for Davy. Mr. Barry laughed and suggested that they take care of Davy quickly. After he went home, Anne comforted and warmed the crying, shivering Dora, fed her dinner, and tucked her into bed. Then she went back to the kitchen, just as Marilla walked in with a grim expression, dragging the reluctant, dusty Davy, whom she had just discovered hiding in the darkest corner of the stable.

She jerked him to the mat on the middle of the floor and then went and sat down by the east window. Anne was sitting limply by the west window. Between them stood the culprit. His back was toward Marilla and it was a meek, subdued, frightened back; but his face was toward Anne and although it was a little shamefaced there was a gleam of comradeship in Davy’s eyes, as if he knew he had done wrong and was going to be punished for it, but could count on a laugh over it all with Anne later on.

She pulled him down to the mat in the middle of the floor and then went to sit by the east window. Anne was sitting listlessly by the west window. Between them stood the troublemaker. His back was facing Marilla, and it looked meek, subdued, and scared; but his face was toward Anne, and even though he looked a bit embarrassed, there was a spark of friendship in Davy’s eyes, as if he knew he had messed up and was going to get in trouble for it, but could count on sharing a laugh about it all with Anne later.

But no half hidden smile answered him in Anne’s gray eyes, as there might have done had it been only a question of mischief. There was something else . . . something ugly and repulsive.

But no faint smile responded in Anne’s gray eyes, as it might have if it were just a matter of mischief. There was something else... something ugly and repulsive.

“How could you behave so, Davy?” she asked sorrowfully.

“How could you act like that, Davy?” she asked sadly.

Davy squirmed uncomfortably.

Davy fidgeted awkwardly.

“I just did it for fun. Things have been so awful quiet here for so long that I thought it would be fun to give you folks a big scare. It was, too.”

“I just did it for fun. Things have been so unbelievably quiet here for so long that I thought it would be amusing to give you all a big scare. It was, too.”

In spite of fear and a little remorse Davy grinned over the recollection.

In spite of feeling scared and a bit guilty, Davy grinned at the memory.

“But you told a falsehood about it, Davy,” said Anne, more sorrowfully than ever.

“But you lied about it, Davy,” said Anne, more sadly than ever.

Davy looked puzzled.

Davy looked confused.

“What’s a falsehood? Do you mean a whopper?”

“What’s a lie? Are you talking about a tall tale?”

“I mean a story that was not true.”

“I’m talking about a story that wasn’t true.”

“Course I did,” said Davy frankly. “If I hadn’t you wouldn’t have been scared. I had to tell it.”

“Of course I did,” Davy said openly. “If I hadn't, you wouldn't have been scared. I had to say it.”

Anne was feeling the reaction from her fright and exertions. Davy’s impenitent attitude gave the finishing touch. Two big tears brimmed up in her eyes.

Anne was feeling the aftermath of her fear and efforts. Davy’s unapologetic attitude was the final straw. Two big tears welled up in her eyes.

“Oh, Davy, how could you?” she said, with a quiver in her voice. “Don’t you know how wrong it was?”

“Oh, Davy, how could you?” she said, her voice shaking. “Don’t you realize how wrong that was?”

Davy was aghast. Anne crying . . . he had made Anne cry! A flood of real remorse rolled like a wave over his warm little heart and engulfed it. He rushed to Anne, hurled himself into her lap, flung his arms around her neck, and burst into tears.

Davy was shocked. Anne was crying . . . he had made Anne cry! A wave of genuine remorse washed over his warm little heart and consumed him. He ran to Anne, threw himself into her lap, wrapped his arms around her neck, and started crying.

“I didn’t know it was wrong to tell whoppers,” he sobbed. “How did you expect me to know it was wrong? All Mr. Sprott’s children told them regular every day, and cross their hearts too. I s’pose Paul Irving never tells whoppers and here I’ve been trying awful hard to be as good as him, but now I s’pose you’ll never love me again. But I think you might have told me it was wrong. I’m awful sorry I’ve made you cry, Anne, and I’ll never tell a whopper again.”

“I didn’t know it was wrong to tell big lies,” he sobbed. “How was I supposed to know it was wrong? All of Mr. Sprott’s kids told them regularly every day, and they crossed their hearts too. I guess Paul Irving never tells big lies, and I’ve been trying really hard to be as good as him, but now I guess you’ll never love me again. But I think you could have told me it was wrong. I’m really sorry I made you cry, Anne, and I’ll never tell a big lie again.”

Davy buried his face in Anne’s shoulder and cried stormily. Anne, in a sudden glad flash of understanding, held him tight and looked over his curly thatch at Marilla.

Davy buried his face in Anne’s shoulder and cried hard. Anne, suddenly filled with understanding, hugged him tightly and looked over his curly hair at Marilla.

“He didn’t know it was wrong to tell falsehoods, Marilla. I think we must forgive him for that part of it this time if he will promise never to say what isn’t true again.”

“He didn’t realize it was wrong to lie, Marilla. I think we should let him off the hook for that this time if he promises to never say something that isn’t true again.”

“I never will, now that I know it’s bad,” asseverated Davy between sobs. “If you ever catch me telling a whopper again you can . . .” Davy groped mentally for a suitable penance . . . “you can skin me alive, Anne.”

“I'll never do it again, now that I know it's wrong,” Davy declared through his tears. “If you ever catch me telling a lie again, you can... ” Davy searched for an appropriate punishment in his mind... “you can skin me alive, Anne.”

“Don’t say ‘whopper,’ Davy . . . say ‘falsehood,’” said the schoolma’am.

“Don’t say ‘whopper,’ Davy . . . say ‘lie,’” said the teacher.

“Why?” queried Davy, settling comfortably down and looking up with a tearstained, investigating face. “Why ain’t whopper as good as falsehood? I want to know. It’s just as big a word.”

“Why?” Davy asked, getting comfortable and looking up with a tear-streaked, curious face. “Why isn’t a whopper as good as a lie? I want to know. It’s just as big a word.”

“It’s slang; and it’s wrong for little boys to use slang.”

“It’s slang, and it’s not right for little boys to use slang.”

“There’s an awful lot of things it’s wrong to do,” said Davy with a sigh. “I never s’posed there was so many. I’m sorry it’s wrong to tell whop . . . falsehoods, ’cause it’s awful handy, but since it is I’m never going to tell any more. What are you going to do to me for telling them this time? I want to know.” Anne looked beseechingly at Marilla.

“There are a ton of things that are wrong to do,” Davy said with a sigh. “I never thought there were so many. I regret that it’s wrong to tell whop... lies, because it’s really convenient, but since it is, I’m not going to tell any more. What are you going to do to me for telling them this time? I want to know.” Anne looked pleadingly at Marilla.

“I don’t want to be too hard on the child,” said Marilla. “I daresay nobody ever did tell him it was wrong to tell lies, and those Sprott children were no fit companions for him. Poor Mary was too sick to train him properly and I presume you couldn’t expect a six-year-old child to know things like that by instinct. I suppose we’ll just have to assume he doesn’t know anything right and begin at the beginning. But he’ll have to be punished for shutting Dora up, and I can’t think of any way except to send him to bed without his supper and we’ve done that so often. Can’t you suggest something else, Anne? I should think you ought to be able to, with that imagination you’re always talking of.”

“I don’t want to be too hard on the kid,” said Marilla. “I bet nobody ever told him it was wrong to lie, and those Sprott kids were not good company for him. Poor Mary was too sick to teach him properly, and I don't think you can expect a six-year-old to just know things like that. I guess we’ll have to assume he doesn’t know anything right and start from the beginning. But he does need to be punished for locking Dora up, and I can’t think of any way to do it except to send him to bed without dinner, and we’ve done that so many times already. Can’t you think of something else, Anne? I would think you could come up with something with that imagination you’re always talking about.”

“But punishments are so horrid and I like to imagine only pleasant things,” said Anne, cuddling Davy. “There are so many unpleasant things in the world already that there is no use in imagining any more.”

“But punishments are so horrible, and I prefer to think about nice things,” said Anne, hugging Davy. “There are already so many unpleasant things in the world that there's no point in imagining more.”

In the end Davy was sent to bed, as usual, there to remain until noon next day. He evidently did some thinking, for when Anne went up to her room a little later she heard him calling her name softly. Going in, she found him sitting up in bed, with his elbows on his knees and his chin propped on his hands.

In the end, Davy was sent to bed, like always, where he would stay until noon the next day. He clearly did some thinking because when Anne went up to her room a little later, she heard him softly calling her name. When she went in, she found him sitting up in bed, with his elbows on his knees and his chin resting on his hands.

“Anne,” he said solemnly, “is it wrong for everybody to tell whop . . . falsehoods? I want to know?”

“Anne,” he asked seriously, “is it wrong for everyone to tell whop . . . lies? I want to know?”

“Yes, indeed.”

“Absolutely.”

“Is it wrong for a grown-up person?”

“Is it wrong for an adult?”

“Yes.”

“Sure.”

“Then,” said Davy decidedly, “Marilla is bad, for she tells them. And she’s worse’n me, for I didn’t know it was wrong but she does.”

“Then,” said Davy firmly, “Marilla is bad, because she tells them. And she’s worse than me, because I didn’t know it was wrong, but she does.”

“Davy Keith, Marilla never told a story in her life,” said Anne indignantly.

“Davy Keith, Marilla has never told a story in her life,” Anne said indignantly.

“She did so. She told me last Tuesday that something dreadful would happen to me if I didn’t say my prayers every night. And I haven’t said them for over a week, just to see what would happen . . . and nothing has,” concluded Davy in an aggrieved tone.

“She did. Last Tuesday, she told me that something terrible would happen to me if I didn’t say my prayers every night. And I haven’t said them for over a week, just to see what would happen . . . and nothing has,” Davy finished, sounding upset.

Anne choked back a mad desire to laugh with the conviction that it would be fatal, and then earnestly set about saving Marilla’s reputation.

Anne fought back a wild urge to laugh, firmly believing it would be disastrous, and then seriously focused on preserving Marilla’s reputation.

“Why, Davy Keith,” she said solemnly, “something dreadful has happened to you this very day.”

“Why, Davy Keith,” she said seriously, “something terrible has happened to you today.”

Davy looked sceptical.

Davy looked skeptical.

“I s’pose you mean being sent to bed without any supper,” he said scornfully, “but that isn’t dreadful. Course, I don’t like it, but I’ve been sent to bed so much since I come here that I’m getting used to it. And you don’t save anything by making me go without supper either, for I always eat twice as much for breakfast.”

“I guess you mean being sent to bed without dinner,” he said mockingly, “but that isn’t terrible. Sure, I don’t like it, but I’ve been sent to bed so much since I got here that I’m getting used to it. And you don’t actually save anything by making me skip dinner either, because I always eat twice as much for breakfast.”

“I don’t mean your being sent to bed. I mean the fact that you told a falsehood today. And, Davy,” . . . Anne leaned over the footboard of the bed and shook her finger impressively at the culprit . . . “for a boy to tell what isn’t true is almost the worst thing that could happen to him . . . almost the very worst. So you see Marilla told you the truth.”

“I’m not talking about being sent to bed. I’m talking about the fact that you lied today. And, Davy,” . . . Anne leaned over the foot of the bed and shook her finger at him dramatically . . . “for a boy to say something that isn’t true is nearly the worst thing that could happen to him . . . almost the absolute worst. So you see, Marilla was telling you the truth.”

“But I thought the something bad would be exciting,” protested Davy in an injured tone.

“But I thought something bad would be exciting,” Davy protested, sounding hurt.

“Marilla isn’t to blame for what you thought. Bad things aren’t always exciting. They’re very often just nasty and stupid.”

“Marilla isn’t responsible for what you thought. Bad things aren’t always interesting. They’re often just unpleasant and foolish.”

“It was awful funny to see Marilla and you looking down the well, though,” said Davy, hugging his knees.

“It was really funny to see Marilla and you looking down the well, though,” said Davy, hugging his knees.

Anne kept a sober face until she got downstairs and then she collapsed on the sitting room lounge and laughed until her sides ached.

Anne maintained a serious expression until she reached downstairs, and then she flopped onto the couch in the living room and laughed until her sides hurt.

“I wish you’d tell me the joke,” said Marilla, a little grimly. “I haven’t seen much to laugh at today.”

“I wish you’d tell me the joke,” Marilla said somewhat seriously. “I haven’t seen much to laugh at today.”

“You’ll laugh when you hear this,” assured Anne. And Marilla did laugh, which showed how much her education had advanced since the adoption of Anne. But she sighed immediately afterwards.

“You’re going to laugh when you hear this,” Anne promised. And Marilla did laugh, which showed how much she had grown since adopting Anne. But she sighed right after.

“I suppose I shouldn’t have told him that, although I heard a minister say it to a child once. But he did aggravate me so. It was that night you were at the Carmody concert and I was putting him to bed. He said he didn’t see the good of praying until he got big enough to be of some importance to God. Anne, I do not know what we are going to do with that child. I never saw his beat. I’m feeling clean discouraged.”

“I guess I shouldn’t have told him that, even though I once heard a minister say it to a kid. But he was really getting on my nerves. It was that night you were at the Carmody concert and I was putting him to bed. He said he didn’t see the point of praying until he was old enough to matter to God. Anne, I really don’t know what we’re going to do with that kid. I’ve never seen anything like it. I'm feeling pretty discouraged.”

“Oh, don’t say that, Marilla. Remember how bad I was when I came here.”

“Oh, don’t say that, Marilla. Remember how difficult I was when I got here?”

“Anne, you never were bad . . . never. I see that now, when I’ve learned what real badness is. You were always getting into terrible scrapes, I’ll admit, but your motive was always good. Davy is just bad from sheer love of it.”

“Anne, you were never bad . . . never. I realize that now, after seeing what real badness is. You often found yourself in some tough situations, I’ll admit, but your intentions were always good. Davy is just bad for the sake of it.”

“Oh, no, I don’t think it is real badness with him either,” pleaded Anne. “It’s just mischief. And it is rather quiet for him here, you know. He has no other boys to play with and his mind has to have something to occupy it. Dora is so prim and proper she is no good for a boy’s playmate. I really think it would be better to let them go to school, Marilla.”

“Oh, no, I don’t think he’s really being bad,” Anne said desperately. “He’s just being mischievous. And it’s pretty quiet for him here, you know. He doesn’t have any other boys to play with, and he needs something to keep his mind busy. Dora is so proper and prim that she’s no fun for a boy to play with. I really think it would be better to let them go to school, Marilla.”

“No,” said Marilla resolutely, “my father always said that no child should be cooped up in the four walls of a school until it was seven years old, and Mr. Allan says the same thing. The twins can have a few lessons at home but go to school they shan’t till they’re seven.”

“No,” Marilla said firmly, “my father always said that no child should be stuck inside a school until they turn seven, and Mr. Allan agrees. The twins can have a few lessons at home, but they're not going to school until they’re seven.”

“Well, we must try to reform Davy at home then,” said Anne cheerfully. “With all his faults he’s really a dear little chap. I can’t help loving him. Marilla, it may be a dreadful thing to say, but honestly, I like Davy better than Dora, for all she’s so good.”

"Well, we need to try to help Davy improve at home then," said Anne cheerfully. "Despite all his faults, he’s really a sweet little guy. I can’t help but love him. Marilla, it might be terrible to say, but honestly, I like Davy more than Dora, even though she’s so good."

“I don’t know but that I do, myself,” confessed Marilla, “and it isn’t fair, for Dora isn’t a bit of trouble. There couldn’t be a better child and you’d hardly know she was in the house.”

“I don’t know but that I do, myself,” admitted Marilla, “and it’s not fair because Dora isn’t any trouble at all. There couldn’t be a better child, and you’d hardly even notice she was in the house.”

“Dora is too good,” said Anne. “She’d behave just as well if there wasn’t a soul to tell her what to do. She was born already brought up, so she doesn’t need us; and I think,” concluded Anne, hitting on a very vital truth, “that we always love best the people who need us. Davy needs us badly.”

“Dora is just too good,” said Anne. “She’d act the same way even if no one was around to tell her what to do. She was basically raised already, so she doesn’t really need us; and I think,” Anne concluded, hitting on a crucial point, “that we always love the people who really need us the most. Davy needs us a lot.”

“He certainly needs something,” agreed Marilla. “Rachel Lynde would say it was a good spanking.”

“He definitely needs something,” agreed Marilla. “Rachel Lynde would say he could use a good spanking.”

XI
Facts and Fancies

“Teaching is really very interesting work,” wrote Anne to a Queen’s Academy chum. “Jane says she thinks it is monotonous but I don’t find it so. Something funny is almost sure to happen every day, and the children say such amusing things. Jane says she punishes her pupils when they make funny speeches, which is probably why she finds teaching monotonous. This afternoon little Jimmy Andrews was trying to spell ‘speckled’ and couldn’t manage it. ‘Well,’ he said finally, ‘I can’t spell it but I know what it means.’

“Teaching is really interesting work,” Anne wrote to a friend at Queen’s Academy. “Jane thinks it’s boring, but I don’t feel that way. Something funny happens almost every day, and the kids say such hilarious things. Jane says she punishes her students when they make funny remarks, which is probably why she finds teaching so dull. This afternoon, little Jimmy Andrews was trying to spell ‘speckled’ and couldn’t get it right. ‘Well,’ he finally said, ‘I can’t spell it, but I know what it means.’”

“‘What?’ I asked.

"‘What?’ I asked."

“‘St. Clair Donnell’s face, miss.’

“‘St. Clair Donnell’s face, ma’am.’”

“St. Clair is certainly very much freckled, although I try to prevent the others from commenting on it . . . for I was freckled once and well do I remember it. But I don’t think St. Clair minds. It was because Jimmy called him ‘St. Clair’ that St. Clair pounded him on the way home from school. I heard of the pounding, but not officially, so I don’t think I’ll take any notice of it.

“St. Clair is definitely very freckled, although I try to stop the others from commenting on it . . . because I was freckled once and I remember it well. But I don’t think St. Clair cares. It was because Jimmy called him ‘St. Clair’ that St. Clair ended up hitting him on the way home from school. I heard about the fight, but not officially, so I don’t think I’ll pay any attention to it."

“Yesterday I was trying to teach Lottie Wright to do addition. I said, ‘If you had three candies in one hand and two in the other, how many would you have altogether?’ ‘A mouthful,’ said Lottie. And in the nature study class, when I asked them to give me a good reason why toads shouldn’t be killed, Benjie Sloane gravely answered, ‘Because it would rain the next day.’

“Yesterday I was trying to teach Lottie Wright how to add. I asked, ‘If you have three candies in one hand and two in the other, how many do you have all together?’ ‘A mouthful,’ answered Lottie. And in the nature study class, when I asked them to give me a good reason why we shouldn’t kill toads, Benjie Sloane seriously replied, ‘Because it might rain the next day.’”

“It’s so hard not to laugh, Stella. I have to save up all my amusement until I get home, and Marilla says it makes her nervous to hear wild shrieks of mirth proceeding from the east gable without any apparent cause. She says a man in Grafton went insane once and that was how it began.

“It’s so hard not to laugh, Stella. I have to hold in all my amusement until I get home, and Marilla says it makes her anxious to hear loud bursts of laughter coming from the east gable with no clear reason. She says a man in Grafton went insane once, and that’s how it all started.”

“Did you know that Thomas a Becket was canonized as a snake? Rose Bell says he was . . . also that William Tyndale wrote the New Testament. Claude White says a ‘glacier’ is a man who puts in window frames!

“Did you know that Thomas a Becket was canonized as a snake? Rose Bell says he was . . . also that William Tyndale wrote the New Testament. Claude White says a ‘glacier’ is a man who puts in window frames!”

“I think the most difficult thing in teaching, as well as the most interesting, is to get the children to tell you their real thoughts about things. One stormy day last week I gathered them around me at dinner hour and tried to get them to talk to me just as if I were one of themselves. I asked them to tell me the things they most wanted. Some of the answers were commonplace enough . . . dolls, ponies, and skates. Others were decidedly original. Hester Boulter wanted ‘to wear her Sunday dress every day and eat in the sitting room.’ Hannah Bell wanted ‘to be good without having to take any trouble about it.’ Marjory White, aged ten, wanted to be a widow. Questioned why, she gravely said that if you weren’t married people called you an old maid, and if you were your husband bossed you; but if you were a widow there’d be no danger of either. The most remarkable wish was Sally Bell’s. She wanted a ‘honeymoon.’ I asked her if she knew what it was and she said she thought it was an extra nice kind of bicycle because her cousin in Montreal went on a honeymoon when he was married and he had always had the very latest in bicycles!

“I think the hardest yet most fascinating part of teaching is getting kids to share their true thoughts. One stormy day last week, I gathered them around me during dinner and tried to engage them as if I were one of them. I asked them what they wanted the most. Some of the answers were pretty typical… dolls, ponies, and skates. Others were definitely original. Hester Boulter wanted ‘to wear her Sunday dress every day and eat in the living room.’ Hannah Bell wanted ‘to be good without having to put in any effort.’ Marjory White, who was ten, wanted to be a widow. When I asked her why, she seriously said that if you weren’t married, people called you an old maid, and if you were married, your husband controlled you; but if you were a widow, there’d be no risk of either. The most surprising wish was from Sally Bell. She wanted a ‘honeymoon.’ I asked her if she knew what it was, and she said she thought it was a really nice kind of bicycle because her cousin in Montreal went on a honeymoon when he got married, and he always had the latest bicycles!"

“Another day I asked them all to tell me the naughtiest thing they had ever done. I couldn’t get the older ones to do so, but the third class answered quite freely. Eliza Bell had ‘set fire to her aunt’s carded rolls.’ Asked if she meant to do it she said, ‘not altogether.’ She just tried a little end to see how it would burn and the whole bundle blazed up in a jiffy. Emerson Gillis had spent ten cents for candy when he should have put it in his missionary box. Annetta Bell’s worst crime was ‘eating some blueberries that grew in the graveyard.’ Willie White had ‘slid down the sheephouse roof a lot of times with his Sunday trousers on.’ ‘But I was punished for it ’cause I had to wear patched pants to Sunday School all summer, and when you’re punished for a thing you don’t have to repent of it,’ declared Willie.

“Another day I asked everyone to share the naughtiest thing they had ever done. I couldn't get the older kids to participate, but the third graders were pretty open about it. Eliza Bell had ‘set fire to her aunt’s carded rolls.’ When I asked if she meant to do it, she replied, ‘not really.’ She just wanted to see how a little bit would burn, and then the whole bundle went up in flames in no time. Emerson Gillis spent ten cents on candy when he was supposed to put it in his missionary box. Annetta Bell’s biggest offense was ‘eating some blueberries that grew in the graveyard.’ Willie White had ‘slid down the sheephouse roof a lot of times in his Sunday pants.’ ‘But I got punished for it because I had to wear patched pants to Sunday School all summer, and when you’re punished for something, you don’t have to feel sorry for it,’ Willie declared.

“I wish you could see some of their compositions . . . so much do I wish it that I’ll send you copies of some written recently. Last week I told the fourth class I wanted them to write me letters about anything they pleased, adding by way of suggestion that they might tell me of some place they had visited or some interesting thing or person they had seen. They were to write the letters on real note paper, seal them in an envelope, and address them to me, all without any assistance from other people. Last Friday morning I found a pile of letters on my desk and that evening I realized afresh that teaching has its pleasures as well as its pains. Those compositions would atone for much. Here is Ned Clay’s, address, spelling, and grammar as originally penned.

“I wish you could see some of their compositions... I want you to see them so much that I’ll send you copies of some I received recently. Last week, I asked the fourth class to write me letters about whatever they wanted, suggesting they might share a place they had visited or an interesting thing or person they had encountered. They were to write the letters on real note paper, seal them in an envelope, and address them to me, all without any help from anyone else. Last Friday morning, I found a stack of letters on my desk, and that evening, I was reminded again that teaching has its joys as well as its challenges. Those compositions would make up for a lot. Here is Ned Clay’s, address, spelling, and grammar as originally written.”

“‘Miss teacher ShiRley
Green gabels.
p.e. Island can
birds

“‘Miss teacher ShiRley
Green gables.
p.e. Island can
birds

“‘Dear teacher I think I will write you a composition about birds. birds is very useful animals. my cat catches birds. His name is William but pa calls him tom. he is oll striped and he got one of his ears froz of last winter. only for that he would be a good-looking cat. My unkle has adopted a cat. it come to his house one day and woudent go away and unkle says it has forgot more than most people ever knowed. he lets it sleep on his rocking chare and my aunt says he thinks more of it than he does of his children. that is not right. we ought to be kind to cats and give them new milk but we ought not be better to them than to our children. this is oll I can think of so no more at present from

“Dear teacher, I think I will write you a composition about birds. Birds are very useful animals. My cat catches birds. His name is William, but Dad calls him Tom. He is all striped and he lost one of his ears from last winter’s frost. If not for that, he would be a good-looking cat. My uncle has adopted a cat. It showed up at his house one day and wouldn’t leave, and my uncle says it has forgotten more than most people ever know. He lets it sleep on his rocking chair, and my aunt says he thinks more of it than he does of his children. That is not right. We should be kind to cats and give them fresh milk, but we shouldn’t treat them better than we do our children. This is all I can think of, so no more for now from”

edward blake ClaY.’”

edward blake Clay.”

“St. Clair Donnell’s is, as usual, short and to the point. St. Clair never wastes words. I do not think he chose his subject or added the postscript out of malice aforethought. It is just that he has not a great deal of tact or imagination.”

“St. Clair Donnell’s note is, as always, brief and straightforward. St. Clair never uses more words than necessary. I don't believe he picked his topic or included the postscript out of spite. It's just that he lacks a lot of tact or creativity.”

“‘Dear Miss Shirley

"Dear Miss Shirley"

“‘You told us to describe something strange we have seen. I will describe the Avonlea Hall. It has two doors, an inside one and an outside one. It has six windows and a chimney. It has two ends and two sides. It is painted blue. That is what makes it strange. It is built on the lower Carmody road. It is the third most important building in Avonlea. The others are the church and the blacksmith shop. They hold debating clubs and lectures in it and concerts.

“‘You asked us to describe something unusual we've seen. I'll talk about Avonlea Hall. It has two doors, one inside and one outside. It has six windows and a chimney. It has two ends and two sides. It's painted blue. That’s what makes it unusual. It’s located on the lower Carmody road. It’s the third most important building in Avonlea. The others are the church and the blacksmith shop. They host debating clubs, lectures, and concerts there.”

“‘Yours truly,
“‘Jacob Donnell.

“Yours truly,
Jacob Donnell.

“‘P.S. The hall is a very bright blue.’”

“‘P.S. The hall is a really bright blue.’”

“Annetta Bell’s letter was quite long, which surprised me, for writing essays is not Annetta’s forte, and hers are generally as brief as St. Clair’s. Annetta is a quiet little puss and a model of good behavior, but there isn’t a shadow of originality in her. Here is her letter.—

“Annetta Bell’s letter was pretty long, which surprised me because writing essays isn’t Annetta’s strong suit, and hers are usually as short as St. Clair’s. Annetta is a quiet little person and a great example of good behavior, but she doesn’t have an ounce of originality. Here is her letter.—

“‘Dearest teacher,

"Dear teacher,

“‘I think I will write you a letter to tell you how much I love you. I love you with my whole heart and soul and mind . . . with all there is of me to love . . . and I want to serve you for ever. It would be my highest privilege. That is why I try so hard to be good in school and learn my lessuns.

“‘I think I’ll write you a letter to say how much I love you. I love you with all my heart, soul, and mind . . . with everything I have to give . . . and I want to serve you forever. It would be my greatest privilege. That’s why I work so hard to do well in school and learn my lessons.

“‘You are so beautiful, my teacher. Your voice is like music and your eyes are like pansies when the dew is on them. You are like a tall stately queen. Your hair is like rippling gold. Anthony Pye says it is red, but you needn’t pay any attention to Anthony.

“‘You are so beautiful, my teacher. Your voice is like music, and your eyes are like pansies when the dew is on them. You are like a tall, elegant queen. Your hair is like flowing gold. Anthony Pye says it's red, but you don’t have to listen to Anthony.

“‘I have only known you for a few months but I cannot realize that there was ever a time when I did not know you . . . when you had not come into my life to bless and hallow it. I will always look back to this year as the most wonderful in my life because it brought you to me. Besides, it’s the year we moved to Avonlea from Newbridge. My love for you has made my life very rich and it has kept me from much of harm and evil. I owe this all to you, my sweetest teacher.

“I've only known you for a few months, but I can't believe there was ever a time when I didn't know you... when you hadn't come into my life to bless and enrich it. I will always remember this year as the most amazing of my life because it brought you to me. Plus, it’s the year we moved to Avonlea from Newbridge. My love for you has made my life incredibly rich and has protected me from a lot of harm and negativity. I owe it all to you, my dearest teacher.”

“‘I shall never forget how sweet you looked the last time I saw you in that black dress with flowers in your hair. I shall see you like that for ever, even when we are both old and gray. You will always be young and fair to me, dearest teacher. I am thinking of you all the time. . . in the morning and at the noontide and at the twilight. I love you when you laugh and when you sigh . . . even when you look disdainful. I never saw you look cross though Anthony Pye says you always look so but I don’t wonder you look cross at him for he deserves it. I love you in every dress . . . you seem more adorable in each new dress than the last.

“I’ll never forget how beautiful you looked the last time I saw you in that black dress with flowers in your hair. I’ll picture you like that forever, even when we’re both old and gray. You’ll always look young and lovely to me, dear teacher. I think about you all the time... in the morning, at noon, and at twilight. I love you when you laugh and when you sigh... even when you look disapproving. I’ve never seen you look angry, though Anthony Pye says you always do. I can’t blame you for looking upset with him because he deserves it. I love you in every outfit... you seem more charming in each new dress than the last.

“‘Dearest teacher, good night. The sun has set and the stars are shining . . . stars that are as bright and beautiful as your eyes. I kiss your hands and face, my sweet. May God watch over you and protect you from all harm.

“Dear teacher, good night. The sun has gone down and the stars are shining... stars that are as bright and beautiful as your eyes. I kiss your hands and face, my sweet. May God watch over you and keep you safe from all harm.”

“‘Your afecksionate pupil,
“‘Annetta Bell.’”

“‘Your affectionate pupil,
“‘Annetta Bell.’”

“This extraordinary letter puzzled me not a little. I knew Annetta couldn’t have composed it any more than she could fly. When I went to school the next day I took her for a walk down to the brook at recess and asked her to tell me the truth about the letter. Annetta cried and ‘fessed up freely. She said she had never written a letter and she didn’t know how to, or what to say, but there was a bundle of love letters in her mother’s top bureau drawer which had been written to her by an old ‘beau.’

“This strange letter really puzzled me. I knew Annetta couldn’t have written it any more than she could fly. The next day at school, I took her for a walk down to the brook during recess and asked her to tell me the truth about the letter. Annetta cried and admitted everything. She said she had never written a letter and didn’t know how to or what to say, but there was a bunch of love letters in her mother’s top drawer that had been written to her by an old boyfriend.”

“‘It wasn’t father,’ sobbed Annetta, ‘it was someone who was studying for a minister, and so he could write lovely letters, but ma didn’t marry him after all. She said she couldn’t make out what he was driving at half the time. But I thought the letters were sweet and that I’d just copy things out of them here and there to write you. I put “teacher” where he put “lady” and I put in something of my own when I could think of it and I changed some words. I put “dress” in place of “mood.” I didn’t know just what a “mood” was but I s’posed it was something to wear. I didn’t s’pose you’d know the difference. I don’t see how you found out it wasn’t all mine. You must be awful clever, teacher.’

“‘It wasn’t Dad,’ Annetta cried, ‘it was someone studying to be a minister, so he could write beautiful letters, but Mom didn’t marry him after all. She said she couldn’t figure out what he was talking about half the time. But I thought the letters were sweet, and I just copied parts of them here and there to write to you. I put “teacher” where he put “lady,” and I added a bit of my own when I could think of it, and I changed some words. I put “dress” instead of “mood.” I didn’t really know what a “mood” was, but I figured it was something to wear. I didn’t think you’d know the difference. I don’t see how you found out it wasn’t all mine. You must be really clever, teacher.’”

“I told Annetta it was very wrong to copy another person’s letter and pass it off as her own. But I’m afraid that all Annetta repented of was being found out.

“I told Annetta it was really wrong to copy someone else's letter and pretend it was hers. But I’m afraid all Annetta regretted was getting caught."

“‘And I do love you, teacher,’ she sobbed. ‘It was all true, even if the minister wrote it first. I do love you with all my heart.’

“‘And I really love you, teacher,’ she cried. ‘It was all true, even if the minister said it first. I love you with all my heart.’”

“It’s very difficult to scold anybody properly under such circumstances.

“It’s really hard to scold anyone correctly under these circumstances.

“Here is Barbara Shaw’s letter. I can’t reproduce the blots of the original.

“Here is Barbara Shaw’s letter. I can’t reproduce the smudges of the original.

“‘Dear teacher,

“‘Hey teacher,

“‘You said we might write about a visit. I never visited but once. It was at my Aunt Mary’s last winter. My Aunt Mary is a very particular woman and a great housekeeper. The first night I was there we were at tea. I knocked over a jug and broke it. Aunt Mary said she had had that jug ever since she was married and nobody had ever broken it before. When we got up I stepped on her dress and all the gathers tore out of the skirt. The next morning when I got up I hit the pitcher against the basin and cracked them both and I upset a cup of tea on the tablecloth at breakfast. When I was helping Aunt Mary with the dinner dishes I dropped a china plate and it smashed. That evening I fell downstairs and sprained my ankle and had to stay in bed for a week. I heard Aunt Mary tell Uncle Joseph it was a mercy or I’d have broken everything in the house. When I got better it was time to go home. I don’t like visiting very much. I like going to school better, especially since I came to Avonlea.

“You said we could write about a visit. I’ve only visited once. It was at my Aunt Mary’s last winter. My Aunt Mary is very particular and an amazing housekeeper. The first night I was there, we were having tea. I accidentally knocked over a jug and broke it. Aunt Mary said she had that jug ever since she got married and nobody had ever broken it before. When we got up, I stepped on her dress, and all the gathers tore out of the skirt. The next morning, when I got up, I hit the pitcher against the basin and cracked both, and I spilled a cup of tea on the tablecloth at breakfast. When I was helping Aunt Mary with the dinner dishes, I dropped a china plate and it shattered. That evening, I fell down the stairs and sprained my ankle, so I had to stay in bed for a week. I heard Aunt Mary tell Uncle Joseph it was a mercy or I’d have broken everything in the house. When I got better, it was time to go home. I don’t really enjoy visiting much. I prefer going to school, especially since I came to Avonlea.”

“‘Yours respectfully,
“‘Barbara Shaw.’”

“Yours truly,
“Barbara Shaw.”

“Willie White’s began,

“Willie White's started,

“‘Respected Miss,

“Dear Miss,

“‘I want to tell you about my Very Brave Aunt. She lives in Ontario and one day she went out to the barn and saw a dog in the yard. The dog had no business there so she got a stick and whacked him hard and drove him into the barn and shut him up. Pretty soon a man came looking for an inaginary lion’ (Query;—Did Willie mean a menagerie lion?) ‘that had run away from a circus. And it turned out that the dog was a lion and my Very Brave Aunt had druv him into the barn with a stick. It was a wonder she was not et up but she was very brave. Emerson Gillis says if she thought it was a dog she wasn’t any braver than if it really was a dog. But Emerson is jealous because he hasn’t got a Brave Aunt himself, nothing but uncles.’

“I want to tell you about my Very Brave Aunt. She lives in Ontario, and one day she went out to the barn and saw a dog in the yard. The dog didn’t belong there, so she grabbed a stick, hit him hard, and drove him into the barn and shut him inside. Soon after, a man came looking for an imaginary lion (Query;—Did Willie mean a menagerie lion?) that had escaped from a circus. Turns out the dog was actually a lion, and my Very Brave Aunt had chased him into the barn with a stick. It’s amazing she wasn’t eaten, but she was really brave. Emerson Gillis says if she thought it was a dog, she wasn’t any braver than if it actually was a dog. But Emerson is just jealous because he doesn’t have a Brave Aunt himself, only uncles.”

“‘I have kept the best for the last. You laugh at me because I think Paul is a genius but I am sure his letter will convince you that he is a very uncommon child. Paul lives away down near the shore with his grandmother and he has no playmates . . . no real playmates. You remember our School Management professor told us that we must not have ‘favorites’ among our pupils, but I can’t help loving Paul Irving the best of all mine. I don’t think it does any harm, though, for everybody loves Paul, even Mrs. Lynde, who says she could never have believed she’d get so fond of a Yankee. The other boys in school like him too. There is nothing weak or girlish about him in spite of his dreams and fancies. He is very manly and can hold his own in all games. He fought St. Clair Donnell recently because St. Clair said the Union Jack was away ahead of the Stars and Stripes as a flag. The result was a drawn battle and a mutual agreement to respect each other’s patriotism henceforth. St. Clair says he can hit the hardest but Paul can hit the oftenest.’”

“I’ve saved the best for last. You laugh at me because I think Paul is a genius, but I’m sure his letter will convince you that he’s a very unique kid. Paul lives down by the shore with his grandmother, and he has no playmates…no real playmates. You remember our School Management professor told us that we shouldn’t have ‘favorites’ among our students, but I can’t help loving Paul Irving more than any of my other students. I don’t think it’s a problem, though, since everyone loves Paul, even Mrs. Lynde, who says she never thought she’d get so attached to a Yankee. The other boys in school like him too. There’s nothing weak or girlish about him despite his dreams and fantasies. He’s very manly and can hold his own in all games. He recently fought St. Clair Donnell because St. Clair said the Union Jack was way better than the Stars and Stripes as a flag. The result was a tied fight and a mutual agreement to respect each other’s patriotism from now on. St. Clair says he can hit the hardest, but Paul can hit the most.”

“Paul’s Letter.

"Paul's Letter."

“‘My dear teacher,

"Dear teacher,

“‘You told us we might write you about some interesting people we knew. I think the most interesting people I know are my rock people and I mean to tell you about them. I have never told anybody about them except grandma and father but I would like to have you know about them because you understand things. There are a great many people who do not understand things so there is no use in telling them.’

“‘You told us we could write to you about some interesting people we know. I think the most interesting people in my life are my rock people, and I want to tell you about them. I’ve never shared this with anyone except my grandma and my dad, but I want you to know about them because I think you get it. There are a lot of people who don’t really understand, so it’s not worth telling them.’”

“‘My rock people live at the shore. I used to visit them almost every evening before the winter came. Now I can’t go till spring, but they will be there, for people like that never change . . . that is the splendid thing about them. Nora was the first one of them I got acquainted with and so I think I love her the best. She lives in Andrews’ Cove and she has black hair and black eyes, and she knows all about the mermaids and the water kelpies. You ought to hear the stories she can tell. Then there are the Twin Sailors. They don’t live anywhere, they sail all the time, but they often come ashore to talk to me. They are a pair of jolly tars and they have seen everything in the world. . . and more than what is in the world. Do you know what happened to the youngest Twin Sailor once? He was sailing and he sailed right into a moonglade. A moonglade is the track the full moon makes on the water when it is rising from the sea, you know, teacher. Well, the youngest Twin Sailor sailed along the moonglade till he came right up to the moon, and there was a little golden door in the moon and he opened it and sailed right through. He had some wonderful adventures in the moon but it would make this letter too long to tell them.’

"My rock people live by the shore. I used to visit them almost every evening before winter came. Now I can’t go until spring, but they will be there because people like them never change... that’s the wonderful thing about them. Nora was the first one I got to know, and I think I love her the most. She lives in Andrews’ Cove, has black hair and black eyes, and knows all about mermaids and water kelpies. You should hear the stories she tells. Then there are the Twin Sailors. They don’t live anywhere; they sail all the time, but they often come ashore to talk to me. They’re a couple of jolly sailors, and they've seen everything in the world... and more than what's in the world. Do you know what happened to the youngest Twin Sailor once? He was sailing and ended up in a moonglade. A moonglade is the path the full moon makes on the water when it rises from the sea, you know that, right, teacher? So, the youngest Twin Sailor sailed along the moonglade until he reached the moon, and there was a little golden door in the moon that he opened and sailed right through. He had some amazing adventures on the moon, but it would make this letter too long to tell all of them."

“‘Then there is the Golden Lady of the cave. One day I found a big cave down on the shore and I went away in and after a while I found the Golden Lady. She has golden hair right down to her feet and her dress is all glittering and glistening like gold that is alive. And she has a golden harp and plays on it all day long . . . you can hear the music any time along shore if you listen carefully but most people would think it was only the wind among the rocks. I’ve never told Nora about the Golden Lady. I was afraid it might hurt her feelings. It even hurt her feelings if I talked too long with the Twin Sailors.’

“‘Then there’s the Golden Lady of the cave. One day I discovered a huge cave down by the shore, and I went inside. After a while, I came across the Golden Lady. She has golden hair that goes all the way down to her feet, and her dress sparkles and glitters like living gold. She has a golden harp and plays it all day long... you can hear the music along the shore if you listen closely, but most people just think it’s the wind blowing through the rocks. I’ve never told Nora about the Golden Lady because I was worried it might hurt her feelings. It even hurt her feelings if I talked too long with the Twin Sailors.’

“‘I always met the Twin Sailors at the Striped Rocks. The youngest Twin Sailor is very good-tempered but the oldest Twin Sailor can look dreadfully fierce at times. I have my suspicions about that oldest Twin. I believe he’d be a pirate if he dared. There’s really something very mysterious about him. He swore once and I told him if he ever did it again he needn’t come ashore to talk to me because I’d promised grandmother I’d never associate with anybody that swore. He was pretty well scared, I can tell you, and he said if I would forgive him he would take me to the sunset. So the next evening when I was sitting on the Striped Rocks the oldest Twin came sailing over the sea in an enchanted boat and I got in her. The boat was all pearly and rainbowy, like the inside of the mussel shells, and her sail was like moonshine. Well, we sailed right across to the sunset. Think of that, teacher, I’ve been in the sunset. And what do you suppose it is? The sunset is a land all flowers. We sailed into a great garden, and the clouds are beds of flowers. We sailed into a great harbor, all the color of gold, and I stepped right out of the boat on a big meadow all covered with buttercups as big as roses. I stayed there for ever so long. It seemed nearly a year but the Oldest Twin says it was only a few minutes. You see, in the sunset land the time is ever so much longer than it is here.’

“I always met the Twin Sailors at the Striped Rocks. The younger Twin Sailor is really easygoing, but the older Twin Sailor can look pretty fierce sometimes. I have my doubts about that older Twin. I think he’d be a pirate if he had the guts. There’s definitely something very mysterious about him. He swore once, and I told him that if he did it again, he shouldn’t come ashore to talk to me because I promised my grandmother I’d never hang out with anyone who swore. He was pretty scared, I can tell you, and he said if I would forgive him, he’d take me to the sunset. So the next evening when I was sitting on the Striped Rocks, the older Twin came sailing over the sea in an enchanted boat, and I got in. The boat was all pearly and rainbow-like, just like the inside of mussel shells, and its sail shimmered like moonlight. Well, we sailed right across to the sunset. Can you believe that, teacher? I’ve been in the sunset. And guess what it is? The sunset is a land full of flowers. We sailed into a huge garden, and the clouds were like beds of flowers. We sailed into a massive harbor, all golden, and I stepped right out of the boat onto a big meadow covered with buttercups as big as roses. I stayed there for what felt like ages. It seemed like nearly a year, but the Oldest Twin says it was only a few minutes. You see, in the sunset land, time feels so much longer than it does here.”

“‘Your loving pupil,
“‘Paul Irving.’

"Your devoted student,
“Paul Irving.”

“‘P. S. of course, this letter isn’t really true, teacher.

“‘P.S. of course, this letter isn’t really true, teacher.

P.I.’”

P.I.

XII
A Jonah Day

It really began the night before with a restless, wakeful vigil of grumbling toothache. When Anne arose in the dull, bitter winter morning she felt that life was flat, stale, and unprofitable.

It really began the night before with a restless, sleepless vigil of annoying tooth pain. When Anne got up on that dreary, cold winter morning, she felt that life was dull, stale, and a waste.

She went to school in no angelic mood. Her cheek was swollen and her face ached. The schoolroom was cold and smoky, for the fire refused to burn and the children were huddled about it in shivering groups. Anne sent them to their seats with a sharper tone than she had ever used before. Anthony Pye strutted to his with his usual impertinent swagger and she saw him whisper something to his seat-mate and then glance at her with a grin.

She went to school in a bad mood. Her cheek was swollen and her face hurt. The classroom was cold and smoky because the fire wouldn’t burn, and the kids were huddled around it in shivering groups. Anne sent them to their seats with a sharper tone than she had ever used before. Anthony Pye swaggered to his seat with his usual arrogance, and she saw him whisper something to his seatmate and then glance at her with a grin.

Never, so it seemed to Anne, had there been so many squeaky pencils as there were that morning; and when Barbara Shaw came up to the desk with a sum she tripped over the coal scuttle with disastrous results. The coal rolled to every part of the room, her slate was broken into fragments, and when she picked herself up, her face, stained with coal dust, sent the boys into roars of laughter.

Never, it seemed to Anne, had there been so many squeaky pencils as there were that morning; and when Barbara Shaw approached the desk with a problem, she stumbled over the coal scuttle with disastrous results. The coal rolled everywhere in the room, her slate shattered into pieces, and when she got back on her feet, her face, covered in coal dust, made the boys burst into laughter.

Anne turned from the second reader class which she was hearing.

Anne turned away from the second reader class she was attending.

“Really, Barbara,” she said icily, “if you cannot move without falling over something you’d better remain in your seat. It is positively disgraceful for a girl of your age to be so awkward.”

“Really, Barbara,” she said coldly, “if you can’t move without tripping over something, you should just stay in your seat. It’s downright embarrassing for a girl your age to be so clumsy.”

Poor Barbara stumbled back to her desk, her tears combining with the coal dust to produce an effect truly grotesque. Never before had her beloved, sympathetic teacher spoken to her in such a tone or fashion, and Barbara was heartbroken. Anne herself felt a prick of conscience but it only served to increase her mental irritation, and the second reader class remember that lesson yet, as well as the unmerciful infliction of arithmetic that followed. Just as Anne was snapping the sums out St. Clair Donnell arrived breathlessly.

Poor Barbara stumbled back to her desk, her tears mixing with the coal dust to create a truly grotesque effect. Never before had her beloved, sympathetic teacher spoken to her like that, and Barbara was heartbroken. Anne herself felt a pang of guilt, but it only added to her frustration, and the second reader class still remembers that lesson, along with the relentless arithmetic that followed. Just as Anne was finishing the math problems, St. Clair Donnell arrived, breathless.

“You are half an hour late, St. Clair,” Anne reminded him frigidly. “Why is this?”

“You're half an hour late, St. Clair,” Anne reminded him coldly. “Why is that?”

“Please, miss, I had to help ma make a pudding for dinner ’cause we’re expecting company and Clarice Almira’s sick,” was St. Clair’s answer, given in a perfectly respectful voice but nevertheless provocative of great mirth among his mates.

“Please, miss, I had to help my mom make a pudding for dinner because we're expecting company and Clarice Almira is sick,” St. Clair replied, using a perfectly respectful tone, but it still sparked a lot of laughter among his friends.

“Take your seat and work out the six problems on page eighty-four of your arithmetic for punishment,” said Anne. St. Clair looked rather amazed at her tone but he went meekly to his desk and took out his slate. Then he stealthily passed a small parcel to Joe Sloane across the aisle. Anne caught him in the act and jumped to a fatal conclusion about that parcel.

“Take your seat and solve the six problems on page eighty-four of your arithmetic as punishment,” said Anne. St. Clair looked a bit surprised by her tone but he quietly went to his desk and took out his slate. Then he secretly passed a small package to Joe Sloane across the aisle. Anne caught him in the act and immediately jumped to a negative conclusion about that package.

Old Mrs. Hiram Sloane had lately taken to making and selling “nut cakes” by way of adding to her scanty income. The cakes were specially tempting to small boys and for several weeks Anne had had not a little trouble in regard to them. On their way to school the boys would invest their spare cash at Mrs. Hiram’s, bring the cakes along with them to school, and, if possible, eat them and treat their mates during school hours. Anne had warned them that if they brought any more cakes to school they would be confiscated; and yet here was St. Clair Donnell coolly passing a parcel of them, wrapped up in the blue and white striped paper Mrs. Hiram used, under her very eyes.

Old Mrs. Hiram Sloane had recently started making and selling "nut cakes" to supplement her small income. The cakes were especially appealing to young boys, and for several weeks, Anne had been dealing with issues because of them. On their way to school, the boys would spend their pocket money at Mrs. Hiram’s, bring the cakes along to school, and, if they could, eat them and share with their friends during classes. Anne had warned them that if they brought any more cakes to school, they would be taken away; and yet here was St. Clair Donnell casually passing a bundle of them, wrapped in the blue and white striped paper Mrs. Hiram used, right under her nose.

“Joseph,” said Anne quietly, “bring that parcel here.”

“Joseph,” Anne said softly, “bring that package here.”

Joe, startled and abashed, obeyed. He was a fat urchin who always blushed and stuttered when he was frightened. Never did anybody look more guilty than poor Joe at that moment.

Joe, startled and embarrassed, complied. He was a chubby kid who always blushed and stuttered when he got scared. No one looked more guilty than poor Joe at that moment.

“Throw it into the fire,” said Anne.

“Throw it into the fire,” Anne said.

Joe looked very blank.

Joe looked really blank.

“P . . . p . . . p . . . lease, m . . . m . . . miss,” he began.

“P . . . p . . . p . . . please, m . . . m . . . miss,” he began.

“Do as I tell you, Joseph, without any words about it.”

“Do what I say, Joseph, without saying a word about it.”

“B . . . b . . . but m . . . m . . . miss . . . th . . . th . . . they’re . . .” gasped Joe in desperation.

“B... b... but I... I... miss... th... th... they’re...” gasped Joe in desperation.

“Joseph, are you going to obey me or are you not?” said Anne.

“Joseph, are you going to listen to me or are you not?” said Anne.

A bolder and more self-possessed lad than Joe Sloane would have been overawed by her tone and the dangerous flash of her eyes. This was a new Anne whom none of her pupils had ever seen before. Joe, with an agonized glance at St. Clair, went to the stove, opened the big, square front door, and threw the blue and white parcel in, before St. Clair, who had sprung to his feet, could utter a word. Then he dodged back just in time.

A bolder and more confident guy than Joe Sloane would have been intimidated by her tone and the intense look in her eyes. This was a new Anne that none of her students had ever seen before. Joe, with a pained glance at St. Clair, went to the stove, opened the big, square front door, and tossed the blue and white parcel in, before St. Clair, who had jumped to his feet, could say anything. Then he managed to dodge back just in time.

For a few moments the terrified occupants of Avonlea school did not know whether it was an earthquake or a volcanic explosion that had occurred. The innocent looking parcel which Anne had rashly supposed to contain Mrs. Hiram’s nut cakes really held an assortment of firecrackers and pinwheels for which Warren Sloane had sent to town by St. Clair Donnell’s father the day before, intending to have a birthday celebration that evening. The crackers went off in a thunderclap of noise and the pinwheels bursting out of the door spun madly around the room, hissing and spluttering. Anne dropped into her chair white with dismay and all the girls climbed shrieking upon their desks. Joe Sloane stood as one transfixed in the midst of the commotion and St. Clair, helpless with laughter, rocked to and fro in the aisle. Prillie Rogerson fainted and Annetta Bell went into hysterics.

For a few moments, the terrified students at Avonlea school didn't know if they were experiencing an earthquake or a volcanic explosion. The innocent-looking package that Anne had foolishly thought contained Mrs. Hiram’s nut cakes actually held a bunch of firecrackers and pinwheels that Warren Sloane had sent to town with St. Clair Donnell’s father the day before, planning to have a birthday party that evening. The firecrackers exploded with a loud bang, and the pinwheels burst out of the door, whirling crazily around the room while hissing and sputtering. Anne collapsed into her chair, pale with shock, while all the girls screamed and climbed onto their desks. Joe Sloane stood frozen in the middle of the chaos, and St. Clair, unable to control his laughter, swayed back and forth in the aisle. Prillie Rogerson fainted, and Annetta Bell started to have a meltdown.

It seemed a long time, although it was really only a few minutes, before the last pinwheel subsided. Anne, recovering herself, sprang to open doors and windows and let out the gas and smoke which filled the room. Then she helped the girls carry the unconscious Prillie into the porch, where Barbara Shaw, in an agony of desire to be useful, poured a pailful of half frozen water over Prillie’s face and shoulders before anyone could stop her.

It felt like a long time, even though it was just a few minutes, before the last pinwheel quieted down. Anne, getting herself back together, rushed to open the doors and windows to let out the gas and smoke that filled the room. Then she helped the girls carry the unconscious Prillie onto the porch, where Barbara Shaw, desperate to be helpful, splashed a bucket of ice-cold water over Prillie's face and shoulders before anyone could stop her.

It was a full hour before quiet was restored . . . but it was a quiet that might be felt. Everybody realized that even the explosion had not cleared the teacher’s mental atmosphere. Nobody, except Anthony Pye, dared whisper a word. Ned Clay accidentally squeaked his pencil while working a sum, caught Anne’s eye and wished the floor would open and swallow him up. The geography class were whisked through a continent with a speed that made them dizzy. The grammar class were parsed and analyzed within an inch of their lives. Chester Sloane, spelling “odoriferous” with two f’s, was made to feel that he could never live down the disgrace of it, either in this world or that which is to come.

It took a full hour before silence was restored . . . but it was a silence that could be felt. Everyone realized that even the explosion hadn’t cleared the teacher’s mental fog. Nobody, except for Anthony Pye, dared to whisper a word. Ned Clay accidentally squeaked his pencil while working on a problem, caught Anne’s eye, and wished the floor would open up and swallow him whole. The geography class was rushed through a continent at a dizzying pace. The grammar class was parsed and analyzed to the point of exhaustion. Chester Sloane, spelling “odoriferous” with two f’s, felt he could never live down the embarrassment of it, either in this world or the next.

Anne knew that she had made herself ridiculous and that the incident would be laughed over that night at a score of tea-tables, but the knowledge only angered her further. In a calmer mood she could have carried off the situation with a laugh but now that was impossible; so she ignored it in icy disdain.

Anne knew she had made a fool of herself and that people would be laughing about the incident later that night at a bunch of tea gatherings, but that realization only made her angrier. If she had been calmer, she could have laughed it off, but now that was out of the question; so she chose to ignore it with icy disdain.

When Anne returned to the school after dinner all the children were as usual in their seats and every face was bent studiously over a desk except Anthony Pye’s. He peered across his book at Anne, his black eyes sparkling with curiosity and mockery. Anne twitched open the drawer of her desk in search of chalk and under her very hand a lively mouse sprang out of the drawer, scampered over the desk, and leaped to the floor.

When Anne came back to school after dinner, all the kids were in their seats, and every face was focused on their desks except for Anthony Pye’s. He was looking at Anne over his book, his black eyes shining with curiosity and teasing. Anne quickly opened her desk drawer looking for chalk, and right under her hand, a lively mouse jumped out of the drawer, raced across the desk, and leaped to the floor.

Anne screamed and sprang back, as if it had been a snake, and Anthony Pye laughed aloud.

Anne screamed and jumped back, as if it had been a snake, and Anthony Pye laughed out loud.

Then a silence fell . . . a very creepy, uncomfortable silence. Annetta Bell was of two minds whether to go into hysterics again or not, especially as she didn’t know just where the mouse had gone. But she decided not to. Who could take any comfort out of hysterics with a teacher so white-faced and so blazing-eyed standing before one?

Then a silence fell . . . a really creepy, uncomfortable silence. Annetta Bell was torn between whether to freak out again or not, especially since she had no idea where the mouse had gone. But she chose not to. Who could find any comfort in panicking with a teacher so pale and so furious standing right in front of them?

“Who put that mouse in my desk?” said Anne. Her voice was quite low but it made a shiver go up and down Paul Irving’s spine. Joe Sloane caught her eye, felt responsible from the crown of his head to the sole of his feet, but stuttered out wildly,

“Who put that mouse in my desk?” Anne asked. Her voice was quiet, but it sent a chill down Paul Irving’s spine. Joe Sloane caught her gaze, felt guilty from head to toe, but stammered out frantically,

“N . . . n . . . not m . . . m . . . me t . . . t . . . teacher, n . . . n . . . not m . . . m . . . me.”

"N... n... not m... m... my t... t... teacher, n... n... not m... m... me."

Anne paid no attention to the wretched Joseph. She looked at Anthony Pye, and Anthony Pye looked back unabashed and unashamed.

Anne ignored the miserable Joseph. She glanced at Anthony Pye, and Anthony Pye met her gaze, completely unbothered and unapologetic.

“Anthony, was it you?”

"Anthony, was that you?"

“Yes, it was,” said Anthony insolently.

“Yes, it was,” Anthony replied disrespectfully.

Anne took her pointer from her desk. It was a long, heavy hardwood pointer.

Anne grabbed her pointer from her desk. It was a long, heavy wooden pointer.

“Come here, Anthony.”

"Come here, Anthony."

It was far from being the most severe punishment Anthony Pye had ever undergone. Anne, even the stormy-souled Anne she was at that moment, could not have punished any child cruelly. But the pointer nipped keenly and finally Anthony’s bravado failed him; he winced and the tears came to his eyes.

It was far from the harshest punishment Anthony Pye had ever experienced. Anne, even with her fiery temper in that moment, couldn’t have punished any child harshly. But the pointer stung sharply and eventually, Anthony’s confidence gave way; he winced and tears came to his eyes.

Anne, conscience-stricken, dropped the pointer and told Anthony to go to his seat. She sat down at her desk feeling ashamed, repentant, and bitterly mortified. Her quick anger was gone and she would have given much to have been able to seek relief in tears. So all her boasts had come to this . . . she had actually whipped one of her pupils. How Jane would triumph! And how Mr. Harrison would chuckle! But worse than this, bitterest thought of all, she had lost her last chance of winning Anthony Pye. Never would he like her now.

Anne, feeling guilty, dropped the pointer and told Anthony to go to his seat. She sat down at her desk, feeling ashamed, regretful, and completely embarrassed. Her moment of anger had faded, and she would have given anything to find comfort in tears. So all her bragging had led to this . . . she had actually punished one of her students. How much Jane would gloat! And how Mr. Harrison would laugh! But worse than that, the most painful thought of all, was that she had lost her last chance to win over Anthony Pye. He would never like her now.

Anne, by what somebody has called “a Herculaneum effort,” kept back her tears until she got home that night. Then she shut herself in the east gable room and wept all her shame and remorse and disappointment into her pillows . . . wept so long that Marilla grew alarmed, invaded the room, and insisted on knowing what the trouble was.

Anne, in what someone described as “a Herculean effort,” held back her tears until she got home that night. Then she locked herself in the east gable room and cried all her shame, remorse, and disappointment into her pillows... she cried for so long that Marilla got worried, barged into the room, and demanded to know what was wrong.

“The trouble is, I’ve got things the matter with my conscience,” sobbed Anne. “Oh, this has been such a Jonah day, Marilla. I’m so ashamed of myself. I lost my temper and whipped Anthony Pye.”

“The problem is, I’ve got issues with my conscience,” cried Anne. “Oh, it’s been such a terrible day, Marilla. I’m so embarrassed. I lost my temper and hit Anthony Pye.”

“I’m glad to hear it,” said Marilla with decision. “It’s what you should have done long ago.”

“I’m glad to hear that,” Marilla said firmly. “It’s what you should have done a long time ago.”

“Oh, no, no, Marilla. And I don’t see how I can ever look those children in the face again. I feel that I have humiliated myself to the very dust. You don’t know how cross and hateful and horrid I was. I can’t forget the expression in Paul Irving’s eyes . . . he looked so surprised and disappointed. Oh, Marilla, I have tried so hard to be patient and to win Anthony’s liking . . . and now it has all gone for nothing.”

“Oh, no, no, Marilla. I don’t know how I can ever face those kids again. I feel like I’ve completely embarrassed myself. You don’t know how angry, mean, and awful I was. I can’t forget the look in Paul Irving’s eyes… he seemed so surprised and disappointed. Oh, Marilla, I have tried so hard to be patient and to win Anthony’s favor… and now it’s all been for nothing.”

Marilla passed her hard work-worn hand over the girl’s glossy, tumbled hair with a wonderful tenderness. When Anne’s sobs grew quieter she said, very gently for her,

Marilla ran her worn hand over the girl's shiny, messy hair with a surprising tenderness. When Anne's sobs subsided, she said, in a tone softer than usual,

“You take things too much to heart, Anne. We all make mistakes . . . but people forget them. And Jonah days come to everybody. As for Anthony Pye, why need you care if he does dislike you? He is the only one.”

"You take things way too personally, Anne. We all mess up... but people move on. Everyone has their bad days. And about Anthony Pye, why does it matter if he doesn't like you? He's the only one."

“I can’t help it. I want everybody to love me and it hurts me so when anybody doesn’t. And Anthony never will now. Oh, I just made an idiot of myself today, Marilla. I’ll tell you the whole story.”

“I can’t help it. I want everyone to love me, and it really hurts when someone doesn’t. And Anthony never will now. Oh, I just embarrassed myself today, Marilla. I’ll tell you the whole story.”

Marilla listened to the whole story, and if she smiled at certain parts of it Anne never knew. When the tale was ended she said briskly,

Marilla listened to the entire story, and if she smiled at certain parts of it, Anne never noticed. When the story was finished, she said cheerfully,

“Well, never mind. This day’s done and there’s a new one coming tomorrow, with no mistakes in it yet, as you used to say yourself. Just come downstairs and have your supper. You’ll see if a good cup of tea and those plum puffs I made today won’t hearten you up.”

“Well, forget it. Today is over and there’s a new one coming tomorrow, with no mistakes in it yet, as you always used to say. Just come downstairs and have your dinner. You’ll see if a good cup of tea and those plum puffs I made today won't cheer you up.”

“Plum puffs won’t minister to a mind diseased,” said Anne disconsolately; but Marilla thought it a good sign that she had recovered sufficiently to adapt a quotation.

“Plum puffs won’t help a troubled mind,” said Anne sadly; but Marilla thought it was a good sign that she had recovered enough to adapt a quote.

The cheerful supper table, with the twins’ bright faces, and Marilla’s matchless plum puffs . . . of which Davy ate four . . . did “hearten her up” considerably after all. She had a good sleep that night and awakened in the morning to find herself and the world transformed. It had snowed softly and thickly all through the hours of darkness and the beautiful whiteness, glittering in the frosty sunshine, looked like a mantle of charity cast over all the mistakes and humiliations of the past.

The cheerful dinner table, with the twins’ bright faces, and Marilla’s amazing plum puffs . . . of which Davy ate four . . . did “lift her spirits” quite a bit after all. She had a good night’s sleep and woke up in the morning to find herself and the world changed. It had snowed gently and heavily all night, and the beautiful white blanket, sparkling in the frosty sunshine, looked like a cloak of kindness covering all the mistakes and embarrassments of the past.

“Every morn is a fresh beginning,
Every morn is the world made new,”

“Every morning is a fresh start,
Every morning is the world made new,”

sang Anne, as she dressed.

sang Anne while getting dressed.

Owing to the snow she had to go around by the road to school and she thought it was certainly an impish coincidence that Anthony Pye should come ploughing along just as she left the Green Gables lane. She felt as guilty as if their positions were reversed; but to her unspeakable astonishment Anthony not only lifted his cap . . . which he had never done before . . . but said easily,

Owing to the snow, she had to take the longer way around to school, and she thought it was quite a mischievous coincidence that Anthony Pye happened to come along just as she was leaving the Green Gables lane. She felt as guilty as if their roles were reversed; but to her utter surprise, Anthony not only raised his cap... which he had never done before... but casually said,

“Kind of bad walking, ain’t it? Can I take those books for you, teacher?”

“Looks like a bit of a rough walk, huh? Can I carry those books for you, teacher?”

Anne surrendered her books and wondered if she could possibly be awake. Anthony walked on in silence to the school, but when Anne took her books she smiled down at him . . . not the stereotyped “kind” smile she had so persistently assumed for his benefit but a sudden outflashing of good comradeship. Anthony smiled . . . no, if the truth must be told, Anthony grinned back. A grin is not generally supposed to be a respectful thing; yet Anne suddenly felt that if she had not yet won Anthony’s liking she had, somehow or other, won his respect.

Anne handed over her books and wondered if she was really awake. Anthony walked on quietly to school, but when Anne took her books, she smiled down at him… not the typical “kind” smile she usually put on for his sake, but a genuine burst of camaraderie. Anthony smiled… no, to be honest, Anthony grinned back. A grin isn't usually seen as a respectful gesture; yet Anne suddenly felt that even if she hadn’t earned Anthony’s affection yet, she had somehow gained his respect.

Mrs. Rachel Lynde came up the next Saturday and confirmed this.

Mrs. Rachel Lynde came over the following Saturday and confirmed this.

“Well, Anne, I guess you’ve won over Anthony Pye, that’s what. He says he believes you are some good after all, even if you are a girl. Says that whipping you gave him was ‘just as good as a man’s.’”

"Well, Anne, I guess you’ve impressed Anthony Pye, that’s what. He says he thinks you’re actually pretty good, even though you’re a girl. He says that beating you gave him was ‘just as good as a man’s.’”

“I never expected to win him by whipping him, though,” said Anne, a little mournfully, feeling that her ideals had played her false somewhere. “It doesn’t seem right. I’m sure my theory of kindness can’t be wrong.”

“I never thought I could win him over by hitting him, though,” said Anne, a bit sadly, realizing that her beliefs had let her down somehow. “It just doesn’t feel right. I’m sure my theory of kindness can’t be wrong.”

“No, but the Pyes are an exception to every known rule, that’s what,” declared Mrs. Rachel with conviction.

“No, but the Pyes are an exception to every known rule, that’s what,” Mrs. Rachel said firmly.

Mr. Harrison said, “Thought you’d come to it,” when he heard it, and Jane rubbed it in rather unmercifully.

Mr. Harrison said, “I knew you’d figure it out,” when he heard it, and Jane made sure to emphasize it a bit cruelly.

XIII
A Golden Picnic

Anne, on her way to Orchard Slope, met Diana, bound for Green Gables, just where the mossy old log bridge spanned the brook below the Haunted Wood, and they sat down by the margin of the Dryad’s Bubble, where tiny ferns were unrolling like curly-headed green pixy folk wakening up from a nap.

Anne, on her way to Orchard Slope, ran into Diana, who was headed to Green Gables, right at the mossy old log bridge that crossed the stream below the Haunted Wood. They sat down by the edge of the Dryad’s Bubble, where tiny ferns were unfurling like little green pixies waking up from a nap.

“I was just on my way over to invite you to help me celebrate my birthday on Saturday,” said Anne.

"I was just on my way to invite you to help me celebrate my birthday on Saturday," said Anne.

“Your birthday? But your birthday was in March!”

"Your birthday? But your birthday was in March!"

“That wasn’t my fault,” laughed Anne. “If my parents had consulted me it would never have happened then. I should have chosen to be born in spring, of course. It must be delightful to come into the world with the mayflowers and violets. You would always feel that you were their foster sister. But since I didn’t, the next best thing is to celebrate my birthday in the spring. Priscilla is coming over Saturday and Jane will be home. We’ll all four start off to the woods and spend a golden day making the acquaintance of the spring. We none of us really know her yet, but we’ll meet her back there as we never can anywhere else. I want to explore all those fields and lonely places anyhow. I have a conviction that there are scores of beautiful nooks there that have never really been seen although they may have been looked at. We’ll make friends with wind and sky and sun, and bring home the spring in our hearts.”

"That wasn’t my fault," laughed Anne. "If my parents had asked me, this would never have happened. I should have chosen to be born in spring, of course. It must be wonderful to come into the world with the mayflowers and violets. You'd always feel like their foster sister. But since I didn’t, the next best thing is to celebrate my birthday in the spring. Priscilla is coming over Saturday, and Jane will be home. The four of us will head to the woods and spend a perfect day getting to know spring. None of us really know her yet, but we’ll meet her back there in a way we can’t anywhere else. I want to explore all those fields and quiet spots anyway. I have a feeling there are countless beautiful corners that have never really been seen even though they’ve been looked at. We’ll make friends with the wind, sky, and sun, and bring home the spring in our hearts."

“It sounds awfully nice,” said Diana, with some inward distrust of Anne’s magic of words. “But won’t it be very damp in some places yet?”

“It sounds really nice,” said Diana, feeling a bit skeptical about Anne’s way with words. “But won’t it still be pretty damp in some spots?”

“Oh, we’ll wear rubbers,” was Anne’s concession to practicalities. “And I want you to come over early Saturday morning and help me prepare lunch. I’m going to have the daintiest things possible . . . things that will match the spring, you understand . . . little jelly tarts and lady fingers, and drop cookies frosted with pink and yellow icing, and buttercup cake. And we must have sandwiches too, though they’re not very poetical.”

“Oh, we’ll wear rain boots,” was Anne’s way of being practical. “And I want you to come over early Saturday morning to help me get lunch ready. I’m going to have the cutest things possible... things that match the spring, you know... little jelly tarts and ladyfingers, and drop cookies frosted with pink and yellow icing, and buttercup cake. And we should have sandwiches too, even though they're not very poetic.”

Saturday proved an ideal day for a picnic . . . a day of breeze and blue, warm, sunny, with a little rollicking wind blowing across meadow and orchard. Over every sunlit upland and field was a delicate, flower-starred green.

Saturday turned out to be the perfect day for a picnic . . . a breezy, blue day, warm and sunny with a playful wind blowing through the meadow and orchard. Across every sunlit hill and field, there was a delicate, flower-speckled green.

Mr. Harrison, harrowing at the back of his farm and feeling some of the spring witch-work even in his sober, middle-aged blood, saw four girls, basket laden, tripping across the end of his field where it joined a fringing woodland of birch and fir. Their blithe voices and laughter echoed down to him.

Mr. Harrison, working hard at the back of his farm and feeling a touch of the spring magic even in his sober, middle-aged veins, saw four girls, baskets in hand, skipping across the end of his field where it met a border of birch and fir trees. Their cheerful voices and laughter drifted down to him.

“It’s so easy to be happy on a day like this, isn’t it?” Anne was saying, with true Anneish philosophy. “Let’s try to make this a really golden day, girls, a day to which we can always look back with delight. We’re to seek for beauty and refuse to see anything else. ‘Begone, dull care!’ Jane, you are thinking of something that went wrong in school yesterday.”

“It’s so easy to be happy on a day like this, right?” Anne was saying, with her signature optimism. “Let’s try to make this a truly amazing day, girls, a day we can always remember with joy. We’re going to look for beauty and ignore everything else. ‘Get lost, worries!’ Jane, you’re thinking about something that went wrong in school yesterday.”

“How do you know?” gasped Jane, amazed.

“How do you know?” Jane gasped, amazed.

“Oh, I know the expression . . . I’ve felt it often enough on my own face. But put it out of your mind, there’s a dear. It will keep till Monday . . . or if it doesn’t so much the better. Oh, girls, girls, see that patch of violets! There’s something for memory’s picture gallery. When I’m eighty years old . . . if I ever am . . . I shall shut my eyes and see those violets just as I see them now. That’s the first good gift our day has given us.”

“Oh, I know that look... I've seen it often enough in the mirror. But don’t dwell on it, dear. It can wait until Monday... or if it doesn’t, even better. Oh, girls, girls, look at that patch of violets! That’s something for the memory bank. When I’m eighty years old... if I ever make it there... I’ll close my eyes and see those violets just like I see them now. That’s the first wonderful gift our day has given us.”

“If a kiss could be seen I think it would look like a violet,” said Priscilla.

“If a kiss could be seen, I think it would look like a violet,” Priscilla said.

Anne glowed.

Anne shined.

“I’m so glad you spoke that thought, Priscilla, instead of just thinking it and keeping it to yourself. This world would be a much more interesting place . . . although it is very interesting anyhow . . . if people spoke out their real thoughts.”

“I’m so glad you shared that thought, Priscilla, instead of just keeping it to yourself. This world would be a much more interesting place . . . although it is pretty interesting anyway . . . if people expressed their true thoughts.”

“It would be too hot to hold some folks,” quoted Jane sagely.

“It'll be too hot to hold some people,” Jane said wisely.

“I suppose it might be, but that would be their own faults for thinking nasty things. Anyhow, we can tell all our thoughts today because we are going to have nothing but beautiful thoughts. Everybody can say just what comes into her head. That is conversation. Here’s a little path I never saw before. Let’s explore it.”

“I guess it could be, but that would be their own fault for thinking negative things. Anyway, we can share all our thoughts today because we're only going to have positive ones. Everyone can say whatever comes to her mind. That is conversation. Here’s a little path I’ve never seen before. Let’s check it out.”

The path was a winding one, so narrow that the girls walked in single file and even then the fir boughs brushed their faces. Under the firs were velvety cushions of moss, and further on, where the trees were smaller and fewer, the ground was rich in a variety of green growing things.

The path was winding and so narrow that the girls had to walk in a single line, and even then, the fir branches brushed their faces. Beneath the firs were soft cushions of moss, and further along, where the trees were smaller and sparser, the ground was full of a variety of green plants.

“What a lot of elephant’s ears,” exclaimed Diana. “I’m going to pick a big bunch, they’re so pretty.”

“What a lot of elephant ears,” Diana exclaimed. “I’m going to grab a big bunch; they’re so pretty.”

“How did such graceful feathery things ever come to have such a dreadful name?” asked Priscilla.

“How did such elegant, feathered creatures come to have such a terrible name?” Priscilla asked.

“Because the person who first named them either had no imagination at all or else far too much,” said Anne, “Oh, girls, look at that!”

“Because the person who first named them either had no imagination at all or way too much,” said Anne, “Oh, girls, look at that!”

“That” was a shallow woodland pool in the center of a little open glade where the path ended. Later on in the season it would be dried up and its place filled with a rank growth of ferns; but now it was a glimmering placid sheet, round as a saucer and clear as crystal. A ring of slender young birches encircled it and little ferns fringed its margin.

“That” was a shallow woodland pool in the center of a small open glade where the path ended. Later in the season, it would dry up and be replaced by a thick growth of ferns; but right now, it was a shimmering, calm surface, round like a saucer and clear as crystal. A ring of slender young birches surrounded it, and small ferns edged its border.

How sweet!” said Jane.

“How sweet!” said Jane.

“Let us dance around it like wood-nymphs,” cried Anne, dropping her basket and extending her hands.

“Let’s dance around it like forest spirits,” cried Anne, dropping her basket and reaching out her hands.

But the dance was not a success for the ground was boggy and Jane’s rubbers came off.

But the dance didn't go well because the ground was muddy and Jane's shoes came off.

“You can’t be a wood-nymph if you have to wear rubbers,” was her decision.

“You can’t be a wood-nymph if you have to wear rubber boots,” was her decision.

“Well, we must name this place before we leave it,” said Anne, yielding to the indisputable logic of facts. “Everybody suggest a name and we’ll draw lots. Diana?”

“Well, we need to name this place before we leave,” said Anne, accepting the clear logic of the situation. “Everyone suggest a name and we’ll draw lots. Diana?”

“Birch Pool,” suggested Diana promptly.

"Birch Pool," Diana suggested quickly.

“Crystal Lake,” said Jane.

“Crystal Lake,” Jane said.

Anne, standing behind them, implored Priscilla with her eyes not to perpetrate another such name and Priscilla rose to the occasion with “Glimmer-glass.” Anne’s selection was “The Fairies’ Mirror.”

Anne, standing behind them, silently urged Priscilla not to come up with another outrageous name, and Priscilla responded with “Glimmer-glass.” Anne chose “The Fairies’ Mirror.”

The names were written on strips of birch bark with a pencil Schoolma’am Jane produced from her pocket, and placed in Anne’s hat. Then Priscilla shut her eyes and drew one. “Crystal Lake,” read Jane triumphantly. Crystal Lake it was, and if Anne thought that chance had played the pool a shabby trick she did not say so.

The names were written on strips of birch bark with a pencil that Schoolma’am Jane pulled from her pocket and put in Anne’s hat. Then Priscilla closed her eyes and picked one. “Crystal Lake,” Jane read out loud, excitedly. It was Crystal Lake, and even if Anne felt that luck had let the group down, she didn’t say anything about it.

Pushing through the undergrowth beyond, the girls came out to the young green seclusion of Mr. Silas Sloane’s back pasture. Across it they found the entrance to a lane striking up through the woods and voted to explore it also. It rewarded their quest with a succession of pretty surprises. First, skirting Mr. Sloane’s pasture, came an archway of wild cherry trees all in bloom. The girls swung their hats on their arms and wreathed their hair with the creamy, fluffy blossoms. Then the lane turned at right angles and plunged into a spruce wood so thick and dark that they walked in a gloom as of twilight, with not a glimpse of sky or sunlight to be seen.

Pushing through the underbrush, the girls emerged into the fresh green seclusion of Mr. Silas Sloane’s back pasture. Across it, they discovered a path leading into the woods and decided to check it out as well. Their adventure was rewarded with a series of delightful surprises. First, as they skirted Mr. Sloane’s pasture, they came across an archway of wild cherry trees in full bloom. The girls swung their hats on their arms and adorned their hair with the creamy, fluffy blossoms. Then, the path took a sharp turn and plunged into a spruce forest so dense and dark that they walked in a twilight-like gloom, with no glimpse of the sky or sunlight to be seen.

“This is where the bad wood elves dwell,” whispered Anne. “They are impish and malicious but they can’t harm us, because they are not allowed to do evil in the spring. There was one peeping at us around that old twisted fir; and didn’t you see a group of them on that big freckly toadstool we just passed? The good fairies always dwell in the sunshiny places.”

“This is where the bad wood elves live,” whispered Anne. “They’re mischievous and mean, but they can’t hurt us because they aren’t allowed to do anything evil in the spring. There was one watching us from behind that old twisted fir, and didn’t you see a bunch of them on that big freckled toadstool we just walked by? The good fairies always hang out in sunny spots.”

“I wish there really were fairies,” said Jane. “Wouldn’t it be nice to have three wishes granted you . . . or even only one? What would you wish for, girls, if you could have a wish granted? I’d wish to be rich and beautiful and clever.”

“I wish there were actually fairies,” said Jane. “Wouldn’t it be great to have three wishes granted to you... or even just one? What would you wish for, girls, if you could have a wish granted? I’d wish to be rich and beautiful and smart.”

“I’d wish to be tall and slender,” said Diana.

“I wish I were tall and slim,” said Diana.

“I would wish to be famous,” said Priscilla. Anne thought of her hair and then dismissed the thought as unworthy.

“I wish I were famous,” Priscilla said. Anne thought about her hair and then dismissed the idea as not worth considering.

“I’d wish it might be spring all the time and in everybody’s heart and all our lives,” she said.

“I wish it could be spring all the time, in everyone’s heart and in all our lives,” she said.

“But that,” said Priscilla, “would be just wishing this world were like heaven.”

“But that,” Priscilla said, “would just be wishing this world was like heaven.”

“Only like a part of heaven. In the other parts there would be summer and autumn . . . yes, and a bit of winter, too. I think I want glittering snowy fields and white frosts in heaven sometimes. Don’t you, Jane?”

“Just like a piece of heaven. In other areas, there would be summer and autumn... yes, and a little bit of winter, too. I think I’d like sparkling snowy fields and white frost in heaven sometimes. Don’t you, Jane?”

“I . . . I don’t know,” said Jane uncomfortably. Jane was a good girl, a member of the church, who tried conscientiously to live up to her profession and believed everything she had been taught. But she never thought about heaven any more than she could help, for all that.

“I... I don’t know,” Jane said awkwardly. Jane was a good girl, a church member, who tried hard to live by her beliefs and accepted everything she had been taught. Still, she hardly ever thought about heaven more than she could avoid, despite all that.

“Minnie May asked me the other day if we would wear our best dresses every day in heaven,” laughed Diana.

“Minnie May asked me the other day if we would wear our best dresses every day in heaven,” laughed Diana.

“And didn’t you tell her we would?” asked Anne.

“And didn’t you tell her we would?” Anne asked.

“Mercy, no! I told her we wouldn’t be thinking of dresses at all there.”

“Mercy, no! I told her we wouldn’t even think about dresses there.”

“Oh, I think we will . . . a little,” said Anne earnestly. “There’ll be plenty of time in all eternity for it without neglecting more important things. I believe we’ll all wear beautiful dresses . . . or I suppose raiment would be a more suitable way of speaking. I shall want to wear pink for a few centuries at first . . . it would take me that long to get tired of it, I feel sure. I do love pink so and I can never wear it in this world.”

“Oh, I think we will . . . a little,” said Anne sincerely. “There’ll be plenty of time for it in eternity without ignoring more important things. I believe we’ll all wear beautiful dresses . . . or I guess raiment would be a better way to put it. I want to wear pink for a few centuries at first . . . I’m sure it would take me that long to get tired of it. I love pink so much, and I can never wear it in this world.”

Past the spruces the lane dipped down into a sunny little open where a log bridge spanned a brook; and then came the glory of a sunlit beechwood where the air was like transparent golden wine, and the leaves fresh and green, and the wood floor a mosaic of tremulous sunshine. Then more wild cherries, and a little valley of lissome firs, and then a hill so steep that the girls lost their breath climbing it; but when they reached the top and came out into the open the prettiest surprise of all awaited them.

Beyond the spruces, the path sloped down into a sunny little clearing where a log bridge crossed over a stream; then came the beauty of a sunlit beech forest, where the air felt like clear golden wine, the leaves were fresh and green, and the forest floor was a mosaic of shimmering sunlight. Next were more wild cherries, a small valley filled with graceful firs, and then a hill so steep that the girls were out of breath by the time they reached the top; but when they emerged into the open, the most delightful surprise of all awaited them.

Beyond were the “back fields” of the farms that ran out to the upper Carmody road. Just before them, hemmed in by beeches and firs but open to the south, was a little corner and in it a garden . . . or what had once been a garden. A tumbledown stone dyke, overgrown with mosses and grass, surrounded it. Along the eastern side ran a row of garden cherry trees, white as a snowdrift. There were traces of old paths still and a double line of rosebushes through the middle; but all the rest of the space was a sheet of yellow and white narcissi, in their airiest, most lavish, wind-swayed bloom above the lush green grasses.

Beyond were the “back fields” of the farms that extended to the upper Carmody road. Just before them, enclosed by beeches and firs but open to the south, was a small corner that once held a garden. A crumbling stone wall, covered in moss and grass, surrounded it. Along the eastern side was a row of cherry trees, white as a snowdrift. There were still faint traces of old paths and a double line of rose bushes through the middle; but the rest of the area was filled with bright yellow and white narcissi, blooming in their lightest, most lavish, wind-swayed display above the lush green grasses.

“Oh, how perfectly lovely!” three of the girls cried. Anne only gazed in eloquent silence.

“Oh, how completely lovely!” three of the girls exclaimed. Anne just looked on in meaningful silence.

“How in the world does it happen that there ever was a garden back here?” said Priscilla in amazement.

“How on earth did a garden end up back here?” Priscilla said, amazed.

“It must be Hester Gray’s garden,” said Diana. “I’ve heard mother speak of it but I never saw it before, and I wouldn’t have supposed that it could be in existence still. You’ve heard the story, Anne?”

“It must be Hester Gray’s garden,” Diana said. “I’ve heard my mom talk about it, but I’ve never seen it before, and I wouldn’t have thought it was still around. You’ve heard the story, Anne?”

“No, but the name seems familiar to me.”

“No, but that name sounds familiar to me.”

“Oh, you’ve seen it in the graveyard. She is buried down there in the poplar corner. You know the little brown stone with the opening gates carved on it and ‘Sacred to the memory of Hester Gray, aged twenty-two.’ Jordan Gray is buried right beside her but there’s no stone to him. It’s a wonder Marilla never told you about it, Anne. To be sure, it happened thirty years ago and everybody has forgotten.”

“Oh, you've seen it in the cemetery. She's buried down there in the poplar corner. You know the little brown stone with the carved opening gates and 'Sacred to the memory of Hester Gray, aged twenty-two.' Jordan Gray is buried right next to her, but there's no stone for him. It's surprising Marilla never mentioned it to you, Anne. Of course, it happened thirty years ago, and everyone has forgotten.”

“Well, if there’s a story we must have it,” said Anne. “Let’s sit right down here among the narcissi and Diana will tell it. Why, girls, there are hundreds of them . . . they’ve spread over everything. It looks as if the garden were carpeted with moonshine and sunshine combined. This is a discovery worth making. To think that I’ve lived within a mile of this place for six years and have never seen it before! Now, Diana.”

“Well, if there’s a story we need to hear, let's have it,” said Anne. “Let’s sit right here among the daffodils and Diana will tell it. Look, girls, there are hundreds of them… they’ve spread all over the place. It looks like the garden is covered with a mix of moonlight and sunlight. This is a find worth celebrating. I can’t believe I’ve lived within a mile of this spot for six years and never noticed it before! Now, Diana.”

“Long ago,” began Diana, “this farm belonged to old Mr. David Gray. He didn’t live on it . . . he lived where Silas Sloane lives now. He had one son, Jordan, and he went up to Boston one winter to work and while he was there he fell in love with a girl named Hester Murray. She was working in a store and she hated it. She’d been brought up in the country and she always wanted to get back. When Jordan asked her to marry him she said she would if he’d take her away to some quiet spot where she’d see nothing but fields and trees. So he brought her to Avonlea. Mrs. Lynde said he was taking a fearful risk in marrying a Yankee, and it’s certain that Hester was very delicate and a very poor housekeeper; but mother says she was very pretty and sweet and Jordan just worshipped the ground she walked on. Well, Mr. Gray gave Jordan this farm and he built a little house back here and Jordan and Hester lived in it for four years. She never went out much and hardly anybody went to see her except mother and Mrs. Lynde. Jordan made her this garden and she was crazy about it and spent most of her time in it. She wasn’t much of a housekeeper but she had a knack with flowers. And then she got sick. Mother says she thinks she was in consumption before she ever came here. She never really laid up but just grew weaker and weaker all the time. Jordan wouldn’t have anybody to wait on her. He did it all himself and mother says he was as tender and gentle as a woman. Every day he’d wrap her in a shawl and carry her out to the garden and she’d lie there on a bench quite happy. They say she used to make Jordan kneel down by her every night and morning and pray with her that she might die out in the garden when the time came. And her prayer was answered. One day Jordan carried her out to the bench and then he picked all the roses that were out and heaped them over her; and she just smiled up at him . . . and closed her eyes . . . and that,” concluded Diana softly, “was the end.”

“Long ago,” Diana began, “this farm belonged to old Mr. David Gray. He didn’t live here... he lived where Silas Sloane lives now. He had one son, Jordan, who went up to Boston one winter for work, and while he was there, he fell in love with a girl named Hester Murray. She was working in a store and hated it. She’d grown up in the country and always wanted to return. When Jordan asked her to marry him, she said she would if he took her to some quiet place where she’d see nothing but fields and trees. So he brought her to Avonlea. Mrs. Lynde said he was taking a huge risk marrying a Yankee, and it’s true that Hester was very delicate and not a great housekeeper; but Mom says she was really pretty and sweet and Jordan adored her. Well, Mr. Gray gave Jordan this farm, and he built a small house here where Jordan and Hester lived for four years. She didn’t go out much, and hardly anyone visited her except Mom and Mrs. Lynde. Jordan made her this garden, and she loved it and spent most of her time in it. She wasn’t much of a housekeeper, but she had a knack for flowers. Then she got sick. Mom thinks she might have had consumption even before she came here. She never really stayed in bed but just grew weaker and weaker. Jordan wouldn’t let anyone else take care of her. He did it all himself, and Mom says he was as tender and gentle as a woman. Every day he’d wrap her in a shawl and carry her out to the garden, and she’d lie on a bench quite happy. They say she used to make Jordan kneel by her every night and morning and pray together that she might die out in the garden when the time came. And her prayer was answered. One day, Jordan carried her out to the bench, then he picked all the roses that were blooming and heaped them over her; and she just smiled up at him... and closed her eyes... and that,” Diana concluded softly, “was the end.”

“Oh, what a dear story,” sighed Anne, wiping away her tears.

“Oh, what a lovely story,” sighed Anne, wiping away her tears.

“What became of Jordan?” asked Priscilla.

“What happened to Jordan?” asked Priscilla.

“He sold the farm after Hester died and went back to Boston. Mr. Jabez Sloane bought the farm and hauled the little house out to the road. Jordan died about ten years after and he was brought home and buried beside Hester.”

“He sold the farm after Hester died and went back to Boston. Mr. Jabez Sloane bought the farm and moved the little house out to the road. Jordan died about ten years later, and he was brought home and buried next to Hester.”

“I can’t understand how she could have wanted to live back here, away from everything,” said Jane.

“I can’t understand how she could have wanted to live back here, away from it all,” said Jane.

“Oh, I can easily understand that,” said Anne thoughtfully. “I wouldn’t want it myself for a steady thing, because, although I love the fields and woods, I love people too. But I can understand it in Hester. She was tired to death of the noise of the big city and the crowds of people always coming and going and caring nothing for her. She just wanted to escape from it all to some still, green, friendly place where she could rest. And she got just what she wanted, which is something very few people do, I believe. She had four beautiful years before she died. . . four years of perfect happiness, so I think she was to be envied more than pitied. And then to shut your eyes and fall asleep among roses, with the one you loved best on earth smiling down at you . . . oh, I think it was beautiful!”

“Oh, I totally get that,” said Anne thoughtfully. “I wouldn’t want it for myself long-term because, even though I love the fields and woods, I love people too. But I can understand it for Hester. She was completely worn out by the noise of the big city and the crowds of people who were always coming and going, not caring about her at all. She just wanted to escape to some quiet, green, friendly place where she could relax. And she got exactly what she wanted, which is something very few people do, I think. She had four amazing years before she died... four years of perfect happiness, so I believe she should be envied more than pitied. And then to close your eyes and drift off to sleep among roses, with the one you loved most in the world smiling down at you... oh, I think that was beautiful!”

“She set out those cherry trees over there,” said Diana. “She told mother she’d never live to eat their fruit, but she wanted to think that something she had planted would go on living and helping to make the world beautiful after she was dead.”

“She planted those cherry trees over there,” said Diana. “She told Mom she’d never live to enjoy their fruit, but she wanted to believe that something she had planted would continue to thrive and help make the world beautiful after she was gone.”

“I’m so glad we came this way,” said Anne, the shining-eyed. “This is my adopted birthday, you know, and this garden and its story is the birthday gift it has given me. Did your mother ever tell you what Hester Gray looked like, Diana?”

“I’m so glad we took this route,” said Anne, her eyes sparkling. “This is my adopted birthday, you know, and this garden and its story are the birthday gift it has given me. Did your mom ever tell you what Hester Gray looked like, Diana?”

“No . . . only just that she was pretty.”

“No... just that she was pretty.”

“I’m rather glad of that, because I can imagine what she looked like, without being hampered by facts. I think she was very slight and small, with softly curling dark hair and big, sweet, timid brown eyes, and a little wistful, pale face.”

“I’m really glad about that because I can picture what she looked like without being held back by facts. I think she was very petite, with softly curling dark hair and big, sweet, timid brown eyes, and a little wistful, pale face.”

The girls left their baskets in Hester’s garden and spent the rest of the afternoon rambling in the woods and fields surrounding it, discovering many pretty nooks and lanes. When they got hungry they had lunch in the prettiest spot of all . . . on the steep bank of a gurgling brook where white birches shot up out of long feathery grasses. The girls sat down by the roots and did full justice to Anne’s dainties, even the unpoetical sandwiches being greatly appreciated by hearty, unspoiled appetites sharpened by all the fresh air and exercise they had enjoyed. Anne had brought glasses and lemonade for her guests, but for her own part drank cold brook water from a cup fashioned out of birch bark. The cup leaked, and the water tasted of earth, as brook water is apt to do in spring; but Anne thought it more appropriate to the occasion than lemonade.

The girls left their baskets in Hester’s garden and spent the rest of the afternoon wandering through the woods and fields around it, finding lots of pretty spots and paths. When they got hungry, they had lunch in the prettiest place of all... on the steep bank of a bubbling brook where white birches grew up through long, feathery grasses. The girls sat down by the roots and thoroughly enjoyed Anne’s treats, even the not-so-fancy sandwiches being greatly appreciated by their hearty, unspoiled appetites, sharpened by all the fresh air and exercise they had enjoyed. Anne had brought glasses and lemonade for her friends, but she herself drank cold brook water from a cup made out of birch bark. The cup leaked, and the water tasted earthy, as brook water often does in spring; but Anne thought it was more fitting for the occasion than lemonade.

“Look do you see that poem?” she said suddenly, pointing.

“Hey, do you see that poem?” she said suddenly, pointing.

“Where?” Jane and Diana stared, as if expecting to see Runic rhymes on the birch trees.

“Where?” Jane and Diana stared, as if they were expecting to see Runic poems on the birch trees.

“There . . . down in the brook . . . that old green, mossy log with the water flowing over it in those smooth ripples that look as if they’d been combed, and that single shaft of sunshine falling right athwart it, far down into the pool. Oh, it’s the most beautiful poem I ever saw.”

"There . . . down in the stream . . . that old green, mossy log with the water flowing over it in smooth ripples that look like they've been combed, and that single beam of sunlight shining right across it, deep into the pool. Oh, it’s the most beautiful thing I’ve ever seen."

“I should rather call it a picture,” said Jane. “A poem is lines and verses.”

“I’d rather call it a picture,” said Jane. “A poem is made up of lines and verses.”

“Oh dear me, no.” Anne shook her head with its fluffy wild cherry coronal positively. “The lines and verses are only the outward garments of the poem and are no more really it than your ruffles and flounces are you, Jane. The real poem is the soul within them . . . and that beautiful bit is the soul of an unwritten poem. It is not every day one sees a soul . . . even of a poem.”

“Oh no, not at all.” Anne shook her head, her wild cherry hair bouncing. “The lines and verses are just the outer layers of the poem and aren't really it any more than your frills and flounces are you, Jane. The true poem is the soul inside them . . . and that beautiful piece is the essence of an unwritten poem. You don’t see a soul every day . . . not even of a poem.”

“I wonder what a soul . . . a person’s soul . . . would look like,” said Priscilla dreamily.

"I wonder what a soul... a person's soul... would look like," said Priscilla, lost in thought.

“Like that, I should think,” answered Anne, pointing to a radiance of sifted sunlight streaming through a birch tree. “Only with shape and features of course. I like to fancy souls as being made of light. And some are all shot through with rosy stains and quivers . . . and some have a soft glitter like moonlight on the sea . . . and some are pale and transparent like mist at dawn.”

“Just like that, I think,” Anne replied, pointing to a beam of filtered sunlight shining through a birch tree. “But with shape and features, of course. I like to imagine souls as being made of light. Some are infused with rosy tints and flickers... some have a gentle shimmer like moonlight on the ocean... and some are pale and clear like fog at dawn.”

“I read somewhere once that souls were like flowers,” said Priscilla.

“I read somewhere once that souls are like flowers,” said Priscilla.

“Then your soul is a golden narcissus,” said Anne, “and Diana’s is like a red, red rose. Jane’s is an apple blossom, pink and wholesome and sweet.”

“Then your soul is a golden daffodil,” said Anne, “and Diana’s is like a deep red rose. Jane’s is an apple blossom, soft pink, pure, and sweet.”

“And your own is a white violet, with purple streaks in its heart,” finished Priscilla.

“And yours is a white violet with purple streaks in the middle,” Priscilla finished.

Jane whispered to Diana that she really could not understand what they were talking about. Could she?

Jane whispered to Diana that she really couldn't understand what they were talking about. Could she?

The girls went home by the light of a calm golden sunset, their baskets filled with narcissus blossoms from Hester’s garden, some of which Anne carried to the cemetery next day and laid upon Hester’s grave. Minstrel robins were whistling in the firs and the frogs were singing in the marshes. All the basins among the hills were brimmed with topaz and emerald light.

The girls headed home under a peaceful golden sunset, their baskets filled with narcissus flowers from Hester’s garden. Anne took some of them to the cemetery the next day and placed them on Hester’s grave. Songbirds were chirping in the fir trees and frogs were croaking in the marshes. All the valleys among the hills glowed with topaz and emerald light.

“Well, we have had a lovely time after all,” said Diana, as if she had hardly expected to have it when she set out.

“Well, we’ve had a great time after all,” said Diana, as if she hadn’t really expected to have it when she started out.

“It has been a truly golden day,” said Priscilla.

“It’s been an amazing day,” Priscilla said.

“I’m really awfully fond of the woods myself,” said Jane.

“I really love the woods myself,” said Jane.

Anne said nothing. She was looking afar into the western sky and thinking of little Hester Gray.

Anne said nothing. She was gazing into the western sky and thinking about little Hester Gray.

XIV
A Danger Averted

Anne, walking home from the post office one Friday evening, was joined by Mrs. Lynde, who was as usual cumbered with all the cares of church and state.

Anne, walking home from the post office one Friday evening, was joined by Mrs. Lynde, who, as usual, was weighed down with all the responsibilities of church and state.

“I’ve just been down to Timothy Cotton’s to see if I could get Alice Louise to help me for a few days,” she said. “I had her last week, for, though she’s too slow to stop quick, she’s better than nobody. But she’s sick and can’t come. Timothy’s sitting there, too, coughing and complaining. He’s been dying for ten years and he’ll go on dying for ten years more. That kind can’t even die and have done with it . . . they can’t stick to anything, even to being sick, long enough to finish it. They’re a terrible shiftless family and what is to become of them I don’t know, but perhaps Providence does.”

“I just went down to Timothy Cotton’s to see if I could get Alice Louise to help me for a few days,” she said. “I had her last week, and even though she’s too slow to be efficient, she’s better than nothing. But she’s sick and can’t come. Timothy’s sitting there, too, coughing and complaining. He’s been on the verge of dying for ten years, and he’ll keep on like this for another ten years. That kind can’t even die and get it over with... they can’t stick to anything, not even being sick, long enough to finish it. They’re a really lazy family, and I have no idea what’s going to happen to them, but maybe Providence does.”

Mrs. Lynde sighed as if she rather doubted the extent of Providential knowledge on the subject.

Mrs. Lynde sighed, as if she questioned how much God really understood about the situation.

“Marilla was in about her eyes again Tuesday, wasn’t she? What did the specialist think of them?” she continued.

“Marilla was checking her eyes again on Tuesday, right? What did the specialist say about them?” she continued.

“He was much pleased,” said Anne brightly. “He says there is a great improvement in them and he thinks the danger of her losing her sight completely is past. But he says she’ll never be able to read much or do any fine hand-work again. How are your preparations for your bazaar coming on?”

“He's really happy,” said Anne brightly. “He says there’s a huge improvement in them and he thinks the risk of her losing her sight completely is behind us. But he says she’ll never be able to read much or do any detailed work again. How are your preparations for your bazaar going?”

The Ladies’ Aid Society was preparing for a fair and supper, and Mrs. Lynde was the head and front of the enterprise.

The Ladies’ Aid Society was getting ready for a fair and dinner, and Mrs. Lynde was the driving force behind the event.

“Pretty well . . . and that reminds me. Mrs. Allan thinks it would be nice to fix up a booth like an old-time kitchen and serve a supper of baked beans, doughnuts, pie, and so on. We’re collecting old-fashioned fixings everywhere. Mrs. Simon Fletcher is going to lend us her mother’s braided rugs and Mrs. Levi Boulter some old chairs and Aunt Mary Shaw will lend us her cupboard with the glass doors. I suppose Marilla will let us have her brass candlesticks? And we want all the old dishes we can get. Mrs. Allan is specially set on having a real blue willow ware platter if we can find one. But nobody seems to have one. Do you know where we could get one?”

"Pretty good... and that reminds me. Mrs. Allan thinks it would be great to set up a booth like an old-fashioned kitchen and serve a dinner of baked beans, doughnuts, pie, and so on. We’re gathering vintage supplies from everywhere. Mrs. Simon Fletcher is going to lend us her mother’s braided rugs, and Mrs. Levi Boulter some old chairs, and Aunt Mary Shaw will lend us her cupboard with the glass doors. I suppose Marilla will let us borrow her brass candlesticks? And we want all the old dishes we can find. Mrs. Allan is particularly keen on having a real blue willow platter if we can locate one. But nobody seems to have one. Do you know where we might be able to get one?"

“Miss Josephine Barry has one. I’ll write and ask her if she’ll lend it for the occasion,” said Anne.

“Miss Josephine Barry has one. I’ll write and ask her if she’ll lend it for the event,” said Anne.

“Well, I wish you would. I guess we’ll have the supper in about a fortnight’s time. Uncle Abe Andrews is prophesying rain and storms for about that time; and that’s a pretty sure sign we’ll have fine weather.”

“Well, I wish you would. I guess we’ll have dinner in about two weeks. Uncle Abe Andrews is predicting rain and storms around that time; and that’s a pretty good sign we’ll have nice weather.”

The said “Uncle Abe,” it may be mentioned, was at least like other prophets in that he had small honor in his own country. He was, in fact, considered in the light of a standing joke, for few of his weather predictions were ever fulfilled. Mr. Elisha Wright, who labored under the impression that he was a local wit, used to say that nobody in Avonlea ever thought of looking in the Charlottetown dailies for weather probabilities. No; they just asked Uncle Abe what it was going to be tomorrow and expected the opposite. Nothing daunted, Uncle Abe kept on prophesying.

The so-called “Uncle Abe” was, like many other prophets, not respected in his own hometown. In fact, he was often seen as a running joke since very few of his weather forecasts ever came true. Mr. Elisha Wright, who believed he was quite the comedian, used to say that no one in Avonlea ever thought to check the Charlottetown newspapers for weather updates. Instead, they just asked Uncle Abe what the weather would be like tomorrow and anticipated that it would be the opposite. Undeterred, Uncle Abe continued to make his predictions.

“We want to have the fair over before the election comes off,” continued Mrs. Lynde, “for the candidates will be sure to come and spend lots of money. The Tories are bribing right and left, so they might as well be given a chance to spend their money honestly for once.”

“We want to have the fair wrapped up before the election,” Mrs. Lynde continued, “because the candidates are definitely going to show up and spend a ton of money. The Tories are bribing everyone left and right, so they might as well have a chance to spend their money honestly for once.”

Anne was a red-hot Conservative, out of loyalty to Matthew’s memory, but she said nothing. She knew better than to get Mrs. Lynde started on politics. She had a letter for Marilla, postmarked from a town in British Columbia.

Anne was a passionate Conservative, out of loyalty to Matthew’s memory, but she kept quiet. She knew better than to get Mrs. Lynde going on politics. She had a letter for Marilla, postmarked from a town in British Columbia.

“It’s probably from the children’s uncle,” she said excitedly, when she got home. “Oh, Marilla, I wonder what he says about them.”

“It’s probably from the kids' uncle,” she said excitedly when she got home. “Oh, Marilla, I wonder what he says about them.”

“The best plan might be to open it and see,” said Marilla curtly. A close observer might have thought that she was excited also, but she would rather have died than show it.

“The best plan might be to open it and see,” Marilla said sharply. A close observer might have thought she was excited too, but she would have rather died than show it.

Anne tore open the letter and glanced over the somewhat untidy and poorly written contents.

Anne ripped open the letter and quickly scanned the messy and poorly written contents.

“He says he can’t take the children this spring . . . he’s been sick most of the winter and his wedding is put off. He wants to know if we can keep them till the fall and he’ll try and take them then. We will, of course, won’t we Marilla?”

“He says he can’t take the kids this spring . . . he’s been sick for most of the winter and his wedding is postponed. He wants to know if we can keep them until fall, and he’ll try to take them then. We will, of course, right Marilla?”

“I don’t see that there is anything else for us to do,” said Marilla rather grimly, although she felt a secret relief. “Anyhow they’re not so much trouble as they were . . . or else we’ve got used to them. Davy has improved a great deal.”

“I don’t think there’s anything else for us to do,” Marilla said rather grimly, even though she felt a quiet relief. “Anyway, they’re not as much trouble as they used to be... or maybe we’ve just gotten used to them. Davy has really improved a lot.”

“His manners are certainly much better,” said Anne cautiously, as if she were not prepared to say as much for his morals.

“His manners are definitely much better,” Anne said cautiously, as if she wasn’t ready to say the same about his morals.

Anne had come home from school the previous evening, to find Marilla away at an Aid meeting, Dora asleep on the kitchen sofa, and Davy in the sitting room closet, blissfully absorbing the contents of a jar of Marilla’s famous yellow plum preserves . . . “company jam,” Davy called it . . . which he had been forbidden to touch. He looked very guilty when Anne pounced on him and whisked him out of the closet.

Anne had come home from school the night before to find Marilla gone to an Aid meeting, Dora asleep on the kitchen sofa, and Davy in the sitting room closet, happily digging into a jar of Marilla’s famous yellow plum preserves... “company jam,” as Davy called it... which he had been told not to touch. He looked really guilty when Anne caught him and pulled him out of the closet.

“Davy Keith, don’t you know that it is very wrong of you to be eating that jam, when you were told never to meddle with anything in that closet?”

“Davy Keith, don’t you know it’s really wrong for you to be eating that jam when you were told never to mess with anything in that closet?”

“Yes, I knew it was wrong,” admitted Davy uncomfortably, “but plum jam is awful nice, Anne. I just peeped in and it looked so good I thought I’d take just a weeny taste. I stuck my finger in . . .” Anne groaned . . . “and licked it clean. And it was so much gooder than I’d ever thought that I got a spoon and just sailed in.”

“Yes, I knew it was wrong,” Davy admitted awkwardly, “but plum jam is really great, Anne. I just peeked in and it looked so good that I thought I’d have a tiny taste. I stuck my finger in . . .” Anne groaned . . . “and licked it clean. And it was so much better than I ever imagined, so I grabbed a spoon and just dug in.”

Anne gave him such a serious lecture on the sin of stealing plum jam that Davy became conscience stricken and promised with repentant kisses never to do it again.

Anne gave him such a serious lecture about the wrongness of stealing plum jam that Davy felt guilty and promised with regretful kisses never to do it again.

“Anyhow, there’ll be plenty of jam in heaven, that’s one comfort,” he said complacently.

“Anyway, there’ll be plenty of jam in heaven, that’s one comfort,” he said self-satisfied.

Anne nipped a smile in the bud.

Anne held back a smile.

“Perhaps there will . . . if we want it,” she said, “But what makes you think so?”

“Maybe there will be . . . if we want it,” she said, “But what makes you think that?”

“Why, it’s in the catechism,” said Davy.

“Why, it's in the catechism,” Davy said.

“Oh, no, there is nothing like that in the catechism, Davy.”

“Oh, no, there's nothing like that in the catechism, Davy.”

“But I tell you there is,” persisted Davy. “It was in that question Marilla taught me last Sunday. ‘Why should we love God?’ It says, ‘Because He makes preserves, and redeems us.’ Preserves is just a holy way of saying jam.”

“But I’m telling you there is,” Davy kept insisting. “It was in that question Marilla taught me last Sunday. ‘Why should we love God?’ It says, ‘Because He makes, preserves, and redeems us.’ Preserves is just a fancy way of saying jam.”

“I must get a drink of water,” said Anne hastily. When she came back it cost her some time and trouble to explain to Davy that a certain comma in the said catechism question made a great deal of difference in the meaning.

“I have to get a drink of water,” Anne said quickly. When she returned, it took her some time and effort to explain to Davy that a certain comma in the catechism question made a big difference in the meaning.

“Well, I thought it was too good to be true,” he said at last, with a sigh of disappointed conviction. “And besides, I didn’t see when He’d find time to make jam if it’s one endless Sabbath day, as the hymn says. I don’t believe I want to go to heaven. Won’t there ever be any Saturdays in heaven, Anne?”

“Well, I thought it was too good to be true,” he finally said, sighing with disappointment. “And besides, I don’t see when He’d find time to make jam if every day is just one long Sabbath, like the hymn says. I don’t think I want to go to heaven. Will there ever be any Saturdays in heaven, Anne?”

“Yes, Saturdays, and every other kind of beautiful days. And every day in heaven will be more beautiful than the one before it, Davy,” assured Anne, who was rather glad that Marilla was not by to be shocked. Marilla, it is needless to say, was bringing the twins up in the good old ways of theology and discouraged all fanciful speculations thereupon. Davy and Dora were taught a hymn, a catechism question, and two Bible verses every Sunday. Dora learned meekly and recited like a little machine, with perhaps as much understanding or interest as if she were one. Davy, on the contrary, had a lively curiosity, and frequently asked questions which made Marilla tremble for his fate.

“Yes, Saturdays, and all the other beautiful days. And every day in heaven will be more beautiful than the one before it, Davy,” reassured Anne, who was quite happy that Marilla wasn’t around to be shocked. Marilla, needless to say, was raising the twins with traditional religious teachings and discouraged any fanciful ideas about it. Davy and Dora learned a hymn, a catechism question, and two Bible verses every Sunday. Dora memorized and recited like a little machine, perhaps with as much understanding or interest as if she were one. Davy, on the other hand, had a lively curiosity and often asked questions that made Marilla worry about his future.

“Chester Sloane says we’ll do nothing all the time in heaven but walk around in white dresses and play on harps; and he says he hopes he won’t have to go till he’s an old man, ’cause maybe he’ll like it better then. And he thinks it will be horrid to wear dresses and I think so too. Why can’t men angels wear trousers, Anne? Chester Sloane is interested in those things, ’cause they’re going to make a minister of him. He’s got to be a minister ’cause his grandmother left the money to send him to college and he can’t have it unless he is a minister. She thought a minister was such a ‘spectable thing to have in a family. Chester says he doesn’t mind much . . . though he’d rather be a blacksmith . . . but he’s bound to have all the fun he can before he begins to be a minister, ’cause he doesn’t expect to have much afterwards. I ain’t going to be a minister. I’m going to be a storekeeper, like Mr. Blair, and keep heaps of candy and bananas. But I’d rather like going to your kind of a heaven if they’d let me play a mouth organ instead of a harp. Do you s’pose they would?”

“Chester Sloane says that in heaven we’ll just walk around in white dresses and play harps all the time; he hopes he won’t have to go until he’s an old man because maybe he’ll like it better then. He thinks it will be awful to wear dresses, and I think so too. Why can’t male angels wear pants, Anne? Chester Sloane cares about these things because they’re planning to make him a minister. He has to become a minister because his grandmother left money for him to go to college, and he can’t have it unless he becomes a minister. She thought having a minister in the family was really respectable. Chester says he doesn’t mind much... even though he’d prefer to be a blacksmith…but he’s determined to have as much fun as he can before he starts being a minister because he doesn’t expect to have much fun afterwards. I am not going to be a minister. I’m going to be a shopkeeper like Mr. Blair and keep loads of candy and bananas. But I’d really like to go to your version of heaven if they’d let me play a harmonica instead of a harp. Do you think they would?”

“Yes, I think they would if you wanted it,” was all Anne could trust herself to say.

“Yes, I think they would if you wanted it,” was all Anne could manage to say.

The A.V.I.S. met at Mr. Harmon Andrews’ that evening and a full attendance had been requested, since important business was to be discussed. The A.V.I.S. was in a flourishing condition, and had already accomplished wonders. Early in the spring Mr. Major Spencer had redeemed his promise and had stumped, graded, and seeded down all the road front of his farm. A dozen other men, some prompted by a determination not to let a Spencer get ahead of them, others goaded into action by Improvers in their own households, had followed his example. The result was that there were long strips of smooth velvet turf where once had been unsightly undergrowth or brush. The farm fronts that had not been done looked so badly by contrast that their owners were secretly shamed into resolving to see what they could do another spring. The triangle of ground at the cross roads had also been cleared and seeded down, and Anne’s bed of geraniums, unharmed by any marauding cow, was already set out in the center.

The A.V.I.S. gathered at Mr. Harmon Andrews' place that evening, and everyone was asked to attend since there was important business to discuss. The A.V.I.S. was doing really well and had already achieved great things. Early in the spring, Mr. Major Spencer had kept his promise by clearing, leveling, and seeding all the road frontage of his farm. A dozen other men, some motivated by the desire not to let a Spencer get ahead of them, and others pushed into action by their families, followed his lead. As a result, there were long stretches of smooth green grass where there used to be unattractive underbrush. The farm fronts that hadn’t been worked on looked so bad in comparison that their owners were secretly embarrassed and made plans to improve things next spring. The triangle of land at the crossroads had also been cleared and seeded, and Anne’s bed of geraniums, untouched by any wandering cows, was already planted in the center.

Altogether, the Improvers thought that they were getting on beautifully, even if Mr. Levi Boulter, tactfully approached by a carefully selected committee in regard to the old house on his upper farm, did bluntly tell them that he wasn’t going to have it meddled with.

Overall, the Improvers believed they were making great progress, even though when a carefully chosen committee tactfully approached Mr. Levi Boulter about the old house on his upper farm, he straightforwardly told them that he wasn't going to allow any changes.

At this especial meeting they intended to draw up a petition to the school trustees, humbly praying that a fence be put around the school grounds; and a plan was also to be discussed for planting a few ornamental trees by the church, if the funds of the society would permit of it . . . for, as Anne said, there was no use in starting another subscription as long as the hall remained blue. The members were assembled in the Andrews’ parlor and Jane was already on her feet to move the appointment of a committee which should find out and report on the price of said trees, when Gertie Pye swept in, pompadoured and frilled within an inch of her life. Gertie had a habit of being late . . . “to make her entrance more effective,” spiteful people said. Gertie’s entrance in this instance was certainly effective, for she paused dramatically on the middle of the floor, threw up her hands, rolled her eyes, and exclaimed, “I’ve just heard something perfectly awful. What do you think? Mr. Judson Parker is going to rent all the road fence of his farm to a patent medicine company to paint advertisements on.”

At this special meeting, they planned to draft a petition to the school trustees, humbly asking for a fence to be put around the school grounds. They were also going to discuss a plan to plant a few decorative trees by the church, if the society's funds allowed it... because, as Anne said, there was no point in starting another fundraiser while the hall was still blue. The members gathered in the Andrews' parlor, and Jane was already on her feet to propose forming a committee to find out the cost of the trees, when Gertie Pye breezed in, styled and dressed to the nines. Gertie had a habit of being late... “to make her entrance more impactful,” as spiteful people would say. Gertie’s entrance was certainly striking this time, as she paused dramatically in the middle of the room, threw up her hands, rolled her eyes, and exclaimed, “I just heard something absolutely terrible. What do you think? Mr. Judson Parker is going to rent all the road fence of his farm to a patent medicine company to paint advertisements on.”

For once in her life Gertie Pye made all the sensation she desired. If she had thrown a bomb among the complacent Improvers she could hardly have made more.

For once in her life, Gertie Pye created all the drama she wanted. If she had set off a bomb among the self-satisfied Improvers, she couldn’t have caused more of a stir.

“It can’t be true,” said Anne blankly.

"It can't be true," said Anne blankly.

“That’s just what I said when I heard it first, don’t you know,” said Gertie, who was enjoying herself hugely. “I said it couldn’t be true . . . that Judson Parker wouldn’t have the heart to do it, don’t you know. But father met him this afternoon and asked him about it and he said it WAS true. Just fancy! His farm is side-on to the Newbridge road and how perfectly awful it will look to see advertisements of pills and plasters all along it, don’t you know?”

"That’s exactly what I said when I first heard it, you know," said Gertie, who was having a great time. "I said it couldn't be true... that Judson Parker wouldn't have the heart to do it, you know. But Dad ran into him this afternoon, asked him about it, and he said it WAS true. Can you believe it? His farm is right by the Newbridge road, and how awful will it look to see ads for pills and plasters all along it, you know?"

The Improvers did know, all too well. Even the least imaginative among them could picture the grotesque effect of half a mile of board fence adorned with such advertisements. All thought of church and school grounds vanished before this new danger. Parliamentary rules and regulations were forgotten, and Anne, in despair, gave up trying to keep minutes at all. Everybody talked at once and fearful was the hubbub.

The Improvers did know, all too well. Even the least imaginative among them could picture the grotesque sight of half a mile of board fence covered in those ads. Any thoughts of church and school grounds disappeared in the face of this new threat. Parliamentary rules and regulations were forgotten, and Anne, in despair, stopped trying to take minutes altogether. Everyone spoke at once, and the chaos was overwhelming.

“Oh, let us keep calm,” implored Anne, who was the most excited of them all, “and try to think of some way of preventing him.”

“Oh, let’s stay calm,” urged Anne, the most excited of the group, “and try to figure out how to stop him.”

“I don’t know how you’re going to prevent him,” exclaimed Jane bitterly. “Everybody knows what Judson Parker is. He’d do anything for money. He hasn’t a spark of public spirit or any sense of the beautiful.”

“I don’t know how you’re going to stop him,” Jane said bitterly. “Everyone knows who Judson Parker is. He’d do anything for money. He doesn’t have a bit of public spirit or any appreciation for beauty.”

The prospect looked rather unpromising. Judson Parker and his sister were the only Parkers in Avonlea, so that no leverage could be exerted by family connections. Martha Parker was a lady of all too certain age who disapproved of young people in general and the Improvers in particular. Judson was a jovial, smooth-spoken man, so uniformly goodnatured and bland that it was surprising how few friends he had. Perhaps he had got the better in too many business transactions. . . which seldom makes for popularity. He was reputed to be very “sharp” and it was the general opinion that he “hadn’t much principle.”

The situation didn’t look very promising. Judson Parker and his sister were the only Parkers in Avonlea, so there were no family connections to lean on. Martha Parker was an older woman who disapproved of young people in general and the Improvers in particular. Judson was a cheerful, smooth-talking guy, so consistently good-natured and agreeable that it was surprising how few friends he had. Maybe he had come out on top in too many business deals… which usually doesn’t help with popularity. People said he was very “sharp,” and it was a common belief that he “lacked principles.”

“If Judson Parker has a chance to ‘turn an honest penny,’ as he says himself, he’ll never lose it,” declared Fred Wright.

“If Judson Parker gets the chance to ‘make an honest buck,’ as he says himself, he’ll never pass it up,” declared Fred Wright.

“Is there nobody who has any influence over him?” asked Anne despairingly.

“Is there anyone who has any influence over him?” asked Anne despairingly.

“He goes to see Louisa Spencer at White Sands,” suggested Carrie Sloane. “Perhaps she could coax him not to rent his fences.”

“He’s going to visit Louisa Spencer at White Sands,” suggested Carrie Sloane. “Maybe she could convince him not to rent out his fences.”

“Not she,” said Gilbert emphatically. “I know Louisa Spencer well. She doesn’t ‘believe’ in Village Improvement Societies, but she does believe in dollars and cents. She’d be more likely to urge Judson on than to dissuade him.”

“Not her,” Gilbert said strongly. “I know Louisa Spencer well. She doesn’t ‘believe’ in Village Improvement Societies, but she does believe in money. She’d be more likely to push Judson on than to talk him out of it.”

“The only thing to do is to appoint a committee to wait on him and protest,” said Julia Bell, “and you must send girls, for he’d hardly be civil to boys . . . but I won’t go, so nobody need nominate me.”

“The only thing we can do is set up a committee to meet with him and protest,” said Julia Bell, “and you should send girls, because he probably wouldn’t be polite to boys . . . but I won’t go, so no one needs to nominate me.”

“Better send Anne alone,” said Oliver Sloane. “She can talk Judson over if anybody can.”

“Better send Anne by herself,” said Oliver Sloane. “She can convince Judson if anyone can.”

Anne protested. She was willing to go and do the talking; but she must have others with her “for moral support.” Diana and Jane were therefore appointed to support her morally and the Improvers broke up, buzzing like angry bees with indignation. Anne was so worried that she didn’t sleep until nearly morning, and then she dreamed that the trustees had put a fence around the school and painted “Try Purple Pills” all over it.

Anne objected. She was ready to go and do the talking, but she needed others with her for “moral support.” So, Diana and Jane were chosen to support her, and the Improvers dispersed, buzzing with anger like disturbed bees. Anne was so anxious that she couldn’t sleep until nearly morning, and then she dreamed that the trustees had put a fence around the school and painted “Try Purple Pills” all over it.

The committee waited on Judson Parker the next afternoon. Anne pleaded eloquently against his nefarious design and Jane and Diana supported her morally and valiantly. Judson was sleek, suave, flattering; paid them several compliments of the delicacy of sunflowers; felt real bad to refuse such charming young ladies . . . but business was business; couldn’t afford to let sentiment stand in the way these hard times.

The committee met with Judson Parker the next afternoon. Anne argued passionately against his shady plan, and Jane and Diana backed her up wholeheartedly. Judson was smooth, charming, and flattering; he gave them a few compliments about the beauty of sunflowers; he felt really bad about turning down such lovely young women... but business was business; he couldn’t let feelings get in the way during these tough times.

“But I’ll tell what I will do,” he said, with a twinkle in his light, full eyes. “I’ll tell the agent he must use only handsome, tasty colors . . . red and yellow and so on. I’ll tell him he mustn’t paint the ads blue on any account.”

“But I’ll tell you what I will do,” he said, with a spark in his bright, full eyes. “I’ll let the agent know he can only use attractive, vibrant colors . . . red and yellow and so on. I’ll make sure he doesn’t paint the ads blue no matter what.”

The vanquished committee retired, thinking things not lawful to be uttered.

The defeated committee left, thinking things that shouldn't be spoken.

“We have done all we can do and must simply trust the rest to Providence,” said Jane, with an unconscious imitation of Mrs. Lynde’s tone and manner.

“We’ve done everything we can and just have to trust the rest to fate,” said Jane, unconsciously copying Mrs. Lynde’s tone and manner.

“I wonder if Mr. Allan could do anything,” reflected Diana.

“I wonder if Mr. Allan could do anything,” Diana thought.

Anne shook her head.

Anne shook her head.

“No, it’s no use to worry Mr. Allan, especially now when the baby’s so sick. Judson would slip away from him as smoothly as from us, although he has taken to going to church quite regularly just now. That is simply because Louisa Spencer’s father is an elder and very particular about such things.”

“No, there’s no point in worrying Mr. Allan, especially not now when the baby is so sick. Judson would slip away from him just as easily as he does from us, even though he’s been going to church pretty regularly lately. That’s only because Louisa Spencer’s dad is an elder and really strict about that kind of thing.”

“Judson Parker is the only man in Avonlea who would dream of renting his fences,” said Jane indignantly. “Even Levi Boulter or Lorenzo White would never stoop to that, tightfisted as they are. They would have too much respect for public opinion.”

“Judson Parker is the only guy in Avonlea who would think about renting out his fences,” Jane said, annoyed. “Even Levi Boulter or Lorenzo White would never lower themselves to that, as stingy as they are. They’d have too much respect for what people think.”

Public opinion was certainly down on Judson Parker when the facts became known, but that did not help matters much. Judson chuckled to himself and defied it, and the Improvers were trying to reconcile themselves to the prospect of seeing the prettiest part of the Newbridge road defaced by advertisements, when Anne rose quietly at the president’s call for reports of committees on the occasion of the next meeting of the Society, and announced that Mr. Judson Parker had instructed her to inform the Society that he was not going to rent his fences to the Patent Medicine Company.

Public opinion definitely turned against Judson Parker once the facts came out, but that didn’t change much. Judson laughed to himself and shrugged it off, while the Improvers were trying to come to terms with the idea of the most beautiful section of the Newbridge road being spoiled by ads. Then Anne stood up quietly when the president asked for committee reports at the next Society meeting and said that Mr. Judson Parker had told her to let the Society know that he was not going to rent his fences to the Patent Medicine Company.

Jane and Diana stared as if they found it hard to believe their ears. Parliamentary etiquette, which was generally very strictly enforced in the A.V.I.S., forbade them giving instant vent to their curiosity, but after the Society adjourned Anne was besieged for explanations. Anne had no explanation to give. Judson Parker had overtaken her on the road the preceding evening and told her that he had decided to humor the A.V.I.S. in its peculiar prejudice against patent medicine advertisements. That was all Anne would say, then or ever afterwards, and it was the simple truth; but when Jane Andrews, on her way home, confided to Oliver Sloane her firm belief that there was more behind Judson Parker’s mysterious change of heart than Anne Shirley had revealed, she spoke the truth also.

Jane and Diana stared as if they couldn’t believe what they were hearing. Parliamentary etiquette, which was usually very strictly enforced in the A.V.I.S., prevented them from expressing their curiosity right away, but after the Society meeting ended, Anne was bombarded with requests for explanations. Anne had no explanation to offer. Judson Parker had caught up with her on the road the night before and told her he had decided to go along with the A.V.I.S. in its unusual stance against patent medicine ads. That was all Anne would say, then or ever after, and it was the simple truth; however, when Jane Andrews, on her way home, told Oliver Sloane that she firmly believed there was more to Judson Parker’s mysterious change of heart than what Anne Shirley had shared, she was also speaking the truth.

Anne had been down to old Mrs. Irving’s on the shore road the preceding evening and had come home by a short cut which led her first over the low-lying shore fields, and then through the beech wood below Robert Dickson’s, by a little footpath that ran out to the main road just above the Lake of Shining Waters . . . known to unimaginative people as Barry’s pond.

Anne had gone to old Mrs. Irving’s on the shore road the night before and had taken a shortcut home that led her first over the low-lying shore fields, and then through the beech wood near Robert Dickson’s, by a small footpath that came out to the main road just above the Lake of Shining Waters... which unimaginative people called Barry’s pond.

Two men were sitting in their buggies, reined off to the side of the road, just at the entrance of the path. One was Judson Parker; the other was Jerry Corcoran, a Newbridge man against whom, as Mrs. Lynde would have told you in eloquent italics, nothing shady had ever been proved. He was an agent for agricultural implements and a prominent personage in matters political. He had a finger . . . some people said all his fingers . . . in every political pie that was cooked; and as Canada was on the eve of a general election Jerry Corcoran had been a busy man for many weeks, canvassing the county in the interests of his party’s candidate. Just as Anne emerged from under the overhanging beech boughs she heard Corcoran say, “If you’ll vote for Amesbury, Parker . . . well, I’ve a note for that pair of harrows you’ve got in the spring. I suppose you wouldn’t object to having it back, eh?”

Two men were sitting in their buggies, pulled off to the side of the road, right at the entrance of the path. One was Judson Parker; the other was Jerry Corcoran, a man from Newbridge against whom, as Mrs. Lynde would have dramatically pointed out, nothing shady had ever been proven. He was an agent for agricultural tools and a significant figure in political matters. He had a hand... some people said all his hands... in every political deal that was happening; and since Canada was about to have a general election, Jerry Corcoran had been busy for weeks, campaigning for his party's candidate throughout the county. Just as Anne came out from under the overhanging beech branches, she heard Corcoran say, “If you’ll vote for Amesbury, Parker... well, I’ve got a note for that pair of harrows you have in the spring. I assume you wouldn’t mind having it back, right?”

“We . . . ll, since you put it in that way,” drawled Judson with a grin, “I reckon I might as well do it. A man must look out for his own interests in these hard times.”

“Well, since you put it that way,” Judson said with a grin, “I guess I might as well do it. A guy has to look out for his own interests in these tough times.”

Both saw Anne at this moment and conversation abruptly ceased. Anne bowed frostily and walked on, with her chin slightly more tilted than usual. Soon Judson Parker overtook her.

Both noticed Anne at that moment, and the conversation came to an abrupt halt. Anne nodded coolly and continued walking, her chin raised just a bit more than usual. Soon, Judson Parker caught up with her.

“Have a lift, Anne?” he inquired genially.

“Need a ride, Anne?” he asked kindly.

“Thank you, no,” said Anne politely, but with a fine, needle-like disdain in her voice that pierced even Judson Parker’s none too sensitive consciousness. His face reddened and he twitched his reins angrily; but the next second prudential considerations checked him. He looked uneasily at Anne, as she walked steadily on, glancing neither to the right nor to the left. Had she heard Corcoran’s unmistakable offer and his own too plain acceptance of it? Confound Corcoran! If he couldn’t put his meaning into less dangerous phrases he’d get into trouble some of these long-come-shorts. And confound redheaded school-ma’ams with a habit of popping out of beechwoods where they had no business to be. If Anne had heard, Judson Parker, measuring her corn in his own half bushel, as the country saying went, and cheating himself thereby, as such people generally do, believed that she would tell it far and wide. Now, Judson Parker, as has been seen, was not overly regardful of public opinion; but to be known as having accepted a bribe would be a nasty thing; and if it ever reached Isaac Spencer’s ears farewell forever to all hope of winning Louisa Jane with her comfortable prospects as the heiress of a well-to-do farmer. Judson Parker knew that Mr. Spencer looked somewhat askance at him as it was; he could not afford to take any risks.

“Thanks, but no,” Anne replied politely, though there was a sharp, disdainful tone in her voice that even Judson Parker, who wasn't very sensitive, could feel. His face turned red, and he yanked on the reins in frustration; but a moment later, practical thoughts stopped him. He glanced at Anne uneasily as she walked on, not looking right or left. Had she heard Corcoran’s clear offer and his own obvious acceptance? Damn Corcoran! If he couldn’t say things in a less risky way, he was going to get himself into trouble sooner or later. And damn the redheaded schoolteachers who popped up in the woods where they didn’t belong. If Anne had heard, Judson Parker, measuring her worth with his own standard as the saying goes, was cheating himself, as people like him often do, believing she would spread the news far and wide. Now, as we’ve seen, Judson Parker didn’t care much about what people thought; but being known for accepting a bribe would be really bad. If that ever reached Isaac Spencer’s ears, he could kiss goodbye to any chance of winning Louisa Jane, with her prospects as the heiress of a well-off farmer. Judson Parker knew Mr. Spencer already viewed him with suspicion; he couldn’t afford to take any risks.

“Ahem . . . Anne, I’ve been wanting to see you about that little matter we were discussing the other day. I’ve decided not to let my fences to that company after all. A society with an aim like yours ought to be encouraged.”

“Ahem . . . Anne, I’ve been wanting to talk to you about that little matter we discussed the other day. I’ve decided not to let my fences to that company after all. A society with a goal like yours deserves support.”

Anne thawed out the merest trifle.

Anne warmed up just a little bit.

“Thank you,” she said.

“Thanks,” she said.

“And . . . and . . . you needn’t mention that little conversation of mine with Jerry.”

“And... and... you don’t need to bring up that little chat I had with Jerry.”

“I have no intention of mentioning it in any case,” said Anne icily, for she would have seen every fence in Avonlea painted with advertisements before she would have stooped to bargain with a man who would sell his vote.

“I’m not going to bring it up anyway,” Anne said coldly, because she would rather see every fence in Avonlea covered in ads than lower herself to negotiate with a man who would sell his vote.

“Just so . . . just so,” agreed Judson, imagining that they understood each other beautifully. “I didn’t suppose you would. Of course, I was only stringing Jerry . . . he thinks he’s so all-fired cute and smart. I’ve no intention of voting for Amesbury. I’m going to vote for Grant as I’ve always done . . . you’ll see that when the election comes off. I just led Jerry on to see if he would commit himself. And it’s all right about the fence . . . you can tell the Improvers that.”

“Exactly . . . exactly,” agreed Judson, feeling like they were on the same page. “I didn’t think you would. Honestly, I was just messing with Jerry . . . he thinks he’s so incredibly charming and clever. I have no plans to vote for Amesbury. I’m going to vote for Grant like I always have . . . you’ll see that when the election happens. I just wanted to see if Jerry would back himself into a corner. And it’s all good about the fence . . . you can let the Improvers know that.”

“It takes all sorts of people to make a world, as I’ve often heard, but I think there are some who could be spared,” Anne told her reflection in the east gable mirror that night. “I wouldn’t have mentioned the disgraceful thing to a soul anyhow, so my conscience is clear on that score. I really don’t know who or what is to be thanked for this. I did nothing to bring it about, and it’s hard to believe that Providence ever works by means of the kind of politics men like Judson Parker and Jerry Corcoran have.”

"It takes all kinds of people to make a world, as I've often heard, but I believe there are some who could be left out," Anne said to her reflection in the east gable mirror that night. "I wouldn't have mentioned the disgraceful thing to anyone anyway, so my conscience is clear on that front. I really have no clue who or what to thank for this. I did nothing to make it happen, and it's hard to believe that Providence ever works through the kind of politics that guys like Judson Parker and Jerry Corcoran have."

XV
The Beginning of Vacation

Anne locked the schoolhouse door on a still, yellow evening, when the winds were purring in the spruces around the playground, and the shadows were long and lazy by the edge of the woods. She dropped the key into her pocket with a sigh of satisfaction. The school year was ended, she had been reengaged for the next, with many expressions of satisfaction. . . . only Mr. Harmon Andrews told her she ought to use the strap oftener . . . and two delightful months of a well-earned vacation beckoned her invitingly. Anne felt at peace with the world and herself as she walked down the hill with her basket of flowers in her hand. Since the earliest mayflowers Anne had never missed her weekly pilgrimage to Matthew’s grave. Everyone else in Avonlea, except Marilla, had already forgotten quiet, shy, unimportant Matthew Cuthbert; but his memory was still green in Anne’s heart and always would be. She could never forget the kind old man who had been the first to give her the love and sympathy her starved childhood had craved.

Anne locked the schoolhouse door on a still, yellow evening when the wind was softly rustling in the spruces around the playground, and the shadows were long and lazy by the edge of the woods. She dropped the key into her pocket with a sigh of satisfaction. The school year was over, she had been re-hired for the next one, with lots of positive feedback... only Mr. Harmon Andrews told her she should use the strap more often... and two delightful months of a well-deserved vacation were calling her. Anne felt at peace with the world and with herself as she walked down the hill with a basket of flowers in her hand. Since the first mayflowers, she had never missed her weekly visit to Matthew’s grave. Everyone else in Avonlea, except Marilla, had already forgotten quiet, shy, unremarkable Matthew Cuthbert; but his memory was still fresh in Anne’s heart and always would be. She could never forget the kind old man who had been the first to give her the love and support her neglected childhood had craved.

At the foot of the hill a boy was sitting on the fence in the shadow of the spruces . . . a boy with big, dreamy eyes and a beautiful, sensitive face. He swung down and joined Anne, smiling; but there were traces of tears on his cheeks.

At the bottom of the hill, a boy was sitting on the fence in the shade of the spruces . . . a boy with big, dreamy eyes and a lovely, sensitive face. He jumped down and joined Anne, smiling; but there were traces of tears on his cheeks.

“I thought I’d wait for you, teacher, because I knew you were going to the graveyard,” he said, slipping his hand into hers. “I’m going there, too . . . I’m taking this bouquet of geraniums to put on Grandpa Irving’s grave for grandma. And look, teacher, I’m going to put this bunch of white roses beside Grandpa’s grave in memory of my little mother. . . because I can’t go to her grave to put it there. But don’t you think she’ll know all about it, just the same?”

“I thought I’d wait for you, teacher, because I knew you were going to the cemetery,” he said, taking her hand. “I’m going there, too . . . I’m bringing this bouquet of geraniums to put on Grandpa Irving’s grave for Grandma. And look, teacher, I’m going to place this bunch of white roses beside Grandpa’s grave in memory of my little mother . . . because I can’t go to her grave to put it there. But don’t you think she’ll know all about it, just the same?”

“Yes, I am sure she will, Paul.”

“Yes, I’m sure she will, Paul.”

“You see, teacher, it’s just three years today since my little mother died. It’s such a long, long time but it hurts just as much as ever . . . and I miss her just as much as ever. Sometimes it seems to me that I just can’t bear it, it hurts so.”

“You see, teacher, it’s been three years today since my mom passed away. It feels like such a long time, but the pain is still just as strong . . . and I miss her just as much as ever. Sometimes it feels like I can't stand it; it hurts so much.”

Paul’s voice quivered and his lip trembled. He looked down at his roses, hoping that his teacher would not notice the tears in his eyes.

Paul's voice shook, and his lip quivered. He glanced at his roses, hoping his teacher wouldn't see the tears in his eyes.

“And yet,” said Anne, very softly, “you wouldn’t want it to stop hurting . . . you wouldn’t want to forget your little mother even if you could.”

“And yet,” said Anne, very softly, “you wouldn’t want it to stop hurting . . . you wouldn’t want to forget your little mother even if you could.”

“No, indeed, I wouldn’t . . . that’s just the way I feel. You’re so good at understanding, teacher. Nobody else understands so well . . . not even grandma, although she’s so good to me. Father understood pretty well, but still I couldn’t talk much to him about mother, because it made him feel so bad. When he put his hand over his face I always knew it was time to stop. Poor father, he must be dreadfully lonesome without me; but you see he has nobody but a housekeeper now and he thinks housekeepers are no good to bring up little boys, especially when he has to be away from home so much on business. Grandmothers are better, next to mothers. Someday, when I’m brought up, I’ll go back to father and we’re never going to be parted again.”

“No, really, I wouldn’t . . . that’s just how I feel. You’re so good at understanding, teacher. Nobody else gets it as well . . . not even grandma, even though she’s really nice to me. Dad understood pretty well, but I still couldn’t talk to him much about mom because it made him really upset. When he covered his face with his hand, I always knew it was time to stop. Poor dad, he must be really lonely without me; but you see, he only has a housekeeper now and he thinks housekeepers are not good for raising little boys, especially since he has to be away so much for work. Grandmothers are better, next to mothers. Someday, when I’m grown up, I’ll go back to dad and we’re never going to be apart again.”

Paul had talked so much to Anne about his mother and father that she felt as if she had known them. She thought his mother must have been very like what he was himself, in temperament and disposition; and she had an idea that Stephen Irving was a rather reserved man with a deep and tender nature which he kept hidden scrupulously from the world.

Paul had talked so much to Anne about his parents that she felt like she knew them. She thought his mom must have been a lot like him in personality and attitude; and she figured that Stephen Irving was a pretty reserved guy with a deep and caring nature that he kept carefully hidden from everyone.

“Father’s not very easy to get acquainted with,” Paul had said once. “I never got really acquainted with him until after my little mother died. But he’s splendid when you do get to know him. I love him the best in all the world, and Grandma Irving next, and then you, teacher. I’d love you next to father if it wasn’t my duty to love Grandma Irving best, because she’s doing so much for me. You know, teacher. I wish she would leave the lamp in my room till I go to sleep, though. She takes it right out as soon as she tucks me up because she says I mustn’t be a coward. I’m not scared, but I’d rather have the light. My little mother used always to sit beside me and hold my hand till I went to sleep. I expect she spoiled me. Mothers do sometimes, you know.”

“Dad’s not that easy to get to know,” Paul once said. “I didn’t really get to know him until after my little mom passed away. But he’s great once you do. I love him the most in the world, then Grandma Irving next, and then you, teacher. I’d love you right after Dad if it wasn’t my duty to love Grandma Irving best because she’s doing so much for me. You know, teacher. I wish she would leave the lamp on in my room until I fall asleep, though. She takes it out right after she tucks me in because she says I shouldn’t be a coward. I’m not scared, but I’d rather have the light. My little mom always used to sit with me and hold my hand until I fell asleep. I guess she spoiled me. Moms do that sometimes, you know.”

No, Anne did not know this, although she might imagine it. She thought sadly of her “little mother,” the mother who had thought her so “perfectly beautiful” and who had died so long ago and was buried beside her boyish husband in that unvisited grave far away. Anne could not remember her mother and for this reason she almost envied Paul.

No, Anne didn’t know this, although she could imagine it. She thought sadly of her “little mother,” the mother who had believed she was so “perfectly beautiful” and who had died so long ago, buried next to her boyish husband in that unvisited grave far away. Anne couldn’t remember her mother, and for this reason, she almost envied Paul.

“My birthday is next week,” said Paul, as they walked up the long red hill, basking in the June sunshine, “and father wrote me that he is sending me something that he thinks I’ll like better than anything else he could send. I believe it has come already, for Grandma is keeping the bookcase drawer locked and that is something new. And when I asked her why, she just looked mysterious and said little boys mustn’t be too curious. It’s very exciting to have a birthday, isn’t it? I’ll be eleven. You’d never think it to look at me, would you? Grandma says I’m very small for my age and that it’s all because I don’t eat enough porridge. I do my very best, but Grandma gives such generous platefuls . . . there’s nothing mean about Grandma, I can tell you. Ever since you and I had that talk about praying going home from Sunday School that day, teacher . . . when you said we ought to pray about all our difficulties . . . I’ve prayed every night that God would give me enough grace to enable me to eat every bit of my porridge in the mornings. But I’ve never been able to do it yet, and whether it’s because I have too little grace or too much porridge I really can’t decide. Grandma says father was brought up on porridge, and it certainly did work well in his case, for you ought to see the shoulders he has. But sometimes,” concluded Paul with a sigh and a meditative air “I really think porridge will be the death of me.”

“My birthday is next week,” Paul said as they walked up the long red hill, soaking up the June sunshine. “Dad wrote to say he's sending me something he thinks I’ll like better than anything else. I think it’s already here because Grandma has the bookcase drawer locked, and that's something new. When I asked her why, she just gave me a mysterious look and said little boys shouldn’t be too curious. It’s so exciting to have a birthday, isn’t it? I’ll be eleven. You wouldn’t guess it just by looking at me, would you? Grandma says I’m really small for my age and that it’s all because I don’t eat enough porridge. I really try, but Grandma serves such generous portions... there’s nothing stingy about Grandma, I can assure you. Ever since you and I talked about praying on the way home from Sunday School that day, teacher… when you said we should pray about all our problems… I’ve prayed every night that God would give me enough grace to eat all my porridge in the mornings. But I haven’t been able to do it yet, and I can't tell if it's because I have too little grace or too much porridge. Grandma says Dad was raised on porridge, and it definitely worked for him because you should see his shoulders. But sometimes,” Paul concluded with a sigh and a thoughtful expression, “I really think porridge is going to be the end of me.”

Anne permitted herself a smile, since Paul was not looking at her. All Avonlea knew that old Mrs. Irving was bringing her grandson up in accordance with the good, old-fashioned methods of diet and morals.

Anne allowed herself a smile because Paul wasn’t looking at her. Everyone in Avonlea knew that old Mrs. Irving was raising her grandson with traditional values of diet and morality.

“Let us hope not, dear,” she said cheerfully. “How are your rock people coming on? Does the oldest Twin still continue to behave himself?”

“Let’s hope not, dear,” she said brightly. “How are your rock people coming along? Is the oldest Twin still behaving himself?”

“He has to,” said Paul emphatically. “He knows I won’t associate with him if he doesn’t. He is really full of wickedness, I think.”

“He has to,” Paul said firmly. “He knows I won’t hang out with him if he doesn’t. I genuinely think he’s full of bad intentions.”

“And has Nora found out about the Golden Lady yet?”

“And has Nora found out about the Golden Lady yet?”

“No; but I think she suspects. I’m almost sure she watched me the last time I went to the cave. I don’t mind if she finds out . . . it is only for her sake I don’t want her to . . . so that her feelings won’t be hurt. But if she is determined to have her feelings hurt it can’t be helped.”

“No; but I think she suspects. I’m pretty sure she watched me the last time I went to the cave. I don’t mind if she finds out... it’s only for her sake that I don’t want her to... so her feelings won’t get hurt. But if she is determined to have her feelings hurt, there’s nothing I can do about it.”

“If I were to go to the shore some night with you do you think I could see your rock people too?”

“If I went to the beach one night with you, do you think I could see your rock people too?”

Paul shook his head gravely.

Paul shook his head sadly.

“No, I don’t think you could see my rock people. I’m the only person who can see them. But you could see rock people of your own. You’re one of the kind that can. We’re both that kind. You know, teacher,” he added, squeezing her hand chummily. “Isn’t it splendid to be that kind, teacher?”

“No, I don’t think you could see my rock people. I’m the only one who can see them. But you could see your own rock people. You’re one of those who can. We’re both like that. You know, teacher,” he added, giving her hand a friendly squeeze. “Isn’t it amazing to be one of us, teacher?”

“Splendid,” Anne agreed, gray shining eyes looking down into blue shining ones. Anne and Paul both knew

“Awesome,” Anne agreed, her gray eyes sparkling as she looked down into Paul’s bright blue ones. Anne and Paul both knew

“How fair the realm
Imagination opens to the view,”

“How beautiful the world
Imagination reveals to us,”

and both knew the way to that happy land. There the rose of joy bloomed immortal by dale and stream; clouds never darkened the sunny sky; sweet bells never jangled out of tune; and kindred spirits abounded. The knowledge of that land’s geography . . . “east o’ the sun, west o’ the moon” . . . is priceless lore, not to be bought in any market place. It must be the gift of the good fairies at birth and the years can never deface it or take it away. It is better to possess it, living in a garret, than to be the inhabitant of palaces without it.

and both knew the way to that happy place. There, the rose of joy bloomed forever by valley and stream; clouds never darkened the sunny sky; sweet bells always rang in harmony; and like-minded souls were everywhere. The knowledge of that place’s geography . . . “east of the sun, west of the moon” . . . is invaluable wisdom, not something that can be bought in any marketplace. It must be a gift from the good fairies at birth and the passing years can never ruin it or take it away. It’s better to have it and live in a small room than to live in luxury without it.

The Avonlea graveyard was as yet the grass-grown solitude it had always been. To be sure, the Improvers had an eye on it, and Priscilla Grant had read a paper on cemeteries before the last meeting of the Society. At some future time the Improvers meant to have the lichened, wayward old board fence replaced by a neat wire railing, the grass mown and the leaning monuments straightened up.

The Avonlea graveyard was still the overgrown quiet place it had always been. Of course, the Improvers were keeping an eye on it, and Priscilla Grant had presented a paper on cemeteries at the Society's last meeting. Eventually, the Improvers planned to replace the weathered, crooked old board fence with a neat wire railing, mow the grass, and straighten up the leaning monuments.

Anne put on Matthew’s grave the flowers she had brought for it, and then went over to the little poplar shaded corner where Hester Gray slept. Ever since the day of the spring picnic Anne had put flowers on Hester’s grave when she visited Matthew’s. The evening before she had made a pilgrimage back to the little deserted garden in the woods and brought therefrom some of Hester’s own white roses.

Anne placed the flowers she had brought on Matthew’s grave, then walked over to the small, poplar-shaded area where Hester Gray rested. Ever since the day of the spring picnic, Anne had been bringing flowers to Hester’s grave whenever she visited Matthew’s. The night before, she had returned to the little abandoned garden in the woods and taken some of Hester’s own white roses from there.

“I thought you would like them better than any others, dear,” she said softly.

“I thought you would prefer them over any others, dear,” she said gently.

Anne was still sitting there when a shadow fell over the grass and she looked up to see Mrs. Allan. They walked home together.

Anne was still sitting there when a shadow fell over the grass, and she looked up to see Mrs. Allan. They walked home together.

Mrs. Allan’s face was not the face of the girlbride whom the minister had brought to Avonlea five years before. It had lost some of its bloom and youthful curves, and there were fine, patient lines about eyes and mouth. A tiny grave in that very cemetery accounted for some of them; and some new ones had come during the recent illness, now happily over, of her little son. But Mrs. Allan’s dimples were as sweet and sudden as ever, her eyes as clear and bright and true; and what her face lacked of girlish beauty was now more than atoned for in added tenderness and strength.

Mrs. Allan’s face was no longer that of the young bride the minister had brought to Avonlea five years earlier. It had lost some of its youthful glow and curves, and there were fine, patient lines around her eyes and mouth. A tiny grave in that very cemetery explained some of them; and some new ones had appeared during her little son’s recent illness, which was thankfully now over. But Mrs. Allan's dimples were still as sweet and surprising as ever, her eyes as clear, bright, and genuine; and what her face lacked in youthful beauty was more than compensated for by its added tenderness and strength.

“I suppose you are looking forward to your vacation, Anne?” she said, as they left the graveyard.

“I guess you’re excited about your vacation, Anne?” she said as they left the graveyard.

Anne nodded.

Anne agreed.

“Yes. . . . I could roll the word as a sweet morsel under my tongue. I think the summer is going to be lovely. For one thing, Mrs. Morgan is coming to the Island in July and Priscilla is going to bring her up. I feel one of my old ‘thrills’ at the mere thought.”

“Yes... I could savor the word like a sweet treat. I think this summer is going to be wonderful. For one thing, Mrs. Morgan is coming to the Island in July, and Priscilla is going to bring her up. Just thinking about it gives me one of those familiar ‘thrills.’”

“I hope you’ll have a good time, Anne. You’ve worked very hard this past year and you have succeeded.”

“I hope you have a great time, Anne. You’ve worked really hard this past year and you’ve succeeded.”

“Oh, I don’t know. I’ve come so far short in so many things. I haven’t done what I meant to do when I began to teach last fall. I haven’t lived up to my ideals.”

“Oh, I don’t know. I’ve fallen short in so many areas. I haven’t accomplished what I intended when I started teaching last fall. I haven’t lived up to my ideals.”

“None of us ever do,” said Mrs. Allan with a sigh. “But then, Anne, you know what Lowell says, ‘Not failure but low aim is crime.’ We must have ideals and try to live up to them, even if we never quite succeed. Life would be a sorry business without them. With them it’s grand and great. Hold fast to your ideals, Anne.”

“None of us ever do,” Mrs. Allan said with a sigh. “But, Anne, you know what Lowell says, ‘Not failure but low aim is the real problem.’ We need to have ideals and aim to live by them, even if we never fully succeed. Life would be pretty bleak without them. With them, it’s amazing and inspiring. Hold on to your ideals, Anne.”

“I shall try. But I have to let go most of my theories,” said Anne, laughing a little. “I had the most beautiful set of theories you ever knew when I started out as a schoolma’am, but every one of them has failed me at some pinch or another.”

“I'll give it a shot. But I have to let go of most of my theories,” said Anne, laughing a bit. “I had the most beautiful set of theories you ever saw when I first became a teacher, but every single one of them has let me down at some point or another.”

“Even the theory on corporal punishment,” teased Mrs. Allan.

“Even the theory on physical punishment,” joked Mrs. Allan.

But Anne flushed.

But Anne turned red.

“I shall never forgive myself for whipping Anthony.”

“I will never forgive myself for whipping Anthony.”

“Nonsense, dear, he deserved it. And it agreed with him. You have had no trouble with him since and he has come to think there’s nobody like you. Your kindness won his love after the idea that a ‘girl was no good’ was rooted out of his stubborn mind.”

“Nonsense, dear, he deserved it. And it worked for him. You haven’t had any trouble with him since, and he now believes there’s no one like you. Your kindness won his love after the notion that a ‘girl was no good’ was removed from his stubborn mind.”

“He may have deserved it, but that is not the point. If I had calmly and deliberately decided to whip him because I thought it a just punishment for him I would not feel over it as I do. But the truth is, Mrs. Allan, that I just flew into a temper and whipped him because of that. I wasn’t thinking whether it was just or unjust . . . even if he hadn’t deserved it I’d have done it just the same. That is what humiliates me.”

“He might have deserved it, but that's not the point. If I had calmly and deliberately chosen to punish him because I thought it was fair, I wouldn't feel the way I do. But the truth is, Mrs. Allan, I just lost my temper and punished him out of anger. I wasn’t even considering whether it was fair or unfair… even if he didn't deserve it, I would have done it anyway. That’s what makes me feel so embarrassed.”

“Well, we all make mistakes, dear, so just put it behind you. We should regret our mistakes and learn from them, but never carry them forward into the future with us. There goes Gilbert Blythe on his wheel . . . home for his vacation too, I suppose. How are you and he getting on with your studies?”

“Well, we all mess up sometimes, so just move on. We should regret our mistakes and learn from them, but we shouldn't carry them into the future. There goes Gilbert Blythe on his bike... heading home for his vacation too, I guess. How are you and he doing with your studies?”

“Pretty well. We plan to finish the Virgil tonight . . . there are only twenty lines to do. Then we are not going to study any more until September.”

“Pretty well. We plan to finish the Virgil tonight . . . there are only twenty lines left to do. Then we aren't going to study anymore until September.”

“Do you think you will ever get to college?”

“Do you think you’ll ever go to college?”

“Oh, I don’t know.” Anne looked dreamily afar to the opal-tinted horizon. “Marilla’s eyes will never be much better than they are now, although we are so thankful to think that they will not get worse. And then there are the twins . . . somehow I don’t believe their uncle will ever really send for them. Perhaps college may be around the bend in the road, but I haven’t got to the bend yet and I don’t think much about it lest I might grow discontented.”

“Oh, I don’t know.” Anne looked dreamily into the distance at the opal-tinted horizon. “Marilla’s eyes will probably never get any better than they are now, although we’re thankful that they won't get worse. And then there are the twins... I just don’t believe their uncle will actually send for them. College might be just around the corner, but I haven’t reached that corner yet, and I try not to think about it too much or I might end up feeling discontented.”

“Well, I should like to see you go to college, Anne; but if you never do, don’t be discontented about it. We make our own lives wherever we are, after all . . . college can only help us to do it more easily. They are broad or narrow according to what we put into them, not what we get out. Life is rich and full here . . . everywhere . . . if we can only learn how to open our whole hearts to its richness and fulness.”

“Well, I would love to see you go to college, Anne; but if you never do, don’t be unhappy about it. We create our own lives wherever we are, after all... college can just make it a bit easier. Those experiences are broad or narrow based on what we put into them, not what we get out of them. Life is rich and full here... everywhere... if we can just learn how to open our hearts to its richness and fullness.”

“I think I understand what you mean,” said Anne thoughtfully, “and I know I have so much to feel thankful for . . . oh, so much . . . my work, and Paul Irving, and the dear twins, and all my friends. Do you know, Mrs. Allan, I’m so thankful for friendship. It beautifies life so much.”

“I think I get what you mean,” said Anne thoughtfully, “and I know I have so much to be thankful for... oh, so much... my job, and Paul Irving, and the dear twins, and all my friends. You know, Mrs. Allan, I’m really thankful for friendship. It makes life so much better.”

“True friendship is a very helpful thing indeed,” said Mrs. Allan, “and we should have a very high ideal of it, and never sully it by any failure in truth and sincerity. I fear the name of friendship is often degraded to a kind of intimacy that has nothing of real friendship in it.”

“True friendship is really valuable,” Mrs. Allan said, “and we should hold it to a high standard and never tarnish it with dishonesty or insincerity. I worry that the term friendship is often used to describe a closeness that lacks any real substance.”

“Yes . . . like Gertie Pye’s and Julia Bell’s. They are very intimate and go everywhere together; but Gertie is always saying nasty things of Julia behind her back and everybody thinks she is jealous of her because she is always so pleased when anybody criticizes Julia. I think it is desecration to call that friendship. If we have friends we should look only for the best in them and give them the best that is in us, don’t you think? Then friendship would be the most beautiful thing in the world.”

“Yes... like Gertie Pye and Julia Bell. They’re really close and do everything together, but Gertie is always saying mean things about Julia behind her back, and everyone thinks she’s jealous because she gets so happy when someone criticizes Julia. I think it's a shame to call that friendship. If we have friends, we should focus only on their best qualities and show them the best of ourselves, don’t you think? Then friendship would be the most beautiful thing in the world.”

“Friendship is very beautiful,” smiled Mrs. Allan, “but some day . . .”

“Friendship is really beautiful,” smiled Mrs. Allan, “but someday . . .”

Then she paused abruptly. In the delicate, white-browed face beside her, with its candid eyes and mobile features, there was still far more of the child than of the woman. Anne’s heart so far harbored only dreams of friendship and ambition, and Mrs. Allan did not wish to brush the bloom from her sweet unconsciousness. So she left her sentence for the future years to finish.

Then she suddenly stopped. In the delicate, fair-skinned face next to her, with its honest eyes and expressive features, there was still much more of a child than a woman. Anne’s heart was still full of dreams of friendship and ambition, and Mrs. Allan didn’t want to spoil her sweet innocence. So she left her sentence for the future to complete.

XVI
The Substance of Things Hoped For

“Anne,” said Davy appealingly, scrambling up on the shiny, leather-covered sofa in the Green Gables kitchen, where Anne sat, reading a letter, “Anne, I’m awful hungry. You’ve no idea.”

“Anne,” Davy said earnestly, climbing onto the shiny, leather couch in the Green Gables kitchen where Anne was reading a letter, “Anne, I’m really hungry. You have no idea.”

“I’ll get you a piece of bread and butter in a minute,” said Anne absently. Her letter evidently contained some exciting news, for her cheeks were as pink as the roses on the big bush outside, and her eyes were as starry as only Anne’s eyes could be.

“I’ll get you a piece of bread and butter in a minute,” Anne said absentmindedly. Her letter clearly had some thrilling news, as her cheeks were as pink as the roses on the large bush outside, and her eyes sparkled like only Anne’s could.

“But I ain’t bread and butter hungry,” said Davy in a disgusted tone. “I’m plum cake hungry.”

“But I’m not just hungry for bread and butter,” Davy said with a disgusted tone. “I’m starving for plum cake.”

“Oh,” laughed Anne, laying down her letter and putting her arm about Davy to give him a squeeze, “that’s a kind of hunger that can be endured very comfortably, Davy-boy. You know it’s one of Marilla’s rules that you can’t have anything but bread and butter between meals.”

“Oh,” laughed Anne, setting aside her letter and wrapping her arm around Davy for a squeeze, “that’s a type of hunger you can handle quite easily, Davy-boy. You know one of Marilla’s rules is that you can only have bread and butter between meals.”

“Well, gimme a piece then . . . please.”

“Well, give me a piece then . . . please.”

Davy had been at last taught to say “please,” but he generally tacked it on as an afterthought. He looked with approval at the generous slice Anne presently brought to him. “You always put such a nice lot of butter on it, Anne. Marilla spreads it pretty thin. It slips down a lot easier when there’s plenty of butter.”

Davy had finally learned to say “please,” but he usually added it as an afterthought. He looked approvingly at the generous slice Anne brought him. “You always put a good amount of butter on it, Anne. Marilla spreads it pretty thin. It goes down a lot easier when there’s plenty of butter.”

The slice “slipped down” with tolerable ease, judging from its rapid disappearance. Davy slid head first off the sofa, turned a double somersault on the rug, and then sat up and announced decidedly,

The slice “slipped down” pretty easily, considering how quickly it vanished. Davy slid off the sofa headfirst, did a double somersault on the rug, and then sat up and declared confidently,

“Anne, I’ve made up my mind about heaven. I don’t want to go there.”

“Anne, I’ve decided about heaven. I don’t want to go there.”

“Why not?” asked Anne gravely.

“Why not?” Anne asked seriously.

“Cause heaven is in Simon Fletcher’s garret, and I don’t like Simon Fletcher.”

“Because heaven is in Simon Fletcher’s attic, and I don’t like Simon Fletcher.”

“Heaven in . . . Simon Fletcher’s garret!” gasped Anne, too amazed even to laugh. “Davy Keith, whatever put such an extraordinary idea into your head?”

“Heaven in . . . Simon Fletcher’s attic!” gasped Anne, so amazed she couldn't even laugh. “Davy Keith, what gave you such a crazy idea?”

“Milty Boulter says that’s where it is. It was last Sunday in Sunday School. The lesson was about Elijah and Elisha, and I up and asked Miss Rogerson where heaven was. Miss Rogerson looked awful offended. She was cross anyhow, because when she’d asked us what Elijah left Elisha when he went to heaven Milty Boulter said, ‘His old clo’es,’ and us fellows all laughed before we thought. I wish you could think first and do things afterwards, ’cause then you wouldn’t do them. But Milty didn’t mean to be disrespeckful. He just couldn’t think of the name of the thing. Miss Rogerson said heaven was where God was and I wasn’t to ask questions like that. Milty nudged me and said in a whisper, ‘Heaven’s in Uncle Simon’s garret and I’ll esplain about it on the road home.’ So when we was coming home he esplained. Milty’s a great hand at esplaining things. Even if he don’t know anything about a thing he’ll make up a lot of stuff and so you get it esplained all the same. His mother is Mrs. Simon’s sister and he went with her to the funeral when his cousin, Jane Ellen, died. The minister said she’d gone to heaven, though Milty says she was lying right before them in the coffin. But he s’posed they carried the coffin to the garret afterwards. Well, when Milty and his mother went upstairs after it was all over to get her bonnet he asked her where heaven was that Jane Ellen had gone to, and she pointed right to the ceiling and said, ‘Up there.’ Milty knew there wasn’t anything but the garret over the ceiling, so that’s how he found out. And he’s been awful scared to go to his Uncle Simon’s ever since.”

“Milty Boulter says that’s where it is. It was last Sunday in Sunday School. The lesson was about Elijah and Elisha, and I asked Miss Rogerson where heaven was. Miss Rogerson looked really offended. She was upset anyway because when she asked us what Elijah left Elisha when he went to heaven, Milty Boulter said, ‘His old clothes,’ and we all laughed before we thought. I wish you could think first and act later, because then you wouldn’t do things like that. But Milty didn’t mean to be disrespectful. He just couldn’t remember what it was called. Miss Rogerson said heaven was where God was and I wasn’t supposed to ask questions like that. Milty nudged me and whispered, ‘Heaven’s in Uncle Simon’s attic and I’ll explain about it on the way home.’ So when we were coming home, he explained. Milty’s really good at explaining things. Even if he doesn’t know much about a topic, he’ll make up a lot of stuff so you still get an explanation. His mom is Mrs. Simon’s sister, and he went with her to the funeral when his cousin, Jane Ellen, died. The minister said she’d gone to heaven, though Milty says she was lying right there in the coffin. But he figured they took the coffin to the attic afterwards. Well, when Milty and his mom went upstairs after it was all over to get her hat, he asked her where heaven was that Jane Ellen had gone to, and she pointed right to the ceiling and said, ‘Up there.’ Milty knew there wasn’t anything but the attic above the ceiling, so that’s how he found out. And he’s been really scared to go to his Uncle Simon’s ever since.”

Anne took Davy on her knee and did her best to straighten out this theological tangle also. She was much better fitted for the task than Marilla, for she remembered her own childhood and had an instinctive understanding of the curious ideas that seven-year-olds sometimes get about matters that are, of course, very plain and simple to grown up people. She had just succeeded in convincing Davy that heaven was not in Simon Fletcher’s garret when Marilla came in from the garden, where she and Dora had been picking peas. Dora was an industrious little soul and never happier than when “helping” in various small tasks suited to her chubby fingers. She fed chickens, picked up chips, wiped dishes, and ran errands galore. She was neat, faithful and observant; she never had to be told how to do a thing twice and never forgot any of her little duties. Davy, on the other hand, was rather heedless and forgetful; but he had the born knack of winning love, and even yet Anne and Marilla liked him the better.

Anne lifted Davy onto her lap and tried to untangle this religious confusion. She was much better suited for the job than Marilla because she remembered her own childhood and had an instinctive understanding of the odd ideas that seven-year-olds often have about things that are, of course, very straightforward to adults. She had just managed to convince Davy that heaven was not in Simon Fletcher’s attic when Marilla came in from the garden, where she and Dora had been picking peas. Dora was a hardworking little girl and was never happier than when she was “helping” with various small tasks suited to her chubby fingers. She fed chickens, picked up sticks, wiped dishes, and ran all sorts of errands. She was neat, reliable, and observant; she never needed to be told how to do something twice and never forgot any of her little responsibilities. Davy, on the other hand, was somewhat careless and forgetful; but he had a natural ability to win affection, and even now Anne and Marilla preferred him.

While Dora proudly shelled the peas and Davy made boats of the pods, with masts of matches and sails of paper, Anne told Marilla about the wonderful contents of her letter.

While Dora proudly shelled the peas and Davy made boats out of the pods, using matches for masts and paper for sails, Anne told Marilla about the amazing things in her letter.

“Oh, Marilla, what do you think? I’ve had a letter from Priscilla and she says that Mrs. Morgan is on the Island, and that if it is fine Thursday they are going to drive up to Avonlea and will reach here about twelve. They will spend the afternoon with us and go to the hotel at White Sands in the evening, because some of Mrs. Morgan’s American friends are staying there. Oh, Marilla, isn’t it wonderful? I can hardly believe I’m not dreaming.”

“Oh, Marilla, guess what? I got a letter from Priscilla, and she says that Mrs. Morgan is on the Island. If the weather is nice on Thursday, they’re planning to drive up to Avonlea and should be here around noon. They’ll spend the afternoon with us and then head to the hotel at White Sands in the evening since some of Mrs. Morgan’s American friends are staying there. Oh, Marilla, isn’t that amazing? I can hardly believe it’s real.”

“I daresay Mrs. Morgan is a lot like other people,” said Marilla drily, although she did feel a trifle excited herself. Mrs. Morgan was a famous woman and a visit from her was no commonplace occurrence. “They’ll be here to dinner, then?”

“I would say Mrs. Morgan is a lot like everyone else,” Marilla said dryly, although she felt a bit excited herself. Mrs. Morgan was a well-known woman, and a visit from her wasn’t something that happened every day. “So they’ll be here for dinner, then?”

“Yes; and oh, Marilla, may I cook every bit of the dinner myself? I want to feel that I can do something for the author of ‘The Rosebud Garden,’ if it is only to cook a dinner for her. You won’t mind, will you?”

“Yeah; and oh, Marilla, can I cook the whole dinner myself? I want to feel like I’m doing something for the author of ‘The Rosebud Garden,’ even if it's just making dinner for her. You don't mind, do you?”

“Goodness, I’m not so fond of stewing over a hot fire in July that it would vex me very much to have someone else do it. You’re quite welcome to the job.”

“Honestly, I’m not so keen on boiling away over a hot fire in July that it would bother me at all to have someone else do it. You’re totally welcome to the task.”

“Oh, thank you,” said Anne, as if Marilla had just conferred a tremendous favor, “I’ll make out the menu this very night.”

“Oh, thank you,” said Anne, as if Marilla had just done her a huge favor, “I’ll plan the menu tonight.”

“You’d better not try to put on too much style,” warned Marilla, a little alarmed by the high-flown sound of ‘menu.’ “You’ll likely come to grief if you do.”

“You’d better not try to get too fancy,” warned Marilla, a bit worried by the posh sound of ‘menu.’ “You’ll probably end up in trouble if you do.”

“Oh, I’m not going to put on any ‘style,’ if you mean trying to do or have things we don’t usually have on festal occasions,” assured Anne. “That would be affectation, and, although I know I haven’t as much sense and steadiness as a girl of seventeen and a schoolteacher ought to have, I’m not so silly as that. But I want to have everything as nice and dainty as possible. Davy-boy, don’t leave those peapods on the back stairs . . . someone might slip on them. I’ll have a light soup to begin with . . . you know I can make lovely cream-of-onion soup . . . and then a couple of roast fowls. I’ll have the two white roosters. I have real affection for those roosters and they’ve been pets ever since the gray hen hatched out just the two of them . . . little balls of yellow down. But I know they would have to be sacrificed sometime, and surely there couldn’t be a worthier occasion than this. But oh, Marilla, I cannot kill them . . . not even for Mrs. Morgan’s sake. I’ll have to ask John Henry Carter to come over and do it for me.”

“Oh, I’m not going to act all ‘fancy’ if you mean trying to do things we don’t usually do for special occasions,” Anne assured. “That would just be pretentious, and while I know I don’t have as much common sense and steadiness as a girl of seventeen and a schoolteacher should have, I’m not that foolish. But I want everything to be as nice and lovely as possible. Davy-boy, don’t leave those peapods on the back stairs... someone might trip on them. I’ll start with a light soup... you know I can make delicious cream-of-onion soup... and then I’ll do a couple of roasted chickens. I’ll use the two white roosters. I have a real fondness for those roosters, and they’ve been pets ever since the gray hen hatched just the two of them... little fluffy balls of yellow down. But I know they would have to be sacrificed eventually, and surely there couldn’t be a better occasion than this one. But oh, Marilla, I cannot kill them... not even for Mrs. Morgan’s sake. I’ll have to ask John Henry Carter to come over and do it for me.”

“I’ll do it,” volunteered Davy, “if Marilla’ll hold them by the legs, ’cause I guess it’d take both my hands to manage the axe. It’s awful jolly fun to see them hopping about after their heads are cut off.”

“I’ll do it,” Davy offered, “if Marilla will hold them by the legs, because I think I’ll need both my hands to handle the axe. It’s really fun to watch them hopping around after their heads are chopped off.”

“Then I’ll have peas and beans and creamed potatoes and a lettuce salad, for vegetables,” resumed Anne, “and for dessert, lemon pie with whipped cream, and coffee and cheese and lady fingers. I’ll make the pies and lady fingers tomorrow and do up my white muslin dress. And I must tell Diana tonight, for she’ll want to do up hers. Mrs. Morgan’s heroines are nearly always dressed in white muslin, and Diana and I have always resolved that that was what we would wear if we ever met her. It will be such a delicate compliment, don’t you think? Davy, dear, you mustn’t poke peapods into the cracks of the floor. I must ask Mr. and Mrs. Allan and Miss Stacy to dinner, too, for they’re all very anxious to meet Mrs. Morgan. It’s so fortunate she’s coming while Miss Stacy is here. Davy dear, don’t sail the peapods in the water bucket . . . go out to the trough. Oh, I do hope it will be fine Thursday, and I think it will, for Uncle Abe said last night when he called at Mr. Harrison’s, that it was going to rain most of this week.”

“Then I’ll have peas and beans and mashed potatoes and a lettuce salad for veggies,” continued Anne, “and for dessert, lemon pie with whipped cream, plus coffee, cheese, and ladyfingers. I’ll make the pies and ladyfingers tomorrow and prepare my white muslin dress. I need to tell Diana tonight because she’ll want to fix hers too. Mrs. Morgan’s heroines are almost always in white muslin, and Diana and I have always agreed that’s what we would wear if we ever met her. It’ll be such a nice compliment, don’t you think? Davy, sweetie, you mustn’t shove peapods into the cracks of the floor. I should invite Mr. and Mrs. Allan and Miss Stacy to dinner as well since they’re all really excited to meet Mrs. Morgan. It’s so lucky she’s coming while Miss Stacy is here. Davy dear, don’t sail the peapods in the water bucket… go out to the trough. Oh, I really hope it’ll be nice on Thursday, and I think it will, because Uncle Abe said last night when he was at Mr. Harrison’s that it was going to rain most of this week.”

“That’s a good sign,” agreed Marilla.

“That’s a good sign,” Marilla agreed.

Anne ran across to Orchard Slope that evening to tell the news to Diana, who was also very much excited over it, and they discussed the matter in the hammock swung under the big willow in the Barry garden.

Anne dashed over to Orchard Slope that evening to share the news with Diana, who was just as excited about it, and they talked it over in the hammock hanging under the big willow in the Barry garden.

“Oh, Anne, mayn’t I help you cook the dinner?” implored Diana. “You know I can make splendid lettuce salad.”

“Oh, Anne, can I help you cook dinner?” Diana pleaded. “You know I can make a great lettuce salad.”

“Indeed you, may” said Anne unselfishly. “And I shall want you to help me decorate too. I mean to have the parlor simply a bower of blossoms . . . and the dining table is to be adorned with wild roses. Oh, I do hope everything will go smoothly. Mrs. Morgan’s heroines never get into scrapes or are taken at a disadvantage, and they are always so selfpossessed and such good housekeepers. They seem to be born good housekeepers. You remember that Gertrude in ‘Edgewood Days’ kept house for her father when she was only eight years old. When I was eight years old I hardly knew how to do a thing except bring up children. Mrs. Morgan must be an authority on girls when she has written so much about them, and I do want her to have a good opinion of us. I’ve imagined it all out a dozen different ways . . . what she’ll look like, and what she’ll say, and what I’ll say. And I’m so anxious about my nose. There are seven freckles on it, as you can see. They came at the A.V.I S. picnic, when I went around in the sun without my hat. I suppose it’s ungrateful of me to worry over them, when I should be thankful they’re not spread all over my face as they once were; but I do wish they hadn’t come . . . all Mrs. Morgan’s heroines have such perfect complexions. I can’t recall a freckled one among them.”

“Sure, you may,” Anne said generously. “And I’ll need your help with the decorating too. I want the parlor to be a bower of blossoms... and the dining table will be decorated with wild roses. Oh, I really hope everything goes well. Mrs. Morgan’s heroines never get into trouble or find themselves at a disadvantage, and they’re always so composed and excellent at managing a home. They seem to be born great housekeepers. Remember that Gertrude in ‘Edgewood Days’ who kept house for her dad when she was just eight? When I was eight, I barely knew how to do anything except take care of kids. Mrs. Morgan must really know a lot about girls since she’s written so much about them, and I want her to think well of us. I’ve imagined it all out in a dozen different ways... what she’ll look like, what she’ll say, and what I’ll say. I’m also really worried about my nose. There are seven freckles on it, as you can see. They showed up at the A.V.I S. picnic when I was out in the sun without my hat. I guess it’s ungrateful of me to worry about them when I should be thankful they’re not all over my face like they used to be; but I do wish they hadn’t appeared... all of Mrs. Morgan’s heroines have such perfect skin. I can’t think of a single one who has freckles.”

“Yours are not very noticeable,” comforted Diana. “Try a little lemon juice on them tonight.”

“Yours aren’t very noticeable,” Diana reassured. “Try some lemon juice on them tonight.”

The next day Anne made her pies and lady fingers, did up her muslin dress, and swept and dusted every room in the house . . . a quite unnecessary proceeding, for Green Gables was, as usual, in the apple pie order dear to Marilla’s heart. But Anne felt that a fleck of dust would be a desecration in a house that was to be honored by a visit from Charlotte E. Morgan. She even cleaned out the “catch-all” closet under the stairs, although there was not the remotest possibility of Mrs. Morgan’s seeing its interior.

The next day, Anne made her pies and ladyfingers, tidied up her muslin dress, and swept and dusted every room in the house . . . completely unnecessary since Green Gables was, as always, in the neat and tidy condition that Marilla loved. But Anne thought even a speck of dust would be disrespectful in a house that was going to host a visit from Charlotte E. Morgan. She even cleaned out the “catch-all” closet under the stairs, even though there was no chance Mrs. Morgan would see inside it.

“But I want to feel that it is in perfect order, even if she isn’t to see it,” Anne told Marilla. “You know, in her book ‘Golden Keys,’ she makes her two heroines Alice and Louisa take for their motto that verse of Longfellow’s,

“But I want to feel that it’s all sorted out, even if she doesn’t see it,” Anne told Marilla. “You know, in her book ‘Golden Keys,’ she has her two heroines Alice and Louisa adopt that verse by Longfellow as their motto,

‘In the elder days of art
    Builders wrought with greatest care
Each minute and unseen part,
    For the gods see everywhere,’

‘In the old days of art
    Builders crafted with utmost care
Each tiny and hidden part,
    For the gods see everything,’

and so they always kept their cellar stairs scrubbed and never forgot to sweep under the beds. I should have a guilty conscience if I thought this closet was in disorder when Mrs. Morgan was in the house. Ever since we read ‘Golden Keys,’ last April, Diana and I have taken that verse for our motto too.”

and so they always made sure their cellar stairs were clean and never forgot to sweep under the beds. I would feel guilty if I thought this closet was messy when Mrs. Morgan was around. Ever since we read ‘Golden Keys’ last April, Diana and I have adopted that verse as our motto too.

That night John Henry Carter and Davy between them contrived to execute the two white roosters, and Anne dressed them, the usually distasteful task glorified in her eyes by the destination of the plump birds.

That night, John Henry Carter and Davy managed to kill the two white roosters, and Anne prepared them, a task she usually found unpleasant but felt was elevated by the purpose of the plump birds.

“I don’t like picking fowls,” she told Marilla, “but isn’t it fortunate we don’t have to put our souls into what our hands may be doing? I’ve been picking chickens with my hands but in imagination I’ve been roaming the Milky Way.”

“I don’t like plucking chickens,” she told Marilla, “but isn’t it lucky we don’t have to invest our souls in what our hands are doing? I’ve been picking chickens with my hands but in my mind, I’ve been wandering the Milky Way.”

“I thought you’d scattered more feathers over the floor than usual,” remarked Marilla.

“I thought you’d spread more feathers across the floor than usual,” Marilla said.

Then Anne put Davy to bed and made him promise that he would behave perfectly the next day.

Then Anne put Davy to bed and made him promise that he would be on his best behavior the next day.

“If I’m as good as good can be all day tomorrow will you let me be just as bad as I like all the next day?” asked Davy.

“If I’m as good as I can be all day tomorrow, will you let me be just as bad as I want all the next day?” asked Davy.

“I couldn’t do that,” said Anne discreetly, “but I’ll take you and Dora for a row in the flat right to the bottom of the pond, and we’ll go ashore on the sandhills and have a picnic.”

“I can’t do that,” Anne said quietly, “but I’ll take you and Dora for a row in the flat all the way to the bottom of the pond, and we’ll go ashore on the sandhills and have a picnic.”

“It’s a bargain,” said Davy. “I’ll be good, you bet. I meant to go over to Mr. Harrison’s and fire peas from my new popgun at Ginger but another day’ll do as well. I espect it will be just like Sunday, but a picnic at the shore’ll make up for that.”

“It’s a deal,” said Davy. “I promise I’ll behave. I was planning to go over to Mr. Harrison’s and shoot peas at Ginger with my new popgun, but I can do that another day. I expect it’ll be just like Sunday, but a picnic at the beach will make up for that.”

XVII
A Chapter of Accidents

Anne woke three times in the night and made pilgrimages to her window to make sure that Uncle Abe’s prediction was not coming true. Finally the morning dawned pearly and lustrous in a sky full of silver sheen and radiance, and the wonderful day had arrived.

Anne woke up three times during the night and went to her window to check if Uncle Abe's prediction was coming true. Finally, morning arrived, bright and shiny in a sky filled with silver sheen and glow, and the amazing day had come.

Diana appeared soon after breakfast, with a basket of flowers over one arm and her muslin dress over the other . . . for it would not do to don it until all the dinner preparations were completed. Meanwhile she wore her afternoon pink print and a lawn apron fearfully and wonderfully ruffled and frilled; and very neat and pretty and rosy she was.

Diana showed up shortly after breakfast, holding a basket of flowers in one arm and her muslin dress draped over the other arm . . . because she couldn’t wear it until all the dinner preparations were finished. In the meantime, she had on her afternoon pink print dress and a lawn apron that was beautifully ruffled and frilled; she looked very neat, pretty, and rosy.

“You look simply sweet,” said Anne admiringly.

"You look really sweet," Anne said with admiration.

Diana sighed.

Diana let out a sigh.

“But I’ve had to let out every one of my dresses again. I weigh four pounds more than I did in July. Anne, where will this end? Mrs. Morgan’s heroines are all tall and slender.”

“But I’ve had to let out every one of my dresses again. I weigh four pounds more than I did in July. Anne, where will this end? Mrs. Morgan’s heroines are all tall and slim.”

“Well, let’s forget our troubles and think of our mercies,” said Anne gaily. “Mrs. Allan says that whenever we think of anything that is a trial to us we should also think of something nice that we can set over against it. If you are slightly too plump you’ve got the dearest dimples; and if I have a freckled nose the shape of it is all right. Do you think the lemon juice did any good?”

“Well, let’s put our problems aside and focus on our blessings,” said Anne cheerfully. “Mrs. Allan says that whenever we face something tough, we should also think of something good to balance it out. If you’re a little too chubby, at least you have the cutest dimples; and if my nose is freckled, the shape is still fine. Do you think the lemon juice helped at all?”

“Yes, I really think it did,” said Diana critically; and, much elated, Anne led the way to the garden, which was full of airy shadows and wavering golden lights.

“Yes, I definitely think it did,” said Diana critically; and, feeling quite happy, Anne led the way to the garden, which was filled with light shadows and shimmering golden rays.

“We’ll decorate the parlor first. We have plenty of time, for Priscilla said they’d be here about twelve or half past at the latest, so we’ll have dinner at one.”

“We’ll decorate the living room first. We have plenty of time because Priscilla said they’d arrive around twelve or at the latest, half past, so we’ll have dinner at one.”

There may have been two happier and more excited girls somewhere in Canada or the United States at that moment, but I doubt it. Every snip of the scissors, as rose and peony and bluebell fell, seemed to chirp, “Mrs. Morgan is coming today.” Anne wondered how Mr. Harrison could go on placidly mowing hay in the field across the lane, just as if nothing were going to happen.

There might have been two girls somewhere in Canada or the United States who were happier and more excited at that moment, but I doubt it. Every cut of the scissors, as rose, peony, and bluebell dropped, seemed to chirp, “Mrs. Morgan is coming today.” Anne wondered how Mr. Harrison could keep mowing hay in the field across the lane, as if nothing was about to happen.

The parlor at Green Gables was a rather severe and gloomy apartment, with rigid horsehair furniture, stiff lace curtains, and white antimacassars that were always laid at a perfectly correct angle, except at such times as they clung to unfortunate people’s buttons. Even Anne had never been able to infuse much grace into it, for Marilla would not permit any alterations. But it is wonderful what flowers can accomplish if you give them a fair chance; when Anne and Diana finished with the room you would not have recognized it.

The parlor at Green Gables was a pretty stark and dreary room, with stiff horsehair furniture, rigid lace curtains, and white antimacassars that were always placed at a perfectly proper angle, except when they got caught on people's buttons. Even Anne couldn't bring much charm to it, since Marilla wouldn't allow any changes. But it's amazing what flowers can do if you let them have a shot; when Anne and Diana were done with the room, you wouldn’t have recognized it.

A great blue bowlful of snowballs overflowed on the polished table. The shining black mantelpiece was heaped with roses and ferns. Every shelf of the what-not held a sheaf of bluebells; the dark corners on either side of the grate were lighted up with jars full of glowing crimson peonies, and the grate itself was aflame with yellow poppies. All this splendor and color, mingled with the sunshine falling through the honeysuckle vines at the windows in a leafy riot of dancing shadows over walls and floor, made of the usually dismal little room the veritable “bower” of Anne’s imagination, and even extorted a tribute of admiration from Marilla, who came in to criticize and remained to praise.

A huge blue bowl filled with snowballs overflowed on the polished table. The shiny black mantel was piled high with roses and ferns. Each shelf of the what-not held a bunch of bluebells; the dark corners on either side of the fireplace were lit up with jars full of glowing red peonies, and the fireplace itself was ablaze with yellow poppies. All this splendor and color, mixed with the sunshine streaming through the honeysuckle vines at the windows, created a lively dance of shadows over the walls and floor, turning the usually dreary little room into the true “bower” of Anne’s imagination, even earning a nod of admiration from Marilla, who came in to criticize but ended up praising.

“Now, we must set the table,” said Anne, in the tone of a priestess about to perform some sacred rite in honor of a divinity. “We’ll have a big vaseful of wild roses in the center and one single rose in front of everybody’s plate—and a special bouquet of rosebuds only by Mrs. Morgan’s—an allusion to ‘The Rosebud Garden’ you know.”

“Now, we need to set the table,” said Anne, with the seriousness of a priestess about to conduct a sacred ceremony. “We’ll have a big vase full of wild roses in the center and one single rose in front of each person’s plate—and a special bouquet of rosebuds just for Mrs. Morgan—a nod to ‘The Rosebud Garden,’ you know.”

The table was set in the sitting room, with Marilla’s finest linen and the best china, glass, and silver. You may be perfectly certain that every article placed on it was polished or scoured to the highest possible perfection of gloss and glitter.

The table was set in the living room, with Marilla’s finest linens and the best china, glass, and silver. You can be sure that every item on it was polished or scrubbed to the highest level of shine and sparkle.

Then the girls tripped out to the kitchen, which was filled with appetizing odors emanating from the oven, where the chickens were already sizzling splendidly. Anne prepared the potatoes and Diana got the peas and beans ready. Then, while Diana shut herself into the pantry to compound the lettuce salad, Anne, whose cheeks were already beginning to glow crimson, as much with excitement as from the heat of the fire, prepared the bread sauce for the chickens, minced her onions for the soup, and finally whipped the cream for her lemon pies.

Then the girls hurried into the kitchen, which was filled with delicious smells coming from the oven, where the chickens were already cooking wonderfully. Anne got the potatoes ready while Diana prepared the peas and beans. Then, as Diana closed herself in the pantry to mix the lettuce salad, Anne, whose cheeks were already turning a rosy red from both excitement and the warmth of the fire, made the bread sauce for the chickens, chopped her onions for the soup, and finally whipped the cream for her lemon pies.

And what about Davy all this time? Was he redeeming his promise to be good? He was, indeed. To be sure, he insisted on remaining in the kitchen, for his curiosity wanted to see all that went on. But as he sat quietly in a corner, busily engaged in untying the knots in a piece of herring net he had brought home from his last trip to the shore, nobody objected to this.

And what about Davy all this time? Was he keeping his promise to be good? He was, definitely. He insisted on staying in the kitchen because he was curious about everything happening around him. But as he sat quietly in a corner, focused on untying the knots in a piece of herring net he had brought back from his last trip to the shore, nobody minded.

At half past eleven the lettuce salad was made, the golden circles of the pies were heaped with whipped cream, and everything was sizzling and bubbling that ought to sizzle and bubble.

At 11:30, the lettuce salad was prepared, the golden pies were piled high with whipped cream, and everything that should be sizzling and bubbling was indeed sizzling and bubbling.

“We’d better go and dress now,” said Anne, “for they may be here by twelve. We must have dinner at sharp one, for the soup must be served as soon as it’s done.”

“We should go get ready now,” said Anne, “because they might arrive by noon. We need to have dinner exactly at one, since the soup has to be served as soon as it’s ready.”

Serious indeed were the toilet rites presently performed in the east gable. Anne peered anxiously at her nose and rejoiced to see that its freckles were not at all prominent, thanks either to the lemon juice or to the unusual flush on her cheeks. When they were ready they looked quite as sweet and trim and girlish as ever did any of “Mrs. Morgan’s heroines.”

The bathroom rituals happening in the east gable were quite serious. Anne nervously examined her nose and was glad to see that her freckles were hardly noticeable, either because of the lemon juice or the unusual blush on her cheeks. When they finished getting ready, they looked just as sweet, neat, and youthful as any of "Mrs. Morgan's heroines."

“I do hope I’ll be able to say something once in a while, and not sit like a mute,” said Diana anxiously. “All Mrs. Morgan’s heroines converse so beautifully. But I’m afraid I’ll be tongue-tied and stupid. And I’ll be sure to say ‘I seen.’ I haven’t often said it since Miss Stacy taught here; but in moments of excitement it’s sure to pop out. Anne, if I were to say ‘I seen’ before Mrs. Morgan I’d die of mortification. And it would be almost as bad to have nothing to say.”

“I really hope I can say something once in a while and not just sit there like a mute,” Diana said anxiously. “All of Mrs. Morgan’s heroines talk so beautifully. But I’m worried I’ll be totally tongue-tied and look dumb. And I’ll definitely end up saying ‘I seen.’ I haven't said it much since Miss Stacy taught here, but in moments of excitement, it’s bound to slip out. Anne, if I were to say ‘I seen’ in front of Mrs. Morgan, I'd be mortified. And having nothing to say would be almost as bad.”

“I’m nervous about a good many things,” said Anne, “but I don’t think there is much fear that I won’t be able to talk.”

“I’m nervous about a lot of things,” said Anne, “but I don’t think there’s much to worry about when it comes to talking.”

And, to do her justice, there wasn’t.

And, to be fair to her, there wasn’t.

Anne shrouded her muslin glories in a big apron and went down to concoct her soup. Marilla had dressed herself and the twins, and looked more excited than she had ever been known to look before. At half past twelve the Allans and Miss Stacy came. Everything was going well but Anne was beginning to feel nervous. It was surely time for Priscilla and Mrs. Morgan to arrive. She made frequent trips to the gate and looked as anxiously down the lane as ever her namesake in the Bluebeard story peered from the tower casement.

Anne wrapped her beautiful muslin dress in a big apron and went to make her soup. Marilla had gotten herself and the twins ready and looked more excited than she had ever appeared before. At twelve-thirty, the Allans and Miss Stacy arrived. Everything was going well, but Anne was starting to feel nervous. It was definitely time for Priscilla and Mrs. Morgan to show up. She made several trips to the gate, anxiously scanning the lane, just like her namesake from the Bluebeard story peering out from the tower window.

“Suppose they don’t come at all?” she said piteously.

“What if they don’t come at all?” she said sadly.

“Don’t suppose it. It would be too mean,” said Diana, who, however, was beginning to have uncomfortable misgivings on the subject.

“Don’t think that. It would be too cruel,” said Diana, who, however, was starting to feel uneasy about it.

“Anne,” said Marilla, coming out from the parlor, “Miss Stacy wants to see Miss Barry’s willowware platter.”

“Anne,” Marilla said as she came out of the parlor, “Miss Stacy wants to see Miss Barry’s willowware platter.”

Anne hastened to the sitting room closet to get the platter. She had, in accordance with her promise to Mrs. Lynde, written to Miss Barry of Charlottetown, asking for the loan of it. Miss Barry was an old friend of Anne’s, and she promptly sent the platter out, with a letter exhorting Anne to be very careful of it, for she had paid twenty dollars for it. The platter had served its purpose at the Aid bazaar and had then been returned to the Green Gables closet, for Anne would not trust anybody but herself to take it back to town.

Anne rushed to the sitting room closet to grab the platter. She had, as promised to Mrs. Lynde, written to Miss Barry in Charlottetown, asking to borrow it. Miss Barry was an old friend of Anne's, and she quickly sent the platter back with a note urging Anne to be very careful with it, since she had paid twenty dollars for it. The platter had been used for the Aid bazaar and was then returned to the Green Gables closet because Anne didn't trust anyone else to bring it back to town.

She carried the platter carefully to the front door where her guests were enjoying the cool breeze that blew up from the brook. It was examined and admired; then, just as Anne had taken it back into her own hands, a terrific crash and clatter sounded from the kitchen pantry. Marilla, Diana, and Anne fled out, the latter pausing only long enough to set the precious platter hastily down on the second step of the stairs.

She carefully carried the platter to the front door where her guests were enjoying the cool breeze coming from the brook. It was admired and examined; then, just as Anne was about to take it back, a loud crash and clatter echoed from the kitchen pantry. Marilla, Diana, and Anne rushed out, with Anne only stopping long enough to quickly set the precious platter down on the second step of the stairs.

When they reached the pantry a truly harrowing spectacle met their eyes . . . a guilty looking small boy scrambling down from the table, with his clean print blouse liberally plastered with yellow filling, and on the table the shattered remnants of what had been two brave, becreamed lemon pies.

When they got to the pantry, a truly shocking sight greeted them . . . a guilty-looking little boy climbing down from the table, his clean shirt smeared with yellow filling, and on the table, the broken remains of what had once been two brave, cream-covered lemon pies.

Davy had finished ravelling out his herring net and had wound the twine into a ball. Then he had gone into the pantry to put it up on the shelf above the table, where he already kept a score or so of similar balls, which, so far as could be discovered, served no useful purpose save to yield the joy of possession. Davy had to climb on the table and reach over to the shelf at a dangerous angle . . . something he had been forbidden by Marilla to do, as he had come to grief once before in the experiment. The result in this instance was disastrous. Davy slipped and came sprawling squarely down on the lemon pies. His clean blouse was ruined for that time and the pies for all time. It is, however, an ill wind that blows nobody good, and the pig was eventually the gainer by Davy’s mischance.

Davy had finished unraveling his herring net and had wound the twine into a ball. Then he went into the pantry to put it on the shelf above the table, where he already kept about twenty similar balls, which, as far as anyone could tell, served no useful purpose except for the joy of owning them. Davy had to climb onto the table and reach over to the shelf at a risky angle... something Marilla had forbidden him to do since he had gotten hurt trying it before. This time, the result was disastrous. Davy slipped and fell right onto the lemon pies. His clean shirt was ruined for that day, and the pies were ruined forever. However, it’s a bad situation that doesn't help anyone, and in the end, the pig benefited from Davy’s mishap.

“Davy Keith,” said Marilla, shaking him by the shoulder, “didn’t I forbid you to climb up on that table again? Didn’t I?”

“Davy Keith,” Marilla said, shaking him by the shoulder, “didn’t I tell you not to climb up on that table again? Didn’t I?”

“I forgot,” whimpered Davy. “You’ve told me not to do such an awful lot of things that I can’t remember them all.”

“I forgot,” Davy said with a sniffle. “You’ve told me not to do so many things that I just can’t keep track of them all.”

“Well, you march upstairs and stay there till after dinner. Perhaps you’ll get them sorted out in your memory by that time. No, Anne, never you mind interceding for him. I’m not punishing him because he spoiled your pies . . . that was an accident. I’m punishing him for his disobedience. Go, Davy, I say.”

“Well, you go upstairs and stay there until after dinner. Maybe you'll have figured things out by then. No, Anne, don’t bother trying to defend him. I’m not punishing him because he ruined your pies… that was an accident. I’m punishing him for not listening. Go on, Davy, I said.”

“Ain’t I to have any dinner?” wailed Davy.

“Aren’t I going to have any dinner?” complained Davy.

“You can come down after dinner is over and have yours in the kitchen.”

“You can come down after dinner is done and have yours in the kitchen.”

“Oh, all right,” said Davy, somewhat comforted. “I know Anne’ll save some nice bones for me, won’t you, Anne? ’Cause you know I didn’t mean to fall on the pies. Say, Anne, since they are spoiled can’t I take some of the pieces upstairs with me?”

“Oh, fine,” said Davy, feeling a bit better. “I know Anne will save some good bones for me, right, Anne? Because you know I didn’t mean to fall on the pies. Hey, Anne, since they’re spoiled, can’t I take some of the pieces upstairs with me?”

“No, no lemon pie for you, Master Davy,” said Marilla, pushing him toward the hall.

“No, no lemon pie for you, Master Davy,” said Marilla, nudging him toward the hall.

“What shall we do for dessert?” asked Anne, looking regretfully at the wreck and ruin.

“What are we going to do for dessert?” asked Anne, looking sadly at the mess.

“Get out a crock of strawberry preserves,” said Marilla consolingly. “There’s plenty of whipped cream left in the bowl for it.”

“Get out a jar of strawberry preserves,” said Marilla comfortingly. “There’s a lot of whipped cream left in the bowl to go with it.”

One o’clock came . . . but no Priscilla or Mrs. Morgan. Anne was in an agony. Everything was done to a turn and the soup was just what soup should be, but couldn’t be depended on to remain so for any length of time.

One o'clock came . . . but no Priscilla or Mrs. Morgan. Anne was in agony. Everything was perfectly prepared, and the soup was exactly how it should be, but it couldn’t be relied on to stay that way for long.

“I don’t believe they’re coming after all,” said Marilla crossly.

“I don’t think they’re coming after all,” Marilla said angrily.

Anne and Diana sought comfort in each other’s eyes.

Anne and Diana found comfort in each other's eyes.

At half past one Marilla again emerged from the parlor.

At 1:30, Marilla stepped out of the living room again.

“Girls, we must have dinner. Everybody is hungry and it’s no use waiting any longer. Priscilla and Mrs. Morgan are not coming, that’s plain, and nothing is being improved by waiting.”

“Girls, we have to have dinner. Everyone is hungry and it’s pointless to wait any longer. Priscilla and Mrs. Morgan aren’t coming, that’s obvious, and waiting isn’t helping anything.”

Anne and Diana set about lifting the dinner, with all the zest gone out of the performance.

Anne and Diana started clearing the dinner, but all their enthusiasm had disappeared from the task.

“I don’t believe I’ll be able to eat a mouthful,” said Diana dolefully.

“I don’t think I’ll be able to eat a bite,” said Diana sadly.

“Nor I. But I hope everything will be nice for Miss Stacy’s and Mr. and Mrs. Allan’s sakes,” said Anne listlessly.

“Me neither. But I hope everything will turn out well for Miss Stacy and Mr. and Mrs. Allan,” said Anne without enthusiasm.

When Diana dished the peas she tasted them and a very peculiar expression crossed her face.

When Diana served the peas, she tasted them and a very strange look came over her face.

“Anne, did you put sugar in these peas?”

“Anne, did you add sugar to these peas?”

“Yes,” said Anne, mashing the potatoes with the air of one expected to do her duty. “I put a spoonful of sugar in. We always do. Don’t you like it?”

“Yes,” said Anne, mashing the potatoes like someone who knows they have a job to do. “I added a spoonful of sugar. We always do. Don’t you like it?”

“But I put a spoonful in too, when I set them on the stove,” said Diana.

“But I added a spoonful too when I put them on the stove,” said Diana.

Anne dropped her masher and tasted the peas also. Then she made a grimace.

Anne put down her masher and tasted the peas too. Then she made a face.

“How awful! I never dreamed you had put sugar in, because I knew your mother never does. I happened to think of it, for a wonder . . . I’m always forgetting it . . . so I popped a spoonful in.”

“How terrible! I never thought you added sugar, since I know your mom never does. I just happened to think of it this time... I always forget... so I tossed a spoonful in.”

“It’s a case of too many cooks, I guess,” said Marilla, who had listened to this dialogue with a rather guilty expression. “I didn’t think you’d remember about the sugar, Anne, for I’m perfectly certain you never did before . . . so I put in a spoonful.”

“It’s a case of too many cooks, I guess,” said Marilla, who had listened to this conversation with a somewhat guilty look. “I didn’t think you’d remember the sugar, Anne, because I’m pretty sure you never did before . . . so I added a spoonful.”

The guests in the parlor heard peal after peal of laughter from the kitchen, but they never knew what the fun was about. There were no green peas on the dinner table that day, however.

The guests in the living room heard wave after wave of laughter coming from the kitchen, but they never found out what the fun was about. There were no green peas on the dinner table that day, though.

“Well,” said Anne, sobering down again with a sigh of recollection, “we have the salad anyhow and I don’t think anything has happened to the beans. Let’s carry the things in and get it over.”

“Well,” said Anne, taking a deep breath and remembering, “we at least have the salad, and I don’t think anything’s happened to the beans. Let’s bring everything inside and get it done.”

It cannot be said that that dinner was a notable success socially. The Allans and Miss Stacy exerted themselves to save the situation and Marilla’s customary placidity was not noticeably ruffled. But Anne and Diana, between their disappointment and the reaction from their excitement of the forenoon, could neither talk nor eat. Anne tried heroically to bear her part in the conversation for the sake of her guests; but all the sparkle had been quenched in her for the time being, and, in spite of her love for the Allans and Miss Stacy, she couldn’t help thinking how nice it would be when everybody had gone home and she could bury her weariness and disappointment in the pillows of the east gable.

It can't be said that dinner was a big social success. The Allans and Miss Stacy made an effort to turn things around, and Marilla's usual calm demeanor wasn’t noticeably shaken. However, Anne and Diana, caught between their disappointment and the letdown after their excitement earlier that day, couldn’t really talk or eat. Anne tried hard to engage in the conversation for her guests' sake, but all her energy had been drained for the moment, and despite her affection for the Allans and Miss Stacy, she couldn’t help but think about how nice it would be when everyone had gone home, allowing her to hide her exhaustion and disappointment in the pillows of the east gable.

There is an old proverb that really seems at times to be inspired . . . “it never rains but it pours.” The measure of that day’s tribulations was not yet full. Just as Mr. Allan had finished returning thanks there arose a strange, ominous sound on the stairs, as of some hard, heavy object bounding from step to step, finishing up with a grand smash at the bottom. Everybody ran out into the hall. Anne gave a shriek of dismay.

There’s an old saying that occasionally feels true . . . “It never rains but it pours.” The hardships of that day were not done yet. Just as Mr. Allan finished his thanks, a strange, alarming noise came from the stairs, like a heavy object bouncing down step by step, ending with a loud crash at the bottom. Everyone rushed into the hall. Anne let out a cry of shock.

At the bottom of the stairs lay a big pink conch shell amid the fragments of what had been Miss Barry’s platter; and at the top of the stairs knelt a terrified Davy, gazing down with wide-open eyes at the havoc.

At the bottom of the stairs was a large pink conch shell surrounded by pieces of what used to be Miss Barry’s platter; and at the top of the stairs, a frightened Davy knelt, looking down with wide eyes at the mess.

“Davy,” said Marilla ominously, “did you throw that conch down on purpose?

“Davy,” Marilla said darkly, “did you throw that conch down on purpose?

“No, I never did,” whimpered Davy. “I was just kneeling here, quiet as quiet, to watch you folks through the bannisters, and my foot struck that old thing and pushed it off . . . and I’m awful hungry . . . and I do wish you’d lick a fellow and have done with it, instead of always sending him upstairs to miss all the fun.”

“No, I never did,” Davy cried. “I was just kneeling here, as quiet as can be, watching you all through the bannisters, and my foot hit that old thing and knocked it off... and I’m really hungry... and I do wish you’d just give me a good spanking and get it over with, instead of always sending me upstairs to miss all the fun.”

“Don’t blame Davy,” said Anne, gathering up the fragments with trembling fingers. “It was my fault. I set that platter there and forgot all about it. I am properly punished for my carelessness; but oh, what will Miss Barry say?”

“Don’t blame Davy,” Anne said, picking up the pieces with shaky fingers. “It was my fault. I put that platter there and completely forgot about it. I really am being punished for my carelessness; but oh, what will Miss Barry think?”

“Well, you know she only bought it, so it isn’t the same as if it was an heirloom,” said Diana, trying to console.

“Well, you know she only bought it, so it’s not the same as if it were an heirloom,” said Diana, trying to console.

The guests went away soon after, feeling that it was the most tactful thing to do, and Anne and Diana washed the dishes, talking less than they had ever been known to do before. Then Diana went home with a headache and Anne went with another to the east gable, where she stayed until Marilla came home from the post office at sunset, with a letter from Priscilla, written the day before. Mrs. Morgan had sprained her ankle so severely that she could not leave her room.

The guests left shortly after, thinking it was the most polite thing to do, and Anne and Diana washed the dishes, chatting less than they ever had before. Then Diana went home with a headache, and Anne went to the east gable, where she stayed until Marilla returned from the post office at sunset, carrying a letter from Priscilla, written the day before. Mrs. Morgan had hurt her ankle so badly that she couldn’t leave her room.

“And oh, Anne dear,” wrote Priscilla, “I’m so sorry, but I’m afraid we won’t get up to Green Gables at all now, for by the time Aunty’s ankle is well she will have to go back to Toronto. She has to be there by a certain date.”

“And oh, Anne dear,” wrote Priscilla, “I’m so sorry, but I’m afraid we won’t make it to Green Gables at all now, because by the time Aunty’s ankle heals, she will need to go back to Toronto. She has to be there by a certain date.”

“Well,” sighed Anne, laying the letter down on the red sandstone step of the back porch, where she was sitting, while the twilight rained down out of a dappled sky, “I always thought it was too good to be true that Mrs. Morgan should really come. But there . . . that speech sounds as pessimistic as Miss Eliza Andrews and I’m ashamed of making it. After all, it was not too good to be true . . . things just as good and far better are coming true for me all the time. And I suppose the events of today have a funny side too. Perhaps when Diana and I are old and gray we shall be able to laugh over them. But I feel that I can’t expect to do it before then, for it has truly been a bitter disappointment.”

“Well,” sighed Anne, setting the letter down on the red sandstone step of the back porch where she was sitting, as twilight poured down from a mottled sky, “I always thought it was too good to be true that Mrs. Morgan would actually come. But there... that speech sounds as pessimistic as Miss Eliza Andrews, and I'm embarrassed for saying it. After all, it was not too good to be true... things just as good and even better are coming true for me all the time. And I guess today’s events have a humorous side too. Maybe when Diana and I are old and gray, we’ll be able to laugh about them. But I feel like I can’t expect to do that before then, because it’s really been a bitter disappointment.”

“You’ll probably have a good many more and worse disappointments than that before you get through life,” said Marilla, who honestly thought she was making a comforting speech. “It seems to me, Anne, that you are never going to outgrow your fashion of setting your heart so on things and then crashing down into despair because you don’t get them.”

“You’re likely to face a lot more and even tougher disappointments than that as you go through life,” Marilla said, genuinely believing she was offering some comfort. “It feels to me, Anne, that you’re never going to grow out of the way you get so invested in things and then fall into despair when you don’t achieve them.”

“I know I’m too much inclined that, way” agreed Anne ruefully. “When I think something nice is going to happen I seem to fly right up on the wings of anticipation; and then the first thing I realize I drop down to earth with a thud. But really, Marilla, the flying part is glorious as long as it lasts . . . it’s like soaring through a sunset. I think it almost pays for the thud.”

“I know I tend to be like that,” Anne admitted with a hint of regret. “When I believe something good is about to happen, I feel like I'm soaring on the wings of excitement; and then suddenly, I crash back to reality. But honestly, Marilla, the flying part is amazing while it lasts . . . it’s like gliding through a sunset. I think it almost makes the crash worth it.”

“Well, maybe it does,” admitted Marilla. “I’d rather walk calmly along and do without both flying and thud. But everybody has her own way of living . . . I used to think there was only one right way . . . but since I’ve had you and the twins to bring up I don’t feel so sure of it. What are you going to do about Miss Barry’s platter?”

“Well, maybe it does,” Marilla admitted. “I’d rather just walk calmly along and skip both the flying and the thud. But everyone has her own way of living . . . I used to think there was only one right way . . . but since I’ve had you and the twins to raise, I’m not so sure about that anymore. What are you going to do about Miss Barry’s platter?”

“Pay her back the twenty dollars she paid for it, I suppose. I’m so thankful it wasn’t a cherished heirloom because then no money could replace it.”

“Give her back the twenty dollars she spent on it, I guess. I'm really glad it wasn't a beloved heirloom because no amount of money could replace that.”

“Maybe you could find one like it somewhere and buy it for her.”

“Maybe you could find one like it somewhere and buy it for her.”

“I’m afraid not. Platters as old as that are very scarce. Mrs. Lynde couldn’t find one anywhere for the supper. I only wish I could, for of course Miss Barry would just as soon have one platter as another, if both were equally old and genuine. Marilla, look at that big star over Mr. Harrison’s maple grove, with all that holy hush of silvery sky about it. It gives me a feeling that is like a prayer. After all, when one can see stars and skies like that, little disappointments and accidents can’t matter so much, can they?”

“I’m afraid not. Platters that old are really hard to find. Mrs. Lynde couldn’t locate one anywhere for the supper. I just wish I could, because Miss Barry wouldn’t mind having one platter over another, as long as both were old and authentic. Marilla, look at that big star over Mr. Harrison’s maple grove, surrounded by that serene silvery sky. It gives me a feeling that’s almost like a prayer. After all, when you can see stars and skies like that, little disappointments and mishaps don’t seem to matter as much, do they?”

“Where’s Davy?” said Marilla, with an indifferent glance at the star.

“Where’s Davy?” Marilla asked, glancing casually at the star.

“In bed. I’ve promised to take him and Dora to the shore for a picnic tomorrow. Of course, the original agreement was that he must be good. But he tried to be good . . . and I hadn’t the heart to disappoint him.”

“In bed. I promised to take him and Dora to the beach for a picnic tomorrow. Originally, the deal was that he had to behave. But he tried to be good . . . and I couldn’t bring myself to let him down.”

“You’ll drown yourself or the twins, rowing about the pond in that flat,” grumbled Marilla. “I’ve lived here for sixty years and I’ve never been on the pond yet.”

“You’ll drown yourself or the twins, paddling around the pond in that flat,” Marilla grumbled. “I’ve lived here for sixty years, and I’ve never gone on the pond yet.”

“Well, it’s never too late to mend,” said Anne roguishly. “Suppose you come with us tomorrow. We’ll shut Green Gables up and spend the whole day at the shore, daffing the world aside.”

“Well, it’s never too late to change,” said Anne playfully. “How about you join us tomorrow? We’ll close up Green Gables and spend the whole day at the beach, brushing the world aside.”

“No, thank you,” said Marilla, with indignant emphasis. “I’d be a nice sight, wouldn’t I, rowing down the pond in a flat? I think I hear Rachel pronouncing on it. There’s Mr. Harrison driving away somewhere. Do you suppose there is any truth in the gossip that Mr. Harrison is going to see Isabella Andrews?”

“No, thank you,” Marilla said, sounding really annoyed. “I’d look ridiculous, wouldn’t I, paddling down the pond in a flat-bottomed boat? I can almost hear Rachel gossiping about it. There goes Mr. Harrison driving off somewhere. Do you think there’s any truth to the rumor that Mr. Harrison is going to visit Isabella Andrews?”

“No, I’m sure there isn’t. He just called there one evening on business with Mr. Harmon Andrews and Mrs. Lynde saw him and said she knew he was courting because he had a white collar on. I don’t believe Mr. Harrison will ever marry. He seems to have a prejudice against marriage.”

“No, I’m sure there isn’t. He just called there one evening on business with Mr. Harmon Andrews, and Mrs. Lynde saw him and said she knew he was dating because he had a white collar on. I don’t think Mr. Harrison will ever get married. He seems to have a bias against marriage.”

“Well, you can never tell about those old bachelors. And if he had a white collar on I’d agree with Rachel that it looks suspicious, for I’m sure he never was seen with one before.”

“Well, you can never judge those old bachelors. And if he were wearing a white collar, I’d agree with Rachel that it seems suspicious, because I’m sure he’s never been seen with one before.”

“I think he only put it on because he wanted to conclude a business deal with Harmon Andrews,” said Anne. “I’ve heard him say that’s the only time a man needs to be particular about his appearance, because if he looks prosperous the party of the second part won’t be so likely to try to cheat him. I really feel sorry for Mr. Harrison; I don’t believe he feels satisfied with his life. It must be very lonely to have no one to care about except a parrot, don’t you think? But I notice Mr. Harrison doesn’t like to be pitied. Nobody does, I imagine.”

“I think he only dressed that way because he wanted to close a business deal with Harmon Andrews,” Anne said. “I’ve heard him say that’s the only time a man needs to pay attention to his appearance, because if he looks successful, the other party is less likely to try to cheat him. I really feel sorry for Mr. Harrison; I don’t think he’s satisfied with his life. It must be really lonely to have no one to care about except a parrot, don’t you think? But I notice Mr. Harrison doesn’t like to be pitied. I imagine nobody does.”

“There’s Gilbert coming up the lane,” said Marilla. “If he wants you to go for a row on the pond mind you put on your coat and rubbers. There’s a heavy dew tonight.”

“Look, Gilbert is coming up the path,” Marilla said. “If he asks you to go for a row on the pond, make sure you put on your coat and rubber boots. It’s really dewy tonight.”

XVIII
An Adventure on the Tory Road

“Anne,” said Davy, sitting up in bed and propping his chin on his hands, “Anne, where is sleep? People go to sleep every night, and of course I know it’s the place where I do the things I dream, but I want to know where it is and how I get there and back without knowing anything about it . . . and in my nighty too. Where is it?”

“Anne,” Davy said, sitting up in bed and resting his chin on his hands, “Anne, where is sleep? People go to sleep every night, and I know it’s the place where I do the things I dream about, but I want to know where it is and how I can get there and back without knowing anything about it . . . and in my pajamas too. Where is it?”

Anne was kneeling at the west gable window watching the sunset sky that was like a great flower with petals of crocus and a heart of fiery yellow. She turned her head at Davy’s question and answered dreamily,

Anne was kneeling at the west gable window, watching the sunset sky that looked like a huge flower with crocus petals and a vibrant yellow core. She turned her head at Davy’s question and responded dreamily,

“‘Over the mountains of the moon,
Down the valley of the shadow.’”

“‘Over the mountains of the moon,
Down the valley of the shadow.’”

Paul Irving would have known the meaning of this, or made a meaning out of it for himself, if he didn’t; but practical Davy, who, as Anne often despairingly remarked, hadn’t a particle of imagination, was only puzzled and disgusted.

Paul Irving would have understood this or figured out a meaning for it himself, if he didn't; but practical Davy, who, as Anne often lamented, lacked any imagination, was just confused and disgusted.

“Anne, I believe you’re just talking nonsense.”

“Anne, I think you’re just talking nonsense.”

“Of course, I was, dear boy. Don’t you know that it is only very foolish folk who talk sense all the time?”

“Of course, I was, dear boy. Don’t you realize that only very foolish people talk sense all the time?”

“Well, I think you might give a sensible answer when I ask a sensible question,” said Davy in an injured tone.

“Well, I think you might give a reasonable answer when I ask a reasonable question,” said Davy in a hurt tone.

“Oh, you are too little to understand,” said Anne. But she felt rather ashamed of saying it; for had she not, in keen remembrance of many similar snubs administered in her own early years, solemnly vowed that she would never tell any child it was too little to understand? Yet here she was doing it . . . so wide sometimes is the gulf between theory and practice.

“Oh, you’re too young to understand,” said Anne. But she felt pretty ashamed for saying it; because hadn’t she, remembering all the similar put-downs she experienced as a kid, promised that she would never tell any child they were too young to get it? Yet here she was doing just that . . . so often there’s a huge gap between what we say and what we do.

“Well, I’m doing my best to grow,” said Davy, “but it’s a thing you can’t hurry much. If Marilla wasn’t so stingy with her jam I believe I’d grow a lot faster.”

"Well, I’m trying my hardest to grow," said Davy, "but it’s something you can’t rush. If Marilla wasn’t so stingy with her jam, I think I’d grow a lot faster."

“Marilla is not stingy, Davy,” said Anne severely. “It is very ungrateful of you to say such a thing.”

“Marilla isn't stingy, Davy,” Anne said sternly. “It's very ungrateful of you to say something like that.”

“There’s another word that means the same thing and sounds a lot better, but I don’t just remember it,” said Davy, frowning intently. “I heard Marilla say she was it, herself, the other day.”

“There's another word that means the same thing and sounds way better, but I can’t remember it,” Davy said, frowning hard. “I heard Marilla say she was it herself the other day.”

“If you mean economical, it’s a very different thing from being stingy. It is an excellent trait in a person if she is economical. If Marilla had been stingy she wouldn’t have taken you and Dora when your mother died. Would you have liked to live with Mrs. Wiggins?”

“If you mean economical, it’s a very different thing from being stingy. Being economical is a great quality in a person. If Marilla had been stingy, she wouldn’t have taken you and Dora in when your mother died. Would you have wanted to live with Mrs. Wiggins?”

“You just bet I wouldn’t!” Davy was emphatic on that point. “Nor I don’t want to go out to Uncle Richard neither. I’d far rather live here, even if Marilla is that long-tailed word when it comes to jam, ’cause you’re here, Anne. Say, Anne, won’t you tell me a story ’fore I go to sleep? I don’t want a fairy story. They’re all right for girls, I s’pose, but I want something exciting . . . lots of killing and shooting in it, and a house on fire, and in’trusting things like that.”

“You can bet I wouldn’t!” Davy insisted firmly. “Nor do I want to go to Uncle Richard’s either. I’d much rather stay here, even if Marilla can be really strict about jam, because you’re here, Anne. Hey, Anne, will you tell me a story before I go to sleep? I don’t want a fairy tale. They’re fine for girls, I guess, but I want something exciting… lots of action, and shooting, and a house on fire, and interesting stuff like that.”

Fortunately for Anne, Marilla called out at this moment from her room.

Fortunately for Anne, Marilla called out from her room at that moment.

“Anne, Diana’s signaling at a great rate. You’d better see what she wants.”

“Anne, Diana’s waving her hands a lot. You should go see what she wants.”

Anne ran to the east gable and saw flashes of light coming through the twilight from Diana’s window in groups of five, which meant, according to their old childish code, “Come over at once for I have something important to reveal.” Anne threw her white shawl over her head and hastened through the Haunted Wood and across Mr. Bell’s pasture corner to Orchard Slope.

Anne ran to the east side of the house and saw flashes of light coming through the dusk from Diana’s window in groups of five, which meant, according to their old childhood code, “Come over right away; I have something important to share.” Anne threw her white shawl over her head and hurried through the Haunted Woods and across Mr. Bell’s pasture to Orchard Slope.

“I’ve good news for you, Anne,” said Diana. “Mother and I have just got home from Carmody, and I saw Mary Sentner from Spencer vale in Mr. Blair’s store. She says the old Copp girls on the Tory Road have a willow-ware platter and she thinks it’s exactly like the one we had at the supper. She says they’ll likely sell it, for Martha Copp has never been known to keep anything she could sell; but if they won’t there’s a platter at Wesley Keyson’s at Spencervale and she knows they’d sell it, but she isn’t sure it’s just the same kind as Aunt Josephine’s.”

“I have good news for you, Anne,” said Diana. “My mom and I just got back from Carmody, and I saw Mary Sentner from Spencervale at Mr. Blair’s store. She told me the old Copp girls on the Tory Road have a willow-ware platter that she thinks is exactly like the one we had at supper. She said they’ll probably sell it since Martha Copp has never been known to keep anything she could sell; but if they don’t, there’s a platter at Wesley Keyson’s in Spencervale, and she knows they’d sell it, but she’s not sure if it’s exactly the same kind as Aunt Josephine’s.”

“I’ll go right over to Spencervale after it tomorrow,” said Anne resolutely, “and you must come with me. It will be such a weight off my mind, for I have to go to town day after tomorrow and how can I face your Aunt Josephine without a willow-ware platter? It would be even worse than the time I had to confess about jumping on the spare room bed.”

"I'll head over to Spencervale after it tomorrow," Anne said firmly, "and you have to come with me. It will really take a load off my mind, because I have to go to town the day after tomorrow, and how can I face your Aunt Josephine without a willow-ware platter? It would be even worse than that time I had to admit I jumped on the spare room bed."

Both girls laughed over the old memory . . . concerning which, if any of my readers are ignorant and curious, I must refer them to Anne’s earlier history.

Both girls laughed about the old memory . . . and for those of my readers who are unaware and curious, I must direct them to Anne’s earlier history.

The next afternoon the girls fared forth on their platter hunting expedition. It was ten miles to Spencervale and the day was not especially pleasant for traveling. It was very warm and windless, and the dust on the road was such as might have been expected after six weeks of dry weather.

The next afternoon, the girls set out on their platter hunting trip. It was ten miles to Spencervale, and the day wasn't particularly nice for traveling. It was really warm and still, and the dust on the road was just what you'd expect after six weeks of dry weather.

“Oh, I do wish it would rain soon,” sighed Anne. “Everything is so parched up. The poor fields just seem pitiful to me and the trees seem to be stretching out their hands pleading for rain. As for my garden, it hurts me every time I go into it. I suppose I shouldn’t complain about a garden when the farmers’ crops are suffering so. Mr. Harrison says his pastures are so scorched up that his poor cows can hardly get a bite to eat and he feels guilty of cruelty to animals every time he meets their eyes.”

“Oh, I really hope it rains soon,” sighed Anne. “Everything is so dried out. The poor fields just look pathetic to me, and the trees seem to be reaching out their branches, begging for rain. As for my garden, it pains me every time I go in there. I guess I shouldn’t complain about a garden when the farmers' crops are struggling so much. Mr. Harrison says his pastures are so burnt up that his poor cows can barely get a bite to eat, and he feels guilty about being cruel to animals every time he looks them in the eyes.”

After a wearisome drive the girls reached Spencervale and turned down the “Tory” Road . . . a green, solitary highway where the strips of grass between the wheel tracks bore evidence to lack of travel. Along most of its extent it was lined with thick-set young spruces crowding down to the roadway, with here and there a break where the back field of a Spencervale farm came out to the fence or an expanse of stumps was aflame with fireweed and goldenrod.

After a tiring drive, the girls arrived in Spencervale and took a turn onto “Tory” Road . . . a green, quiet road where the patches of grass between the tire tracks showed it didn’t see much traffic. Most of the way, it was bordered by thick young spruces leaning toward the roadway, with occasional gaps where a back field from a Spencervale farm met the fence or areas of stumps were bright with fireweed and goldenrod.

“Why is it called the Tory Road?” asked Anne.

“Why do they call it the Tory Road?” asked Anne.

“Mr. Allan says it is on the principle of calling a place a grove because there are no trees in it,” said Diana, “for nobody lives along the road except the Copp girls and old Martin Bovyer at the further end, who is a Liberal. The Tory government ran the road through when they were in power just to show they were doing something.”

“Mr. Allan says it’s like calling a place a grove just because there are no trees in it,” Diana said, “since nobody lives along the road except the Copp girls and old Martin Bovyer at the far end, who is a Liberal. The Tory government built the road when they were in power just to prove they were making an effort.”

Diana’s father was a Liberal, for which reason she and Anne never discussed politics. Green Gables folk had always been Conservatives.

Diana’s dad was a Liberal, so she and Anne never talked about politics. The people from Green Gables had always been Conservatives.

Finally the girls came to the old Copp homestead . . . a place of such exceeding external neatness that even Green Gables would have suffered by contrast. The house was a very old-fashioned one, situated on a slope, which fact had necessitated the building of a stone basement under one end. The house and out-buildings were all whitewashed to a condition of blinding perfection and not a weed was visible in the prim kitchen garden surrounded by its white paling.

Finally, the girls arrived at the old Copp homestead, a place so impeccably neat that even Green Gables would have looked shabby in comparison. The house was quite old-fashioned, perched on a slope, which required a stone basement to be built under one end. Both the house and the outbuildings were whitewashed to a dazzling perfection, and not a weed was in sight in the tidy kitchen garden surrounded by its white fence.

“The shades are all down,” said Diana ruefully. “I believe that nobody is home.”

“The blinds are all closed,” Diana said sadly. “I think no one’s home.”

This proved to be the case. The girls looked at each other in perplexity.

This turned out to be true. The girls exchanged confused glances.

“I don’t know what to do,” said Anne. “If I were sure the platter was the right kind I would not mind waiting until they came home. But if it isn’t it may be too late to go to Wesley Keyson’s afterward.”

“I don’t know what to do,” Anne said. “If I was sure the platter was the right one, I wouldn’t mind waiting until they come home. But if it’s not, it might be too late to go to Wesley Keyson’s afterward.”

Diana looked at a certain little square window over the basement.

Diana stared at a small square window in the basement.

“That is the pantry window, I feel sure,” she said, “because this house is just like Uncle Charles’ at Newbridge, and that is their pantry window. The shade isn’t down, so if we climbed up on the roof of that little house we could look into the pantry and might be able to see the platter. Do you think it would be any harm?”

“That has to be the pantry window,” she said, “because this house is just like Uncle Charles’ at Newbridge, and that’s their pantry window. The shade isn’t pulled down, so if we climbed up on the roof of that little house, we could peek into the pantry and might be able to see the platter. Do you think it would be a problem?”

“No, I don’t think so,” decided Anne, after due reflection, “since our motive is not idle curiosity.”

“No, I don’t think so,” Anne decided after some thought, “because our motive isn’t just idle curiosity.”

This important point of ethics being settled, Anne prepared to mount the aforesaid “little house,” a construction of laths, with a peaked roof, which had in times past served as a habitation for ducks. The Copp girls had given up keeping ducks . . . “because they were such untidy birds”. . . and the house had not been in use for some years, save as an abode of correction for setting hens. Although scrupulously whitewashed it had become somewhat shaky, and Anne felt rather dubious as she scrambled up from the vantage point of a keg placed on a box.

This important ethical issue being resolved, Anne got ready to climb up to the “little house,” a structure made of thin wooden strips with a peaked roof, which used to be home to ducks. The Copp girls had stopped keeping ducks... “because they were so messy”... and the house hadn’t been used in years, except as a spot to confine broody hens. Even though it was carefully whitewashed, it had become a bit wobbly, and Anne felt somewhat uncertain as she climbed up from her position on a keg that was on top of a box.

“I’m afraid it won’t bear my weight,” she said as she gingerly stepped on the roof.

“I’m afraid it won’t support my weight,” she said as she carefully stepped on the roof.

“Lean on the window sill,” advised Diana, and Anne accordingly leaned. Much to her delight, she saw, as she peered through the pane, a willow-ware platter, exactly such as she was in quest of, on the shelf in front of the window. So much she saw before the catastrophe came. In her joy Anne forgot the precarious nature of her footing, incautiously ceased to lean on the window sill, gave an impulsive little hop of pleasure . . . and the next moment she had crashed through the roof up to her armpits, and there she hung, quite unable to extricate herself. Diana dashed into the duck house and, seizing her unfortunate friend by the waist, tried to draw her down.

“Lean on the window sill,” Diana suggested, and Anne did just that. To her delight, she saw, as she looked through the glass, a willow-ware platter, exactly the one she was looking for, on the shelf in front of the window. So much she saw before disaster struck. In her excitement, Anne forgot how unstable her position was, carelessly stopped leaning on the window sill, gave a little hop of joy... and in the next moment, she had crashed through the roof up to her armpits, where she was stuck, completely unable to free herself. Diana ran into the duck house and, grabbing her unfortunate friend by the waist, tried to pull her down.

“Ow . . . don’t,” shrieked poor Anne. “There are some long splinters sticking into me. See if you can put something under my feet . . . then perhaps I can draw myself up.”

“Ow . . . don’t,” screamed poor Anne. “There are some long splinters digging into me. Try to put something under my feet . . . then maybe I can hoist myself up.”

Diana hastily dragged in the previously mentioned keg and Anne found that it was just sufficiently high to furnish a secure resting place for her feet. But she could not release herself.

Diana quickly brought in the keg she had mentioned earlier, and Anne noticed that it was just the right height for her to rest her feet securely. But she couldn’t set herself free.

“Could I pull you out if I crawled up?” suggested Diana.

“Do you think I could pull you out if I crawled up?” Diana suggested.

Anne shook her head hopelessly.

Anne shook her head in despair.

“No . . . the splinters hurt too badly. If you can find an axe you might chop me out, though. Oh dear, I do really begin to believe that I was born under an ill-omened star.”

“No… the splinters hurt too much. If you can find an axe, you might be able to chop me out, though. Oh dear, I really am starting to believe that I was born under an unlucky star.”

Diana searched faithfully but no axe was to be found.

Diana searched diligently, but no axe could be found.

“I’ll have to go for help,” she said, returning to the prisoner.

“I need to go get some help,” she said, going back to the prisoner.

“No, indeed, you won’t,” said Anne vehemently. “If you do the story of this will get out everywhere and I shall be ashamed to show my face. No, we must just wait until the Copp girls come home and bind them to secrecy. They’ll know where the axe is and get me out. I’m not uncomfortable, as long as I keep perfectly still . . . not uncomfortable in body I mean. I wonder what the Copp girls value this house at. I shall have to pay for the damage I’ve done, but I wouldn’t mind that if I were only sure they would understand my motive in peeping in at their pantry window. My sole comfort is that the platter is just the kind I want and if Miss Copp will only sell it to me I shall be resigned to what has happened.”

“No, definitely not,” Anne said passionately. “If you do, the story will spread everywhere and I’ll be too embarrassed to show my face. No, we just have to wait until the Copp girls come home and get them to promise to keep it a secret. They’ll know where the axe is and can get me out. I’m not uncomfortable, as long as I stay perfectly still... not uncomfortable in my body, that is. I wonder how much the Copp girls think this house is worth. I’ll have to pay for the damage I’ve caused, but I wouldn’t mind that if I was just sure they’d understand my reason for peeking into their pantry window. My only comfort is that the platter is exactly what I want, and if Miss Copp will just sell it to me, I’ll accept what’s happened.”

“What if the Copp girls don’t come home until after night . . . or till tomorrow?” suggested Diana.

“What if the Copp girls don’t come home until after dark . . . or until tomorrow?” suggested Diana.

“If they’re not back by sunset you’ll have to go for other assistance, I suppose,” said Anne reluctantly, “but you mustn’t go until you really have to. Oh dear, this is a dreadful predicament. I wouldn’t mind my misfortunes so much if they were romantic, as Mrs. Morgan’s heroines’ always are, but they are always just simply ridiculous. Fancy what the Copp girls will think when they drive into their yard and see a girl’s head and shoulders sticking out of the roof of one of their outhouses. Listen . . . is that a wagon? No, Diana, I believe it is thunder.”

“If they’re not back by sunset, you'll have to find help elsewhere, I guess,” said Anne reluctantly. “But you shouldn't leave until you really have to. Oh dear, this is a terrible situation. I wouldn't mind my misfortunes so much if they were romantic like Mrs. Morgan's heroines, but they’re always just plain ridiculous. Can you imagine what the Copp girls will think when they drive into their yard and see a girl’s head and shoulders sticking out of the roof of one of their sheds? Listen... is that a wagon? No, Diana, I think it’s thunder.”

Thunder it was undoubtedly, and Diana, having made a hasty pilgrimage around the house, returned to announce that a very black cloud was rising rapidly in the northwest.

It was definitely thunder, and Diana, after quickly walking around the house, came back to report that a big black cloud was moving in fast from the northwest.

“I believe we’re going to have a heavy thunder-shower,” she exclaimed in dismay, “Oh, Anne, what will we do?”

“I think we’re going to have a big thunderstorm,” she exclaimed in distress, “Oh, Anne, what are we going to do?”

“We must prepare for it,” said Anne tranquilly. A thunderstorm seemed a trifle in comparison with what had already happened. “You’d better drive the horse and buggy into that open shed. Fortunately my parasol is in the buggy. Here . . . take my hat with you. Marilla told me I was a goose to put on my best hat to come to the Tory Road and she was right, as she always is.”

“We need to get ready for it,” Anne said calmly. A thunderstorm felt minor compared to what had already occurred. “You should drive the horse and buggy into that open shed. Luckily, my parasol is in the buggy. Here... take my hat with you. Marilla told me I was silly for wearing my best hat to come to Tory Road, and she was right, as she always is.”

Diana untied the pony and drove into the shed, just as the first heavy drops of rain fell. There she sat and watched the resulting downpour, which was so thick and heavy that she could hardly see Anne through it, holding the parasol bravely over her bare head. There was not a great deal of thunder, but for the best part of an hour the rain came merrily down. Occasionally Anne slanted back her parasol and waved an encouraging hand to her friend; But conversation at that distance was quite out of the question. Finally the rain ceased, the sun came out, and Diana ventured across the puddles of the yard.

Diana untied the pony and drove into the shed just as the first heavy drops of rain started to fall. There, she sat and watched the downpour, which was so thick and heavy that she could barely see Anne holding the parasol bravely over her bare head. There wasn’t much thunder, but for almost an hour, the rain kept coming down hard. Occasionally, Anne tilted her parasol back and waved an encouraging hand to her friend; but talking at that distance was impossible. Finally, the rain stopped, the sun came out, and Diana stepped carefully across the puddles in the yard.

“Did you get very wet?” she asked anxiously.

“Did you get really wet?” she asked nervously.

“Oh, no,” returned Anne cheerfully. “My head and shoulders are quite dry and my skirt is only a little damp where the rain beat through the laths. Don’t pity me, Diana, for I haven’t minded it at all. I kept thinking how much good the rain will do and how glad my garden must be for it, and imagining what the flowers and buds would think when the drops began to fall. I imagined out a most interesting dialogue between the asters and the sweet peas and the wild canaries in the lilac bush and the guardian spirit of the garden. When I go home I mean to write it down. I wish I had a pencil and paper to do it now, because I daresay I’ll forget the best parts before I reach home.”

“Oh, no,” Anne replied cheerfully. “My head and shoulders are totally dry, and my skirt is just a little damp where the rain came through the slats. Don’t feel sorry for me, Diana, because I haven’t minded it at all. I kept thinking about how good the rain will be for my garden and how happy the plants must be for it, imagining what the flowers and buds would say when the raindrops started falling. I imagined a really interesting conversation between the asters and the sweet peas and the wild canaries in the lilac bush and the guardian spirit of the garden. When I get home, I plan to write it down. I wish I had a pencil and paper to do it now because I’m sure I’ll forget the best parts by the time I get home.”

Diana the faithful had a pencil and discovered a sheet of wrapping paper in the box of the buggy. Anne folded up her dripping parasol, put on her hat, spread the wrapping paper on a shingle Diana handed up, and wrote out her garden idyl under conditions that could hardly be considered as favorable to literature. Nevertheless, the result was quite pretty, and Diana was “enraptured” when Anne read it to her.

Diana, ever loyal, had a pencil and found a piece of wrapping paper in the buggy's storage. Anne closed her wet parasol, put on her hat, laid the wrapping paper on a shingle that Diana handed over, and wrote her garden story in conditions that were hardly ideal for writing. Still, the outcome was quite charming, and Diana was "thrilled" when Anne read it to her.

“Oh, Anne, it’s sweet . . . just sweet. Do send it to the Canadian Woman.”

“Oh, Anne, it’s so sweet . . . really sweet. Do send it to the Canadian Woman.”

Anne shook her head.

Anne shook her head.

“Oh, no, it wouldn’t be suitable at all. There is no plot in it, you see. It’s just a string of fancies. I like writing such things, but of course nothing of the sort would ever do for publication, for editors insist on plots, so Priscilla says. Oh, there’s Miss Sarah Copp now. Please, Diana, go and explain.”

“Oh, no, that wouldn’t work at all. There’s no plot in it, you see. It’s just a bunch of random ideas. I enjoy writing that kind of stuff, but obviously nothing like that would ever be suitable for publication, since editors insist on having plots, or so Priscilla says. Oh, there’s Miss Sarah Copp now. Please, Diana, go and explain.”

Miss Sarah Copp was a small person, garbed in shabby black, with a hat chosen less for vain adornment than for qualities that would wear well. She looked as amazed as might be expected on seeing the curious tableau in her yard, but when she heard Diana’s explanation she was all sympathy. She hurriedly unlocked the back door, produced the axe, and with a few skillfull blows set Anne free. The latter, somewhat tired and stiff, ducked down into the interior of her prison and thankfully emerged into liberty once more.

Miss Sarah Copp was a small woman, dressed in worn black clothing, with a hat picked more for practicality than style. She looked as surprised as anyone would at the strange scene in her yard, but when she heard Diana’s explanation, she immediately felt compassion. She quickly unlocked the back door, grabbed the axe, and with a few deft swings freed Anne. Anne, feeling a bit tired and stiff, ducked back into her makeshift prison and gratefully stepped into freedom once again.

“Miss Copp,” she said earnestly. “I assure you I looked into your pantry window only to discover if you had a willow-ware platter. I didn’t see anything else—I didn’t look for anything else.”

“Miss Copp,” she said earnestly. “I promise I only looked into your pantry window to see if you had a willow-ware platter. I didn’t see anything else—I didn’t look for anything else.”

“Bless you, that’s all right,” said Miss Sarah amiably. “You needn’t worry—there’s no harm done. Thank goodness, we Copps keep our pantries presentable at all times and don’t care who sees into them. As for that old duckhouse, I’m glad it’s smashed, for maybe now Martha will agree to having it taken down. She never would before for fear it might come in handy sometime and I’ve had to whitewash it every spring. But you might as well argue with a post as with Martha. She went to town today—I drove her to the station. And you want to buy my platter. Well, what will you give for it?”

“Bless you, it’s all good,” said Miss Sarah cheerfully. “You don’t need to worry—nothing's wrong. Thank goodness, we Copps always keep our pantries neat and don’t mind who sees inside them. As for that old duckhouse, I’m actually glad it’s broken, because maybe now Martha will agree to get rid of it. She never would before out of fear that it might be useful someday, and I’ve had to repaint it every spring. But you might as well argue with a wall as with Martha. She went to town today—I drove her to the station. And you want to buy my platter. So, what will you offer for it?”

“Twenty dollars,” said Anne, who was never meant to match business wits with a Copp, or she would not have offered her price at the start.

“Twenty dollars,” said Anne, who was never meant to go head-to-head in business with a Copp, or she wouldn’t have suggested that price in the first place.

“Well, I’ll see,” said Miss Sarah cautiously. “That platter is mine fortunately, or I’d never dare to sell it when Martha wasn’t here. As it is, I daresay she’ll raise a fuss. Martha’s the boss of this establishment I can tell you. I’m getting awful tired of living under another woman’s thumb. But come in, come in. You must be real tired and hungry. I’ll do the best I can for you in the way of tea but I warn you not to expect anything but bread and butter and some cowcumbers. Martha locked up all the cake and cheese and preserves afore she went. She always does, because she says I’m too extravagant with them if company comes.”

“Well, I'll think about it,” Miss Sarah said carefully. “That platter is mine, luckily; otherwise, I wouldn't even consider selling it when Martha's not around. As it is, I bet she'll make a big deal about it. Martha runs this place, I can tell you that. I'm getting really tired of being under another woman's control. But come in, come in. You must be quite tired and hungry. I'll do my best to make you some tea, but I warn you not to expect anything more than bread and butter and some cucumbers. Martha locked up all the cake, cheese, and preserves before she left. She always does because she says I waste them if we have company.”

The girls were hungry enough to do justice to any fare, and they enjoyed Miss Sarah’s excellent bread and butter and “cowcumbers” thoroughly. When the meal was over Miss Sarah said,

The girls were hungry enough to appreciate any food, and they thoroughly enjoyed Miss Sarah’s excellent bread and butter and “cucumbers.” When the meal was over, Miss Sarah said,

“I don’t know as I mind selling the platter. But it’s worth twenty-five dollars. It’s a very old platter.”

“I’m okay with selling the platter. But it’s worth twenty-five dollars. It’s an antique.”

Diana gave Anne’s foot a gentle kick under the table, meaning, “Don’t agree—she’ll let it go for twenty if you hold out.” But Anne was not minded to take any chances in regard to that precious platter. She promptly agreed to give twenty-five and Miss Sarah looked as if she felt sorry she hadn’t asked for thirty.

Diana gave Anne’s foot a soft kick under the table, saying, “Don’t agree—she’ll take twenty if you hold out.” But Anne didn’t want to risk losing that valuable platter. She quickly agreed to pay twenty-five, and Miss Sarah looked like she regretted not asking for thirty.

“Well, I guess you may have it. I want all the money I can scare up just now. The fact is—” Miss Sarah threw up her head importantly, with a proud flush on her thin cheeks—“I’m going to be married—to Luther Wallace. He wanted me twenty years ago. I liked him real well but he was poor then and father packed him off. I s’pose I shouldn’t have let him go so meek but I was timid and frightened of father. Besides, I didn’t know men were so skurse.”

"Well, I suppose you can have it. I want to gather as much money as I can right now. The truth is—" Miss Sarah raised her head dramatically, her thin cheeks flushed with pride—"I’m getting married—to Luther Wallace. He wanted me twenty years ago. I liked him a lot, but he was broke back then, and my dad sent him away. I guess I shouldn’t have let him go so easily, but I was shy and scared of my father. Plus, I didn’t realize men were so scarce."

When the girls were safely away, Diana driving and Anne holding the coveted platter carefully on her lap, the green, rain-freshened solitudes of the Tory Road were enlivened by ripples of girlish laughter.

When the girls were safely on their way, with Diana driving and Anne carefully holding the prized platter on her lap, the green, rain-freshened quiet of Tory Road was brightened by bursts of girlish laughter.

“I’ll amuse your Aunt Josephine with the ‘strange eventful history’ of this afternoon when I go to town tomorrow. We’ve had a rather trying time but it’s over now. I’ve got the platter, and that rain has laid the dust beautifully. So ‘all’s well that ends well.’”

“I’ll entertain your Aunt Josephine with the ‘strange eventful history’ of this afternoon when I go to town tomorrow. We’ve had a pretty tough time, but it’s all over now. I’ve got the platter, and that rain has settled the dust nicely. So ‘all’s well that ends well.’”

“We’re not home yet,” said Diana rather pessimistically, “and there’s no telling what may happen before we are. You’re such a girl to have adventures, Anne.”

“We're not home yet,” Diana said somewhat pessimistically, “and who knows what could happen before we get there. You’re such a girl for wanting adventures, Anne.”

“Having adventures comes natural to some people,” said Anne serenely. “You just have a gift for them or you haven’t.”

“Having adventures comes naturally to some people,” said Anne calmly. “You either have a knack for them or you don’t.”

XIX
Just a Happy Day

“After all,” Anne had said to Marilla once, “I believe the nicest and sweetest days are not those on which anything very splendid or wonderful or exciting happens but just those that bring simple little pleasures, following one another softly, like pearls slipping off a string.”

“After all,” Anne had said to Marilla once, “I think the nicest and sweetest days aren’t the ones when something really amazing or thrilling happens, but the ones that bring simple little joys, following one another gently, like pearls falling off a string.”

Life at Green Gables was full of just such days, for Anne’s adventures and misadventures, like those of other people, did not all happen at once, but were sprinkled over the year, with long stretches of harmless, happy days between, filled with work and dreams and laughter and lessons. Such a day came late in August. In the forenoon Anne and Diana rowed the delighted twins down the pond to the sandshore to pick “sweet grass” and paddle in the surf, over which the wind was harping an old lyric learned when the world was young.

Life at Green Gables was packed with days just like this, as Anne’s adventures and mishaps, like those of everyone else, didn’t all happen at once but were spread out over the year, with long stretches of harmless, happy days in between, filled with work, dreams, laughter, and lessons. One such day arrived in late August. In the morning, Anne and Diana took the excited twins down the pond in a rowboat to the sandy shore to pick “sweet grass” and splash in the waves, where the wind was playing an old tune learned when the world was young.

In the afternoon Anne walked down to the old Irving place to see Paul. She found him stretched out on the grassy bank beside the thick fir grove that sheltered the house on the north, absorbed in a book of fairy tales. He sprang up radiantly at sight of her.

In the afternoon, Anne walked down to the old Irving place to see Paul. She found him lying on the grassy bank beside the thick fir grove that shaded the house on the north, absorbed in a book of fairy tales. He sprang up brightly when he saw her.

“Oh, I’m so glad you’ve come, teacher,” he said eagerly, “because Grandma’s away. You’ll stay and have tea with me, won’t you? It’s so lonesome to have tea all by oneself. You know, teacher. I’ve had serious thoughts of asking Young Mary Joe to sit down and eat her tea with me, but I expect Grandma wouldn’t approve. She says the French have to be kept in their place. And anyhow, it’s difficult to talk with Young Mary Joe. She just laughs and says, ‘Well, yous do beat all de kids I ever knowed.’ That isn’t my idea of conversation.”

“Oh, I’m so glad you’re here, teacher,” he said eagerly. “Since Grandma’s away, you’ll stay and have tea with me, right? It’s so lonely to have tea all by myself. You know how it is, teacher. I’ve seriously thought about asking Young Mary Joe to join me for tea, but I think Grandma wouldn’t like that. She says the French need to know their place. And anyway, it’s hard to have a conversation with Young Mary Joe. She just laughs and says, ‘Well, you really beat all the kids I ever knew.’ That’s not what I consider a conversation.”

“Of course I’ll stay to tea,” said Anne gaily. “I was dying to be asked. My mouth has been watering for some more of your grandma’s delicious shortbread ever since I had tea here before.”

“Of course I’ll stay for tea,” Anne said cheerfully. “I was really hoping to be invited. I've been craving more of your grandma’s amazing shortbread since the last time I had tea here.”

Paul looked very sober.

Paul looked very serious.

“If it depended on me, teacher,” he said, standing before Anne with his hands in his pockets and his beautiful little face shadowed with sudden care, “You should have shortbread with a right good will. But it depends on Mary Joe. I heard Grandma tell her before she left that she wasn’t to give me any shortcake because it was too rich for little boys’ stomachs. But maybe Mary Joe will cut some for you if I promise I won’t eat any. Let us hope for the best.”

“If it were up to me, teacher,” he said, standing in front of Anne with his hands in his pockets and his lovely little face suddenly looking worried, “You should absolutely have shortbread. But it’s up to Mary Joe. I heard Grandma tell her before she left not to give me any shortcake because it’s too rich for little boys’ stomachs. But maybe Mary Joe will cut some for you if I promise I won’t eat any. Let’s hope for the best.”

“Yes, let us,” agreed Anne, whom this cheerful philosophy suited exactly, “and if Mary Joe proves hard-hearted and won’t give me any shortbread it doesn’t matter in the least, so you are not to worry over that.”

“Yes, let’s,” agreed Anne, who totally vibed with this cheerful outlook, “and if Mary Joe turns out to be cold-hearted and won’t give me any shortbread, it doesn’t matter at all, so don’t worry about it.”

“You’re sure you won’t mind if she doesn’t?” said Paul anxiously.

“Are you sure you won’t mind if she doesn’t?” Paul asked nervously.

“Perfectly sure, dear heart.”

“Absolutely sure, dear heart.”

“Then I won’t worry,” said Paul, with a long breath of relief, “especially as I really think Mary Joe will listen to reason. She’s not a naturally unreasonable person, but she has learned by experience that it doesn’t do to disobey Grandma’s orders. Grandma is an excellent woman but people must do as she tells them. She was very much pleased with me this morning because I managed at last to eat all my plateful of porridge. It was a great effort but I succeeded. Grandma says she thinks she’ll make a man of me yet. But, teacher, I want to ask you a very important question. You will answer it truthfully, won’t you?”

“Then I won't worry,” said Paul, letting out a long sigh of relief, “especially since I really think Mary Joe will see reason. She’s not an unreasonable person by nature, but she’s learned from experience that it doesn’t pay to disobey Grandma’s orders. Grandma is a wonderful woman, but people have to do what she says. She was really pleased with me this morning because I finally managed to finish my whole plate of porridge. It was a big effort, but I did it. Grandma says she thinks she’ll make a man out of me yet. But, teacher, I want to ask you a very important question. You will answer it honestly, right?”

“I’ll try,” promised Anne.

"I'll give it a shot," promised Anne.

“Do you think I’m wrong in my upper story?” asked Paul, as if his very existence depended on her reply.

“Do you think I’m wrong in my head?” asked Paul, as if his whole life depended on her answer.

“Goodness, no, Paul,” exclaimed Anne in amazement. “Certainly you’re not. What put such an idea into your head?”

“Goodness, no, Paul,” Anne said in disbelief. “You can’t be serious. What made you think of that?”

“Mary Joe . . . but she didn’t know I heard her. Mrs. Peter Sloane’s hired girl, Veronica, came to see Mary Joe last evening and I heard them talking in the kitchen as I was going through the hall. I heard Mary Joe say, ‘Dat Paul, he is de queeres’ leetle boy. He talks dat queer. I tink dere’s someting wrong in his upper story.’ I couldn’t sleep last night for ever so long, thinking of it, and wondering if Mary Joe was right. I couldn’t bear to ask Grandma about it somehow, but I made up my mind I’d ask you. I’m so glad you think I’m all right in my upper story.”

“Mary Joe... but she didn’t know I was listening. Mrs. Peter Sloane’s maid, Veronica, came to see Mary Joe last night, and I heard them talking in the kitchen as I walked through the hall. I heard Mary Joe say, ‘That Paul, he’s the weirdest little boy. He talks funny. I think there’s something off in his head.’ I couldn’t sleep last night for a long time, thinking about it and wondering if Mary Joe was right. I just couldn’t bring myself to ask Grandma about it, but I decided I’d ask you. I’m so glad you think I’m okay in my head.”

“Of course you are. Mary Joe is a silly, ignorant girl, and you are never to worry about anything she says,” said Anne indignantly, secretly resolving to give Mrs. Irving a discreet hint as to the advisability of restraining Mary Joe’s tongue.

“Of course you are. Mary Joe is a foolish, clueless girl, and you should never worry about anything she says,” Anne said angrily, secretly deciding to give Mrs. Irving a subtle suggestion about the need to keep Mary Joe’s comments in check.

“Well, that’s a weight off my mind,” said Paul. “I’m perfectly happy now, teacher, thanks to you. It wouldn’t be nice to have something wrong in your upper story, would it, teacher? I suppose the reason Mary Joe imagines I have is because I tell her what I think about things sometimes.”

“Well, that’s a relief,” Paul said. “I’m really happy now, teacher, thanks to you. It wouldn’t be good to have something messed up in your head, would it, teacher? I guess the reason Mary Joe thinks I do is that I tell her what I think about things sometimes.”

“It is a rather dangerous practice,” admitted Anne, out of the depths of her own experience.

“It is a pretty risky thing to do,” admitted Anne, from her own experience.

“Well, by and by I’ll tell you the thoughts I told Mary Joe and you can see for yourself if there’s anything queer in them,” said Paul, “but I’ll wait till it begins to get dark. That is the time I ache to tell people things, and when nobody else is handy I just have to tell Mary Joe. But after this I won’t, if it makes her imagine I’m wrong in my upper story. I’ll just ache and bear it.”

“Well, eventually I’ll share the thoughts I told Mary Joe, and you can see for yourself if there’s anything weird about them,” said Paul, “but I’ll wait until it starts getting dark. That’s when I really feel the need to tell people things, and when no one else is around, I just *have* to tell Mary Joe. But after this, I won’t if it makes her think I’m not all there. I’ll just keep it to myself and deal with it.”

“And if the ache gets too bad you can come up to Green Gables and tell me your thoughts,” suggested Anne, with all the gravity that endeared her to children, who so dearly love to be taken seriously.

“And if the pain becomes too much, you can come up to Green Gables and share your thoughts with me,” suggested Anne, with all the seriousness that made her so lovable to children, who really appreciate being taken seriously.

“Yes, I will. But I hope Davy won’t be there when I go because he makes faces at me. I don’t mind very much because he is such a little boy and I am quite a big one, but still it is not pleasant to have faces made at you. And Davy makes such terrible ones. Sometimes I am frightened he will never get his face straightened out again. He makes them at me in church when I ought to be thinking of sacred things. Dora likes me though, and I like her, but not so well as I did before she told Minnie May Barry that she meant to marry me when I grew up. I may marry somebody when I grow up but I’m far too young to be thinking of it yet, don’t you think, teacher?”

“Yes, I will. But I hope Davy isn’t there when I go because he makes faces at me. I don’t mind that much because he is such a little kid and I am quite a bit older, but it’s still not pleasant to have someone making faces at you. And Davy makes some really awful ones. Sometimes I worry he won’t ever get his face to look normal again. He does it at me in church when I should be thinking about important things. Dora likes me though, and I like her, but not as much as I did before she told Minnie May Barry that she plans to marry me when I grow up. I might marry someone when I grow up, but I'm way too young to be thinking about that yet, don’t you think, teacher?”

“Rather young,” agreed teacher.

“Pretty young,” agreed teacher.

“Speaking of marrying, reminds me of another thing that has been troubling me of late,” continued Paul. “Mrs. Lynde was down here one day last week having tea with Grandma, and Grandma made me show her my little mother’s picture . . . the one father sent me for my birthday present. I didn’t exactly want to show it to Mrs. Lynde. Mrs. Lynde is a good, kind woman, but she isn’t the sort of person you want to show your mother’s picture to. You know, teacher. But of course I obeyed Grandma. Mrs. Lynde said she was very pretty but kind of actressy looking, and must have been an awful lot younger than father. Then she said, ‘Some of these days your pa will be marrying again likely. How will you like to have a new ma, Master Paul?’ Well, the idea almost took my breath away, teacher, but I wasn’t going to let Mrs. Lynde see that. I just looked her straight in the face . . . like this . . . and I said, ‘Mrs. Lynde, father made a pretty good job of picking out my first mother and I could trust him to pick out just as good a one the second time.’ And I can trust him, teacher. But still, I hope, if he ever does give me a new mother, he’ll ask my opinion about her before it’s too late. There’s Mary Joe coming to call us to tea. I’ll go and consult with her about the shortbread.”

“Speaking of marriage, it reminds me of something that's been bothering me lately,” continued Paul. “Mrs. Lynde was here one day last week having tea with Grandma, and Grandma made me show her my little mother’s picture... the one Dad sent me for my birthday. I really didn’t want to show it to Mrs. Lynde. She’s a nice, kind woman, but she’s not someone you want to share your mom's picture with. You know what I mean, teacher. But, of course, I did what Grandma said. Mrs. Lynde said my mom was very pretty, but looked kind of flashy, and must have been much younger than Dad. Then she said, ‘Someday, your dad will probably get married again. How would you feel about having a new mom, Master Paul?’ Honestly, the thought nearly took my breath away, teacher, but I wasn’t going to let Mrs. Lynde see that. I just looked her straight in the eye... like this... and I said, ‘Mrs. Lynde, Dad did a great job picking out my first mom, and I trust him to choose just as good a one the second time.’ And I really can trust him, teacher. But still, I hope that if he ever decides to get me a new mom, he’ll ask for my opinion before it’s too late. Here comes Mary Joe to call us for tea. I’ll go and talk to her about the shortbread.”

As a result of the “consultation,” Mary Joe cut the shortbread and added a dish of preserves to the bill of fare. Anne poured the tea and she and Paul had a very merry meal in the dim old sitting room whose windows were open to the gulf breezes, and they talked so much “nonsense” that Mary Joe was quite scandalized and told Veronica the next evening that “de school mees” was as queer as Paul. After tea Paul took Anne up to his room to show her his mother’s picture, which had been the mysterious birthday present kept by Mrs. Irving in the bookcase. Paul’s little low-ceilinged room was a soft whirl of ruddy light from the sun that was setting over the sea and swinging shadows from the fir trees that grew close to the square, deep-set window. From out this soft glow and glamor shone a sweet, girlish face, with tender mother eyes, that was hanging on the wall at the foot of the bed.

As a result of the “consultation,” Mary Joe sliced the shortbread and added a dish of preserves to the menu. Anne poured the tea, and she and Paul enjoyed a very cheerful meal in the dim old sitting room, with the windows open to the Gulf breezes. They chatted so much “nonsense” that Mary Joe was quite scandalized and told Veronica the next evening that “the school teacher” was as strange as Paul. After tea, Paul took Anne up to his room to show her his mother’s picture, which had been the mysterious birthday present kept by Mrs. Irving in the bookcase. Paul’s small, low-ceilinged room was filled with a warm, reddish light from the setting sun over the sea, casting swinging shadows from the fir trees close to the deep-set window. Emerging from this soft glow was a sweet, girlish face with tender, motherly eyes, hanging on the wall at the foot of the bed.

“That’s my little mother,” said Paul with loving pride. “I got Grandma to hang it there where I’d see it as soon as I opened my eyes in the morning. I never mind not having the light when I go to bed now, because it just seems as if my little mother was right here with me. Father knew just what I would like for a birthday present, although he never asked me. Isn’t it wonderful how much fathers do know?”

“That’s my little mother,” Paul said with loving pride. “I got Grandma to hang it there so I’d see it as soon as I opened my eyes in the morning. I don’t even mind going to bed without the light now because it feels like my little mother is right here with me. Dad knew exactly what I would want for a birthday present, even though he never asked. Isn’t it amazing how much dads do know?”

“Your mother was very lovely, Paul, and you look a little like her. But her eyes and hair are darker than yours.”

“Your mom was really beautiful, Paul, and you kind of resemble her. But her eyes and hair are darker than yours.”

“My eyes are the same color as father’s,” said Paul, flying about the room to heap all available cushions on the window seat, “but father’s hair is gray. He has lots of it, but it is gray. You see, father is nearly fifty. That’s ripe old age, isn’t it? But it’s only outside he’s old. Inside he’s just as young as anybody. Now, teacher, please sit here; and I’ll sit at your feet. May I lay my head against your knee? That’s the way my little mother and I used to sit. Oh, this is real splendid, I think.”

“My eyes are the same color as Dad’s,” Paul said, zooming around the room to pile all the cushions on the window seat. “But Dad’s hair is gray. He has a lot of it, but it’s gray. You see, Dad is almost fifty. That’s pretty old, right? But he’s only old on the outside. On the inside, he’s as young as anyone. Now, teacher, please sit here; and I’ll sit at your feet. Can I rest my head on your knee? That’s how my little mom and I used to sit. Oh, this is really awesome, I think.”

“Now, I want to hear those thoughts which Mary Joe pronounces so queer,” said Anne, patting the mop of curls at her side. Paul never needed any coaxing to tell his thoughts . . . at least, to congenial souls.

“Now, I want to hear those strange thoughts that Mary Joe expresses,” said Anne, patting the curly hair at her side. Paul never needed any encouragement to share his thoughts . . . at least, with like-minded people.

“I thought them out in the fir grove one night,” he said dreamily. “Of course I didn’t believe them but I thought them. You know, teacher. And then I wanted to tell them to somebody and there was nobody but Mary Joe. Mary Joe was in the pantry setting bread and I sat down on the bench beside her and I said, ‘Mary Joe, do you know what I think? I think the evening star is a lighthouse on the land where the fairies dwell.’ And Mary Joe said, ‘Well, yous are de queer one. Dare ain’t no such ting as fairies.’ I was very much provoked. Of course, I knew there are no fairies; but that needn’t prevent my thinking there is. You know, teacher. But I tried again quite patiently. I said, ‘Well then, Mary Joe, do you know what I think? I think an angel walks over the world after the sun sets . . . a great, tall, white angel, with silvery folded wings . . . and sings the flowers and birds to sleep. Children can hear him if they know how to listen.’ Then Mary Joe held up her hands all over flour and said, ‘Well, yous are de queer leetle boy. Yous make me feel scare.’ And she really did looked scared. I went out then and whispered the rest of my thoughts to the garden. There was a little birch tree in the garden and it died. Grandma says the salt spray killed it; but I think the dryad belonging to it was a foolish dryad who wandered away to see the world and got lost. And the little tree was so lonely it died of a broken heart.”

“I thought of them in the fir grove one night,” he said dreamily. “Of course I didn’t believe them but I thought of them. You know, teacher. And then I wanted to tell someone and there was nobody but Mary Joe. Mary Joe was in the pantry making bread, and I sat down on the bench beside her and I said, ‘Mary Joe, do you know what I think? I think the evening star is a lighthouse on the land where the fairies live.’ And Mary Joe said, ‘Well, you’re the odd one. There ain’t no such thing as fairies.’ I was really annoyed. Of course, I knew there are no fairies; but that shouldn’t stop me from thinking there are. You know, teacher. But I tried again patiently. I said, ‘Well then, Mary Joe, do you know what I think? I think an angel walks over the world after the sun sets... a great, tall, white angel, with silvery folded wings... and sings the flowers and birds to sleep. Children can hear him if they know how to listen.’ Then Mary Joe held up her hands covered in flour and said, ‘Well, you’re a strange little boy. You make me feel scared.’ And she really did look scared. I went outside then and whispered the rest of my thoughts to the garden. There was a little birch tree in the garden and it died. Grandma says the salt spray killed it; but I think the dryad belonging to it was a silly dryad who wandered off to see the world and got lost. And the little tree was so lonely it died of a broken heart.”

“And when the poor, foolish little dryad gets tired of the world and comes back to her tree her heart will break,” said Anne.

“And when the poor, foolish little dryad gets tired of the world and comes back to her tree, her heart will break,” said Anne.

“Yes; but if dryads are foolish they must take the consequences, just as if they were real people,” said Paul gravely. “Do you know what I think about the new moon, teacher? I think it is a little golden boat full of dreams.”

“Yes; but if dryads are foolish, they have to face the consequences, just like real people,” Paul said seriously. “Do you know what I think about the new moon, teacher? I think it’s a little golden boat full of dreams.”

“And when it tips on a cloud some of them spill out and fall into your sleep.”

“And when it tilts on a cloud, some of them spill out and fall into your sleep.”

“Exactly, teacher. Oh, you do know. And I think the violets are little snips of the sky that fell down when the angels cut out holes for the stars to shine through. And the buttercups are made out of old sunshine; and I think the sweet peas will be butterflies when they go to heaven. Now, teacher, do you see anything so very queer about those thoughts?”

“Exactly, teacher. Oh, you do know. And I think the violets are little pieces of the sky that fell down when the angels made holes for the stars to shine through. And the buttercups are made from old sunshine; and I think the sweet peas will turn into butterflies when they go to heaven. Now, teacher, do you see anything so very strange about those thoughts?”

“No, laddie dear, they are not queer at all; they are strange and beautiful thoughts for a little boy to think, and so people who couldn’t think anything of the sort themselves, if they tried for a hundred years, think them queer. But keep on thinking them, Paul . . . some day you are going to be a poet, I believe.”

“No, dear boy, they aren't weird at all; they are unique and beautiful ideas for a little boy to ponder, and so people who couldn’t come up with anything like that themselves, even if they tried for a hundred years, think they’re strange. But keep thinking those thoughts, Paul… I believe you’re going to be a poet someday.”

When Anne reached home she found a very different type of boyhood waiting to be put to bed. Davy was sulky; and when Anne had undressed him he bounced into bed and buried his face in the pillow.

When Anne got home, she found a very different kind of boyhood ready to be put to bed. Davy was acting sulky; and when Anne had taken off his clothes, he jumped into bed and buried his face in the pillow.

“Davy, you have forgotten to say your prayers,” said Anne rebukingly.

“Davy, you forgot to say your prayers,” Anne said, scolding him.

“No, I didn’t forget,” said Davy defiantly, “but I ain’t going to say my prayers any more. I’m going to give up trying to be good, ’cause no matter how good I am you’d like Paul Irving better. So I might as well be bad and have the fun of it.”

“No, I didn’t forget,” Davy said defiantly, “but I’m not going to say my prayers anymore. I’m done trying to be good because no matter how good I am, you’ll like Paul Irving better. So I might as well be bad and enjoy it.”

“I don’t like Paul Irving better,” said Anne seriously. “I like you just as well, only in a different way.”

“I don’t like Paul Irving more,” Anne said seriously. “I like you just as much, just in a different way.”

“But I want you to like me the same way,” pouted Davy.

“But I want you to like me in the same way,” Davy pouted.

“You can’t like different people the same way. You don’t like Dora and me the same way, do you?”

“You can’t like different people in the same way. You don’t like Dora and me the same, do you?”

Davy sat up and reflected.

Davy sat up and thought.

“No . . . o . . . o,” he admitted at last, “I like Dora because she’s my sister but I like you because you’re you.”

“No . . . o . . . o,” he finally confessed, “I like Dora because she’s my sister, but I like you because you’re you.”

“And I like Paul because he is Paul and Davy because he is Davy,” said Anne gaily.

“And I like Paul because he’s Paul and Davy because he’s Davy,” said Anne cheerfully.

“Well, I kind of wish I’d said my prayers then,” said Davy, convinced by this logic. “But it’s too much bother getting out now to say them. I’ll say them twice over in the morning, Anne. Won’t that do as well?”

“Well, I kind of wish I’d said my prayers then,” Davy said, convinced by this reasoning. “But it’s too much hassle to get up now to say them. I’ll say them twice in the morning, Anne. Won’t that work just as well?”

No, Anne was positive it would not do as well. So Davy scrambled out and knelt down at her knee. When he had finished his devotions he leaned back on his little, bare, brown heels and looked up at her.

No, Anne was sure it wouldn’t turn out as well. So Davy climbed out and knelt down at her knee. When he finished his prayers, he leaned back on his small, bare, brown heels and looked up at her.

“Anne, I’m gooder than I used to be.”

“Anne, I’m better than I used to be.”

“Yes, indeed you are, Davy,” said Anne, who never hesitated to give credit where credit was due.

“Yes, you definitely are, Davy,” said Anne, who always made it a point to acknowledge credit when it was due.

“I know I’m gooder,” said Davy confidently, “and I’ll tell you how I know it. Today Marilla give me two pieces of bread and jam, one for me and one for Dora. One was a good deal bigger than the other and Marilla didn’t say which was mine. But I give the biggest piece to Dora. That was good of me, wasn’t it?”

“I know I’m better,” Davy said confidently, “and I’ll explain how I know. Today, Marilla gave me two pieces of bread and jam, one for me and one for Dora. One was a lot bigger than the other, and Marilla didn’t say which one was mine. But I gave the bigger piece to Dora. That was nice of me, wasn’t it?”

“Very good, and very manly, Davy.”

“Really great, and very tough, Davy.”

“Of course,” admitted Davy, “Dora wasn’t very hungry and she only et half her slice and then she give the rest to me. But I didn’t know she was going to do that when I give it to her, so I was good, Anne.”

“Of course,” Davy admitted, “Dora wasn’t very hungry and she only ate half of her slice and then she gave the rest to me. But I didn’t know she was going to do that when I gave it to her, so I *was* good, Anne.”

In the twilight Anne sauntered down to the Dryad’s Bubble and saw Gilbert Blythe coming down through the dusky Haunted Wood. She had a sudden realization that Gilbert was a schoolboy no longer. And how manly he looked—the tall, frank-faced fellow, with the clear, straightforward eyes and the broad shoulders. Anne thought Gilbert was a very handsome lad, even though he didn’t look at all like her ideal man. She and Diana had long ago decided what kind of a man they admired and their tastes seemed exactly similar. He must be very tall and distinguished looking, with melancholy, inscrutable eyes, and a melting, sympathetic voice. There was nothing either melancholy or inscrutable in Gilbert’s physiognomy, but of course that didn’t matter in friendship!

In the twilight, Anne strolled down to the Dryad’s Bubble and saw Gilbert Blythe walking through the shadowy Haunted Wood. She suddenly realized that Gilbert was no longer a schoolboy. And he looked so manly—the tall, open-faced guy, with clear, honest eyes and broad shoulders. Anne thought Gilbert was a really handsome guy, even though he didn’t fit her ideal. She and Diana had long ago decided what kind of man they admired, and their tastes were exactly alike. He should be very tall and distinguished-looking, with deep, mysterious eyes and a warm, sympathetic voice. There was nothing melancholic or mysterious about Gilbert’s appearance, but of course that didn’t matter in friendship!

Gilbert stretched himself out on the ferns beside the Bubble and looked approvingly at Anne. If Gilbert had been asked to describe his ideal woman the description would have answered point for point to Anne, even to those seven tiny freckles whose obnoxious presence still continued to vex her soul. Gilbert was as yet little more than a boy; but a boy has his dreams as have others, and in Gilbert’s future there was always a girl with big, limpid gray eyes, and a face as fine and delicate as a flower. He had made up his mind, also, that his future must be worthy of its goddess. Even in quiet Avonlea there were temptations to be met and faced. White Sands youth were a rather “fast” set, and Gilbert was popular wherever he went. But he meant to keep himself worthy of Anne’s friendship and perhaps some distant day her love; and he watched over word and thought and deed as jealously as if her clear eyes were to pass in judgment on it. She held over him the unconscious influence that every girl, whose ideals are high and pure, wields over her friends; an influence which would endure as long as she was faithful to those ideals and which she would as certainly lose if she were ever false to them. In Gilbert’s eyes Anne’s greatest charm was the fact that she never stooped to the petty practices of so many of the Avonlea girls—the small jealousies, the little deceits and rivalries, the palpable bids for favor. Anne held herself apart from all this, not consciously or of design, but simply because anything of the sort was utterly foreign to her transparent, impulsive nature, crystal clear in its motives and aspirations.

Gilbert lay back on the ferns next to the Bubble and looked at Anne with approval. If someone had asked Gilbert to describe his ideal woman, his description would match Anne in every detail, even to the seven tiny freckles that still annoyed her. Gilbert was still pretty much a boy, but like any boy, he had his dreams, and in his future, there was always a girl with big, clear gray eyes and a face as beautiful and delicate as a flower. He’d also decided that his future needed to be worthy of his goddess. Even in quiet Avonlea, there were challenges to face. The youth from White Sands had a pretty wild reputation, and Gilbert was popular wherever he went. But he intended to keep himself deserving of Anne’s friendship and maybe someday her love, watching over his words, thoughts, and actions as if her clear eyes were judging him. She had an unconscious influence over him that every girl with high, pure ideals has over her friends; an influence that would last as long as she stayed true to those ideals and that she would lose if she ever strayed from them. In Gilbert’s eyes, Anne’s greatest charm was her refusal to engage in the petty behaviors of so many Avonlea girls—the jealousy, the little lies and rivalries, the obvious attempts to gain favor. Anne kept herself separate from all of that, not on purpose, but simply because anything like that was completely foreign to her honest, spontaneous nature, which was clear in its motives and aspirations.

But Gilbert did not attempt to put his thoughts into words, for he had already too good reason to know that Anne would mercilessly and frostily nip all attempts at sentiment in the bud—or laugh at him, which was ten times worse.

But Gilbert didn't try to express his thoughts, since he already had plenty of reasons to know that Anne would coldly shut down any attempts at sentiment—or laugh at him, which was way worse.

“You look like a real dryad under that birch tree,” he said teasingly.

“You look like a real dryad under that birch tree,” he said playfully.

“I love birch trees,” said Anne, laying her cheek against the creamy satin of the slim bole, with one of the pretty, caressing gestures that came so natural to her.

“I love birch trees,” said Anne, resting her cheek against the smooth, creamy bark of the slender trunk, using one of the lovely, gentle gestures that felt so natural to her.

“Then you’ll be glad to hear that Mr. Major Spencer has decided to set out a row of white birches all along the road front of his farm, by way of encouraging the A.V.I.S.,” said Gilbert. “He was talking to me about it today. Major Spencer is the most progressive and public-spirited man in Avonlea. And Mr. William Bell is going to set out a spruce hedge along his road front and up his lane. Our Society is getting on splendidly, Anne. It is past the experimental stage and is an accepted fact. The older folks are beginning to take an interest in it and the White Sands people are talking of starting one too. Even Elisha Wright has come around since that day the Americans from the hotel had the picnic at the shore. They praised our roadsides so highly and said they were so much prettier than in any other part of the Island. And when, in due time, the other farmers follow Mr. Spencer’s good example and plant ornamental trees and hedges along their road fronts Avonlea will be the prettiest settlement in the province.”

“Then you'll be happy to know that Mr. Major Spencer has decided to plant a row of white birches all along the road in front of his farm to support the A.V.I.S.,” said Gilbert. “He mentioned it to me today. Major Spencer is the most forward-thinking and community-oriented person in Avonlea. And Mr. William Bell is going to plant a spruce hedge along his road and up his lane. Our Society is doing wonderfully, Anne. We've moved past the experimental stage and it's now widely accepted. The older generation is starting to take an interest, and the people from White Sands are even considering starting their own. Even Elisha Wright has changed his mind since that day when the Americans from the hotel had a picnic at the shore. They complimented our roadsides and remarked that they were much prettier than anywhere else on the Island. When more farmers follow Mr. Spencer’s great example and plant decorative trees and hedges along their roads, Avonlea will be the most beautiful community in the province.”

“The Aids are talking of taking up the graveyard,” said Anne, “and I hope they will, because there will have to be a subscription for that, and it would be no use for the Society to try it after the hall affair. But the Aids would never have stirred in the matter if the Society hadn’t put it into their thoughts unofficially. Those trees we planted on the church grounds are flourishing, and the trustees have promised me that they will fence in the school grounds next year. If they do I’ll have an arbor day and every scholar shall plant a tree; and we’ll have a garden in the corner by the road.”

“The Aids are talking about taking over the graveyard,” said Anne, “and I really hope they do because it'll require a subscription, and it wouldn't make sense for the Society to attempt it after what happened with the hall. But the Aids wouldn’t have even thought about it if the Society hadn’t unofficially put it in their heads. Those trees we planted on the church grounds are thriving, and the trustees have promised me that they’ll put up a fence around the school grounds next year. If they do, I’ll organize an Arbor Day where every student will plant a tree; and we’ll create a garden in the corner by the road.”

“We’ve succeeded in almost all our plans so far, except in getting the old Boulter house removed,” said Gilbert, “and I’ve given that up in despair. Levi won’t have it taken down just to vex us. There’s a contrary streak in all the Boulters and it’s strongly developed in him.”

“We’ve been successful in almost all our plans so far, except for getting the old Boulter house taken down,” said Gilbert, “and I’ve given up on that in despair. Levi won’t let it be torn down just to annoy us. There’s a rebellious streak in all the Boulters, and it’s really strong in him.”

“Julia Bell wants to send another committee to him, but I think the better way will just be to leave him severely alone,” said Anne sagely.

“Julia Bell wants to send another committee to him, but I think the better way will just be to leave him completely alone,” said Anne wisely.

“And trust to Providence, as Mrs. Lynde says,” smiled Gilbert. “Certainly, no more committees. They only aggravate him. Julia Bell thinks you can do anything, if you only have a committee to attempt it. Next spring, Anne, we must start an agitation for nice lawns and grounds. We’ll sow good seed betimes this winter. I’ve a treatise here on lawns and lawnmaking and I’m going to prepare a paper on the subject soon. Well, I suppose our vacation is almost over. School opens Monday. Has Ruby Gillis got the Carmody school?”

“And trust in fate, as Mrs. Lynde says,” smiled Gilbert. “Definitely no more committees. They just frustrate him. Julia Bell believes you can achieve anything if you have a committee to work on it. Next spring, Anne, we need to start a movement for nice lawns and gardens. We’ll plant good seeds this winter. I have a guide here on lawns and lawn care, and I’m going to put together a paper on the topic soon. Well, I guess our vacation is almost over. School starts Monday. Did Ruby Gillis get into the Carmody school?”

“Yes; Priscilla wrote that she had taken her own home school, so the Carmody trustees gave it to Ruby. I’m sorry Priscilla is not coming back, but since she can’t I’m glad Ruby has got the school. She will be home for Saturdays and it will seem like old times, to have her and Jane and Diana and myself all together again.”

“Yes, Priscilla wrote that she had started her own home school, so the Carmody trustees gave it to Ruby. I’m sorry Priscilla isn’t coming back, but since she can’t, I’m glad Ruby has the school. She’ll be home on Saturdays, and it will feel like old times to have her, Jane, Diana, and me all together again.”

Marilla, just home from Mrs. Lynde’s, was sitting on the back porch step when Anne returned to the house.

Marilla, just back from Mrs. Lynde’s, was sitting on the back porch step when Anne came back to the house.

“Rachel and I have decided to have our cruise to town tomorrow,” she said. “Mr. Lynde is feeling better this week and Rachel wants to go before he has another sick spell.”

“Rachel and I have decided to take our trip to town tomorrow,” she said. “Mr. Lynde is feeling better this week and Rachel wants to go before he gets sick again.”

“I intend to get up extra early tomorrow morning, for I’ve ever so much to do,” said Anne virtuously. “For one thing, I’m going to shift the feathers from my old bedtick to the new one. I ought to have done it long ago but I’ve just kept putting it off . . . it’s such a detestable task. It’s a very bad habit to put off disagreeable things, and I never mean to again, or else I can’t comfortably tell my pupils not to do it. That would be inconsistent. Then I want to make a cake for Mr. Harrison and finish my paper on gardens for the A.V.I.S., and write Stella, and wash and starch my muslin dress, and make Dora’s new apron.”

“I plan to wake up super early tomorrow morning because I have so much to do,” said Anne earnestly. “For one thing, I’m going to move the feathers from my old mattress to the new one. I should have done it a long time ago, but I just kept putting it off... it’s such a horrible chore. It’s a really bad habit to avoid unpleasant tasks, and I’m determined not to do it again, or else I can’t honestly tell my students not to do it. That would be inconsistent. Then I want to bake a cake for Mr. Harrison, finish my paper on gardens for the A.V.I.S., write to Stella, wash and starch my muslin dress, and make Dora’s new apron.”

“You won’t get half done,” said Marilla pessimistically. “I never yet planned to do a lot of things but something happened to prevent me.”

“You won’t get half of it done,” Marilla said gloomily. “I’ve never planned to do a lot of things without something getting in the way.”

XX
The Way It Often Happens

Anne rose betimes the next morning and blithely greeted the fresh day, when the banners of the sunrise were shaken triumphantly across the pearly skies. Green Gables lay in a pool of sunshine, flecked with the dancing shadows of poplar and willow. Beyond the land was Mr. Harrison’s wheatfield, a great, windrippled expanse of pale gold. The world was so beautiful that Anne spent ten blissful minutes hanging idly over the garden gate drinking the loveliness in.

Anne got up early the next morning and cheerfully welcomed the new day, as the sunrise banners waved triumphantly across the bright skies. Green Gables was bathed in sunshine, with the playful shadows of poplar and willow dancing around. Beyond that lay Mr. Harrison’s wheatfield, a vast, wind-tossed stretch of pale gold. The world was so beautiful that Anne spent ten delightful minutes leaning over the garden gate, soaking in the loveliness.

After breakfast Marilla made ready for her journey. Dora was to go with her, having been long promised this treat.

After breakfast, Marilla got ready for her trip. Dora was going with her since she had been promised this special outing for a long time.

“Now, Davy, you try to be a good boy and don’t bother Anne,” she straitly charged him. “If you are good I’ll bring you a striped candy cane from town.”

“Now, Davy, you try to be a good boy and don’t bother Anne,” she firmly told him. “If you’re good, I’ll bring you a striped candy cane from town.”

For alas, Marilla had stooped to the evil habit of bribing people to be good!

For unfortunately, Marilla had fallen into the bad habit of bribing people to be good!

“I won’t be bad on purpose, but s’posen I’m bad zacksidentally?” Davy wanted to know.

“I won’t be bad on purpose, but what if I’m bad accidentally?” Davy wanted to know.

“You’ll have to guard against accidents,” admonished Marilla. “Anne, if Mr. Shearer comes today get a nice roast and some steak. If he doesn’t you’ll have to kill a fowl for dinner tomorrow.”

“You’ll need to be careful about accidents,” Marilla warned. “Anne, if Mr. Shearer comes today, get a nice roast and some steak. If he doesn’t, you’ll have to prepare a chicken for dinner tomorrow.”

Anne nodded.

Anne agreed.

“I’m not going to bother cooking any dinner for just Davy and myself today,” she said. “That cold ham bone will do for noon lunch and I’ll have some steak fried for you when you come home at night.”

“I'm not going to bother cooking dinner for just Davy and me today,” she said. “That cold ham bone will be fine for lunch, and I'll fry up some steak for you when you get home tonight.”

“I’m going to help Mr. Harrison haul dulse this morning,” announced Davy. “He asked me to, and I guess he’ll ask me to dinner too. Mr. Harrison is an awful kind man. He’s a real sociable man. I hope I’ll be like him when I grow up. I mean behave like him . . . I don’t want to look like him. But I guess there’s no danger, for Mrs. Lynde says I’m a very handsome child. Do you s’pose it’ll last, Anne? I want to know?”

“I’m going to help Mr. Harrison collect dulse this morning,” Davy announced. “He asked me to, and I bet he’ll invite me to dinner too. Mr. Harrison is such a kind guy. He’s really friendly. I hope I’ll be like him when I grow up. I mean, I want to act like him… I don’t want to look like him. But I guess there’s no worry about that, since Mrs. Lynde says I’m a very good-looking kid. Do you think it’ll last, Anne? I want to know.”

“I daresay it will,” said Anne gravely. “You are a handsome boy, Davy,” . . . Marilla looked volumes of disapproval . . . “but you must live up to it and be just as nice and gentlemanly as you look to be.”

“I believe it will,” said Anne seriously. “You are a good-looking boy, Davy,” . . . Marilla gave a look full of disapproval . . . “but you need to live up to that and be as nice and polite as you seem to be.”

“And you told Minnie May Barry the other day, when you found her crying ’cause some one said she was ugly, that if she was nice and kind and loving people wouldn’t mind her looks,” said Davy discontentedly. “Seems to me you can’t get out of being good in this world for some reason or ‘nother. You just have to behave.”

“And you told Minnie May Barry the other day, when you found her crying because someone said she was ugly, that if she was nice and kind and loving, people wouldn’t care about her looks,” Davy said, sounding frustrated. “It seems like you can’t escape being good in this world for one reason or another. You just have to behave.”

“Don’t you want to be good?” asked Marilla, who had learned a great deal but had not yet learned the futility of asking such questions.

“Don’t you want to be good?” asked Marilla, who had learned a lot but had not yet realized the futility of asking such questions.

“Yes, I want to be good but not too good,” said Davy cautiously. “You don’t have to be very good to be a Sunday School superintendent. Mr. Bell’s that, and he’s a real bad man.”

“Yes, I want to be good but not too good,” said Davy cautiously. “You don’t have to be very good to be a Sunday School superintendent. Mr. Bell’s that, and he’s a really bad man.”

“Indeed he’s not,” said Marila indignantly.

“Of course he’s not,” Marila said, indignantly.

“He is . . . he says he is himself,” asseverated Davy. “He said it when he prayed in Sunday School last Sunday. He said he was a vile worm and a miserable sinner and guilty of the blackest ‘niquity. What did he do that was so bad, Marilla? Did he kill anybody? Or steal the collection cents? I want to know.”

“He is . . . he says he is himself,” Davy insisted. “He said it when he prayed in Sunday School last Sunday. He said he was a terrible person and a miserable sinner and guilty of the worst wrongdoing. What did he do that was so bad, Marilla? Did he kill someone? Or steal the collection money? I want to know.”

Fortunately Mrs. Lynde came driving up the lane at this moment and Marilla made off, feeling that she had escaped from the snare of the fowler, and wishing devoutly that Mr. Bell were not quite so highly figurative in his public petitions, especially in the hearing of small boys who were always “wanting to know.”

Fortunately, Mrs. Lynde drove up the lane just then, and Marilla quickly left, feeling like she had narrowly escaped a trap, and wishing fervently that Mr. Bell wasn't so overly dramatic in his public speeches, especially in front of curious little boys who were always "wanting to know."

Anne, left alone in her glory, worked with a will. The floor was swept, the beds made, the hens fed, the muslin dress washed and hung out on the line. Then Anne prepared for the transfer of feathers. She mounted to the garret and donned the first old dress that came to hand . . . a navy blue cashmere she had worn at fourteen. It was decidedly on the short side and as “skimpy” as the notable wincey Anne had worn upon the occasion of her debut at Green Gables; but at least it would not be materially injured by down and feathers. Anne completed her toilet by tying a big red and white spotted handkerchief that had belonged to Matthew over her head, and, thus accoutred, betook herself to the kitchen chamber, whither Marilla, before her departure, had helped her carry the feather bed.

Anne, left alone in her moment of glory, worked hard. She swept the floor, made the beds, fed the hens, and washed the muslin dress, hanging it out on the line. Then Anne got ready to move the feathers. She went up to the attic and put on the first old dress she found . . . a navy blue cashmere she had worn when she was fourteen. It was definitely a bit short and as "skimpy" as the notable wincey Anne had worn on her debut at Green Gables; but at least it wouldn’t be seriously damaged by down and feathers. Anne finished getting ready by tying a big red and white spotted handkerchief that had belonged to Matthew around her head, and with that, she headed to the kitchen, where Marilla had helped her carry the feather bed before she left.

A cracked mirror hung by the chamber window and in an unlucky moment Anne looked into it. There were those seven freckles on her nose, more rampant than ever, or so it seemed in the glare of light from the unshaded window.

A cracked mirror hung by the bedroom window, and in an unfortunate moment, Anne looked into it. There were those seven freckles on her nose, more prominent than ever, or at least that’s how it seemed in the bright light from the uncovered window.

“Oh, I forgot to rub that lotion on last night,” she thought. “I’d better run down to the pantry and do it now.”

“Oh, I forgot to put on that lotion last night,” she thought. “I should hurry down to the pantry and do it now.”

Anne had already suffered many things trying to remove those freckles. On one occasion the entire skin had peeled off her nose but the freckles remained. A few days previously she had found a recipe for a freckle lotion in a magazine and, as the ingredients were within her reach, she straightway compounded it, much to the disgust of Marilla, who thought that if Providence had placed freckles on your nose it was your bounden duty to leave them there.

Anne had already gone through a lot trying to get rid of those freckles. One time, the skin on her nose completely peeled off, but the freckles stayed. A few days earlier, she found a recipe for a freckle lotion in a magazine, and since she had the ingredients, she immediately made it, much to Marilla's disapproval, who believed that if God put freckles on your nose, you should just leave them there.

Anne scurried down to the pantry, which, always dim from the big willow growing close to the window, was now almost dark by reason of the shade drawn to exclude flies. Anne caught the bottle containing the lotion from the shelf and copiously anointed her nose therewith by means of a little sponge sacred to the purpose. This important duty done, she returned to her work. Any one who has ever shifted feathers from one tick to another will not need to be told that when Anne finished she was a sight to behold. Her dress was white with down and fluff, and her front hair, escaping from under the handkerchief, was adorned with a veritable halo of feathers. At this auspicious moment a knock sounded at the kitchen door.

Anne rushed down to the pantry, which was always a bit dark due to the big willow tree growing close to the window, but was now almost completely dark because of the shade pulled down to keep out the flies. Anne grabbed the bottle containing the lotion from the shelf and generously applied it to her nose using a small sponge designated for that purpose. Once this important task was completed, she went back to her work. Anyone who has ever transferred feathers from one tick to another knows that by the time Anne finished, she was quite a sight. Her dress was covered in down and fluff, and her hair in front, escaping from under the handkerchief, was adorned with a true halo of feathers. Just then, a knock sounded at the kitchen door.

“That must be Mr. Shearer,” thought Anne. “I’m in a dreadful mess but I’ll have to run down as I am, for he’s always in a hurry.”

"That must be Mr. Shearer," Anne thought. "I'm in a terrible mess, but I have to rush down like this since he's always in a hurry."

Down flew Anne to the kitchen door. If ever a charitable floor did open to swallow up a miserable, befeathered damsel the Green Gables porch floor should promptly have engulfed Anne at that moment. On the doorstep were standing Priscilla Grant, golden and fair in silk attire, a short, stout gray-haired lady in a tweed suit, and another lady, tall stately, wonderfully gowned, with a beautiful, highbred face and large, black-lashed violet eyes, whom Anne “instinctively felt,” as she would have said in her earlier days, to be Mrs. Charlotte E. Morgan.

Down flew Anne to the kitchen door. If there was ever a charitable floor that should open up to swallow a miserable, feathered girl, it should have been the Green Gables porch floor at that moment. Standing on the doorstep were Priscilla Grant, looking golden and lovely in her silk outfit, a short, stout gray-haired lady in a tweed suit, and another lady, tall and dignified, beautifully dressed, with a stunning, refined face and large, black-lashed violet eyes, whom Anne “instinctively felt,” as she would have said in her earlier days, to be Mrs. Charlotte E. Morgan.

In the dismay of the moment one thought stood out from the confusion of Anne’s mind and she grasped at it as at the proverbial straw. All Mrs. Morgan’s heroines were noted for “rising to the occasion.” No matter what their troubles were, they invariably rose to the occasion and showed their superiority over all ills of time, space, and quantity. Anne therefore felt it was her duty to rise to the occasion and she did it, so perfectly that Priscilla afterward declared she never admired Anne Shirley more than at that moment. No matter what her outraged feelings were she did not show them. She greeted Priscilla and was introduced to her companions as calmly and composedly as if she had been arrayed in purple and fine linen. To be sure, it was somewhat of a shock to find that the lady she had instinctively felt to be Mrs. Morgan was not Mrs. Morgan at all, but an unknown Mrs. Pendexter, while the stout little gray-haired woman was Mrs. Morgan; but in the greater shock the lesser lost its power. Anne ushered her guests to the spare room and thence into the parlor, where she left them while she hastened out to help Priscilla unharness her horse.

In the midst of her panic, one thought emerged from the chaos in Anne's mind, and she clung to it like it was a lifeline. All of Mrs. Morgan's heroines were known for "rising to the occasion." No matter what challenges they faced, they always managed to overcome them and exhibited their strength against all problems. Anne felt it was her duty to rise to the occasion too, and she did so flawlessly, to the point that Priscilla later said she had never admired Anne Shirley more than at that moment. Despite her hurt feelings, she kept them hidden. She greeted Priscilla and was introduced to her friends as calmly and with as much poise as if she were dressed in the finest clothes. Of course, it was a bit shocking to discover that the woman she had instinctively thought was Mrs. Morgan actually wasn’t; she was an unknown Mrs. Pendexter, while the stout little gray-haired woman was, in fact, Mrs. Morgan. However, the bigger shock overshadowed the smaller one. Anne guided her guests to the spare room and then into the parlor, where she left them while she hurried outside to help Priscilla unharness her horse.

“It’s dreadful to come upon you so unexpectedly as this,” apologized Priscilla, “but I did not know till last night that we were coming. Aunt Charlotte is going away Monday and she had promised to spend today with a friend in town. But last night her friend telephoned to her not to come because they were quarantined for scarlet fever. So I suggested we come here instead, for I knew you were longing to see her. We called at the White Sands Hotel and brought Mrs. Pendexter with us. She is a friend of aunt’s and lives in New York and her husband is a millionaire. We can’t stay very long, for Mrs. Pendexter has to be back at the hotel by five o’clock.”

“It’s so unexpected to run into you like this,” Priscilla apologized, “but I didn’t know until last night that we were coming. Aunt Charlotte is leaving on Monday and she had promised to spend today with a friend in town. But last night her friend called to say not to come because they’re quarantined for scarlet fever. So I suggested we come here instead, since I knew you were eager to see her. We stopped by the White Sands Hotel and brought Mrs. Pendexter with us. She’s a friend of my aunt’s, lives in New York, and her husband is a millionaire. We can’t stay very long, though, because Mrs. Pendexter needs to be back at the hotel by five o’clock.”

Several times while they were putting away the horse Anne caught Priscilla looking at her in a furtive, puzzled way.

Several times while they were putting away the horse, Anne noticed Priscilla looking at her in a sneaky, confused way.

“She needn’t stare at me so,” Anne thought a little resentfully. “If she doesn’t know what it is to change a feather bed she might imagine it.”

“She doesn’t need to stare at me like that,” Anne thought a bit resentfully. “If she doesn’t know what it’s like to change a feather bed, she could at least imagine it.”

When Priscilla had gone to the parlor, and before Anne could escape upstairs, Diana walked into the kitchen. Anne caught her astonished friend by the arm.

When Priscilla went to the parlor, and before Anne could make her way upstairs, Diana walked into the kitchen. Anne grabbed her surprised friend by the arm.

“Diana Barry, who do you suppose is in that parlor at this very moment? Mrs. Charlotte E. Morgan . . . and a New York millionaire’s wife . . . and here I am like this . . . and not a thing in the house for dinner but a cold ham bone, Diana!”

“Diana Barry, can you guess who's in the parlor right now? Mrs. Charlotte E. Morgan... and a millionaire's wife from New York... and here I am like this... and there's not a single thing in the house for dinner except a cold ham bone, Diana!”

By this time Anne had become aware that Diana was staring at her in precisely the same bewildered fashion as Priscilla had done. It was really too much.

By now, Anne realized that Diana was looking at her with the same confused expression that Priscilla had. It was honestly too much.

“Oh, Diana, don’t look at me so,” she implored. “You, at least, must know that the neatest person in the world couldn’t empty feathers from one tick into another and remain neat in the process.”

“Oh, Diana, don’t look at me like that,” she begged. “You, at least, have to understand that the most organized person in the world couldn’t transfer feathers from one tick to another and stay tidy while doing it.”

“It . . . it . . . isn’t the feathers,” hesitated Diana. “It’s . . . it’s . . . your nose, Anne.”

“It . . . it . . . isn’t the feathers,” Diana hesitated. “It’s . . . it’s . . . your nose, Anne.”

“My nose? Oh, Diana, surely nothing has gone wrong with it!”

“My nose? Oh, Diana, there’s no way anything is wrong with it!”

Anne rushed to the little looking glass over the sink. One glance revealed the fatal truth. Her nose was a brilliant scarlet!

Anne hurried to the small mirror above the sink. One glance revealed the harsh reality. Her nose was a bright red!

Anne sat down on the sofa, her dauntless spirit subdued at last.

Anne sat down on the sofa, her fearless spirit finally calmed.

“What is the matter with it?” asked Diana, curiosity overcoming delicacy.

“What’s wrong with it?” asked Diana, her curiosity getting the better of her modesty.

“I thought I was rubbing my freckle lotion on it, but I must have used that red dye Marilla has for marking the pattern on her rugs,” was the despairing response. “What shall I do?”

“I thought I was putting on my freckle lotion, but I must have grabbed that red dye Marilla uses for marking the patterns on her rugs,” was the distressed reply. “What am I going to do?”

“Wash it off,” said Diana practically.

“Wash it off,” Diana said matter-of-factly.

“Perhaps it won’t wash off. First I dye my hair; then I dye my nose. Marilla cut my hair off when I dyed it but that remedy would hardly be practicable in this case. Well, this is another punishment for vanity and I suppose I deserve it . . . though there’s not much comfort in that. It is really almost enough to make one believe in ill-luck, though Mrs. Lynde says there is no such thing, because everything is foreordained.”

“Maybe it won’t come off. First, I dye my hair; then I dye my nose. Marilla cut my hair short when I dyed it, but that solution wouldn’t really work here. Well, this is just another punishment for being vain, and I guess I deserve it… although there’s not much comfort in that. It almost makes one believe in bad luck, even though Mrs. Lynde says there’s no such thing, because everything is predetermined.”

Fortunately the dye washed off easily and Anne, somewhat consoled, betook herself to the east gable while Diana ran home. Presently Anne came down again, clothed and in her right mind. The muslin dress she had fondly hoped to wear was bobbing merrily about on the line outside, so she was forced to content herself with her black lawn. She had the fire on and the tea steeping when Diana returned; the latter wore her muslin, at least, and carried a covered platter in her hand.

Fortunately, the dye washed out easily, and Anne, feeling a bit better, headed to the east gable while Diana ran home. Soon, Anne came back down, dressed and feeling normal again. The muslin dress she had hoped to wear was happily dancing on the line outside, so she had to settle for her black lawn dress. She had the fire going and the tea brewing when Diana returned; at least Diana was wearing her muslin and had a covered platter in her hand.

“Mother sent you this,” she said, lifting the cover and displaying a nicely carved and jointed chicken to Anne’s greatful eyes.

“Mom sent you this,” she said, lifting the cover and showing a beautifully carved and jointed chicken to Anne’s grateful eyes.

The chicken was supplemented by light new bread, excellent butter and cheese, Marilla’s fruit cake and a dish of preserved plums, floating in their golden syrup as in congealed summer sunshine. There was a big bowlful of pink-and-white asters also, by way of decoration; yet the spread seemed very meager beside the elaborate one formerly prepared for Mrs. Morgan.

The chicken was accompanied by fresh, soft bread, great butter and cheese, Marilla’s fruitcake, and a dish of preserved plums swimming in their golden syrup like congealed summer sunshine. There was also a big bowl of pink-and-white asters for decoration; still, the spread felt pretty skimpy compared to the fancy one that had been prepared for Mrs. Morgan.

Anne’s hungry guests, however, did not seem to think anything was lacking and they ate the simple viands with apparent enjoyment. But after the first few moments Anne thought no more of what was or was not on her bill of fare. Mrs. Morgan’s appearance might be somewhat disappointing, as even her loyal worshippers had been forced to admit to each other; but she proved to be a delightful conversationalist. She had traveled extensively and was an excellent storyteller. She had seen much of men and women, and crystalized her experiences into witty little sentences and epigrams which made her hearers feel as if they were listening to one of the people in clever books. But under all her sparkle there was a strongly felt undercurrent of true, womanly sympathy and kindheartedness which won affection as easily as her brilliancy won admiration. Nor did she monopolize the conversation. She could draw others out as skillfully and fully as she could talk herself, and Anne and Diana found themselves chattering freely to her. Mrs. Pendexter said little; she merely smiled with her lovely eyes and lips, and ate chicken and fruit cake and preserves with such exquisite grace that she conveyed the impression of dining on ambrosia and honeydew. But then, as Anne said to Diana later on, anybody so divinely beautiful as Mrs. Pendexter didn’t need to talk; it was enough for her just to look.

Anne’s hungry guests, however, didn’t seem to notice anything missing and enjoyed the simple food. After the first few moments, Anne no longer thought about what was or wasn't on her menu. Mrs. Morgan’s appearance might have been a bit disappointing, as even her loyal fans had to admit to each other; but she turned out to be a wonderful conversationalist. She had traveled a lot and was an excellent storyteller. She had seen a lot of people and turned her experiences into witty little remarks and phrases that made her listeners feel like they were hearing one of the clever characters from smart books. Beneath all her charm, there was a genuine undercurrent of true, womanly sympathy and kindness that won affection just as easily as her brilliance won admiration. She didn’t dominate the conversation either. She could bring others into the discussion just as skillfully as she could talk herself, and Anne and Diana found themselves chatting freely with her. Mrs. Pendexter said little; she just smiled with her lovely eyes and lips, and ate chicken and fruit cake and preserves with such grace that she gave the impression of dining on ambrosia and honeydew. But then, as Anne told Diana later, anyone as incredibly beautiful as Mrs. Pendexter didn’t need to talk; it was enough for her just to look.

After dinner they all had a walk through Lover’s Lane and Violet Vale and the Birch Path, then back through the Haunted Wood to the Dryad’s Bubble, where they sat down and talked for a delightful last half hour. Mrs. Morgan wanted to know how the Haunted Wood came by its name, and laughed until she cried when she heard the story and Anne’s dramatic account of a certain memorable walk through it at the witching hour of twilight.

After dinner, they all took a walk through Lover’s Lane, Violet Vale, and the Birch Path, then back through the Haunted Wood to the Dryad’s Bubble, where they sat down and chatted for a lovely last half hour. Mrs. Morgan wanted to know how the Haunted Wood got its name and laughed until she cried when she heard the story and Anne’s dramatic retelling of a certain unforgettable walk through it at twilight.

“It has indeed been a feast of reason and flow of soul, hasn’t it?” said Anne, when her guests had gone and she and Diana were alone again. “I don’t know which I enjoyed more . . . listening to Mrs. Morgan or gazing at Mrs. Pendexter. I believe we had a nicer time than if we’d known they were coming and been cumbered with much serving. You must stay to tea with me, Diana, and we’ll talk it all over.”

“It really was a feast of ideas and a flow of emotions, wasn’t it?” said Anne, once her guests had left and she and Diana were alone again. “I can’t decide which I enjoyed more . . . listening to Mrs. Morgan or watching Mrs. Pendexter. I think we had a better time than if we’d known they were coming and had to worry about serving them. You have to stay for tea with me, Diana, and we’ll discuss everything.”

“Priscilla says Mrs. Pendexter’s husband’s sister is married to an English earl; and yet she took a second helping of the plum preserves,” said Diana, as if the two facts were somehow incompatible.

“Priscilla says Mrs. Pendexter’s husband’s sister is married to an English earl; and yet she went back for another serving of the plum preserves,” said Diana, as if the two facts were somehow incompatible.

“I daresay even the English earl himself wouldn’t have turned up his aristocratic nose at Marilla’s plum preserves,” said Anne proudly.

“I bet even the English earl himself wouldn’t have looked down on Marilla’s plum preserves,” said Anne proudly.

Anne did not mention the misfortune which had befallen her nose when she related the day’s history to Marilla that evening. But she took the bottle of freckle lotion and emptied it out of the window.

Anne didn’t bring up the accident that had happened to her nose when she shared the day’s events with Marilla that evening. Instead, she took the bottle of freckle lotion and dumped it out of the window.

“I shall never try any beautifying messes again,” she said, darkly resolute. “They may do for careful, deliberate people; but for anyone so hopelessly given over to making mistakes as I seem to be it’s tempting fate to meddle with them.”

“I will never try any beauty products again,” she said, firmly determined. “They might work for careful, deliberate people, but for someone as hopelessly prone to making mistakes as I seem to be, it’s tempting fate to mess with them.”

XXI
Sweet Miss Lavendar

School opened and Anne returned to her work, with fewer theories but considerably more experience. She had several new pupils, six- and seven-year-olds just venturing, round-eyed, into a world of wonder. Among them were Davy and Dora. Davy sat with Milty Boulter, who had been going to school for a year and was therefore quite a man of the world. Dora had made a compact at Sunday School the previous Sunday to sit with Lily Sloane; but Lily Sloane not coming the first day, she was temporarily assigned to Mirabel Cotton, who was ten years old and therefore, in Dora’s eyes, one of the “big girls.”

School started again and Anne got back to her job, with fewer theories but a lot more experience. She had several new students, six- and seven-year-olds just stepping, wide-eyed, into a world full of wonder. Among them were Davy and Dora. Davy was sitting with Milty Boulter, who had been in school for a year and was therefore quite the worldly kid. Dora had made an agreement at Sunday School the week before to sit with Lily Sloane; but since Lily Sloane didn't show up on the first day, she was temporarily paired with Mirabel Cotton, who was ten years old and, to Dora, one of the “big girls.”

“I think school is great fun,” Davy told Marilla when he got home that night. “You said I’d find it hard to sit still and I did . . . you mostly do tell the truth, I notice . . . but you can wriggle your legs about under the desk and that helps a lot. It’s splendid to have so many boys to play with. I sit with Milty Boulter and he’s fine. He’s longer than me but I’m wider. It’s nicer to sit in the back seats but you can’t sit there till your legs grow long enough to touch the floor. Milty drawed a picture of Anne on his slate and it was awful ugly and I told him if he made pictures of Anne like that I’d lick him at recess. I thought first I’d draw one of him and put horns and a tail on it, but I was afraid it would hurt his feelings, and Anne says you should never hurt anyone’s feelings. It seems it’s dreadful to have your feelings hurt. It’s better to knock a boy down than hurt his feelings if you must do something. Milty said he wasn’t scared of me but he’d just as soon call it somebody else to ‘blige me, so he rubbed out Anne’s name and printed Barbara Shaw’s under it. Milty doesn’t like Barbara ’cause she calls him a sweet little boy and once she patted him on his head.”

“I think school is really fun,” Davy told Marilla when he got home that night. “You said I’d find it hard to sit still, and I did... you usually do tell the truth, I notice... but you can wiggle your legs under the desk, and that helps a lot. It’s awesome to have so many boys to play with. I sit with Milty Boulter, and he’s cool. He’s taller than me, but I’m broader. It’s nicer to sit in the back seats, but you can’t sit there until your legs are long enough to touch the floor. Milty drew a picture of Anne on his slate, and it was really ugly, so I told him if he drew pictures of Anne like that, I’d punch him at recess. At first, I thought I’d draw one of him and put horns and a tail on it, but I was worried it would hurt his feelings, and Anne says you should never hurt anyone’s feelings. It seems it’s terrible to have your feelings hurt. It’s better to knock a boy down than hurt his feelings if you *must* do something. Milty said he wasn’t scared of me, but he’d just as soon call it somebody else to help me out, so he erased Anne’s name and printed Barbara Shaw’s under it. Milty doesn’t like Barbara because she calls him a sweet little boy and once she patted him on the head.”

Dora said primly that she liked school; but she was very quiet, even for her; and when at twilight Marilla bade her go upstairs to bed she hesitated and began to cry.

Dora said in a serious tone that she liked school; but she was very quiet, even more than usual; and when Marilla told her to go upstairs to bed at twilight, she hesitated and started to cry.

“I’m . . . I’m frightened,” she sobbed. “I . . . I don’t want to go upstairs alone in the dark.”

“I’m... I’m scared,” she cried. “I... I don’t want to go upstairs by myself in the dark.”

“What notion have you got into your head now?” demanded Marilla. “I’m sure you’ve gone to bed alone all summer and never been frightened before.”

“What idea do you have in your head now?” Marilla asked. “I’m sure you’ve been going to bed alone all summer and have never been scared before.”

Dora still continued to cry, so Anne picked her up, cuddled her sympathetically, and whispered,

Dora kept crying, so Anne picked her up, hugged her gently, and whispered,

“Tell Anne all about it, sweetheart. What are you frightened of?”

“Tell Anne everything, sweetheart. What are you scared of?”

“Of . . . of Mirabel Cotton’s uncle,” sobbed Dora. “Mirabel Cotton told me all about her family today in school. Nearly everybody in her family has died . . . all her grandfathers and grandmothers and ever so many uncles and aunts. They have a habit of dying, Mirabel says. Mirabel’s awful proud of having so many dead relations, and she told me what they all died of, and what they said, and how they looked in their coffins. And Mirabel says one of her uncles was seen walking around the house after he was buried. Her mother saw him. I don’t mind the rest so much but I can’t help thinking about that uncle.”

“Of... of Mirabel Cotton’s uncle,” Dora sobbed. “Mirabel Cotton told me all about her family today in school. Almost everyone in her family has died... all her grandparents and so many aunts and uncles. They have a tendency to die, Mirabel says. Mirabel's really proud of having so many dead relatives, and she told me how each of them died, what they said, and how they looked in their coffins. And Mirabel says one of her uncles was seen walking around the house after he was buried. Her mom saw him. The rest doesn’t bother me as much, but I can’t stop thinking about that uncle.”

Anne went upstairs with Dora and sat by her until she fell asleep. The next day Mirabel Cotton was kept in at recess and “gently but firmly” given to understand that when you were so unfortunate as to possess an uncle who persisted in walking about houses after he had been decently interred it was not in good taste to talk about that eccentric gentleman to your deskmate of tender years. Mirabel thought this very harsh. The Cottons had not much to boast of. How was she to keep up her prestige among her schoolmates if she were forbidden to make capital out of the family ghost?

Anne went upstairs with Dora and sat with her until she fell asleep. The next day, Mirabel Cotton was held back during recess and “gently but firmly” made to understand that when you unfortunately had an uncle who insisted on wandering around after he’d been properly buried, it wasn’t polite to talk about that odd uncle to your young classmate. Mirabel thought this was really unfair. The Cottons didn’t have much to show off. How was she supposed to maintain her status among her classmates if she couldn’t leverage the family ghost?

September slipped by into a gold and crimson graciousness of October. One Friday evening Diana came over.

September faded into the warm gold and red grace of October. One Friday evening, Diana came over.

“I’d a letter from Ella Kimball today, Anne, and she wants us to go over to tea tomorrow afternoon to meet her cousin, Irene Trent, from town. But we can’t get one of our horses to go, for they’ll all be in use tomorrow, and your pony is lame . . . so I suppose we can’t go.”

“I got a letter from Ella Kimball today, Anne, and she wants us to come over for tea tomorrow afternoon to meet her cousin, Irene Trent, from town. But we can’t get one of our horses to go since they’ll all be in use tomorrow, and your pony is lame . . . so I guess we can’t go.”

“Why can’t we walk?” suggested Anne. “If we go straight back through the woods we’ll strike the West Grafton road not far from the Kimball place. I was through that way last winter and I know the road. It’s no more than four miles and we won’t have to walk home, for Oliver Kimball will be sure to drive us. He’ll be only too glad of the excuse, for he goes to see Carrie Sloane and they say his father will hardly ever let him have a horse.”

“Why can’t we walk?” Anne suggested. “If we go straight back through the woods, we’ll hit the West Grafton road not far from the Kimball place. I went that way last winter, and I know the road. It’s only about four miles, and we won’t have to walk home because Oliver Kimball will definitely drive us. He’ll be more than happy for the excuse since he goes to see Carrie Sloane, and they say his father hardly ever lets him have a horse.”

It was accordingly arranged that they should walk, and the following afternoon they set out, going by way of Lover’s Lane to the back of the Cuthbert farm, where they found a road leading into the heart of acres of glimmering beech and maple woods, which were all in a wondrous glow of flame and gold, lying in a great purple stillness and peace.

It was decided that they would walk, so the next afternoon they headed out, taking the path through Lover’s Lane to the back of the Cuthbert farm. There, they discovered a road that led into vast stretches of shimmering beech and maple woods, all glowing magnificently with flames of red and gold, resting in a deep purple calm and tranquility.

“It’s as if the year were kneeling to pray in a vast cathedral full of mellow stained light, isn’t it?” said Anne dreamily. “It doesn’t seem right to hurry through it, does it? It seems irreverent, like running in a church.”

“It’s like the year is kneeling to pray in a huge cathedral filled with soft, colorful light, right?” said Anne, lost in thought. “It doesn’t feel right to rush through it, does it? It seems disrespectful, like running in a church.”

“We must hurry though,” said Diana, glancing at her watch. “We’ve left ourselves little enough time as it is.”

“We have to hurry though,” said Diana, glancing at her watch. “We’ve given ourselves hardly any time as it is.”

“Well, I’ll walk fast but don’t ask me to talk,” said Anne, quickening her pace. “I just want to drink the day’s loveliness in . . . I feel as if she were holding it out to my lips like a cup of airy wine and I’ll take a sip at every step.”

“Well, I’ll walk fast, but don’t ask me to talk,” said Anne, picking up her pace. “I just want to soak in the beauty of the day… I feel like it’s offering me its joy like a cup of light wine, and I’ll take a sip with every step.”

Perhaps it was because she was so absorbed in “drinking it in” that Anne took the left turning when they came to a fork in the road. She should have taken the right, but ever afterward she counted it the most fortunate mistake of her life. They came out finally to a lonely, grassy road, with nothing in sight along it but ranks of spruce saplings.

Perhaps it was because she was so absorbed in “taking it all in” that Anne took the left turn when they reached a fork in the road. She should have taken the right, but from then on she considered it the most fortunate mistake of her life. They eventually arrived at a quiet, grassy road, with nothing in sight along it except rows of spruce saplings.

“Why, where are we?” exclaimed Diana in bewilderment. “This isn’t the West Grafton road.”

“Wait, where are we?” Diana exclaimed, confused. “This isn’t the West Grafton road.”

“No, it’s the base line road in Middle Grafton,” said Anne, rather shamefacedly. “I must have taken the wrong turning at the fork. I don’t know where we are exactly, but we must be all of three miles from Kimballs’ still.”

“No, it’s the main road in Middle Grafton,” Anne said, a bit embarrassed. “I must have taken the wrong turn at the fork. I’m not sure where we are, but we have to be at least three miles from Kimballs’ still.”

“Then we can’t get there by five, for it’s half past four now,” said Diana, with a despairing look at her watch. “We’ll arrive after they have had their tea, and they’ll have all the bother of getting ours over again.”

“Then we can’t get there by five, because it’s half past four now,” said Diana, looking at her watch with a worried expression. “We’ll arrive after they’ve had their tea, and they’ll have to deal with getting ours ready all over again.”

“We’d better turn back and go home,” suggested Anne humbly. But Diana, after consideration, vetoed this.

“We should probably turn back and head home,” Anne suggested kindly. But Diana, after thinking it over, disagreed.

“No, we may as well go and spend the evening, since we have come this far.”

“No, we might as well go and spend the evening, since we’ve come this far.”

A few yards further on the girls came to a place where the road forked again.

A few yards ahead, the girls arrived at a spot where the road split again.

“Which of these do we take?” asked Diana dubiously.

“Which of these should we take?” asked Diana skeptically.

Anne shook her head.

Anne shook her head.

“I don’t know and we can’t afford to make any more mistakes. Here is a gate and a lane leading right into the wood. There must be a house at the other side. Let us go down and inquire.”

“I don’t know, and we can’t afford to make any more mistakes. Here’s a gate and a path leading right into the woods. There must be a house on the other side. Let’s go down and ask.”

“What a romantic old lane this it,” said Diana, as they walked along its twists and turns. It ran under patriarchal old firs whose branches met above, creating a perpetual gloom in which nothing except moss could grow. On either hand were brown wood floors, crossed here and there by fallen lances of sunlight. All was very still and remote, as if the world and the cares of the world were far away.

“What a charming old lane this is,” said Diana, as they walked along its twists and turns. It went under ancient fir trees whose branches met above, creating a constant shadow where only moss could thrive. On either side were brown wooden floors, occasionally crossed by fallen beams of sunlight. Everything was very quiet and distant, as if the world and its worries were far away.

“I feel as if we were walking through an enchanted forest,” said Anne in a hushed tone. “Do you suppose we’ll ever find our way back to the real world again, Diana? We shall presently come to a palace with a spellbound princess in it, I think.”

“I feel like we’re walking through an enchanted forest,” Anne said softly. “Do you think we’ll ever find our way back to the real world, Diana? I believe we’ll soon come across a palace with a spellbound princess in it.”

Around the next turn they came in sight, not indeed of a palace, but of a little house almost as surprising as a palace would have been in this province of conventional wooden farmhouses, all as much alike in general characteristics as if they had grown from the same seed. Anne stopped short in rapture and Diana exclaimed, “Oh, I know where we are now. That is the little stone house where Miss Lavendar Lewis lives . . . Echo Lodge, she calls it, I think. I’ve often heard of it but I’ve never seen it before. Isn’t it a romantic spot?”

Around the next bend, they caught sight of not a palace, but a small house that was almost as astonishing as a palace would have been in a region filled with typical wooden farmhouses, all looking so similar it was like they sprouted from the same seed. Anne halted in awe, and Diana exclaimed, “Oh, I know where we are now. That’s the little stone house where Miss Lavendar Lewis lives... Echo Lodge, I think it’s called. I’ve heard about it many times, but I’ve never seen it before. Isn’t it a charming place?”

“It’s the sweetest, prettiest place I ever saw or imagined,” said Anne delightedly. “It looks like a bit out of a story book or a dream.”

“It’s the sweetest, prettiest place I’ve ever seen or imagined,” said Anne happily. “It looks like it’s straight out of a storybook or a dream.”

The house was a low-eaved structure built of undressed blocks of red Island sandstone, with a little peaked roof out of which peered two dormer windows, with quaint wooden hoods over them, and two great chimneys. The whole house was covered with a luxuriant growth of ivy, finding easy foothold on the rough stonework and turned by autumn frosts to most beautiful bronze and wine-red tints.

The house was a low-eaved building made of rough blocks of red Island sandstone, featuring a small peaked roof with two dormer windows that had charming wooden hoods above them, along with two large chimneys. The entire house was covered in lush ivy that clung easily to the rough stone and, after the autumn frosts, transformed into stunning shades of bronze and wine-red.

Before the house was an oblong garden into which the lane gate where the girls were standing opened. The house bounded it on one side; on the three others it was enclosed by an old stone dyke, so overgrown with moss and grass and ferns that it looked like a high, green bank. On the right and left the tall, dark spruces spread their palm-like branches over it; but below it was a little meadow, green with clover aftermath, sloping down to the blue loop of the Grafton River. No other house or clearing was in sight . . . nothing but hills and valleys covered with feathery young firs.

Before the house was a long garden that the lane gate, where the girls were standing, opened into. The house bordered it on one side; on the other three sides, it was surrounded by an old stone wall, so overgrown with moss, grass, and ferns that it looked like a high, green bank. On the right and left, the tall, dark spruces spread their palm-like branches over it, and below, there was a small meadow, green with clover, sloping down to the blue curve of the Grafton River. No other houses or clearings were in sight... just hills and valleys covered with feathery young firs.

“I wonder what sort of a person Miss Lewis is,” speculated Diana as they opened the gate into the garden. “They say she is very peculiar.”

“I wonder what kind of person Miss Lewis is,” speculated Diana as they opened the gate into the garden. “They say she’s really unusual.”

“She’ll be interesting then,” said Anne decidedly. “Peculiar people are always that at least, whatever else they are or are not. Didn’t I tell you we would come to an enchanted palace? I knew the elves hadn’t woven magic over that lane for nothing.”

“She’ll be interesting then,” Anne said confidently. “Peculiar people are always at least that, no matter what else they are or aren’t. Didn’t I tell you we would come to an enchanted palace? I knew the elves hadn’t woven magic over that lane for no reason.”

“But Miss Lavendar Lewis is hardly a spellbound princess,” laughed Diana. “She’s an old maid . . . she’s forty-five and quite gray, I’ve heard.”

“But Miss Lavendar Lewis is hardly a enchanted princess,” laughed Diana. “She’s a single woman... she’s forty-five and pretty gray, I’ve heard.”

“Oh, that’s only part of the spell,” asserted Anne confidently. “At heart she’s young and beautiful still . . . and if we only knew how to unloose the spell she would step forth radiant and fair again. But we don’t know how . . . it’s always and only the prince who knows that . . . and Miss Lavendar’s prince hasn’t come yet. Perhaps some fatal mischance has befallen him . . . though that’s against the law of all fairy tales.”

“Oh, that’s just part of the spell,” Anne said confidently. “Deep down, she’s still young and beautiful . . . and if we only knew how to break the spell, she would come out looking radiant and lovely again. But we don’t know how . . . it’s always the prince who knows that . . . and Miss Lavendar’s prince hasn’t arrived yet. Maybe some terrible misfortune has happened to him . . . though that’s against the rules of all fairy tales.”

“I’m afraid he came long ago and went away again,” said Diana. “They say she used to be engaged to Stephen Irving . . . Paul’s father . . . when they were young. But they quarreled and parted.”

“I’m afraid he came a long time ago and left again,” said Diana. “They say she was once engaged to Stephen Irving… Paul’s dad… when they were young. But they fought and broke up.”

“Hush,” warned Anne. “The door is open.”

“Hush,” Anne warned. “The door is open.”

The girls paused in the porch under the tendrils of ivy and knocked at the open door. There was a patter of steps inside and a rather odd little personage presented herself . . . a girl of about fourteen, with a freckled face, a snub nose, a mouth so wide that it did really seem as if it stretched “from ear to ear,” and two long braids of fair hair tied with two enormous bows of blue ribbon.

The girls stopped on the porch under the ivy and knocked on the open door. They heard footsteps inside, and an unusual little figure appeared… a girl of about fourteen, with a freckled face, a flat nose, a mouth so wide it looked like it stretched “from ear to ear,” and two long braids of blonde hair tied with two huge blue bows.

“Is Miss Lewis at home?” asked Diana.

“Is Miss Lewis at home?” Diana asked.

“Yes, ma’am. Come in, ma’am. I’ll tell Miss Lavendar you’re here, ma’am. She’s upstairs, ma’am.”

“Sure, ma'am. Come in, ma'am. I'll let Miss Lavendar know you're here, ma'am. She's upstairs, ma'am.”

With this the small handmaiden whisked out of sight and the girls, left alone, looked about them with delighted eyes. The interior of this wonderful little house was quite as interesting as its exterior.

With that, the small handmaiden disappeared from view, and the girls, left alone, looked around with delighted eyes. The inside of this amazing little house was just as interesting as its outside.

The room had a low ceiling and two square, small-paned windows, curtained with muslin frills. All the furnishings were old-fashioned, but so well and daintily kept that the effect was delicious. But it must be candidly admitted that the most attractive feature, to two healthy girls who had just tramped four miles through autumn air, was a table, set out with pale blue china and laden with delicacies, while little golden-hued ferns scattered over the cloth gave it what Anne would have termed “a festal air.”

The room had a low ceiling and two small windows with square panes, dressed with muslin curtains. All the furniture was vintage, but it was so well and delicately maintained that it looked delightful. However, I have to honestly say that the most appealing aspect to two energetic girls who had just walked four miles in the autumn air was a table laid out with pale blue china, filled with treats, while little golden ferns sprinkled across the cloth gave it what Anne would call “a festive vibe.”

“Miss Lavendar must be expecting company to tea,” she whispered. “There are six places set. But what a funny little girl she has. She looked like a messenger from pixy land. I suppose she could have told us the road, but I was curious to see Miss Lavendar. S . . . s . . . sh, she’s coming.”

“Miss Lavendar must be expecting guests for tea,” she whispered. “There are six places set. But what a quirky little girl she has. She looked like a messenger from fairyland. I guess she could have given us directions, but I was eager to see Miss Lavendar. S... s... sh, she’s coming.”

And with that Miss Lavendar Lewis was standing in the doorway. The girls were so surprised that they forgot good manners and simply stared. They had unconsciously been expecting to see the usual type of elderly spinster as known to their experience . . . a rather angular personage, with prim gray hair and spectacles. Nothing more unlike Miss Lavendar could possibly be imagined.

And with that, Miss Lavendar Lewis appeared in the doorway. The girls were so shocked that they forgot their manners and just stared. They had unconsciously been expecting to see the typical elderly spinster they were used to . . . a somewhat angular woman, with neat gray hair and glasses. Nothing could have been more different from Miss Lavendar.

She was a little lady with snow-white hair beautifully wavy and thick, and carefully arranged in becoming puffs and coils. Beneath it was an almost girlish face, pink cheeked and sweet lipped, with big soft brown eyes and dimples . . . actually dimples. She wore a very dainty gown of cream muslin with pale-hued roses on it . . . a gown which would have seemed ridiculously juvenile on most women of her age, but which suited Miss Lavendar so perfectly that you never thought about it at all.

She was a petite woman with thick, wavy snow-white hair, elegantly styled in charming puffs and coils. Underneath, her face had a youthful look with rosy cheeks and sweet lips, big soft brown eyes, and actual dimples. She wore a delicate cream muslin dress adorned with light-colored roses—a dress that would appear absurdly childish on most women her age, but on Miss Lavendar, it looked so perfectly fitting that you didn’t even think about it.

“Charlotta the Fourth says that you wished to see me,” she said, in a voice that matched her appearance.

“Charlotta the Fourth says you wanted to see me,” she said, in a voice that matched her looks.

“We wanted to ask the right road to West Grafton,” said Diana. “We are invited to tea at Mr. Kimball’s, but we took the wrong path coming through the woods and came out to the base line instead of the West Grafton road. Do we take the right or left turning at your gate?”

“We wanted to ask for directions to West Grafton,” said Diana. “We’re invited to tea at Mr. Kimball’s, but we took the wrong path through the woods and ended up at the baseline instead of the West Grafton road. Should we take the right or left turn at your gate?”

“The left,” said Miss Lavendar, with a hesitating glance at her tea table. Then she exclaimed, as if in a sudden little burst of resolution,

“The left,” said Miss Lavendar, glancing hesitantly at her tea table. Then she exclaimed, as if in a sudden burst of determination,

“But oh, won’t you stay and have tea with me? Please, do. Mr. Kimball’s will have tea over before you get there. And Charlotta the Fourth and I will be so glad to have you.”

“But oh, won't you stay and have tea with me? Please, do. Mr. Kimball's tea will be over before you get there. And Charlotta the Fourth and I will be so happy to have you.”

Diana looked mute inquiry at Anne.

Diana looked at Anne with a silent question.

“We’d like to stay,” said Anne promptly, for she had made up her mind that she wanted to know more of this surprising Miss Lavendar, “if it won’t inconvenience you. But you are expecting other guests, aren’t you?”

“We’d like to stay,” said Anne quickly, since she had decided that she wanted to know more about this surprising Miss Lavendar, “if it won’t be a burden for you. But you are expecting other guests, right?”

Miss Lavendar looked at her tea table again, and blushed.

Miss Lavendar glanced at her tea table again and felt herself blush.

“I know you’ll think me dreadfully foolish,” she said. “I am foolish . . . and I’m ashamed of it when I’m found out, but never unless I am found out. I’m not expecting anybody . . . I was just pretending I was. You see, I was so lonely. I love company . . . that is, the right kind of company . . . but so few people ever come here because it is so far out of the way. Charlotta the Fourth was lonely too. So I just pretended I was going to have a tea party. I cooked for it . . . and decorated the table for it . . . and set it with my mother’s wedding china . . . and I dressed up for it.”

“I know you’ll think I’m really silly,” she said. “I *am* silly . . . and I feel embarrassed when I get caught, but only when I get caught. I’m not really expecting anyone . . . I was just pretending I was. You see, I was feeling really lonely. I love having company . . . well, the right kind of company . . . but so few people come here because it’s so out of the way. Charlotta the Fourth was lonely too. So I just imagined I was going to have a tea party. I cooked for it . . . and decorated the table for it . . . and set it with my mom’s wedding china . . . and I dressed up for it.”

Diana secretly thought Miss Lavendar quite as peculiar as report had pictured her. The idea of a woman of forty-five playing at having a tea party, just as if she were a little girl! But Anne of the shining eyes exclaimed joyfuly,

Diana secretly thought Miss Lavendar was just as quirky as everyone said. The idea of a 45-year-old woman having a tea party, just like she was a little girl! But Anne, with her bright eyes, exclaimed joyfully,

“Oh, do you imagine things too?”

“Oh, do you imagine things too?”

That “too” revealed a kindred spirit to Miss Lavendar.

That "too" showed a connection with Miss Lavendar.

“Yes, I do,” she confessed, boldly. “Of course it’s silly in anybody as old as I am. But what is the use of being an independent old maid if you can’t be silly when you want to, and when it doesn’t hurt anybody? A person must have some compensations. I don’t believe I could live at times if I didn’t pretend things. I’m not often caught at it though, and Charlotta the Fourth never tells. But I’m glad to be caught today, for you have really come and I have tea all ready for you. Will you go up to the spare room and take off your hats? It’s the white door at the head of the stairs. I must run out to the kitchen and see that Charlotta the Fourth isn’t letting the tea boil. Charlotta the Fourth is a very good girl but she will let the tea boil.”

“Yes, I do,” she admitted confidently. “I know it sounds silly for someone my age. But what's the point of being an independent older woman if you can't be a little silly when you feel like it, especially when it doesn't hurt anyone? People need some perks in life. Honestly, I don’t think I could get through sometimes if I didn’t pretend about things. I usually don’t get caught, though, and Charlotta the Fourth never spills. But I’m glad you caught me today because you’ve actually come, and I have tea all ready for you. Please go up to the spare room and take off your hats. It’s the white door at the top of the stairs. I need to dash out to the kitchen and make sure Charlotta the Fourth isn’t letting the tea boil. Charlotta the Fourth is a very good girl, but she will let the tea boil.”

Miss Lavendar tripped off to the kitchen on hospitable thoughts intent and the girls found their way up to the spare room, an apartment as white as its door, lighted by the ivy-hung dormer window and looking, as Anne said, like the place where happy dreams grew.

Miss Lavendar headed to the kitchen, focused on her welcoming ideas, while the girls made their way up to the spare room, which was as white as its door. The room was brightened by the ivy-covered dormer window and looked, as Anne put it, like a spot where happy dreams blossomed.

“This is quite an adventure, isn’t it?” said Diana. “And isn’t Miss Lavendar sweet, if she is a little odd? She doesn’t look a bit like an old maid.”

“This is quite an adventure, isn’t it?” Diana said. “And isn’t Miss Lavendar sweet, even if she is a little odd? She doesn’t look a bit like an old maid.”

“She looks just as music sounds, I think,” answered Anne.

“She looks just like music sounds, I think,” replied Anne.

When they went down Miss Lavendar was carrying in the teapot, and behind her, looking vastly pleased, was Charlotta the Fourth, with a plate of hot biscuits.

When they went downstairs, Miss Lavendar was bringing in the teapot, and right behind her, looking extremely happy, was Charlotta the Fourth, carrying a plate of hot biscuits.

“Now, you must tell me your names,” said Miss Lavendar. “I’m so glad you are young girls. I love young girls. It’s so easy to pretend I’m a girl myself when I’m with them. I do hate” . . . with a little grimace . . . “to believe I’m old. Now, who are you . . . just for convenience’ sake? Diana Barry? And Anne Shirley? May I pretend that I’ve known you for a hundred years and call you Anne and Diana right away?”

“Now, you need to tell me your names,” said Miss Lavendar. “I’m so glad you’re young girls. I love young girls. It’s so easy to pretend I’m a girl myself when I’m with them. I really hate” . . . with a little grimace . . . “thinking I’m old. So, who are you . . . just for convenience? Diana Barry? And Anne Shirley? Can I pretend that I’ve known you for a hundred years and just call you Anne and Diana right away?”

“You, may” the girls said both together.

"You may," the girls said in unison.

“Then just let’s sit comfily down and eat everything,” said Miss Lavendar happily. “Charlotta, you sit at the foot and help with the chicken. It is so fortunate that I made the sponge cake and doughnuts. Of course, it was foolish to do it for imaginary guests . . . I know Charlotta the Fourth thought so, didn’t you, Charlotta? But you see how well it has turned out. Of course they wouldn’t have been wasted, for Charlotta the Fourth and I could have eaten them through time. But sponge cake is not a thing that improves with time.”

“Then let’s just sit down comfortably and eat everything,” Miss Lavendar said happily. “Charlotta, you sit at the end and help with the chicken. It’s so lucky I made the sponge cake and doughnuts. Of course, it was silly to make them for imaginary guests... I know you thought so, didn’t you, Charlotta? But look how well it all turned out. They wouldn’t have gone to waste, because Charlotta the Fourth and I could have eaten them over time. But sponge cake isn’t something that gets better with time.”

That was a merry and memorable meal; and when it was over they all went out to the garden, lying in the glamor of sunset.

That was a fun and unforgettable meal; and when it was finished, they all went out to the garden, basking in the beautiful glow of sunset.

“I do think you have the loveliest place here,” said Diana, looking round her admiringly.

“I really think you have the most beautiful place here,” said Diana, looking around her with admiration.

“Why do you call it Echo Lodge?” asked Anne.

“Why do you call it Echo Lodge?” Anne asked.

“Charlotta,” said Miss Lavendar, “go into the house and bring out the little tin horn that is hanging over the clock shelf.”

“Charlotta,” Miss Lavendar said, “go inside and get the little tin horn that's hanging over the clock shelf.”

Charlotta the Fourth skipped off and returned with the horn.

Charlotta the Fourth ran off and came back with the horn.

“Blow it, Charlotta,” commanded Miss Lavendar.

“Blow it, Charlotta,” said Miss Lavendar.

Charlotta accordingly blew, a rather raucous, strident blast. There was moment’s stillness . . . and then from the woods over the river came a multitude of fairy echoes, sweet, elusive, silvery, as if all the “horns of elfland” were blowing against the sunset. Anne and Diana exclaimed in delight.

Charlotta then let out a loud, harsh blast. There was a moment of silence... and then from the woods across the river came a chorus of fairy echoes, sweet, elusive, and silvery, as if all the "horns of elfland" were playing against the sunset. Anne and Diana gasped in delight.

“Now laugh, Charlotta . . . laugh loudly.”

“Now laugh, Charlotta... laugh out loud.”

Charlotta, who would probably have obeyed if Miss Lavendar had told her to stand on her head, climbed upon the stone bench and laughed loud and heartily. Back came the echoes, as if a host of pixy people were mimicking her laughter in the purple woodlands and along the fir-fringed points.

Charlotta, who likely would have done anything Miss Lavendar asked, even stand on her head, climbed onto the stone bench and laughed loudly and joyfully. The echoes came back, as if a group of tiny magical beings were copying her laughter in the purple woods and along the fir-lined edges.

“People always admire my echoes very much,” said Miss Lavendar, as if the echoes were her personal property. “I love them myself. They are very good company . . . with a little pretending. On calm evenings Charlotta the Fourth and I often sit out here and amuse ourselves with them. Charlotta, take back the horn and hang it carefully in its place.”

“People really admire my echoes,” said Miss Lavendar, as if they were her personal property. “I love them too. They provide great company... with a bit of imagination. On calm evenings, Charlotta the Fourth and I often sit out here and entertain ourselves with them. Charlotta, please put the horn back and hang it up carefully.”

“Why do you call her Charlotta the Fourth?” asked Diana, who was bursting with curiosity on this point.

“Why do you call her Charlotta the Fourth?” asked Diana, who was overflowing with curiosity about this.

“Just to keep her from getting mixed up with other Charlottas in my thoughts,” said Miss Lavendar seriously. “They all look so much alike there’s no telling them apart. Her name isn’t really Charlotta at all. It is . . . let me see . . . what is it? I think it’s Leonora . . . yes, it is Leonora. You see, it is this way. When mother died ten years ago I couldn’t stay here alone . . . and I couldn’t afford to pay the wages of a grown-up girl. So I got little Charlotta Bowman to come and stay with me for board and clothes. Her name really was Charlotta . . . she was Charlotta the First. She was just thirteen. She stayed with me till she was sixteen and then she went away to Boston, because she could do better there. Her sister came to stay with me then. Her name was Julietta . . . Mrs. Bowman had a weakness for fancy names I think . . . but she looked so like Charlotta that I kept calling her that all the time . . .and she didn’t mind. So I just gave up trying to remember her right name. She was Charlotta the Second, and when she went away Evelina came and she was Charlotta the Third. Now I have Charlotta the Fourth; but when she is sixteen . . . she’s fourteen now . . . she will want to go to Boston too, and what I shall do then I really do not know. Charlotta the Fourth is the last of the Bowman girls, and the best. The other Charlottas always let me see that they thought it silly of me to pretend things but Charlotta the Fourth never does, no matter what she may really think. I don’t care what people think about me if they don’t let me see it.”

“Just to keep her from getting mixed up with other Charlottas in my thoughts,” said Miss Lavendar seriously. “They all look so much alike there’s no telling them apart. Her name isn’t really Charlotta at all. It is... let me see... what is it? I think it’s Leonora... yes, it is Leonora. You see, here’s the thing. When my mother died ten years ago, I couldn’t stay here alone... and I couldn’t afford to pay a grown woman’s salary. So I got little Charlotta Bowman to come and stay with me in exchange for room and board. Her real name was Charlotta... she was Charlotta the First. She was just thirteen. She stayed with me until she turned sixteen and then she left for Boston, because she could do better there. Her sister came to stay with me after that. Her name was Julietta... Mrs. Bowman had a thing for fancy names, I think... but she looked so much like Charlotta that I kept calling her that all the time... and she didn’t mind. So I gave up trying to remember her actual name. She was Charlotta the Second, and when she left, Evelina came and she was Charlotta the Third. Now I have Charlotta the Fourth; but when she turns sixteen... she’s fourteen now... she will want to go to Boston too, and I really don’t know what I’ll do then. Charlotta the Fourth is the last of the Bowman girls, and the best. The other Charlottas always made it clear that they thought it was silly of me to pretend otherwise, but Charlotta the Fourth never does, no matter what she might really think. I don’t care what people think about me if they don’t show it.”

“Well,” said Diana looking regretfully at the setting sun. “I suppose we must go if we want to get to Mr. Kimball’s before dark. We’ve had a lovely time, Miss Lewis.”

“Well,” Diana said, glancing regretfully at the setting sun, “I guess we should go if we want to get to Mr. Kimball’s before it gets dark. We’ve had a wonderful time, Miss Lewis.”

“Won’t you come again to see me?” pleaded Miss Lavendar.

“Will you come back to see me?” begged Miss Lavendar.

Tall Anne put her arm about the little lady.

Tall Anne put her arm around the little lady.

“Indeed we shall,” she promised. “Now that we have discovered you we’ll wear out our welcome coming to see you. Yes, we must go . . . ‘we must tear ourselves away,’ as Paul Irving says every time he comes to Green Gables.”

“Of course we will,” she promised. “Now that we've found you, we'll wear out our welcome visiting you. Yes, we need to go . . . ‘we have to pull ourselves away,’ like Paul Irving says every time he visits Green Gables.”

“Paul Irving?” There was a subtle change in Miss Lavendar’s voice. “Who is he? I didn’t think there was anybody of that name in Avonlea.”

“Paul Irving?” There was a slight shift in Miss Lavendar’s voice. “Who is he? I didn’t think anyone by that name lived in Avonlea.”

Anne felt vexed at her own heedlessness. She had forgotten about Miss Lavendar’s old romance when Paul’s name slipped out.

Anne felt annoyed with herself for being careless. She had forgotten about Miss Lavendar’s old romance when she accidentally mentioned Paul’s name.

“He is a little pupil of mine,” she explained slowly. “He came from Boston last year to live with his grandmother, Mrs. Irving of the shore road.”

“He's one of my young students,” she explained slowly. “He moved here from Boston last year to live with his grandmother, Mrs. Irving, on the shore road.”

“Is he Stephen Irving’s son?” Miss Lavendar asked, bending over her namesake border so that her face was hidden.

“Is he Stephen Irving’s son?” Miss Lavendar asked, leaning over her namesake border so that her face was out of sight.

“Yes.”

"Yeah."

“I’m going to give you girls a bunch of lavendar apiece,” said Miss Lavendar brightly, as if she had not heard the answer to her question. “It’s very sweet, don’t you think? Mother always loved it. She planted these borders long ago. Father named me Lavendar because he was so fond of it. The very first time he saw mother was when he visited her home in East Grafton with her brother. He fell in love with her at first sight; and they put him in the spare room bed to sleep and the sheets were scented with lavendar and he lay awake all night and thought of her. He always loved the scent of lavendar after that . . . and that was why he gave me the name. Don’t forget to come back soon, girls dear. We’ll be looking for you, Charlotta the Fourth and I.”

“I’m going to give each of you girls a bunch of lavender,” said Miss Lavendar cheerfully, as if she hadn’t heard her question's answer. “It’s really lovely, don’t you think? My mother always adored it. She planted these borders a long time ago. My father named me Lavendar because he loved it so much. The very first time he saw my mother was when he visited her home in East Grafton with her brother. He fell in love with her at first sight, and they had him sleep in the spare room, where the sheets were scented with lavender. He lay awake all night thinking about her. From that moment on, he always loved the smell of lavender... and that’s why he gave me that name. Don’t forget to come back soon, dear girls. Charlotta the Fourth and I will be looking for you.”

She opened the gate under the firs for them to pass through. She looked suddenly old and tired; the glow and radiance had faded from her face; her parting smile was as sweet with ineradicable youth as ever, but when the girls looked back from the first curve in the lane they saw her sitting on the old stone bench under the silver poplar in the middle of the garden with her head leaning wearily on her hand.

She opened the gate under the fir trees for them to go through. She suddenly looked old and tired; the glow and brightness had disappeared from her face; her parting smile was just as sweet with an enduring youthfulness as always, but when the girls looked back from the first bend in the lane, they saw her sitting on the old stone bench under the silver poplar in the middle of the garden, resting her head wearily on her hand.

“She does look lonely,” said Diana softly. “We must come often to see her.”

“She does seem lonely,” Diana said softly. “We should come by often to visit her.”

“I think her parents gave her the only right and fitting name that could possibly be given her,” said Anne. “If they had been so blind as to name her Elizabeth or Nellie or Muriel she must have been called Lavendar just the same, I think. It’s so suggestive of sweetness and old-fashioned graces and ‘silk attire.’ Now, my name just smacks of bread and butter, patchwork and chores.”

“I think her parents gave her the perfect name,” Anne said. “If they’d been clueless enough to call her Elizabeth, Nellie, or Muriel, she would still have ended up being called Lavendar, in my opinion. It’s so full of sweetness and vintage charm and ‘silk attire.’ Meanwhile, my name feels like bread and butter, patchwork, and chores.”

“Oh, I don’t think so,” said Diana. “Anne seems to me real stately and like a queen. But I’d like Kerrenhappuch if it happened to be your name. I think people make their names nice or ugly just by what they are themselves. I can’t bear Josie or Gertie for names now but before I knew the Pye girls I thought them real pretty.”

“Oh, I don’t think so,” said Diana. “Anne strikes me as really elegant and like a queen. But I’d like Kerrenhappuch if that turned out to be your name. I believe people make their names nice or ugly just by who they are. I can’t stand the names Josie or Gertie now, but before I got to know the Pye girls, I thought they were really pretty.”

“That’s a lovely idea, Diana,” said Anne enthusiastically. “Living so that you beautify your name, even if it wasn’t beautiful to begin with . . . making it stand in people’s thoughts for something so lovely and pleasant that they never think of it by itself. Thank you, Diana.”

"That's a wonderful idea, Diana," Anne said with excitement. "Living in a way that makes your name beautiful, even if it wasn't pretty to start with... creating a memory for people that's so lovely and nice that they never think of it on its own. Thank you, Diana."

XXII
Odds and Ends

“So you had tea at the stone house with Lavendar Lewis?” said Marilla at the breakfast table next morning. “What is she like now? It’s over fifteen years since I saw her last . . . it was one Sunday in Grafton church. I suppose she has changed a great deal. Davy Keith, when you want something you can’t reach, ask to have it passed and don’t spread yourself over the table in that fashion. Did you ever see Paul Irving doing that when he was here to meals?”

“So you had tea at the stone house with Lavendar Lewis?” Marilla asked at the breakfast table the next morning. “What’s she like now? It’s been over fifteen years since I last saw her... that one Sunday in Grafton church. I bet she’s changed a lot. Davy Keith, when you want something you can’t reach, just ask for it to be passed and don’t drape yourself over the table like that. Did you ever see Paul Irving doing that when he was here for meals?”

“But Paul’s arms are longer’n mine,” brumbled Davy. “They’ve had eleven years to grow and mine’ve only had seven. ‘Sides, I did ask, but you and Anne was so busy talking you didn’t pay any ‘tention. ‘Sides, Paul’s never been here to any meal escept tea, and it’s easier to be p’lite at tea than at breakfast. You ain’t half as hungry. It’s an awful long while between supper and breakfast. Now, Anne, that spoonful ain’t any bigger than it was last year and I’m ever so much bigger.”

“But Paul's arms are longer than mine,” grumbled Davy. “They’ve had eleven years to grow, and I've only had seven. Besides, I did ask, but you and Anne were so busy talking you didn’t pay any attention. And, Paul’s never been here for any meal except tea, and it’s easier to be polite at tea than at breakfast. You’re not half as hungry. It’s a really long time between supper and breakfast. Now, Anne, that spoonful isn’t any bigger than it was last year and I’m so much bigger now.”

“Of course, I don’t know what Miss Lavendar used to look like but I don’t fancy somehow that she has changed a great deal,” said Anne, after she had helped Davy to maple syrup, giving him two spoonfuls to pacify him. “Her hair is snow-white but her face is fresh and almost girlish, and she has the sweetest brown eyes . . . such a pretty shade of wood-brown with little golden glints in them . . . and her voice makes you think of white satin and tinkling water and fairy bells all mixed up together.”

“Sure, I don’t know what Miss Lavendar looked like before, but I don’t think she’s changed much,” said Anne, after she had helped Davy to some maple syrup, giving him two spoonfuls to calm him down. “Her hair is pure white, but her face is fresh and almost youthful, and she has the sweetest brown eyes... such a lovely shade of wood-brown with little golden flecks in them... and her voice reminds you of white satin, sparkling water, and fairy bells all blended together.”

“She was reckoned a great beauty when she was a girl,” said Marilla. “I never knew her very well but I liked her as far as I did know her. Some folks thought her peculiar even then. Davy, if ever I catch you at such a trick again you’ll be made to wait for your meals till everyone else is done, like the French.”

“She was considered a great beauty when she was a girl,” said Marilla. “I never knew her very well, but I liked her as much as I did know her. Some people thought she was a bit odd even then. Davy, if I ever catch you pulling such a stunt again, you’ll have to wait for your meals until everyone else is done, just like the French.”

Most conversations between Anne and Marilla in the presence of the twins, were punctuated by these rebukes Davy-ward. In this instance, Davy, sad to relate, not being able to scoop up the last drops of his syrup with his spoon, had solved the difficulty by lifting his plate in both hands and applying his small pink tongue to it. Anne looked at him with such horrified eyes that the little sinner turned red and said, half shamefacedly, half defiantly,

Most conversations between Anne and Marilla when the twins were around were filled with these scoldings aimed at Davy. In this case, Davy, unfortunately, couldn’t get the last drops of syrup with his spoon, so he resolved the problem by picking up his plate with both hands and licking it clean with his small pink tongue. Anne stared at him with such a horrified expression that the little troublemaker blushed and said, half ashamed and half defiantly,

“There ain’t any wasted that way.”

“There isn’t any waste that way.”

“People who are different from other people are always called peculiar,” said Anne. “And Miss Lavendar is certainly different, though it’s hard to say just where the difference comes in. Perhaps it is because she is one of those people who never grow old.”

“People who are different from others are always called peculiar,” said Anne. “And Miss Lavendar is definitely different, although it’s hard to pinpoint exactly how. Maybe it’s because she’s one of those people who never seem to grow old.”

“One might as well grow old when all your generation do,” said Marilla, rather reckless of her pronouns. “If you don’t, you don’t fit in anywhere. Far as I can learn Lavendar Lewis has just dropped out of everything. She’s lived in that out of the way place until everybody has forgotten her. That stone house is one of the oldest on the Island. Old Mr. Lewis built it eighty years ago when he came out from England. Davy, stop joggling Dora’s elbow. Oh, I saw you! You needn’t try to look innocent. What does make you behave so this morning?”

“One might as well get older when everyone else in your generation is,” Marilla said, somewhat careless with her pronouns. “If you don’t, you won't fit in anywhere. As far as I can tell, Lavendar Lewis has just disappeared from everything. She’s lived in that secluded place long enough for everyone to forget her. That stone house is one of the oldest on the Island. Old Mr. Lewis built it eighty years ago when he came over from England. Davy, stop jostling Dora’s elbow. Oh, I saw you! You don’t need to try to look innocent. Why are you acting like this this morning?”

“Maybe I got out of the wrong side of the bed,” suggested Davy. “Milty Boulter says if you do that things are bound to go wrong with you all day. His grandmother told him. But which is the right side? And what are you to do when your bed’s against the wall? I want to know.”

“Maybe I woke up on the wrong side of the bed,” Davy suggested. “Milty Boulter says that if you do, things are sure to go wrong for you all day. His grandmother told him that. But which is the right side? And what do you do when your bed’s up against the wall? I want to know.”

“I’ve always wondered what went wrong between Stephen Irving and Lavendar Lewis,” continued Marilla, ignoring Davy. “They were certainly engaged twenty-five years ago and then all at once it was broken off. I don’t know what the trouble was but it must have been something terrible, for he went away to the States and never come home since.”

“I’ve always wondered what went wrong between Stephen Irving and Lavendar Lewis,” Marilla continued, ignoring Davy. “They were definitely engaged twenty-five years ago, and then all of a sudden, it was over. I don’t know what the issue was, but it must have been something really awful, because he left for the States and never came back.”

“Perhaps it was nothing very dreadful after all. I think the little things in life often make more trouble than the big things,” said Anne, with one of those flashes of insight which experience could not have bettered. “Marilla, please don’t say anything about my being at Miss Lavendar’s to Mrs. Lynde. She’d be sure to ask a hundred questions and somehow I wouldn’t like it . . . nor Miss Lavendar either if she knew, I feel sure.”

“Maybe it wasn’t anything that serious after all. I believe the small things in life often cause more trouble than the big ones,” said Anne, with one of those moments of clarity that experience couldn’t improve. “Marilla, please don’t mention my visit to Miss Lavendar’s to Mrs. Lynde. She’d definitely ask a ton of questions, and for some reason, I wouldn’t like it… nor would Miss Lavendar if she found out, I’m sure.”

“I daresay Rachel would be curious,” admitted Marilla, “though she hasn’t as much time as she used to have for looking after other people’s affairs. She’s tied home now on account of Thomas; and she’s feeling pretty downhearted, for I think she’s beginning to lose hope of his ever getting better. Rachel will be left pretty lonely if anything happens to him, with all her children settled out west, except Eliza in town; and she doesn’t like her husband.”

“I bet Rachel would be curious,” Marilla admitted, “even though she doesn’t have as much time as she used to for dealing with other people’s business. She’s stuck at home now because of Thomas, and she’s feeling pretty down because I think she’s starting to lose hope that he’ll ever get better. Rachel will be really lonely if anything happens to him, with all her kids settled out west, except for Eliza in town; and she doesn’t like her husband.”

Marilla’s pronouns slandered Eliza, who was very fond of her husband.

Marilla’s words damaged Eliza’s reputation, who was very fond of her husband.

“Rachel says if he’d only brace up and exert his will power he’d get better. But what is the use of asking a jellyfish to sit up straight?” continued Marilla. “Thomas Lynde never had any will power to exert. His mother ruled him till he married and then Rachel carried it on. It’s a wonder he dared to get sick without asking her permission. But there, I shouldn’t talk so. Rachel has been a good wife to him. He’d never have amounted to anything without her, that’s certain. He was born to be ruled; and it’s well he fell into the hands of a clever, capable manager like Rachel. He didn’t mind her way. It saved him the bother of ever making up his own mind about anything. Davy, do stop squirming like an eel.”

“Rachel says if he’d just toughen up and use his willpower, he’d get better. But what’s the point of asking a jellyfish to sit up straight?” continued Marilla. “Thomas Lynde never had any willpower to use. His mother controlled him until he got married, and then Rachel took over. It’s a wonder he dared to get sick without asking her permission. But I shouldn’t speak like that. Rachel has been a good wife to him. He’d never have gotten anywhere without her, that’s for sure. He was meant to be controlled; and it’s good he ended up with a smart, capable manager like Rachel. He didn't mind her way. It saved him the trouble of ever having to make decisions about anything. Davy, stop squirming like an eel.”

“I’ve nothing else to do,” protested Davy. “I can’t eat any more, and it’s no fun watching you and Anne eat.”

“I have nothing else to do,” Davy complained. “I can’t eat anymore, and it’s not fun watching you and Anne eat.”

“Well, you and Dora go out and give the hens their wheat,” said Marilla. “And don’t you try to pull any more feathers out of the white rooster’s tail either.”

“Well, you and Dora go out and give the hens their wheat,” Marilla said. “And don’t try to pull any more feathers out of the white rooster’s tail either.”

“I wanted some feathers for an Injun headdress,” said Davy sulkily. “Milty Boulter has a dandy one, made out of the feathers his mother give him when she killed their old white gobbler. You might let me have some. That rooster’s got ever so many more’n he wants.”

“I wanted some feathers for a Native American headdress,” Davy said sulkily. “Milty Boulter has a great one, made from the feathers his mom gave him when she killed their old white turkey. You could let me have some. That rooster has way more than he needs.”

“You may have the old feather duster in the garret,” said Anne, “and I’ll dye them green and red and yellow for you.”

“You can have the old feather duster in the attic,” said Anne, “and I’ll dye them green, red, and yellow for you.”

“You do spoil that boy dreadfully,” said Marilla, when Davy, with a radiant face, had followed prim Dora out. Marilla’s education had made great strides in the past six years; but she had not yet been able to rid herself of the idea that it was very bad for a child to have too many of its wishes indulged.

“You really spoil that boy,” Marilla said as Davy, beaming with happiness, followed strict Dora outside. Marilla had made significant progress in her views over the past six years, but she still couldn’t shake the belief that it was unhealthy for a child to have too many of their wishes granted.

“All the boys of his class have Indian headdresses, and Davy wants one too,” said Anne. “I know how it feels . . . I’ll never forget how I used to long for puffed sleeves when all the other girls had them. And Davy isn’t being spoiled. He is improving every day. Think what a difference there is in him since he came here a year ago.”

“All the boys in his class have Indian headdresses, and Davy wants one too,” Anne said. “I know how it feels . . . I’ll never forget how much I wanted puffed sleeves when all the other girls had them. And Davy isn’t being spoiled. He is getting better every day. Just think about how much he’s changed since he arrived here a year ago.”

“He certainly doesn’t get into as much mischief since he began to go to school,” acknowledged Marilla. “I suppose he works off the tendency with the other boys. But it’s a wonder to me we haven’t heard from Richard Keith before this. Never a word since last May.”

“He definitely doesn’t get into as much trouble since he started school,” Marilla admitted. “I guess he channels that energy into spending time with the other boys. But I’m surprised we haven’t heard from Richard Keith until now. Not a word since last May.”

“I’ll be afraid to hear from him,” sighed Anne, beginning to clear away the dishes. “If a letter should come I’d dread opening it, for fear it would tell us to send the twins to him.”

“I’ll be scared to hear from him,” sighed Anne, starting to clear away the dishes. “If a letter comes, I’d dread opening it, worried it might tell us to send the twins to him.”

A month later a letter did come. But it was not from Richard Keith. A friend of his wrote to say that Richard Keith had died of consumption a fortnight previously. The writer of the letter was the executor of his will and by that will the sum of two thousand dollars was left to Miss Marilla Cuthbert in trust for David and Dora Keith until they came of age or married. In the meantime the interest was to be used for their maintenance.

A month later, a letter arrived. But it wasn't from Richard Keith. A friend of his wrote to say that Richard Keith had passed away from tuberculosis two weeks earlier. The author of the letter was the executor of his will, and according to that will, the sum of two thousand dollars was left to Miss Marilla Cuthbert in trust for David and Dora Keith until they turned eighteen or got married. In the meantime, the interest was to be used for their support.

“It seems dreadful to be glad of anything in connection with a death,” said Anne soberly. “I’m sorry for poor Mr. Keith; but I am glad that we can keep the twins.”

“It feels terrible to be happy about anything related to a death,” said Anne seriously. “I feel bad for poor Mr. Keith; but I am glad that we can keep the twins.”

“It’s a very good thing about the money,” said Marilla practically. “I wanted to keep them but I really didn’t see how I could afford to do it, especially when they grew older. The rent of the farm doesn’t do any more than keep the house and I was bound that not a cent of your money should be spent on them. You do far too much for them as it is. Dora didn’t need that new hat you bought her any more than a cat needs two tails. But now the way is made clear and they are provided for.”

"It’s really great about the money," Marilla said practically. "I wanted to keep them, but I just didn’t think I could afford it, especially as they got older. The farm rent only covers the house, and I was determined that not a cent of your money should go towards them. You already do way too much for them. Dora didn’t need that new hat you got her any more than a cat needs two tails. But now everything’s sorted out, and they’re taken care of."

Davy and Dora were delighted when they heard that they were to live at Green Gables, “for good.” The death of an uncle whom they had never seen could not weigh a moment in the balance against that. But Dora had one misgiving.

Davy and Dora were thrilled when they found out they would be living at Green Gables, “for good.” The death of an uncle they had never met didn't matter at all compared to that. But Dora had one concern.

“Was Uncle Richard buried?” she whispered to Anne.

“Was Uncle Richard buried?” she whispered to Anne.

“Yes, dear, of course.”

"Sure thing, sweetheart."

“He . . . he . . . isn’t like Mirabel Cotton’s uncle, is he?” in a still more agitated whisper. “He won’t walk about houses after being buried, will he, Anne?”

“He . . . he . . . isn’t like Mirabel Cotton’s uncle, is he?” in an even more agitated whisper. “He won’t walk around houses after being buried, will he, Anne?”

XXIII
Miss Lavendar’s Romance

“I think I’ll take a walk through to Echo Lodge this evening,” said Anne, one Friday afternoon in December.

“I think I’ll take a walk to Echo Lodge this evening,” Anne said one Friday afternoon in December.

“It looks like snow,” said Marilla dubiously.

“It looks like snow,” Marilla said, unsure.

“I’ll be there before the snow comes and I mean to stay all night. Diana can’t go because she has company, and I’m sure Miss Lavendar will be looking for me tonight. It’s a whole fortnight since I was there.”

“I'll be there before the snow starts, and I plan to stay all night. Diana can't come because she has guests, and I'm sure Miss Lavendar will be expecting me tonight. It's been two weeks since I was there.”

Anne had paid many a visit to Echo Lodge since that October day. Sometimes she and Diana drove around by the road; sometimes they walked through the woods. When Diana could not go Anne went alone. Between her and Miss Lavendar had sprung up one of those fervent, helpful friendships possible only between a woman who has kept the freshness of youth in her heart and soul, and a girl whose imagination and intuition supplied the place of experience. Anne had at last discovered a real “kindred spirit,” while into the little lady’s lonely, sequestered life of dreams Anne and Diana came with the wholesome joy and exhilaration of the outer existence, which Miss Lavendar, “the world forgetting, by the world forgot,” had long ceased to share; they brought an atmosphere of youth and reality to the little stone house. Charlotta the Fourth always greeted them with her very widest smile . . . and Charlotta’s smiles were fearfully wide . . . loving them for the sake of her adored mistress as well as for their own. Never had there been such “high jinks” held in the little stone house as were held there that beautiful, late-lingering autumn, when November seemed October over again, and even December aped the sunshine and hazes of summer.

Anne had visited Echo Lodge many times since that October day. Sometimes she and Diana drove down the road, and other times they walked through the woods. When Diana couldn't make it, Anne went alone. A deep, supportive friendship had formed between her and Miss Lavendar, one of those intense connections that can only happen between a woman who retains the spirit of youth and a girl whose imagination and intuition fill in for experience. Anne had finally found a true “kindred spirit,” and she and Diana brought the joyful energy of the outside world into Miss Lavendar's lonely, secluded life of dreams, which she had long stopped sharing. They introduced a sense of youth and reality to the little stone house. Charlotta the Fourth always greeted them with her biggest smile… and Charlotta’s smiles were extremely wide… loving them for the sake of her adored mistress as well as for themselves. Never had there been such “high jinks” in the little stone house as those that took place that beautiful, lingering autumn, when November felt like October all over again, and even December mimicked the sunshine and warmth of summer.

But on this particular day it seemed as if December had remembered that it was time for winter and had turned suddenly dull and brooding, with a windless hush predictive of coming snow. Nevertheless, Anne keenly enjoyed her walk through the great gray maze of the beechlands; though alone she never found it lonely; her imagination peopled her path with merry companions, and with these she carried on a gay, pretended conversation that was wittier and more fascinating than conversations are apt to be in real life, where people sometimes fail most lamentably to talk up to the requirements. In a “make believe” assembly of choice spirits everybody says just the thing you want her to say and so gives you the chance to say just what you want to say. Attended by this invisible company, Anne traversed the woods and arrived at the fir lane just as broad, feathery flakes began to flutter down softly.

But on this particular day, it felt like December had realized it was time for winter and had suddenly become dull and gloomy, with a quiet stillness suggesting that snow was on the way. Still, Anne thoroughly enjoyed her walk through the vast gray maze of the beech woods; even though she was alone, she never felt lonely. Her imagination filled the path with cheerful companions, and with them, she engaged in a lively, pretend conversation that was wittier and more captivating than real-life conversations, where people often struggle to meet expectations. In a “make believe” gathering of favorite spirits, everyone says exactly what you want them to say, giving you the chance to say exactly what you want to say. Accompanied by this invisible company, Anne walked through the woods and reached the fir lane just as large, soft flakes began to drift down gently.

At the first bend she came upon Miss Lavendar, standing under a big, broad-branching fir. She wore a gown of warm, rich red, and her head and shoulders were wrapped in a silvery gray silk shawl.

At the first bend, she encountered Miss Lavendar, standing under a large, wide-branching fir tree. She was wearing a warm, rich red dress, and her head and shoulders were wrapped in a silky gray shawl.

“You look like the queen of the fir wood fairies,” called Anne merrily.

“You look just like the queen of the forest fairies,” Anne called happily.

“I thought you would come tonight, Anne,” said Miss Lavendar, running forward. “And I’m doubly glad, for Charlotta the Fourth is away. Her mother is sick and she had to go home for the night. I should have been very lonely if you hadn’t come . . . even the dreams and the echoes wouldn’t have been enough company. Oh, Anne, how pretty you are,” she added suddenly, looking up at the tall, slim girl with the soft rose-flush of walking on her face. “How pretty and how young! It’s so delightful to be seventeen, isn’t it? I do envy you,” concluded Miss Lavendar candidly.

“I thought you’d come tonight, Anne,” said Miss Lavendar, running forward. “I’m even happier that you did since Charlotta the Fourth is away. Her mom is sick, so she had to head home for the night. I would have felt really lonely if you hadn’t shown up... even the dreams and echoes wouldn’t have made good company. Oh, Anne, you look so pretty,” she added suddenly, gazing up at the tall, slim girl with a soft rosy glow from being outside. “You’re so pretty and so young! It’s so wonderful to be seventeen, isn’t it? I honestly envy you,” concluded Miss Lavendar.

“But you are only seventeen at heart,” smiled Anne.

“But you're only seventeen at heart,” smiled Anne.

“No, I’m old . . . or rather middle-aged, which is far worse,” sighed Miss Lavendar. “Sometimes I can pretend I’m not, but at other times I realize it. And I can’t reconcile myself to it as most women seem to. I’m just as rebellious as I was when I discovered my first gray hair. Now, Anne, don’t look as if you were trying to understand. Seventeen can’t understand. I’m going to pretend right away that I am seventeen too, and I can do it, now that you’re here. You always bring youth in your hand like a gift. We’re going to have a jolly evening. Tea first . . . what do you want for tea? We’ll have whatever you like. Do think of something nice and indigestible.”

“No, I'm old . . . or rather middle-aged, which is even worse,” sighed Miss Lavendar. “Sometimes I can act like I'm not, but other times I really feel it. And I can’t come to terms with it like most women seem to. I’m just as rebellious as I was when I found my first gray hair. Now, Anne, don’t look like you’re trying to get it. Seventeen can’t understand. I’m going to pretend right now that I’m seventeen too, and I can do it, now that you’re here. You always bring youth with you like a gift. We’re going to have a fun evening. Tea first . . . what do you want for tea? We’ll have whatever you like. Please think of something nice and rich.”

There were sounds of riot and mirth in the little stone house that night. What with cooking and feasting and making candy and laughing and “pretending,” it is quite true that Miss Lavendar and Anne comported themselves in a fashion entirely unsuited to the dignity of a spinster of forty-five and a sedate schoolma’am. Then, when they were tired, they sat down on the rug before the grate in the parlor, lighted only by the soft fireshine and perfumed deliciously by Miss Lavendar’s open rose-jar on the mantel. The wind had risen and was sighing and wailing around the eaves and the snow was thudding softly against the windows, as if a hundred storm sprites were tapping for entrance.

There were sounds of chaos and laughter in the little stone house that night. Between cooking, feasting, making candy, and laughing while “pretending,” it’s true that Miss Lavendar and Anne behaved in a way totally inappropriate for a 45-year-old spinster and a reserved schoolteacher. After they got tired, they settled down on the rug in front of the fireplace in the parlor, lit only by the soft glow of the fire and pleasantly scented by Miss Lavendar’s open rose jar on the mantel. The wind had picked up and was sighing and howling around the edges, and the snow was softly thudding against the windows, as if a hundred storm sprites were tapping to get in.

“I’m so glad you’re here, Anne,” said Miss Lavendar, nibbling at her candy. “If you weren’t I should be blue . . . very blue . . . almost navy blue. Dreams and make-believes are all very well in the daytime and the sunshine, but when dark and storm come they fail to satisfy. One wants real things then. But you don’t know this . . . seventeen never knows it. At seventeen dreams DO satisfy because you think the realities are waiting for you further on. When I was seventeen, Anne, I didn’t think forty-five would find me a white-haired little old maid with nothing but dreams to fill my life.”

“I’m really glad you’re here, Anne,” said Miss Lavendar, nibbling on her candy. “If you weren’t, I’d be feeling down... really down... almost dark blue. Dreams and daydreams are nice when it’s bright and sunny, but when the dark and stormy times hit, they just don’t cut it. You need real things then. But you wouldn’t understand this... seventeen never gets it. At seventeen, dreams DO satisfy because you think the real stuff is waiting for you down the road. When I was seventeen, Anne, I never imagined that at forty-five I’d be a white-haired old maid with nothing but dreams to fill my life.”

“But you aren’t an old maid,” said Anne, smiling into Miss Lavendar’s wistful woodbrown eyes. “Old maids are born . . . they don’t become.”

“But you aren’t an old maid,” said Anne, smiling into Miss Lavendar’s wistful brown eyes. “Old maids are born . . . they don’t become.”

“Some are born old maids, some achieve old maidenhood, and some have old maidenhood thrust upon them,” parodied Miss Lavendar whimsically.

“Some people are born as old maids, some become old maids through their choices, and some have old maidenhood forced on them,” Miss Lavendar joked playfully.

“You are one of those who have achieved it then,” laughed Anne, “and you’ve done it so beautifully that if every old maid were like you they would come into the fashion, I think.”

“You’re one of those who have made it happen, then,” laughed Anne, “and you’ve done it so wonderfully that if all old maids were like you, I think they’d become fashionable.”

“I always like to do things as well as possible,” said Miss Lavendar meditatively, “and since an old maid I had to be I was determined to be a very nice one. People say I’m odd; but it’s just because I follow my own way of being an old maid and refuse to copy the traditional pattern. Anne, did anyone ever tell you anything about Stephen Irving and me?”

“I always like to do things as well as possible,” said Miss Lavendar thoughtfully, “and since I had to be an old maid, I was determined to be a really good one. People say I’m a bit strange, but it’s just because I choose my own way of being an old maid and won’t follow the usual path. Anne, has anyone ever told you anything about Stephen Irving and me?”

“Yes,” said Anne candidly, “I’ve heard that you and he were engaged once.”

“Yes,” Anne said honestly, “I’ve heard that you were engaged to him once.”

“So we were . . . twenty-five years ago . . . a lifetime ago. And we were to have been married the next spring. I had my wedding dress made, although nobody but mother and Stephen ever knew that. We’d been engaged in a way almost all our lives, you might say. When Stephen was a little boy his mother would bring him here when she came to see my mother; and the second time he ever came . . . he was nine and I was six . . . he told me out in the garden that he had pretty well made up his mind to marry me when he grew up. I remember that I said ‘Thank you’; and when he was gone I told mother very gravely that there was a great weight off my mind, because I wasn’t frightened any more about having to be an old maid. How poor mother laughed!”

“So, here we are... twenty-five years ago... a lifetime ago. We were supposed to get married the next spring. I had my wedding dress made, though only my mom and Stephen ever knew about it. We’d been engaged in a way for practically our whole lives, you could say. When Stephen was a little boy, his mom would bring him here when she visited my mom; and the second time he ever came... he was nine and I was six... he told me out in the garden that he had pretty much decided to marry me when he grew up. I remember saying ‘Thank you’; and after he left, I told my mom very seriously that I felt a huge weight lifted off my shoulders because I wasn’t worried anymore about becoming an old maid. My poor mom just laughed!”

“And what went wrong?” asked Anne breathlessly.

“And what went wrong?” Anne asked, breathless.

“We had just a stupid, silly, commonplace quarrel. So commonplace that, if you’ll believe me, I don’t even remember just how it began. I hardly know who was the more to blame for it. Stephen did really begin it, but I suppose I provoked him by some foolishness of mine. He had a rival or two, you see. I was vain and coquettish and liked to tease him a little. He was a very high-strung, sensitive fellow. Well, we parted in a temper on both sides. But I thought it would all come right; and it would have if Stephen hadn’t come back too soon. Anne, my dear, I’m sorry to say” . . . Miss Lavendar dropped her voice as if she were about to confess a predilection for murdering people, “that I am a dreadfully sulky person. Oh, you needn’t smile, . . . it’s only too true. I do sulk; and Stephen came back before I had finished sulking. I wouldn’t listen to him and I wouldn’t forgive him; and so he went away for good. He was too proud to come again. And then I sulked because he didn’t come. I might have sent for him perhaps, but I couldn’t humble myself to do that. I was just as proud as he was . . . pride and sulkiness make a very bad combination, Anne. But I could never care for anybody else and I didn’t want to. I knew I would rather be an old maid for a thousand years than marry anybody who wasn’t Stephen Irving. Well, it all seems like a dream now, of course. How sympathetic you look, Anne . . . as sympathetic as only seventeen can look. But don’t overdo it. I’m really a very happy, contented little person in spite of my broken heart. My heart did break, if ever a heart did, when I realized that Stephen Irving was not coming back. But, Anne, a broken heart in real life isn’t half as dreadful as it is in books. It’s a good deal like a bad tooth . . . though you won’t think that a very romantic simile. It takes spells of aching and gives you a sleepless night now and then, but between times it lets you enjoy life and dreams and echoes and peanut candy as if there were nothing the matter with it. And now you’re looking disappointed. You don’t think I’m half as interesting a person as you did five minutes ago when you believed I was always the prey of a tragic memory bravely hidden beneath external smiles. That’s the worst . . . or the best . . . of real life, Anne. It won’t let you be miserable. It keeps on trying to make you comfortable . . . and succeeding...even when you’re determined to be unhappy and romantic. Isn’t this candy scrumptious? I’ve eaten far more than is good for me already but I’m going to keep recklessly on.”

“We had just a stupid, silly, everyday argument. It was so ordinary that, believe it or not, I don’t even remember how it started. I hardly know who was more at fault. Stephen really started it, but I guess I provoked him with some of my foolishness. He had a rival or two, you see. I was vain and flirty and liked to tease him a little. He was a very sensitive, high-strung guy. Well, we ended on bad terms. But I thought everything would work out; it would have if Stephen hadn’t come back too soon. Anne, my dear, I’m sorry to say…” Miss Lavendar lowered her voice as if about to confess a shocking secret, “that I am a terribly sulky person. Oh, you don’t need to smile… it’s just too true. I really do sulk; and Stephen came back before I finished sulking. I wouldn’t listen to him and I wouldn’t forgive him, so he left for good. He was too proud to come back. And then I sulked because he didn’t come. I might have called him back, but I couldn’t bring myself to do that. I was just as proud as he was… pride and sulkiness make a really bad combination, Anne. But I could never care for anyone else, and I didn’t want to. I knew I would rather be an old maid for a thousand years than marry anyone who wasn’t Stephen Irving. Well, it all feels like a dream now, of course. How sympathetic you look, Anne… as sympathetic as only seventeen can look. But don’t overdo it. I’m really a very happy, content little person despite my broken heart. My heart did break, if ever a heart did, when I realized that Stephen Irving was not coming back. But, Anne, a broken heart in real life isn’t half as terrible as it is in books. It’s a lot like a bad tooth… though you might not think that’s a very romantic comparison. It has episodes of aching and gives you a sleepless night now and then, but in between, it lets you enjoy life and dreams and echoes and candy as if nothing were wrong. And now you look disappointed. You don’t think I’m half as interesting as you did five minutes ago when you believed I was always weighed down by a tragic memory bravely hidden behind a smile. That’s the worst… or the best… of real life, Anne. It won’t let you be miserable. It keeps trying to make you comfortable… and it succeeds… even when you’re determined to be unhappy and romantic. Isn’t this candy delicious? I’ve already eaten way more than I should, but I’m going to keep going recklessly.”

After a little silence Miss Lavendar said abruptly,

After a brief silence, Miss Lavendar suddenly said,

“It gave me a shock to hear about Stephen’s son that first day you were here, Anne. I’ve never been able to mention him to you since, but I’ve wanted to know all about him. What sort of a boy is he?”

“It shocked me to hear about Stephen’s son that first day you were here, Anne. I’ve never brought him up to you since, but I’ve wanted to learn all about him. What kind of boy is he?”

“He is the dearest, sweetest child I ever knew, Miss Lavendar . . . and he pretends things too, just as you and I do.”

“He is the sweetest, most precious child I’ve ever known, Miss Lavendar . . . and he pretends things too, just like you and I do.”

“I’d like to see him,” said Miss Lavendar softly, as if talking to herself. “I wonder if he looks anything like the little dream-boy who lives here with me . . . my little dream-boy.”

“I’d like to see him,” Miss Lavendar said softly, almost as if she were talking to herself. “I wonder if he looks anything like the little dream-boy who lives here with me… my little dream-boy.”

“If you would like to see Paul I’ll bring him through with me sometime,” said Anne.

“If you want to see Paul, I can bring him with me sometime,” said Anne.

“I would like it . . . but not too soon. I want to get used to the thought. There might be more pain than pleasure in it . . . if he looked too much like Stephen . . . or if he didn’t look enough like him. In a month’s time you may bring him.”

“I would like it . . . but not right away. I want to get used to the idea. There could be more pain than joy in it . . . if he looks too much like Stephen . . . or if he doesn’t look enough like him. In a month, you can bring him.”

Accordingly, a month later Anne and Paul walked through the woods to the stone house, and met Miss Lavendar in the lane. She had not been expecting them just then and she turned very pale.

Accordingly, a month later, Anne and Paul walked through the woods to the stone house and ran into Miss Lavendar in the lane. She hadn’t been expecting them at that moment, and she turned very pale.

“So this is Stephen’s boy,” she said in a low tone, taking Paul’s hand and looking at him as he stood, beautiful and boyish, in his smart little fur coat and cap. “He . . . he is very like his father.”

“So this is Stephen’s boy,” she said softly, taking Paul’s hand and looking at him as he stood there, handsome and youthful, in his stylish little fur coat and cap. “He... he looks a lot like his father.”

“Everybody says I’m a chip off the old block,” remarked Paul, quite at his ease.

“Everyone says I’m just like my dad,” Paul said, feeling relaxed.

Anne, who had been watching the little scene, drew a relieved breath. She saw that Miss Lavendar and Paul had “taken” to each other, and that there would be no constraint or stiffness. Miss Lavendar was a very sensible person, in spite of her dreams and romance, and after that first little betrayal she tucked her feelings out of sight and entertained Paul as brightly and naturally as if he were anybody’s son who had come to see her. They all had a jolly afternoon together and such a feast of fat things by way of supper as would have made old Mrs. Irving hold up her hands in horror, believing that Paul’s digestion would be ruined for ever.

Anne, who had been observing the small scene, let out a sigh of relief. She noticed that Miss Lavendar and Paul connected well, and there was no awkwardness between them. Miss Lavendar was quite sensible, despite her dreams and romantic tendencies, and after her initial slip, she tucked her feelings away and hosted Paul with all the brightness and ease as if he were just any visitor. They enjoyed a fun afternoon together and had such a lavish spread for supper that it would have made old Mrs. Irving gasp in shock, thinking that Paul’s digestion would be ruined forever.

“Come again, laddie,” said Miss Lavendar, shaking hands with him at parting.

“Come back soon, kid,” said Miss Lavendar, shaking hands with him as they said goodbye.

“You may kiss me if you like,” said Paul gravely.

"You can kiss me if you want," Paul said seriously.

Miss Lavendar stooped and kissed him.

Miss Lavendar bent down and kissed him.

“How did you know I wanted to?” she whispered.

“How did you know I wanted to?” she asked quietly.

“Because you looked at me just as my little mother used to do when she wanted to kiss me. As a rule, I don’t like to be kissed. Boys don’t. You know, Miss Lewis. But I think I rather like to have you kiss me. And of course I’ll come to see you again. I think I’d like to have you for a particular friend of mine, if you don’t object.”

“Because you looked at me just like my mom used to when she wanted to kiss me. Normally, I’m not a fan of kisses. Boys usually aren’t. You know, Miss Lewis. But I think I actually wouldn’t mind having you kiss me. And of course, I’ll come to see you again. I think I’d like to have you as a special friend of mine, if that’s okay with you.”

“I . . . I don’t think I shall object,” said Miss Lavendar. She turned and went in very quickly; but a moment later she was waving a gay and smiling good-bye to them from the window.

“I... I don’t think I’ll object,” said Miss Lavendar. She turned and went inside quickly; but a moment later, she was waving a cheerful and smiling goodbye to them from the window.

“I like Miss Lavendar,” announced Paul, as they walked through the beech woods. “I like the way she looked at me, and I like her stone house, and I like Charlotta the Fourth. I wish Grandma Irving had a Charlotta the Fourth instead of a Mary Joe. I feel sure Charlotta the Fourth wouldn’t think I was wrong in my upper story when I told her what I think about things. Wasn’t that a splendid tea we had, teacher? Grandma says a boy shouldn’t be thinking about what he gets to eat, but he can’t help it sometimes when he is real hungry. You know, teacher. I don’t think Miss Lavendar would make a boy eat porridge for breakfast if he didn’t like it. She’d get things for him he did like. But of course” . . . Paul was nothing if not fair-minded . . . “that mightn’t be very good for him. It’s very nice for a change though, teacher. You know.”

“I like Miss Lavendar,” Paul said as they walked through the beech woods. “I like the way she looked at me, and I like her stone house, and I like Charlotta the Fourth. I wish Grandma Irving had a Charlotta the Fourth instead of a Mary Joe. I’m sure Charlotta the Fourth wouldn’t think I was wrong in my head when I told her how I feel about things. Wasn’t that a great tea we had, teacher? Grandma says a boy shouldn’t be focused on what he gets to eat, but he can’t help it sometimes when he’s really hungry. You know, teacher. I don’t think Miss Lavendar would make a boy eat porridge for breakfast if he didn’t like it. She’d get him things he did like. But of course” . . . Paul was nothing if not fair-minded . . . “that might not be very good for him. It’s nice for a change though, teacher. You know.”

XXIV
A Prophet in His Own Country

One May day Avonlea folks were mildly excited over some “Avonlea Notes,” signed “Observer,” which appeared in the Charlottetown Daily Enterprise. Gossip ascribed the authorship thereof to Charlie Sloane, partly because the said Charlie had indulged in similar literary flights in times past, and partly because one of the notes seemed to embody a sneer at Gilbert Blythe. Avonlea juvenile society persisted in regarding Gilbert Blythe and Charlie Sloane as rivals in the good graces of a certain damsel with gray eyes and an imagination.

One May day, the people of Avonlea were a bit excited about some "Avonlea Notes," signed "Observer," that appeared in the Charlottetown Daily Enterprise. Gossip linked the authorship to Charlie Sloane, partly because he had written similar pieces in the past and partly because one of the notes seemed to mock Gilbert Blythe. The youth of Avonlea continued to see Gilbert Blythe and Charlie Sloane as rivals for the affection of a certain girl with gray eyes and a vivid imagination.

Gossip, as usual, was wrong. Gilbert Blythe, aided and abetted by Anne, had written the notes, putting in the one about himself as a blind. Only two of the notes have any bearing on this history:

Gossip, as always, was off base. Gilbert Blythe, with Anne's help, had written the notes, including one about himself as a distraction. Only two of the notes are relevant to this story:

“Rumor has it that there will be a wedding in our village ere the daisies are in bloom. A new and highly respected citizen will lead to the hymeneal altar one of our most popular ladies.

“Rumor has it that there will be a wedding in our village before the daisies bloom. A new and well-respected citizen will take one of our most popular ladies to the altar."

“Uncle Abe, our well-known weather prophet, predicts a violent storm of thunder and lightning for the evening of the twenty-third of May, beginning at seven o’clock sharp. The area of the storm will extend over the greater part of the Province. People traveling that evening will do well to take umbrellas and mackintoshes with them.”

“Uncle Abe, our famous weather forecaster, predicts a severe thunderstorm with lightning for the evening of May twenty-third, starting at seven o’clock sharp. The storm will cover most of the Province. Anyone traveling that evening should definitely bring umbrellas and raincoats.”

“Uncle Abe really has predicted a storm for sometime this spring,” said Gilbert, “but do you suppose Mr. Harrison really does go to see Isabella Andrews?”

“Uncle Abe has really predicted a storm for this spring,” said Gilbert, “but do you think Mr. Harrison actually goes to see Isabella Andrews?”

“No,” said Anne, laughing, “I’m sure he only goes to play checkers with Mr. Harrison Andrews, but Mrs. Lynde says she knows Isabella Andrews must be going to get married, she’s in such good spirits this spring.”

“No,” Anne said, laughing, “I’m sure he just goes to play checkers with Mr. Harrison Andrews, but Mrs. Lynde claims she knows Isabella Andrews must be getting married; she’s in such great spirits this spring.”

Poor old Uncle Abe felt rather indignant over the notes. He suspected that “Observer” was making fun of him. He angrily denied having assigned any particular date for his storm but nobody believed him.

Poor old Uncle Abe felt pretty upset about the notes. He thought that “Observer” was making fun of him. He fiercely denied having set any specific date for his storm, but nobody believed him.

Life in Avonlea continued on the smooth and even tenor of its way. The “planting” was put in; the Improvers celebrated an Arbor Day. Each Improver set out, or caused to be set out, five ornamental trees. As the society now numbered forty members, this meant a total of two hundred young trees. Early oats greened over the red fields; apple orchards flung great blossoming arms about the farmhouses and the Snow Queen adorned itself as a bride for her husband. Anne liked to sleep with her window open and let the cherry fragrance blow over her face all night. She thought it very poetical. Marilla thought she was risking her life.

Life in Avonlea went on smoothly as usual. The “planting” took place; the Improvers celebrated Arbor Day. Each member chose to plant, or had someone plant, five decorative trees. Since the society now had forty members, that added up to two hundred young trees in total. Early oats turned the red fields green; apple orchards wrapped their blooming branches around the farmhouses, and the Snow Queen dressed up like a bride for her husband. Anne liked to sleep with her window open, allowing the cherry fragrance to drift over her face all night. She found it very poetic. Marilla thought she was risking her life.

“Thanksgiving should be celebrated in the spring,” said Anne one evening to Marilla, as they sat on the front door steps and listened to the silver-sweet chorus of the frogs. “I think it would be ever so much better than having it in November when everything is dead or asleep. Then you have to remember to be thankful; but in May one simply can’t help being thankful . . . that they are alive, if for nothing else. I feel exactly as Eve must have felt in the garden of Eden before the trouble began. Is that grass in the hollow green or golden? It seems to me, Marilla, that a pearl of a day like this, when the blossoms are out and the winds don’t know where to blow from next for sheer crazy delight must be pretty near as good as heaven.”

“Thanksgiving should be celebrated in the spring,” Anne said one evening to Marilla, as they sat on the front steps and listened to the sweet chorus of the frogs. “I think it would be so much better than having it in November when everything is dead or asleep. Then you have to remember to be thankful; but in May, you can't help but be thankful... for being alive, at the very least. I feel just like Eve must have felt in the Garden of Eden before everything went wrong. Is that grass in the hollow green or golden? It seems to me, Marilla, that a perfect day like this, when the blossoms are out and the winds are blowing every which way in pure joy, must be pretty close to heaven.”

Marilla looked scandalized and glanced apprehensively around to make sure the twins were not within earshot. They came around the corner of the house just then.

Marilla looked shocked and glanced around nervously to ensure the twins couldn't hear. They rounded the corner of the house just then.

“Ain’t it an awful nice-smelling evening?” asked Davy, sniffing delightedly as he swung a hoe in his grimy hands. He had been working in his garden. That spring Marilla, by way of turning Davy’s passion for reveling in mud and clay into useful channels, had given him and Dora a small plot of ground for a garden. Both had eagerly gone to work in a characteristic fashion. Dora planted, weeded, and watered carefully, systematically, and dispassionately. As a result, her plot was already green with prim, orderly little rows of vegetables and annuals. Davy, however, worked with more zeal than discretion; he dug and hoed and raked and watered and transplanted so energetically that his seeds had no chance for their lives.

“Isn’t it a wonderfully nice-smelling evening?” Davy asked, sniffing happily as he swung a hoe in his dirty hands. He had been working in his garden. That spring, Marilla, in an effort to channel Davy’s love for playing in mud and clay into something useful, had given him and Dora a small piece of land for a garden. Both had eagerly gotten to work in their own distinctive ways. Dora carefully planted, weeded, and watered, going about it in an organized and calm manner. Because of this, her plot was already sprouting with neat little rows of vegetables and flowers. Davy, on the other hand, worked with more enthusiasm than thought; he dug, hoed, raked, watered, and transplanted so energetically that his seeds didn’t stand a chance.

“How is your garden coming on, Davy-boy?” asked Anne.

“How's your garden coming along, Davy-boy?” asked Anne.

“Kind of slow,” said Davy with a sigh. “I don’t know why the things don’t grow better. Milty Boulter says I must have planted them in the dark of the moon and that’s the whole trouble. He says you must never sow seeds or kill pork or cut your hair or do any ‘portant thing in the wrong time of the moon. Is that true, Anne? I want to know.”

“Kind of slow,” Davy said with a sigh. “I don’t get why things aren’t growing better. Milty Boulter says I must have planted them during the dark of the moon and that’s the problem. He says you should never plant seeds, butcher pork, cut your hair, or do anything important at the wrong phase of the moon. Is that true, Anne? I want to know.”

“Maybe if you didn’t pull your plants up by the roots every other day to see how they’re getting on ‘at the other end,’ they’d do better,” said Marilla sarcastically.

“Maybe if you didn’t rip your plants out of the ground every other day to check how they’re doing ‘at the other end,’ they’d grow better,” Marilla said with sarcasm.

“I only pulled six of them up,” protested Davy. “I wanted to see if there was grubs at the roots. Milty Boulter said if it wasn’t the moon’s fault it must be grubs. But I only found one grub. He was a great big juicy curly grub. I put him on a stone and got another stone and smashed him flat. He made a jolly sqush I tell you. I was sorry there wasn’t more of them. Dora’s garden was planted same time’s mine and her things are growing all right. It can’t be the moon,” Davy concluded in a reflective tone.

“I only pulled up six of them,” Davy protested. “I wanted to check for grubs at the roots. Milty Boulter said if it wasn't the moon's fault, it must be grubs. But I only found one grub. He was a huge juicy curly grub. I put him on a stone and used another stone to smash him flat. It made a really loud squish, I tell you. I was sorry there weren’t more of them. Dora’s garden was planted at the same time as mine, and her plants are growing just fine. It can’t be the moon,” Davy concluded thoughtfully.

“Marilla, look at that apple tree,” said Anne. “Why, the thing is human. It is reaching out long arms to pick its own pink skirts daintily up and provoke us to admiration.”

“Marilla, check out that apple tree,” said Anne. “Wow, it looks so human. It’s stretching out its long branches to delicately lift its own pink skirts and tease us into admiring it.”

“Those Yellow Duchess trees always bear well,” said Marilla complacently. “That tree’ll be loaded this year. I’m real glad. . . they’re great for pies.”

“Those Yellow Duchess trees always produce a good harvest,” said Marilla with satisfaction. “That tree will be full this year. I’m really glad... they’re perfect for pies.”

But neither Marilla nor Anne nor anybody else was fated to make pies out of Yellow Duchess apples that year.

But neither Marilla nor Anne nor anyone else was destined to make pies out of Yellow Duchess apples that year.

The twenty-third of May came . . . an unseasonably warm day, as none realized more keenly than Anne and her little beehive of pupils, sweltering over fractions and syntax in the Avonlea schoolroom. A hot breeze blew all the forenoon; but after noon hour it died away into a heavy stillness. At half past three Anne heard a low rumble of thunder. She promptly dismissed school at once, so that the children might get home before the storm came.

The twenty-third of May arrived . . . an unexpectedly warm day, as none knew better than Anne and her busy little group of students, struggling with fractions and grammar in the Avonlea classroom. A warm breeze blew all morning; but after lunchtime, it faded into a heavy stillness. At three-thirty, Anne heard a distant rumble of thunder. She quickly dismissed school so the kids could get home before the storm hit.

As they went out to the playground Anne perceived a certain shadow and gloom over the world in spite of the fact that the sun was still shining brightly. Annetta Bell caught her hand nervously.

As they headed out to the playground, Anne felt a sense of shadow and gloom around them even though the sun was still shining brightly. Annetta Bell tightly grasped her hand, feeling anxious.

“Oh, teacher, look at that awful cloud!”

“Oh, teacher, check out that terrible cloud!”

Anne looked and gave an exclamation of dismay. In the northwest a mass of cloud, such as she had never in all her life beheld before, was rapidly rolling up. It was dead black, save where its curled and fringed edges showed a ghastly, livid white. There was something about it indescribably menacing as it gloomed up in the clear blue sky; now and again a bolt of lightning shot across it, followed by a savage growl. It hung so low that it almost seemed to be touching the tops of the wooded hills.

Anne looked and gasped in shock. In the northwest, a huge mass of clouds, unlike anything she had ever seen before, was quickly rolling in. It was pitch black, except for its curled and frayed edges that glowed a sickly white. There was something indescribably threatening about it as it took over the clear blue sky; occasionally, a flash of lightning streaked across it, followed by a deep rumble. It hung so low that it almost looked like it was brushing against the tops of the wooded hills.

Mr. Harmon Andrews came clattering up the hill in his truck wagon, urging his team of grays to their utmost speed. He pulled them to a halt opposite the school.

Mr. Harmon Andrews came rumbling up the hill in his truck, pushing his team of gray horses to go as fast as they could. He brought them to a stop across from the school.

“Guess Uncle Abe’s hit it for once in his life, Anne,” he shouted. “His storm’s coming a leetle ahead of time. Did ye ever see the like of that cloud? Here, all you young ones, that are going my way, pile in, and those that ain’t scoot for the post office if ye’ve more’n a quarter of a mile to go, and stay there till the shower’s over.”

“Looks like Uncle Abe finally got it right for once, Anne,” he yelled. “His storm is coming a little earlier than expected. Have you ever seen a cloud like that? Come on, all you young folks who are heading my way, hop in, and for those who aren’t, hurry to the post office if you have more than a quarter of a mile to go, and stay there until the rain stops.”

Anne caught Davy and Dora by the hands and flew down the hill, along the Birch Path, and past Violet Vale and Willowmere, as fast as the twins’ fat legs could go. They reached Green Gables not a moment too soon and were joined at the door by Marilla, who had been hustling her ducks and chickens under shelter. As they dashed into the kitchen the light seemed to vanish, as if blown out by some mighty breath; the awful cloud rolled over the sun and a darkness as of late twilight fell across the world. At the same moment, with a crash of thunder and a blinding glare of lightning, the hail swooped down and blotted the landscape out in one white fury.

Anne grabbed Davy and Dora by the hands and raced down the hill, along the Birch Path, past Violet Vale and Willowmere, as fast as the twins’ chubby legs could manage. They arrived at Green Gables just in time and were met at the door by Marilla, who had been hurriedly ushering her ducks and chickens to safety. As they burst into the kitchen, the light seemed to disappear, as if snuffed out by some powerful force; a dark cloud rolled in front of the sun, and twilight-like darkness settled over everything. At the same moment, with a crash of thunder and a flash of lightning, hail descended and covered the landscape in a white fury.

Through all the clamor of the storm came the thud of torn branches striking the house and the sharp crack of breaking glass. In three minutes every pane in the west and north windows was broken and the hail poured in through the apertures covering the floor with stones, the smallest of which was as big as a hen’s egg. For three quarters of an hour the storm raged unabated and no one who underwent it ever forgot it. Marilla, for once in her life shaken out of her composure by sheer terror, knelt by her rocking chair in a corner of the kitchen, gasping and sobbing between the deafening thunder peals. Anne, white as paper, had dragged the sofa away from the window and sat on it with a twin on either side. Davy at the first crash had howled, “Anne, Anne, is it the Judgment Day? Anne, Anne, I never meant to be naughty,” and then had buried his face in Anne’s lap and kept it there, his little body quivering. Dora, somewhat pale but quite composed, sat with her hand clasped in Anne’s, quiet and motionless. It is doubtful if an earthquake would have disturbed Dora.

Through all the noise of the storm came the thud of broken branches hitting the house and the sharp crack of shattering glass. In just three minutes, every window in the west and north was smashed, and the hail poured in through the openings, covering the floor with ice stones, the smallest of which was as big as a hen’s egg. For three quarters of an hour, the storm raged on without letting up, and no one who experienced it ever forgot. Marilla, for once completely shaken by sheer terror, knelt beside her rocking chair in a corner of the kitchen, gasping and sobbing between the deafening peals of thunder. Anne, pale as a ghost, had dragged the sofa away from the window and sat on it with a twin on each side. Davy, at the first crash, had cried out, “Anne, Anne, is it Judgment Day? Anne, Anne, I never meant to be naughty,” and then buried his face in Anne’s lap, trembling all over. Dora, looking a bit pale but calm, sat with her hand clasped in Anne’s, quiet and still. It’s doubtful that an earthquake would have rattled Dora.

Then, almost as suddenly as it began, the storm ceased. The hail stopped, the thunder rolled and muttered away to the eastward, and the sun burst out merry and radiant over a world so changed that it seemed an absurd thing to think that a scant three quarters of an hour could have effected such a transformation.

Then, almost as quickly as it started, the storm ended. The hail stopped, the thunder faded and grumbled away to the east, and the sun broke through, bright and cheerful, over a world that had changed so much it felt ridiculous to think that just a little over forty-five minutes could create such a transformation.

Marilla rose from her knees, weak and trembling, and dropped on her rocker. Her face was haggard and she looked ten years older.

Marilla got up from her knees, weak and shaking, and sank into her rocking chair. Her face was worn out, and she looked a decade older.

“Have we all come out of that alive?” she asked solemnly.

"Did we all make it out of that alive?" she asked seriously.

“You bet we have,” piped Davy cheerfully, quite his own man again. “I wasn’t a bit scared either . . . only just at the first. It come on a fellow so sudden. I made up my mind quick as a wink that I wouldn’t fight Teddy Sloane Monday as I’d promised; but now maybe I will. Say, Dora, was you scared?”

“You bet we have,” Davy said cheerfully, feeling like himself again. “I wasn’t scared at all... just a little at first. It caught me off guard. I decided in a heartbeat that I wouldn’t fight Teddy Sloane on Monday like I promised, but now maybe I will. Hey, Dora, were you scared?”

“Yes, I was a little scared,” said Dora primly, “but I held tight to Anne’s hand and said my prayers over and over again.”

“Yes, I was a bit scared,” said Dora primly, “but I held onto Anne’s hand and kept saying my prayers repeatedly.”

“Well, I’d have said my prayers too if I’d have thought of it,” said Davy; “but,” he added triumphantly, “you see I came through just as safe as you for all I didn’t say them.”

“Well, I would have said my prayers too if I’d thought of it,” said Davy; “but,” he added triumphantly, “you see I came through just as safely as you even though I didn’t say them.”

Anne got Marilla a glassful of her potent currant wine . . . how potent it was Anne, in her earlier days, had had all too good reason to know . . . and then they went to the door to look out on the strange scene.

Anne got Marilla a glass of her strong currant wine . . . how strong it was, Anne, in her earlier days, had known all too well . . . and then they went to the door to look out at the unusual scene.

Far and wide was a white carpet, knee deep, of hailstones; drifts of them were heaped up under the eaves and on the steps. When, three or four days later, those hailstones melted, the havoc they had wrought was plainly seen, for every green growing thing in the field or garden was cut off. Not only was every blossom stripped from the apple trees but great boughs and branches were wrenched away. And out of the two hundred trees set out by the Improvers by far the greater number were snapped off or torn to shreds.

Everywhere there was a thick white layer of hailstones, knee-deep; piles of them were stacked under the eaves and on the steps. When, three or four days later, those hailstones melted, the damage they caused was clearly visible, as every green plant in the fields or gardens was destroyed. Not only were all the blossoms stripped from the apple trees, but large boughs and branches were torn off as well. Out of the two hundred trees planted by the Improvers, most were either broken or shredded.

“Can it possibly be the same world it was an hour ago?” asked Anne, dazedly. “It must have taken longer than that to play such havoc.”

“Can it really be the same world it was an hour ago?” Anne asked, feeling disoriented. “It has to have taken longer than that to cause such chaos.”

“The like of this has never been known in Prince Edward Island,” said Marilla, “never. I remember when I was a girl there was a bad storm, but it was nothing to this. We’ll hear of terrible destruction, you may be sure.”

"Nothing like this has ever happened in Prince Edward Island," said Marilla. "Never. I remember when I was a girl there was a bad storm, but it was nothing like this. We'll definitely hear about terrible destruction, that's for sure."

“I do hope none of the children were caught out in it,” murmured Anne anxiously. As it was discovered later, none of the children had been, since all those who had any distance to go had taken Mr. Andrews’ excellent advice and sought refuge at the post office.

“I really hope none of the kids got caught in it,” Anne said anxiously. As was found out later, none of the kids had, since all those who had a ways to go took Mr. Andrews’ great advice and sought shelter at the post office.

“There comes John Henry Carter,” said Marilla.

“There comes John Henry Carter,” said Marilla.

John Henry came wading through the hailstones with a rather scared grin.

John Henry walked through the hailstones with a somewhat nervous smile.

“Oh, ain’t this awful, Miss Cuthbert? Mr. Harrison sent me over to see if yous had come out all right.”

“Oh, isn’t this terrible, Miss Cuthbert? Mr. Harrison sent me over to see if you’ve come out okay.”

“We’re none of us killed,” said Marilla grimly, “and none of the buildings was struck. I hope you got off equally well.”

“We’re all fine,” Marilla said sternly, “and none of the buildings were hit. I hope you came through just as well.”

“Yas’m. Not quite so well, ma’am. We was struck. The lightning knocked over the kitchen chimbly and come down the flue and knocked over Ginger’s cage and tore a hole in the floor and went into the sullar. Yas’m.”

“Yeah, ma’am. Not exactly okay, ma’am. We got hit. The lightning knocked over the kitchen chimney, came down the flue, knocked over Ginger’s cage, ripped a hole in the floor, and went into the cellar. Yes, ma’am.”

“Was Ginger hurt?” queried Anne.

"Is Ginger okay?" Anne asked.

“Yas’m. He was hurt pretty bad. He was killed.” Later on Anne went over to comfort Mr. Harrison. She found him sitting by the table, stroking Ginger’s gay dead body with a trembling hand.

“Yeah. He was hurt pretty badly. He was killed.” Later, Anne went over to comfort Mr. Harrison. She found him sitting by the table, gently stroking Ginger’s cheerful dead body with a shaking hand.

“Poor Ginger won’t call you any more names, Anne,” he said mournfully.

“Poor Ginger won’t call you names anymore, Anne,” he said sadly.

Anne could never have imagined herself crying on Ginger’s account, but the tears came into her eyes.

Anne never thought she'd cry over Ginger, but tears filled her eyes.

“He was all the company I had, Anne . . . and now he’s dead. Well, well, I’m an old fool to care so much. I’ll let on I don’t care. I know you’re going to say something sympathetic as soon as I stop talking . . . but don’t. If you did I’d cry like a baby. Hasn’t this been a terrible storm? I guess folks won’t laugh at Uncle Abe’s predictions again. Seems as if all the storms that he’s been prophesying all his life that never happened came all at once. Beats all how he struck the very day though, don’t it? Look at the mess we have here. I must hustle round and get some boards to patch up that hole in the floor.”

“He was the only company I had, Anne... and now he's gone. Well, I guess I'm foolish to care so much. I'll pretend I don't care. I know you're going to say something sympathetic as soon as I stop talking... but please don't. If you do, I'll cry like a baby. Hasn’t this been a terrible storm? I guess people won't laugh at Uncle Abe’s predictions anymore. It seems like all the storms he’s been predicting his entire life that never showed up have come all at once. It's amazing he predicted it for the very day, isn’t it? Look at the mess we've got here. I need to hurry up and find some boards to patch that hole in the floor.”

Avonlea folks did nothing the next day but visit each other and compare damages. The roads were impassable for wheels by reason of the hailstones, so they walked or rode on horseback. The mail came late with ill tidings from all over the province. Houses had been struck, people killed and injured; the whole telephone and telegraph system had been disorganized, and any number of young stock exposed in the fields had perished.

Avonlea residents spent the next day just visiting each other and assessing the damage. The roads were too damaged by the hailstones for vehicles, so everyone either walked or rode horses. The mail arrived late with bad news from all over the province. Houses had been hit, and there were fatalities and injuries; the entire phone and telegraph system was disrupted, and many young animals left in the fields had died.

Uncle Abe waded out to the blacksmith’s forge early in the morning and spent the whole day there. It was Uncle Abe’s hour of triumph and he enjoyed it to the full. It would be doing Uncle Abe an injustice to say that he was glad the storm had happened; but since it had to be he was very glad he had predicted it . . . to the very day, too. Uncle Abe forgot that he had ever denied setting the day. As for the trifling discrepancy in the hour, that was nothing.

Uncle Abe walked out to the blacksmith’s forge early in the morning and spent the whole day there. It was Uncle Abe’s moment of triumph, and he enjoyed it completely. It wouldn’t be fair to say he was happy the storm had occurred, but since it was inevitable, he was really pleased he had predicted it… right down to the very day. Uncle Abe forgot that he had ever denied picking the date. As for the minor difference in the time, that didn’t matter.

Gilbert arrived at Green Gables in the evening and found Marilla and Anne busily engaged in nailing strips of oilcloth over the broken windows.

Gilbert arrived at Green Gables in the evening and found Marilla and Anne busy putting strips of oilcloth over the broken windows.

“Goodness only knows when we’ll get glass for them,” said Marilla. “Mr. Barry went over to Carmody this afternoon but not a pane could he get for love or money. Lawson and Blair were cleaned out by the Carmody people by ten o’clock. Was the storm bad at White Sands, Gilbert?”

“Who knows when we’ll get glass for them,” said Marilla. “Mr. Barry went to Carmody this afternoon, but he couldn’t get a single pane for love or money. Lawson and Blair were wiped out by the Carmody people by ten o’clock. Was the storm bad at White Sands, Gilbert?”

“I should say so. I was caught in the school with all the children and I thought some of them would go mad with fright. Three of them fainted, and two girls took hysterics, and Tommy Blewett did nothing but shriek at the top of his voice the whole time.”

“I should say so. I was stuck in the school with all the kids, and I thought some of them would freak out from fear. Three of them passed out, two girls started screaming uncontrollably, and Tommy Blewett just kept yelling at the top of his lungs the entire time.”

“I only squealed once,” said Davy proudly. “My garden was all smashed flat,” he continued mournfully, “but so was Dora’s,” he added in a tone which indicated that there was yet balm in Gilead.

“I only squealed once,” Davy said proudly. “My garden was completely flattened,” he continued sadly, “but so was Dora’s,” he added in a tone that suggested there was still some comfort to be found.

Anne came running down from the west gable.

Anne came running down from the west gable.

“Oh, Gilbert, have you heard the news? Mr. Levi Boulter’s old house was struck and burned to the ground. It seems to me that I’m dreadfully wicked to feel glad over that, when so much damage has been done. Mr. Boulter says he believes the A.V.I.S. magicked up that storm on purpose.”

“Oh, Gilbert, have you heard the news? Mr. Levi Boulter’s old house was hit and burned to the ground. I feel really bad for being glad about that when so much damage has happened. Mr. Boulter thinks the A.V.I.S. caused that storm on purpose.”

“Well, one thing is certain,” said Gilbert, laughing, “‘Observer’ has made Uncle Abe’s reputation as a weather prophet. ‘Uncle Abe’s storm’ will go down in local history. It is a most extraordinary coincidence that it should have come on the very day we selected. I actually have a half guilty feeling, as if I really had ‘magicked’ it up. We may as well rejoice over the old house being removed, for there’s not much to rejoice over where our young trees are concerned. Not ten of them have escaped.”

"Well, one thing’s for sure,” said Gilbert, laughing, “'Observer' has really made Uncle Abe a well-known weather predictor. ‘Uncle Abe’s storm’ is going to be part of local history. It’s such an incredible coincidence that it happened on the exact day we picked. I almost feel a bit guilty, like I actually 'brought' it about. We might as well celebrate the old house being taken down, because there isn’t much to celebrate regarding our young trees. Not ten of them have survived."

“Ah, well, we’ll just have to plant them over again next spring,” said Anne philosophically. “That is one good thing about this world . . . there are always sure to be more springs.”

“Ah, well, we’ll just have to replant them next spring,” Anne said thoughtfully. “That’s one good thing about this world... there will always be more springs.”

XXV
An Avonlea Scandal

One blithe June morning, a fortnight after Uncle Abe’s storm, Anne came slowly through the Green Gables yard from the garden, carrying in her hands two blighted stalks of white narcissus.

One cheerful June morning, two weeks after Uncle Abe’s storm, Anne walked slowly through the Green Gables yard from the garden, holding two wilted stalks of white narcissus in her hands.

“Look, Marilla,” she said sorrowfully, holding up the flowers before the eyes of a grim lady, with her hair coifed in a green gingham apron, who was going into the house with a plucked chicken, “these are the only buds the storm spared . . . and even they are imperfect. I’m so sorry . . . I wanted some for Matthew’s grave. He was always so fond of June lilies.”

“Look, Marilla,” she said sadly, holding up the flowers in front of a stern lady, dressed in a green gingham apron, who was heading into the house with a plucked chicken, “these are the only buds the storm left behind . . . and even they are flawed. I’m so sorry . . . I wanted some for Matthew’s grave. He always loved June lilies.”

“I kind of miss them myself,” admitted Marilla, “though it doesn’t seem right to lament over them when so many worse things have happened. . . all the crops destroyed as well as the fruit.”

“I kind of miss them too,” Marilla admitted, “even though it feels wrong to mourn them when so many worse things have happened... all the crops destroyed along with the fruit.”

“But people have sown their oats over again,” said Anne comfortingly, “and Mr. Harrison says he thinks if we have a good summer they will come out all right though late. And my annuals are all coming up again . . . but oh, nothing can replace the June lilies. Poor little Hester Gray will have none either. I went all the way back to her garden last night but there wasn’t one. I’m sure she’ll miss them.”

“But people have sown their oats again,” said Anne reassuringly, “and Mr. Harrison thinks that if we have a good summer, they will turn out okay, even if they're late. And my annuals are all sprouting again... but oh, nothing can replace the June lilies. Poor little Hester Gray won’t have any either. I went all the way back to her garden last night, but there wasn’t a single one. I’m sure she’ll really miss them.”

“I don’t think it’s right for you to say such things, Anne, I really don’t,” said Marilla severely. “Hester Gray has been dead for thirty years and her spirit is in heaven . . . I hope.”

“I don’t think it’s right for you to say things like that, Anne, I really don’t,” Marilla said sternly. “Hester Gray has been dead for thirty years and her spirit is in heaven . . . I hope.”

“Yes, but I believe she loves and remembers her garden here still,” said Anne. “I’m sure no matter how long I’d lived in heaven I’d like to look down and see somebody putting flowers on my grave. If I had had a garden here like Hester Gray’s it would take me more than thirty years, even in heaven, to forget being homesick for it by spells.”

“Yes, but I think she still loves and remembers her garden here,” said Anne. “I’m sure that no matter how long I lived in heaven, I’d want to look down and see someone putting flowers on my grave. If I had a garden here like Hester Gray’s, it would take me more than thirty years, even in heaven, to forget feeling homesick for it at times.”

“Well, don’t let the twins hear you talking like that,” was Marilla’s feeble protest, as she carried her chicken into the house.

“Well, don’t let the twins hear you talking like that,” was Marilla’s weak protest as she carried her chicken into the house.

Anne pinned her narcissi on her hair and went to the lane gate, where she stood for awhile sunning herself in the June brightness before going in to attend to her Saturday morning duties. The world was growing lovely again; old Mother Nature was doing her best to remove the traces of the storm, and, though she was not to succeed fully for many a moon, she was really accomplishing wonders.

Anne pinned her daffodils in her hair and walked to the lane gate, where she stood for a while soaking up the June sunshine before heading inside to take care of her Saturday morning chores. The world was becoming beautiful again; Mother Nature was doing her best to erase the remnants of the storm, and, although she wouldn't fully succeed for quite a while, she was genuinely achieving remarkable things.

“I wish I could just be idle all day today,” Anne told a bluebird, who was singing and swinging on a willow bough, “but a schoolma’am, who is also helping to bring up twins, can’t indulge in laziness, birdie. How sweet you are singing, little bird. You are just putting the feelings of my heart into song ever so much better than I could myself. Why, who is coming?”

“I wish I could just relax all day today,” Anne told a bluebird, who was singing and swinging on a willow branch, “but a schoolteacher, who is also helping to raise twins, can’t afford to be lazy, little bird. How sweet you are singing! You express my feelings so much better than I could. Wait, who is coming?”

An express wagon was jolting up the lane, with two people on the front seat and a big trunk behind. When it drew near Anne recognized the driver as the son of the station agent at Bright River; but his companion was a stranger . . . a scrap of a woman who sprang nimbly down at the gate almost before the horse came to a standstill. She was a very pretty little person, evidently nearer fifty than forty, but with rosy cheeks, sparkling black eyes, and shining black hair, surmounted by a wonderful beflowered and beplumed bonnet. In spite of having driven eight miles over a dusty road she was as neat as if she had just stepped out of the proverbial bandbox.

An express wagon was bumping up the lane, with two people on the front seat and a big trunk in the back. As it got closer, Anne recognized the driver as the son of the station agent at Bright River, but his passenger was a stranger... a petite woman who jumped down at the gate almost before the horse had fully stopped. She was a very pretty little thing, likely closer to fifty than forty, but with rosy cheeks, sparkling black eyes, and shiny black hair, topped with a gorgeous bonnet decorated with flowers and feathers. Despite having traveled eight miles on a dusty road, she looked as neat as if she had just stepped out of a tidy box.

“Is this where Mr. James A. Harrison lives?” she inquired briskly.

“Is this where Mr. James A. Harrison lives?” she asked quickly.

“No, Mr. Harrison lives over there,” said Anne, quite lost in astonishment.

“No, Mr. Harrison lives over there,” Anne said, completely amazed.

“Well, I did think this place seemed too tidy . . . much too tidy for James A. to be living here, unless he has greatly changed since I knew him,” chirped the little lady. “Is it true that James A. is going to be married to some woman living in this settlement?”

“Well, I did think this place looked way too neat . . . way too neat for James A. to be living here, unless he has really changed since I last saw him,” said the little lady. “Is it true that James A. is going to marry some woman from this settlement?”

“No, oh no,” cried Anne, flushing so guiltily that the stranger looked curiously at her, as if she half suspected her of matrimonial designs on Mr. Harrison.

“No, oh no,” cried Anne, blushing so guiltily that the stranger looked at her with curiosity, as if she somewhat suspected her of having romantic intentions towards Mr. Harrison.

“But I saw it in an Island paper,” persisted the Fair Unknown. “A friend sent a marked copy to me . . . friends are always so ready to do such things. James A.‘s name was written in over ‘new citizen.’”

“But I saw it in an island newspaper,” the Fair Unknown insisted. “A friend sent me a marked copy... friends are always so willing to do these things. James A.’s name was written in above ‘new citizen.’”

“Oh, that note was only meant as a joke,” gasped Anne. “Mr. Harrison has no intention of marrying anybody. I assure you he hasn’t.”

“Oh, that note was just meant as a joke,” Anne exclaimed. “Mr. Harrison doesn’t plan on marrying anyone. I promise, he really doesn’t.”

“I’m very glad to hear it,” said the rosy lady, climbing nimbly back to her seat in the wagon, “because he happens to be married already. I am his wife. Oh, you may well look surprised. I suppose he has been masquerading as a bachelor and breaking hearts right and left. Well, well, James A.,” nodding vigorously over the fields at the long white house, “your fun is over. I am here . . . though I wouldn’t have bothered coming if I hadn’t thought you were up to some mischief. I suppose,” turning to Anne, “that parrot of his is as profane as ever?”

“I’m really glad to hear that,” said the rosy lady, nimbly climbing back into her seat in the wagon, “because he happens to be married already. I am his wife. Oh, you may look surprised. I guess he has been pretending to be single and breaking hearts all over the place. Well, well, James A.,” she nodded vigorously across the fields at the long white house, “your fun is over. I’m here . . . though I wouldn’t have bothered coming if I hadn’t thought you were up to something mischievous. I suppose,” she turned to Anne, “that parrot of his is as foul-mouthed as ever?”

“His parrot . . . is dead . . . I think,” gasped poor Anne, who couldn’t have felt sure of her own name at that precise moment.

“His parrot . . . is dead . . . I think,” gasped poor Anne, who couldn’t have felt sure of her own name at that precise moment.

“Dead! Everything will be all right then,” cried the rosy lady jubilantly. “I can manage James A. if that bird is out of the way.”

“Dead! Everything will be fine then,” the cheerful lady exclaimed. “I can handle James A. if that bird is out of the way.”

With which cryptic utterance she went joyfully on her way and Anne flew to the kitchen door to meet Marilla.

With that mysterious comment, she happily continued on her way, and Anne hurried to the kitchen door to greet Marilla.

“Anne, who was that woman?”

“Anne, who is that woman?”

“Marilla,” said Anne solemnly, but with dancing eyes, “do I look as if I were crazy?”

“Marilla,” Anne said seriously, though her eyes were sparkling, “do I look like I’m crazy?”

“Not more so than usual,” said Marilla, with no thought of being sarcastic.

“Not more than usual,” said Marilla, not intending to be sarcastic.

“Well then, do you think I am awake?”

“Well, do you think I’m awake?”

“Anne, what nonsense has got into you? Who was that woman, I say?”

“Anne, what nonsense is going on with you? Who was that woman, I ask?”

“Marilla, if I’m not crazy and not asleep she can’t be such stuff as dreams are made of . . . she must be real. Anyway, I’m sure I couldn’t have imagined such a bonnet. She says she is Mr. Harrison’s wife, Marilla.”

“Marilla, if I’m not going crazy or dreaming, she can’t just be something made up . . . she has to be real. Anyway, I’m sure I couldn’t have dreamed up a bonnet like that. She says she’s Mr. Harrison’s wife, Marilla.”

Marilla stared in her turn.

Marilla stared back.

“His wife! Anne Shirley! Then what has he been passing himself off as an unmarried man for?”

“His wife! Anne Shirley! So why has he been pretending to be single?”

“I don’t suppose he did, really,” said Anne, trying to be just. “He never said he wasn’t married. People simply took it for granted. Oh Marilla, what will Mrs. Lynde say to this?”

“I don’t think he did, honestly,” said Anne, trying to be fair. “He never said he wasn’t married. People just assumed it. Oh Marilla, what will Mrs. Lynde say about this?”

They found out what Mrs. Lynde had to say when she came up that evening. Mrs. Lynde wasn’t surprised! Mrs. Lynde had always expected something of the sort! Mrs. Lynde had always known there was something about Mr. Harrison!

They discovered what Mrs. Lynde had to say when she arrived that evening. Mrs. Lynde wasn’t shocked! She had always anticipated something like this! Mrs. Lynde had always sensed there was something off about Mr. Harrison!

“To think of his deserting his wife!” she said indignantly. “It’s like something you’d read of in the States, but who would expect such a thing to happen right here in Avonlea?”

“Can you believe he left his wife?” she said, outraged. “It’s the kind of thing you’d read about in the States, but who would think that could happen right here in Avonlea?”

“But we don’t know that he deserted her,” protested Anne, determined to believe her friend innocent till he was proved guilty. “We don’t know the rights of it at all.”

“But we don’t know that he left her,” Anne protested, determined to believe her friend was innocent until proven guilty. “We don’t know the full story at all.”

“Well, we soon will. I’m going straight over there,” said Mrs. Lynde, who had never learned that there was such a word as delicacy in the dictionary. “I’m not supposed to know anything about her arrival, and Mr. Harrison was to bring some medicine for Thomas from Carmody today, so that will be a good excuse. I’ll find out the whole story and come in and tell you on the way back.”

“Well, we will soon. I’m heading right over there,” said Mrs. Lynde, who had never figured out that there was such a thing as delicacy. “I’m not supposed to know anything about her arrival, and Mr. Harrison was supposed to bring some medicine for Thomas from Carmody today, so that’ll be a good excuse. I’ll find out the whole story and fill you in on the way back.”

Mrs. Lynde rushed in where Anne had feared to tread. Nothing would have induced the latter to go over to the Harrison place; but she had her natural and proper share of curiosity and she felt secretly glad that Mrs. Lynde was going to solve the mystery. She and Marilla waited expectantly for that good lady’s return, but waited in vain. Mrs. Lynde did not revisit Green Gables that night. Davy, arriving home at nine o’clock from the Boulter place, explained why.

Mrs. Lynde rushed in where Anne had been too afraid to go. Nothing would have made Anne go over to the Harrison place, but she was naturally curious and secretly pleased that Mrs. Lynde was going to solve the mystery. She and Marilla waited hopefully for Mrs. Lynde to return, but they waited in vain. Mrs. Lynde didn’t come back to Green Gables that night. Davy, getting home at nine o’clock from the Boulter place, explained why.

“I met Mrs. Lynde and some strange woman in the Hollow,” he said, “and gracious, how they were talking both at once! Mrs. Lynde said to tell you she was sorry it was too late to call tonight. Anne, I’m awful hungry. We had tea at Milty’s at four and I think Mrs. Boulter is real mean. She didn’t give us any preserves or cake . . . and even the bread was skurce.”

“I met Mrs. Lynde and some odd woman in the Hollow,” he said, “and wow, they were both talking at the same time! Mrs. Lynde wanted me to say she’s sorry it’s too late to visit tonight. Anne, I’m really hungry. We had tea at Milty’s at four, and I think Mrs. Boulter is really mean. She didn’t give us any jam or cake... and even the bread was scarce.”

“Davy, when you go visiting you must never criticize anything you are given to eat,” said Anne solemnly. “It is very bad manners.”

“Davy, when you visit someone, you should never criticize what they serve you to eat,” Anne said seriously. “It’s really rude.”

“All right . . . I’ll only think it,” said Davy cheerfully. “Do give a fellow some supper, Anne.”

“All right . . . I’ll just think it,” Davy said cheerfully. “Come on, give me some supper, Anne.”

Anne looked at Marilla, who followed her into the pantry and shut the door cautiously.

Anne glanced at Marilla, who walked into the pantry after her and carefully shut the door.

“You can give him some jam on his bread, I know what tea at Levi Boulter’s is apt to be.”

"You can put some jam on his bread; I know how the tea at Levi Boulter’s usually is."

Davy took his slice of bread and jam with a sigh.

Davy sighed as he took his slice of bread and jam.

“It’s a kind of disappointing world after all,” he remarked. “Milty has a cat that takes fits . . . she’s took a fit regular every day for three weeks. Milty says it’s awful fun to watch her. I went down today on purpose to see her have one but the mean old thing wouldn’t take a fit and just kept healthy as healthy, though Milty and me hung round all the afternoon and waited. But never mind” . . . Davy brightened up as the insidious comfort of the plum jam stole into his soul . . . “maybe I’ll see her in one sometime yet. It doesn’t seem likely she’d stop having them all at once when she’s been so in the habit of it, does it? This jam is awful nice.”

“It’s a pretty disappointing world after all,” he said. “Milty has a cat that has fits... she’s had one every day for the last three weeks. Milty says it’s hilarious to watch her. I went down today specifically to see her have one, but the mean old thing wouldn’t have a fit and just stayed as healthy as can be, even though Milty and I hung around all afternoon waiting. But never mind...” Davy cheered up as the soothing comfort of the plum jam filled his soul... “maybe I’ll get to see her have one sometime. It doesn’t seem likely she’d stop having them all of a sudden when she’s been doing it for so long, does it? This jam is really good.”

Davy had no sorrows that plum jam could not cure.

Davy had no troubles that plum jam couldn't fix.

Sunday proved so rainy that there was no stirring abroad; but by Monday everybody had heard some version of the Harrison story. The school buzzed with it and Davy came home, full of information.

Sunday was so rainy that no one went outside; but by Monday, everyone had heard some version of the Harrison story. The school was buzzing with it, and Davy came home full of information.

“Marilla, Mr. Harrison has a new wife . . . well, not ezackly new, but they’ve stopped being married for quite a spell, Milty says. I always s’posed people had to keep on being married once they’d begun, but Milty says no, there’s ways of stopping if you can’t agree. Milty says one way is just to start off and leave your wife, and that’s what Mr. Harrison did. Milty says Mr. Harrison left his wife because she throwed things at him . . . hard things . . . and Arty Sloane says it was because she wouldn’t let him smoke, and Ned Clay says it was ’cause she never let up scolding him. I wouldn’t leave MY wife for anything like that. I’d just put my foot down and say, ‘Mrs. Davy, you’ve just got to do what’ll please me ’cause I’m a man.’ That’d settle her pretty quick I guess. But Annetta Clay says she left him because he wouldn’t scrape his boots at the door and she doesn’t blame her. I’m going right over to Mr. Harrison’s this minute to see what she’s like.”

“Marilla, Mr. Harrison has a new wife . . . well, not exactly new, but they’ve been apart for quite a while, Milty says. I always thought people had to stay married once they got married, but Milty says there are ways to end it if you can’t agree. Milty says one way is just to take off and leave your wife, and that’s what Mr. Harrison did. Milty says Mr. Harrison left his wife because she threw things at him . . . hard things . . . and Arty Sloane says it was because she wouldn’t let him smoke, and Ned Clay says it was because she couldn’t stop scolding him. I wouldn’t leave MY wife for anything like that. I’d just put my foot down and say, ‘Mrs. Davy, you’ve just got to do what’ll please me ’cause I’m a man.’ That’d get her sorted out pretty quickly, I guess. But Annetta Clay says she left him because he wouldn’t wipe his boots at the door, and she doesn’t blame her. I’m heading right over to Mr. Harrison’s this minute to see what she’s like.”

Davy soon returned, somewhat cast down.

Davy soon came back, looking a bit down.

“Mrs. Harrison was away . . . she’s gone to Carmody with Mrs. Rachel Lynde to get new paper for the parlor. And Mr. Harrison said to tell Anne to go over and see him ’cause he wants to have a talk with her. And say, the floor is scrubbed, and Mr. Harrison is shaved, though there wasn’t any preaching yesterday.”

“Mrs. Harrison was away . . . she’s gone to Carmody with Mrs. Rachel Lynde to get new wallpaper for the living room. And Mr. Harrison asked me to tell Anne to come over and see him because he wants to have a chat with her. Oh, and the floor is cleaned, and Mr. Harrison is shaved, even though there wasn’t any preaching yesterday.”

The Harrison kitchen wore a very unfamiliar look to Anne. The floor was indeed scrubbed to a wonderful pitch of purity and so was every article of furniture in the room; the stove was polished until she could see her face in it; the walls were whitewashed and the window panes sparkled in the sunlight. By the table sat Mr. Harrison in his working clothes, which on Friday had been noted for sundry rents and tatters but which were now neatly patched and brushed. He was sprucely shaved and what little hair he had was carefully trimmed.

The Harrison kitchen looked completely new to Anne. The floor was spotless and so was every piece of furniture in the room; the stove was polished until she could see her reflection in it; the walls were freshly painted and the window panes shone in the sunlight. Mr. Harrison sat by the table in his work clothes, which on Friday had been noted for various tears and rips but were now neatly patched and cleaned. He was well-shaved and the little hair he had was neatly trimmed.

“Sit down, Anne, sit down,” said Mr. Harrison in a tone but two degrees removed from that which Avonlea people used at funerals. “Emily’s gone over to Carmody with Rachel Lynde . . . she’s struck up a lifelong friendship already with Rachel Lynde. Beats all how contrary women are. Well, Anne, my easy times are over . . . all over. It’s neatness and tidiness for me for the rest of my natural life, I suppose.”

“Sit down, Anne, sit down,” Mr. Harrison said in a tone only slightly lighter than how people in Avonlea spoke at funerals. “Emily has gone over to Carmody with Rachel Lynde... she’s already formed a lifelong friendship with Rachel Lynde. It’s amazing how contrary women can be. Well, Anne, my easy times are over... all over. I guess it’s neatness and tidiness for the rest of my life now.”

Mr. Harrison did his best to speak dolefully, but an irrepressible twinkle in his eye betrayed him.

Mr. Harrison tried hard to sound gloomy, but a stubborn spark in his eye gave him away.

“Mr. Harrison, you are glad your wife is come back,” cried Anne, shaking her finger at him. “You needn’t pretend you’re not, because I can see it plainly.”

“Mr. Harrison, you’re happy your wife is back,” Anne exclaimed, shaking her finger at him. “You don’t have to pretend you’re not, because I can see it clearly.”

Mr. Harrison relaxed into a sheepish smile.

Mr. Harrison settled into a shy smile.

“Well . . . well . . . I’m getting used to it,” he conceded. “I can’t say I was sorry to see Emily. A man really needs some protection in a community like this, where he can’t play a game of checkers with a neighbor without being accused of wanting to marry that neighbor’s sister and having it put in the paper.”

“Well... well... I’m getting used to it,” he admitted. “I can't say I was upset to see Emily. A guy really needs some backup in a place like this, where you can’t even play a game of checkers with a neighbor without getting accused of wanting to marry that neighbor’s sister and having it go in the newspaper.”

“Nobody would have supposed you went to see Isabella Andrews if you hadn’t pretended to be unmarried,” said Anne severely.

“Nobody would have thought you went to see Isabella Andrews if you hadn't pretended to be single,” Anne said firmly.

“I didn’t pretend I was. If anybody’d have asked me if I was married I’d have said I was. But they just took it for granted. I wasn’t anxious to talk about the matter . . . I was feeling too sore over it. It would have been nuts for Mrs. Rachel Lynde if she had known my wife had left me, wouldn’t it now?”

“I didn’t pretend I was. If anyone had asked me if I was married, I would have said yes. But they just assumed it. I wasn’t eager to discuss it... I was feeling too hurt about it. It would have been crazy for Mrs. Rachel Lynde if she had known my wife had left me, right?”

“But some people say that you left her.”

“But some people say that you ghosted her.”

“She started it, Anne, she started it. I’m going to tell you the whole story, for I don’t want you to think worse of me than I deserve . . . nor of Emily neither. But let’s go out on the veranda. Everything is so fearful neat in here that it kind of makes me homesick. I suppose I’ll get used to it after awhile but it eases me up to look at the yard. Emily hasn’t had time to tidy it up yet.”

“She started it, Anne, she started it. I’m going to tell you the whole story because I don’t want you to think any worse of me than I deserve... or of Emily either. But let’s go out on the veranda. Everything is so painfully neat in here that it makes me a little homesick. I guess I’ll get used to it after a while, but it helps me to look at the yard. Emily hasn’t had time to clean it up yet.”

As soon as they were comfortably seated on the veranda Mr. Harrison began his tale of woe.

As soon as they were comfortably settled on the porch, Mr. Harrison started sharing his sad story.

“I lived in Scottsford, New Brunswick, before I came here, Anne. My sister kept house for me and she suited me fine; she was just reasonably tidy and she let me alone and spoiled me . . . so Emily says. But three years ago she died. Before she died she worried a lot about what was to become of me and finally she got me to promise I’d get married. She advised me to take Emily Scott because Emily had money of her own and was a pattern housekeeper. I said, says I, ‘Emily Scott wouldn’t look at me.’ ‘You ask her and see,’ says my sister; and just to ease her mind I promised her I would . . . and I did. And Emily said she’d have me. Never was so surprised in my life, Anne . . . a smart pretty little woman like her and an old fellow like me. I tell you I thought at first I was in luck. Well, we were married and took a little wedding trip to St. John for a fortnight and then we went home. We got home at ten o’clock at night, and I give you my word, Anne, that in half an hour that woman was at work housecleaning. Oh, I know you’re thinking my house needed it . . . you’ve got a very expressive face, Anne; your thoughts just come out on it like print . . . but it didn’t, not that bad. It had got pretty mixed up while I was keeping bachelor’s hall, I admit, but I’d got a woman to come in and clean it up before I was married and there’d been considerable painting and fixing done. I tell you if you took Emily into a brand new white marble palace she’d be into the scrubbing as soon as she could get an old dress on. Well, she cleaned house till one o’clock that night and at four she was up and at it again. And she kept on that way . . . far’s I could see she never stopped. It was scour and sweep and dust everlasting, except on Sundays, and then she was just longing for Monday to begin again. But it was her way of amusing herself and I could have reconciled myself to it if she’d left me alone. But that she wouldn’t do. She’d set out to make me over but she hadn’t caught me young enough. I wasn’t allowed to come into the house unless I changed my boots for slippers at the door. I darsn’t smoke a pipe for my life unless I went to the barn. And I didn’t use good enough grammar. Emily’d been a schoolteacher in her early life and she’d never got over it. Then she hated to see me eating with my knife. Well, there it was, pick and nag everlasting. But I s’pose, Anne, to be fair, I was cantankerous too. I didn’t try to improve as I might have done . . . I just got cranky and disagreeable when she found fault. I told her one day she hadn’t complained of my grammar when I proposed to her. It wasn’t an overly tactful thing to say. A woman would forgive a man for beating her sooner than for hinting she was too much pleased to get him. Well, we bickered along like that and it wasn’t exactly pleasant, but we might have got used to each other after a spell if it hadn’t been for Ginger. Ginger was the rock we split on at last. Emily didn’t like parrots and she couldn’t stand Ginger’s profane habits of speech. I was attached to the bird for my brother the sailor’s sake. My brother the sailor was a pet of mine when we were little tads and he’d sent Ginger to me when he was dying. I didn’t see any sense in getting worked up over his swearing. There’s nothing I hate worse’n profanity in a human being, but in a parrot, that’s just repeating what it’s heard with no more understanding of it than I’d have of Chinese, allowances might be made. But Emily couldn’t see it that way. Women ain’t logical. She tried to break Ginger of swearing but she hadn’t any better success than she had in trying to make me stop saying ‘I seen’ and ‘them things.’ Seemed as if the more she tried the worse Ginger got, same as me.

“I lived in Scottsford, New Brunswick, before I got here, Anne. My sister took care of the house for me, and she did just fine; she was reasonably neat, let me be, and spoiled me... or so Emily says. But three years ago, she passed away. Before she died, she worried a lot about what would happen to me and eventually got me to promise I’d get married. She suggested I marry Emily Scott because Emily had her own money and was a great housekeeper. I said, ‘Emily Scott wouldn’t look at me.’ ‘You ask her and see,’ my sister said; so, to put her mind at ease, I promised her I would... and I did. And Emily said she’d have me. I was never so surprised in my life, Anne... a smart, pretty little woman like her and an old guy like me. At first, I thought I was lucky. So we got married, took a little honeymoon trip to St. John for two weeks, and then we went home. We got back at ten o’clock at night, and I swear, Anne, within half an hour that woman was cleaning the house. Oh, I know you think my house needed it... you have a very expressive face, Anne; your thoughts show on it like print... but it didn’t really need much. It had gotten a bit messy while I was living alone, I admit, but I had someone come in to clean it up before I got married, and we’d done quite a bit of painting and fixing. I tell you, if you took Emily into a brand new white marble palace, she’d start scrubbing as soon as she could put on an old dress. Well, she cleaned the house until one o’clock that night, and at four, she was up and at it again. She kept going like that... as far as I could tell, she never stopped. It was scrubbing and sweeping and dusting endlessly, except on Sundays, when she’d be just waiting for Monday to start again. But that was how she enjoyed herself, and I could have gotten used to it if she had left me alone. But she wouldn’t do that. She set out to change me, but she hadn’t caught me young enough. I wasn’t allowed in the house unless I changed my boots for slippers at the door. I couldn’t smoke a pipe for my life unless I went to the barn. And I didn’t use proper grammar. Emily had been a schoolteacher in her early days, and she never got over it. Then she hated to see me eating with my knife. So there it was, constant nagging. But I suppose, Anne, to be fair, I was cantankerous too. I didn’t try to improve like I could have... I just got cranky and difficult when she found fault. One day I told her she hadn’t complained about my grammar when I proposed. Not the best thing to say. A woman would forgive a man for hitting her sooner than for suggesting she was too pleased to have him. So we bickered along like that, and it wasn’t exactly pleasant, but we might have gotten used to each other after a while if it hadn’t been for Ginger. Ginger was the dealbreaker. Emily didn’t like parrots and couldn’t stand Ginger’s foul language. I felt attached to the bird because of my brother the sailor. He was my favorite when we were little and had sent Ginger to me when he was dying. I didn’t see any reason to get worked up about his swearing. Nothing irritates me more than profanity in a person, but in a parrot, that’s just repeating what it’s heard with no more understanding than I’d have of Chinese; allowances have to be made. But Emily didn’t see it that way. Women aren’t logical. She tried to get Ginger to stop swearing, but she had no better luck than she did trying to make me stop saying ‘I seen’ and ‘them things.’ It seemed the more she tried, the worse Ginger got, just like me.”

“Well, things went on like this, both of us getting raspier, till the climax came. Emily invited our minister and his wife to tea, and another minister and his wife that was visiting them. I’d promised to put Ginger away in some safe place where nobody would hear him . . . Emily wouldn’t touch his cage with a ten-foot pole . . . and I meant to do it, for I didn’t want the ministers to hear anything unpleasant in my house. But it slipped my mind . . . Emily was worrying me so much about clean collars and grammar that it wasn’t any wonder . . . and I never thought of that poor parrot till we sat down to tea. Just as minister number one was in the very middle of saying grace, Ginger, who was on the veranda outside the dining room window, lifted up his voice. The gobbler had come into view in the yard and the sight of a gobbler always had an unwholesome effect on Ginger. He surpassed himself that time. You can smile, Anne, and I don’t deny I’ve chuckled some over it since myself, but at the time I felt almost as much mortified as Emily. I went out and carried Ginger to the barn. I can’t say I enjoyed the meal. I knew by the look of Emily that there was trouble brewing for Ginger and James A. When the folks went away I started for the cow pasture and on the way I did some thinking. I felt sorry for Emily and kind of fancied I hadn’t been so thoughtful of her as I might; and besides, I wondered if the ministers would think that Ginger had learned his vocabulary from me. The long and short of it was, I decided that Ginger would have to be mercifully disposed of and when I’d druv the cows home I went in to tell Emily so. But there was no Emily and there was a letter on the table . . . just according to the rule in story books. Emily writ that I’d have to choose between her and Ginger; she’d gone back to her own house and there she would stay till I went and told her I’d got rid of that parrot.

“Well, things went on like this, both of us getting more irritated, until the climax came. Emily invited our minister and his wife for tea, along with another minister and his wife who were visiting them. I had promised to put Ginger away in some safe place where nobody would hear him... Emily wouldn’t go near his cage with a ten-foot pole... and I intended to do it, because I didn’t want the ministers to hear anything unpleasant in my house. But I forgot... Emily was stressing me out so much about clean collars and grammar that it was no surprise... and I didn’t think about that poor parrot until we sat down for tea. Just as minister number one was in the middle of saying grace, Ginger, who was on the veranda outside the dining room window, raised his voice. A gobbler had come into view in the yard, and the sight of a gobbler always had a negative effect on Ginger. He outdid himself that time. You can smile, Anne, and I admit I’ve laughed about it since, but at that moment I felt almost as mortified as Emily. I went out and took Ginger to the barn. I can’t say I enjoyed the meal. I could tell by the look on Emily’s face that trouble was brewing for Ginger and me. When the guests left, I headed toward the cow pasture, and along the way, I did some thinking. I felt sorry for Emily and realized I hadn’t been as considerate of her as I could have been; and besides, I wondered if the ministers would think Ginger had learned his vocabulary from me. The long and short of it was, I decided that Ginger had to be mercifully gotten rid of, and when I had driven the cows home, I went in to tell Emily. But there was no Emily, and there was a letter on the table... just like in the storybooks. Emily wrote that I’d have to choose between her and Ginger; she had gone back to her own house, and she would stay there until I came and told her I’d gotten rid of that parrot.

“I was all riled up, Anne, and I said she might stay till doomsday if she waited for that; and I stuck to it. I packed up her belongings and sent them after her. It made an awful lot of talk . . . Scottsford was pretty near as bad as Avonlea for gossip . . . and everybody sympathized with Emily. It kept me all cross and cantankerous and I saw I’d have to get out or I’d never have any peace. I concluded I’d come to the Island. I’d been here when I was a boy and I liked it; but Emily had always said she wouldn’t live in a place where folks were scared to walk out after dark for fear they’d fall off the edge. So, just to be contrary, I moved over here. And that’s all there is to it. I hadn’t ever heard a word from or about Emily till I come home from the back field Saturday and found her scrubbing the floor but with the first decent dinner I’d had since she left me all ready on the table. She told me to eat it first and then we’d talk . . . by which I concluded that Emily had learned some lessons about getting along with a man. So she’s here and she’s going to stay . . . seeing that Ginger’s dead and the Island’s some bigger than she thought. There’s Mrs. Lynde and her now. No, don’t go, Anne. Stay and get acquainted with Emily. She took quite a notion to you Saturday . . . wanted to know who that handsome redhaired girl was at the next house.”

“I was really worked up, Anne, and I told her she could wait forever if she thought that would change anything; and I stuck to my guns. I packed up her things and sent them after her. It caused quite a stir... Scottsford was almost as bad as Avonlea for gossip... and everyone felt sorry for Emily. It put me in a bad mood, and I realized I had to leave or I’d never have any peace. I decided to come to the Island. I had been here as a kid and liked it; but Emily always said she wouldn’t live in a place where people were afraid to go out after dark for fear they’d fall off the edge. So, just to prove a point, I moved here. That’s all there is to it. I hadn't heard anything from or about Emily until I came home from the back field on Saturday and found her scrubbing the floor with the first decent dinner I’d had since she left, all ready on the table. She told me to eat first and then we’d talk... which made me think Emily had learned a thing or two about getting along with a man. So she’s here and she’s going to stay... seeing as Ginger’s dead and the Island’s a lot bigger than she realized. There’s Mrs. Lynde and her now. No, don’t go, Anne. Stay and get to know Emily. She took quite a liking to you on Saturday... wanted to know who that pretty red-haired girl was at the next house.”

Mrs. Harrison welcomed Anne radiantly and insisted on her staying to tea.

Mrs. Harrison greeted Anne warmly and insisted that she stay for tea.

“James A. has been telling me all about you and how kind you’ve been, making cakes and things for him,” she said. “I want to get acquainted with all my new neighbors just as soon as possible. Mrs. Lynde is a lovely woman, isn’t she? So friendly.”

“James A. has been telling me all about you and how nice you've been, making cakes and things for him,” she said. “I want to get to know all my new neighbors as soon as I can. Mrs. Lynde is a great woman, isn’t she? So friendly.”

When Anne went home in the sweet June dusk, Mrs. Harrison went with her across the fields where the fireflies were lighting their starry lamps.

When Anne headed home in the lovely June evening, Mrs. Harrison walked with her across the fields where the fireflies were shining their twinkling lights.

“I suppose,” said Mrs. Harrison confidentially, “that James A. has told you our story?”

"I guess," Mrs. Harrison said quietly, "that James A. has shared our story with you?"

“Yes.”

“Yep.”

“Then I needn’t tell it, for James A. is a just man and he would tell the truth. The blame was far from being all on his side. I can see that now. I wasn’t back in my own house an hour before I wished I hadn’t been so hasty but I wouldn’t give in. I see now that I expected too much of a man. And I was real foolish to mind his bad grammar. It doesn’t matter if a man does use bad grammar so long as he is a good provider and doesn’t go poking round the pantry to see how much sugar you’ve used in a week. I feel that James A. and I are going to be real happy now. I wish I knew who ‘Observer’ is, so that I could thank him. I owe him a real debt of gratitude.”

“Then I don’t need to say anything, because James A. is a fair man and he would tell the truth. The blame wasn’t all on him. I can see that now. I wasn’t back at my own house for an hour before I regretted being so quick to judge, but I wouldn’t back down. I realize now that I expected too much from a man. And it was really foolish of me to be bothered by his bad grammar. It doesn’t matter if a man speaks poorly as long as he is a good provider and doesn’t go snooping around the pantry to check how much sugar you’ve used in a week. I feel that James A. and I are going to be really happy now. I wish I knew who ‘Observer’ is, so I could thank him. I owe him a big debt of gratitude.”

Anne kept her own counsel and Mrs. Harrison never knew that her gratitude found its way to its object. Anne felt rather bewildered over the far-reaching consequences of those foolish “notes.” They had reconciled a man to his wife and made the reputation of a prophet.

Anne kept her own thoughts to herself, and Mrs. Harrison never realized that her gratitude reached its intended recipient. Anne felt a bit confused about the significant impact of those silly "notes." They had brought a man back to his wife and established someone’s reputation as a prophet.

Mrs. Lynde was in the Green Gables kitchen. She had been telling the whole story to Marilla.

Mrs. Lynde was in the Green Gables kitchen. She had been sharing the whole story with Marilla.

“Well, and how do you like Mrs. Harrison?” she asked Anne.

"Well, what do you think of Mrs. Harrison?" she asked Anne.

“Very much. I think she’s a real nice little woman.”

“Absolutely. I think she’s a really nice woman.”

“That’s exactly what she is,” said Mrs. Rachel with emphasis, “and as I’ve just been sayin’ to Marilla, I think we ought all to overlook Mr. Harrison’s peculiarities for her sake and try to make her feel at home here, that’s what. Well, I must get back. Thomas’ll be wearying for me. I get out a little since Eliza came and he’s seemed a lot better these past few days, but I never like to be long away from him. I hear Gilbert Blythe has resigned from White Sands. He’ll be off to college in the fall, I suppose.”

"That's exactly what she is," Mrs. Rachel said emphatically, "and as I've just been telling Marilla, I think we should all overlook Mr. Harrison's quirks for her sake and try to make her feel at home here, that's what. Well, I need to get back. Thomas will be missing me. I've been going out a bit since Eliza arrived, and he's been a lot better these past few days, but I never like to be away from him for too long. I hear Gilbert Blythe has resigned from White Sands. He'll be heading off to college in the fall, I guess."

Mrs. Rachel looked sharply at Anne, but Anne was bending over a sleepy Davy nodding on the sofa and nothing was to be read in her face. She carried Davy away, her oval girlish cheek pressed against his curly yellow head. As they went up the stairs Davy flung a tired arm about Anne’s neck and gave her a warm hug and a sticky kiss.

Mrs. Rachel shot a sharp look at Anne, but Anne was leaning over a sleepy Davy dozing on the sofa, and there was nothing to read on her face. She picked up Davy, her oval girlish cheek pressed against his curly yellow head. As they climbed the stairs, Davy lazily wrapped an arm around Anne’s neck and gave her a warm hug and a sticky kiss.

“You’re awful nice, Anne. Milty Boulter wrote on his slate today and showed it to Jennie Sloane,

“You're really nice, Anne. Milty Boulter wrote on his slate today and showed it to Jennie Sloane,

“‘Roses red and vi’lets blue,
Sugar’s sweet, and so are you”

“‘Roses are red and violets are blue,
Sugar is sweet, and so are you”

and that ’spresses my feelings for you ezackly, Anne.”

and that expresses my feelings for you exactly, Anne.”

XXVI
Around the Bend

Thomas Lynde faded out of life as quietly and unobtrusively as he had lived it. His wife was a tender, patient, unwearied nurse. Sometimes Rachel had been a little hard on her Thomas in health, when his slowness or meekness had provoked her; but when he became ill no voice could be lower, no hand more gently skillful, no vigil more uncomplaining.

Thomas Lynde slipped away from life as quietly and unobtrusively as he had lived. His wife was a caring, patient, tireless nurse. Sometimes Rachel had been a bit tough on Thomas when he was healthy, especially when his slowness or meekness frustrated her; but when he fell ill, no voice was softer, no hand more gently skilled, and no watch more patient.

“You’ve been a good wife to me, Rachel,” he once said simply, when she was sitting by him in the dusk, holding his thin, blanched old hand in her work-hardened one. “A good wife. I’m sorry I ain’t leaving you better off; but the children will look after you. They’re all smart, capable children, just like their mother. A good mother . . . a good woman . . . .”

“You’ve been a good wife to me, Rachel,” he once said simply, when she was sitting next to him in the evening, holding his thin, pale old hand in her work-worn one. “A good wife. I’m sorry I’m not leaving you in a better situation; but the kids will take care of you. They’re all smart, capable kids, just like their mother. A good mother . . . a good woman . . . .”

He had fallen asleep then, and the next morning, just as the white dawn was creeping up over the pointed firs in the hollow, Marilla went softly into the east gable and wakened Anne.

He had fallen asleep then, and the next morning, just as the white dawn was creeping up over the pointed firs in the hollow, Marilla quietly went into the east gable and woke up Anne.

“Anne, Thomas Lynde is gone . . . their hired boy just brought the word. I’m going right down to Rachel.”

“Anne, Thomas Lynde is gone... their hired boy just delivered the news. I'm heading straight down to Rachel.”

On the day after Thomas Lynde’s funeral Marilla went about Green Gables with a strangely preoccupied air. Occasionally she looked at Anne, seemed on the point of saying something, then shook her head and buttoned up her mouth. After tea she went down to see Mrs. Rachel; and when she returned she went to the east gable, where Anne was correcting school exercises.

On the day after Thomas Lynde’s funeral, Marilla walked around Green Gables with a strangely distracted expression. Sometimes she glanced at Anne, seemed ready to say something, then shook her head and kept quiet. After tea, she went to visit Mrs. Rachel; and when she came back, she went to the east gable, where Anne was grading school assignments.

“How is Mrs. Lynde tonight?” asked the latter.

“How is Mrs. Lynde doing tonight?” asked the latter.

“She’s feeling calmer and more composed,” answered Marilla, sitting down on Anne’s bed . . . a proceeding which betokened some unusual mental excitement, for in Marilla’s code of household ethics to sit on a bed after it was made up was an unpardonable offense. “But she’s very lonely. Eliza had to go home today . . . her son isn’t well and she felt she couldn’t stay any longer.”

“She’s feeling calmer and more composed,” replied Marilla, sitting down on Anne’s bed... which showed some unusual excitement, since in Marilla’s household rules, sitting on a made bed was a big no-no. “But she’s very lonely. Eliza had to go home today... her son isn’t feeling well, and she felt she couldn’t stay any longer.”

“When I’ve finished these exercises I’ll run down and chat awhile with Mrs. Lynde,” said Anne. “I had intended to study some Latin composition tonight but it can wait.”

“When I finish these exercises, I’ll run down and chat for a bit with Mrs. Lynde,” said Anne. “I was planning to study some Latin composition tonight, but that can wait.”

“I suppose Gilbert Blythe is going to college in the fall,” said Marilla jerkily. “How would you like to go too, Anne?”

“I guess Gilbert Blythe is heading to college this fall,” Marilla said abruptly. “How would you feel about going too, Anne?”

Anne looked up in astonishment.

Anne looked up in shock.

“I would like it, of course, Marilla. But it isn’t possible.”

“I would love that, of course, Marilla. But it's not possible.”

“I guess it can be made possible. I’ve always felt that you should go. I’ve never felt easy to think you were giving it all up on my account.”

“I guess it can be done. I’ve always believed that you should go. I’ve never felt good about the idea of you giving it all up for me.”

“But Marilla, I’ve never been sorry for a moment that I stayed home. I’ve been so happy . . . Oh, these past two years have just been delightful.”

“But Marilla, I’ve never regretted for a second that I stayed home. I’ve been so happy . . . Oh, these last two years have been just wonderful.”

“Oh, yes, I know you’ve been contented enough. But that isn’t the question exactly. You ought to go on with your education. You’ve saved enough to put you through one year at Redmond and the money the stock brought in will do for another year . . . and there’s scholarships and things you might win.”

“Oh, yes, I know you've been pretty happy. But that's not really the issue. You should continue your education. You've saved enough to pay for a year at Redmond, and the money from the stock will cover another year... and there are scholarships and stuff you might be able to get.”

“Yes, but I can’t go, Marilla. Your eyes are better, of course; but I can’t leave you alone with the twins. They need so much looking after.”

“Yes, but I can’t go, Marilla. Your eyes are better, of course; but I can't leave you alone with the twins. They need so much attention.”

“I won’t be alone with them. That’s what I meant to discuss with you. I had a long talk with Rachel tonight. Anne, she’s feeling dreadful bad over a good many things. She’s not left very well off. It seems they mortgaged the farm eight years ago to give the youngest boy a start when he went west; and they’ve never been able to pay much more than the interest since. And then of course Thomas’ illness has cost a good deal, one way or another. The farm will have to be sold and Rachel thinks there’ll be hardly anything left after the bills are settled. She says she’ll have to go and live with Eliza and it’s breaking her heart to think of leaving Avonlea. A woman of her age doesn’t make new friends and interests easy. And, Anne, as she talked about it the thought came to me that I would ask her to come and live with me, but I thought I ought to talk it over with you first before I said anything to her. If I had Rachel living with me you could go to college. How do you feel about it?”

"I won't be alone with them. That's what I wanted to talk to you about. I had a long conversation with Rachel tonight. Anne, she's feeling really terrible about a lot of things. She's not in a good place financially. It turns out they mortgaged the farm eight years ago to help their youngest son when he moved west, and they’ve only managed to pay the interest since then. Plus, Thomas' illness has cost a lot as well, in various ways. The farm will have to be sold, and Rachel thinks there will hardly be anything left after paying the bills. She says she’ll have to go live with Eliza, and the thought of leaving Avonlea is breaking her heart. It's not easy for a woman her age to make new friends and find new interests. And, Anne, as she talked about it, I got the idea to ask her to come live with me, but I thought I should discuss it with you first before bringing it up to her. If I had Rachel living with me, you could go to college. How do you feel about that?"

“I feel . . . as if . . . somebody . . . had handed me . . . the moon . . . and I didn’t know . . . exactly . . . what to do . . . with it,” said Anne dazedly. “But as for asking Mrs. Lynde to come here, that is for you to decide, Marilla. Do you think . . . are you sure . . . you would like it? Mrs. Lynde is a good woman and a kind neighbor, but . . . but . . .”

“I feel like someone handed me the moon, and I’m not sure what to do with it,” said Anne, dazed. “But whether or not to invite Mrs. Lynde over is up to you, Marilla. Do you think—are you sure—you’d want that? Mrs. Lynde is a good person and a friendly neighbor, but…”

“But she’s got her faults, you mean to say? Well, she has, of course; but I think I’d rather put up with far worse faults than see Rachel go away from Avonlea. I’d miss her terrible. She’s the only close friend I’ve got here and I’d be lost without her. We’ve been neighbors for forty-five years and we’ve never had a quarrel . . . though we came rather near it that time you flew at Mrs. Rachel for calling you homely and redhaired. Do you remember, Anne?”

“But she has her flaws, you’re saying? Sure, she does; but honestly, I’d deal with way worse flaws than see Rachel leave Avonlea. I’d miss her a lot. She’s my only close friend here, and I’d be totally lost without her. We’ve been neighbors for forty-five years and have never had a fight… although we got pretty close that time you snapped at Mrs. Rachel for calling you homely and redhaired. Do you remember, Anne?”

“I should think I do,” said Anne ruefully. “People don’t forget things like that. How I hated poor Mrs. Rachel at that moment!”

“I think I do,” said Anne with regret. “People don’t forget things like that. I really hated poor Mrs. Rachel at that moment!”

“And then that ‘apology’ you made her. Well, you were a handful, in all conscience, Anne. I did feel so puzzled and bewildered how to manage you. Matthew understood you better.”

“And that ‘apology’ you gave her. Honestly, you were quite a challenge, Anne. I was so confused and unsure about how to handle you. Matthew understood you better.”

“Matthew understood everything,” said Anne softly, as she always spoke of him.

“Matthew understood everything,” Anne said quietly, as she always talked about him.

“Well, I think it could be managed so that Rachel and I wouldn’t clash at all. It always seemed to me that the reason two women can’t get along in one house is that they try to share the same kitchen and get in each other’s way. Now, if Rachel came here, she could have the north gable for her bedroom and the spare room for a kitchen as well as not, for we don’t really need a spare room at all. She could put her stove there and what furniture she wanted to keep, and be real comfortable and independent. She’ll have enough to live on of course...her children’ll see to that...so all I’d be giving her would be house room. Yes, Anne, far as I’m concerned I’d like it.”

"Well, I think we could make it work so that Rachel and I wouldn’t clash at all. It’s always seemed to me that the reason two women can’t get along in one house is that they try to share the same kitchen and end up getting in each other’s way. So, if Rachel moved in here, she could have the north gable for her bedroom and the spare room for a kitchen, since we don’t really need a spare room anyway. She could put her stove there and any furniture she wanted to keep, and be really comfortable and independent. She’ll have enough to live on, of course... her kids will make sure of that... so all I’d be offering her would be a place to stay. Yes, Anne, as far as I’m concerned, I’d like it."

“Then ask her,” said Anne promptly. “I’d be very sorry myself to see Mrs. Rachel go away.”

“Then just ask her,” Anne replied quickly. “I’d be really sad to see Mrs. Rachel leave.”

“And if she comes,” continued Marilla, “You can go to college as well as not. She’ll be company for me and she’ll do for the twins what I can’t do, so there’s no reason in the world why you shouldn’t go.”

“And if she comes,” Marilla continued, “You can go to college if you want to. She’ll keep me company and she’ll help with the twins in ways I can’t, so there’s really no reason you shouldn’t go.”

Anne had a long meditation at her window that night. Joy and regret struggled together in her heart. She had come at last . . . suddenly and unexpectedly . . . to the bend in the road; and college was around it, with a hundred rainbow hopes and visions; but Anne realized as well that when she rounded that curve she must leave many sweet things behind. . . all the little simple duties and interests which had grown so dear to her in the last two years and which she had glorified into beauty and delight by the enthusiasm she had put into them. She must give up her school . . . and she loved every one of her pupils, even the stupid and naughty ones. The mere thought of Paul Irving made her wonder if Redmond were such a name to conjure with after all.

Anne spent a long time reflecting at her window that night. Joy and regret battled in her heart. She had finally arrived, suddenly and unexpectedly, at the bend in the road; and college was just around the corner, bringing with it a hundred colorful hopes and dreams; but Anne also realized that when she turned that corner, she would have to leave behind many cherished things . . . all the little simple duties and interests that had become so important to her over the past two years and which she had elevated to beauty and joy through the passion she had invested in them. She had to let go of her school . . . and she loved every one of her students, even the slow and troublesome ones. The mere thought of Paul Irving made her question if Redmond was really such a magical name after all.

“I’ve put out a lot of little roots these two years,” Anne told the moon, “and when I’m pulled up they’re going to hurt a great deal. But it’s best to go, I think, and, as Marilla says, there’s no good reason why I shouldn’t. I must get out all my ambitions and dust them.”

“I’ve put down a lot of little roots these two years,” Anne told the moon, “and when I’m pulled up they’re going to hurt a lot. But I think it’s best to go, and, as Marilla says, there’s no good reason why I shouldn’t. I need to take out all my ambitions and dust them off.”

Anne sent in her resignation the next day; and Mrs. Rachel, after a heart to heart talk with Marilla, gratefully accepted the offer of a home at Green Gables. She elected to remain in her own house for the summer, however; the farm was not to be sold until the fall and there were many arrangements to be made.

Anne sent in her resignation the next day, and Mrs. Rachel, after a heartfelt conversation with Marilla, gratefully accepted the offer of a home at Green Gables. She decided to stay in her own house for the summer, though; the farm wasn’t going to be sold until the fall and there were a lot of arrangements to make.

“I certainly never thought of living as far off the road as Green Gables,” sighed Mrs. Rachel to herself. “But really, Green Gables doesn’t seem as out of the world as it used to do . . . Anne has lots of company and the twins make it real lively. And anyhow, I’d rather live at the bottom of a well than leave Avonlea.”

“I never imagined living this far off the road as Green Gables,” Mrs. Rachel sighed to herself. “But honestly, Green Gables doesn’t seem as remote as it used to . . . Anne has plenty of company, and the twins really make it lively. Besides, I’d prefer to live at the bottom of a well than leave Avonlea.”

These two decisions being noised abroad speedily ousted the arrival of Mrs. Harrison in popular gossip. Sage heads were shaken over Marilla Cuthbert’s rash step in asking Mrs. Rachel to live with her. People opined that they wouldn’t get on together. They were both “too fond of their own way,” and many doleful predictions were made, none of which disturbed the parties in question at all. They had come to a clear and distinct understanding of the respective duties and rights of their new arrangements and meant to abide by them.

These two decisions quickly overshadowed the arrival of Mrs. Harrison in the town's gossip. Wise heads shook over Marilla Cuthbert’s impulsive choice to invite Mrs. Rachel to live with her. People thought they wouldn’t get along. They were both “too set in their ways,” and many gloomy predictions were made, none of which bothered the two women at all. They had reached a clear understanding of their new arrangement's duties and rights and intended to stick to them.

“I won’t meddle with you nor you with me,” Mrs. Rachel had said decidedly, “and as for the twins, I’ll be glad to do all I can for them; but I won’t undertake to answer Davy’s questions, that’s what. I’m not an encyclopedia, neither am I a Philadelphia lawyer. You’ll miss Anne for that.”

“I won’t interfere with you, and you won’t interfere with me,” Mrs. Rachel said firmly, “and as for the twins, I’m happy to do whatever I can for them; but I won’t take on Davy’s questions, that’s for sure. I’m not an encyclopedia, and I’m not a Philadelphia lawyer. You’ll miss Anne for that.”

“Sometimes Anne’s answers were about as queer as Davy’s questions,” said Marilla drily. “The twins will miss her and no mistake; but her future can’t be sacrificed to Davy’s thirst for information. When he asks questions I can’t answer I’ll just tell him children should be seen and not heard. That was how I was brought up, and I don’t know but what it was just as good a way as all these new-fangled notions for training children.”

“Sometimes Anne's answers were as strange as Davy's questions,” Marilla said dryly. “The twins will definitely miss her; but we can’t sacrifice her future for Davy’s curiosity. When he asks questions I can’t answer, I’ll just tell him kids should be seen and not heard. That’s how I was raised, and I can’t say it wasn’t just as good a way as all these new ideas for raising children.”

“Well, Anne’s methods seem to have worked fairly well with Davy,” said Mrs. Lynde smilingly. “He is a reformed character, that’s what.”

“Well, Anne’s methods seem to have worked pretty well with Davy,” Mrs. Lynde said with a smile. “He’s turned over a new leaf, that’s for sure.”

“He isn’t a bad little soul,” conceded Marilla. “I never expected to get as fond of those children as I have. Davy gets round you somehow . . . and Dora is a lovely child, although she is . . . kind of . . . well, kind of . . .”

“He isn't a bad kid,” Marilla admitted. “I never thought I’d become so attached to those children. Davy has a way of getting to you . . . and Dora is a sweet child, even though she is . . . sort of . . . well, sort of . . .”

“Monotonous? Exactly,” supplied Mrs. Rachel. “Like a book where every page is the same, that’s what. Dora will make a good, reliable woman but she’ll never set the pond on fire. Well, that sort of folks are comfortable to have round, even if they’re not as interesting as the other kind.”

“Monotonous? Exactly,” said Mrs. Rachel. “Like a book where every page is the same, that’s what. Dora will be a good, dependable woman, but she’ll never excite anyone. Well, that kind of person is nice to have around, even if they’re not as interesting as the other type.”

Gilbert Blythe was probably the only person to whom the news of Anne’s resignation brought unmixed pleasure. Her pupils looked upon it as a sheer catastrophe. Annetta Bell had hysterics when she went home. Anthony Pye fought two pitched and unprovoked battles with other boys by way of relieving his feelings. Barbara Shaw cried all night. Paul Irving defiantly told his grandmother that she needn’t expect him to eat any porridge for a week.

Gilbert Blythe was probably the only person who felt completely happy about Anne’s resignation. Her students saw it as a total disaster. Annetta Bell had a meltdown when she got home. Anthony Pye got into two full-on fights with other boys to vent his frustration. Barbara Shaw cried all night long. Paul Irving boldly told his grandmother that she shouldn’t expect him to eat any porridge for a week.

“I can’t do it, Grandma,” he said. “I don’t really know if I can eat anything. I feel as if there was a dreadful lump in my throat. I’d have cried coming home from school if Jake Donnell hadn’t been watching me. I believe I will cry after I go to bed. It wouldn’t show on my eyes tomorrow, would it? And it would be such a relief. But anyway, I can’t eat porridge. I’m going to need all my strength of mind to bear up against this, Grandma, and I won’t have any left to grapple with porridge. Oh Grandma, I don’t know what I’ll do when my beautiful teacher goes away. Milty Boulter says he bets Jane Andrews will get the school. I suppose Miss Andrews is very nice. But I know she won’t understand things like Miss Shirley.”

“I can’t do it, Grandma,” he said. “I don’t really know if I can eat anything. It feels like there’s a terrible lump in my throat. I would have cried on the way home from school if Jake Donnell hadn’t been watching me. I think I’ll cry after I go to bed. It wouldn’t show in my eyes tomorrow, would it? And it would be such a relief. But anyway, I can’t eat porridge. I’m going to need all my strength to deal with this, Grandma, and I won’t have any left to handle porridge. Oh Grandma, I don’t know what I’ll do when my wonderful teacher leaves. Milty Boulter says he bets Jane Andrews will take over the school. I guess Miss Andrews is really nice. But I know she won’t understand things like Miss Shirley.”

Diana also took a very pessimistic view of affairs.

Diana also had a very negative outlook on things.

“It will be horribly lonesome here next winter,” she mourned, one twilight when the moonlight was raining “airy silver” through the cherry boughs and filling the east gable with a soft, dream-like radiance in which the two girls sat and talked, Anne on her low rocker by the window, Diana sitting Turkfashion on the bed. “You and Gilbert will be gone . . . and the Allans too. They are going to call Mr. Allan to Charlottetown and of course he’ll accept. It’s too mean. We’ll be vacant all winter, I suppose, and have to listen to a long string of candidates . . . and half of them won’t be any good.”

“It’s going to be so lonely here next winter,” she lamented one evening when the moonlight was pouring “airy silver” through the cherry branches, casting a soft, dream-like glow in the east gable where the two girls were sitting and talking. Anne was in her low rocker by the window, and Diana was sitting cross-legged on the bed. “You and Gilbert will be gone... and the Allans too. They’re planning to call Mr. Allan to Charlottetown, and of course, he’ll go. It’s just so unfair. I guess we’ll be empty all winter and have to listen to a long list of candidates... and half of them won’t be any good.”

“I hope they won’t call Mr. Baxter from East Grafton here, anyhow,” said Anne decidedly. “He wants the call but he does preach such gloomy sermons. Mr. Bell says he’s a minister of the old school, but Mrs. Lynde says there’s nothing whatever the matter with him but indigestion. His wife isn’t a very good cook, it seems, and Mrs. Lynde says that when a man has to eat sour bread two weeks out of three his theology is bound to get a kink in it somewhere. Mrs. Allan feels very badly about going away. She says everybody has been so kind to her since she came here as a bride that she feels as if she were leaving lifelong friends. And then, there’s the baby’s grave, you know. She says she doesn’t see how she can go away and leave that . . . it was such a little mite of a thing and only three months old, and she says she is afraid it will miss its mother, although she knows better and wouldn’t say so to Mr. Allan for anything. She says she has slipped through the birch grove back of the manse nearly every night to the graveyard and sung a little lullaby to it. She told me all about it last evening when I was up putting some of those early wild roses on Matthew’s grave. I promised her that as long as I was in Avonlea I would put flowers on the baby’s grave and when I was away I felt sure that . . .”

“I hope they won't call Mr. Baxter from East Grafton here, anyway,” Anne said firmly. “He wants the call, but he preaches such gloomy sermons. Mr. Bell says he’s a minister from the old school, but Mrs. Lynde says there’s really nothing wrong with him except indigestion. His wife isn’t a very good cook, it seems, and Mrs. Lynde says that when a man has to eat sour bread two weeks out of three, his theology is bound to get messed up somehow. Mrs. Allan feels really bad about leaving. She says everyone has been so nice to her since she came here as a bride that it feels like she’s leaving lifelong friends. And then there’s the baby’s grave, you know. She says she can’t imagine going away and leaving that... it was such a little thing and only three months old, and she’s worried it will miss its mother, even though she knows that’s silly and wouldn’t say it to Mr. Allan for anything. She told me she’s gone through the birch grove behind the manse almost every night to the graveyard and sung a little lullaby to it. She told me all about it last night when I was up putting some of those early wild roses on Matthew’s grave. I promised her that as long as I was in Avonlea, I would put flowers on the baby’s grave, and when I was away, I felt sure that...”

“That I would do it,” supplied Diana heartily. “Of course I will. And I’ll put them on Matthew’s grave too, for your sake, Anne.”

“Of course I would,” Diana said enthusiastically. “Absolutely. And I’ll put them on Matthew’s grave too, for you, Anne.”

“Oh, thank you. I meant to ask you to if you would. And on little Hester Gray’s too? Please don’t forget hers. Do you know, I’ve thought and dreamed so much about little Hester Gray that she has become strangely real to me. I think of her, back there in her little garden in that cool, still, green corner; and I have a fancy that if I could steal back there some spring evening, just at the magic time ’twixt light and dark, and tiptoe so softly up the beech hill that my footsteps could not frighten her, I would find the garden just as it used to be, all sweet with June lilies and early roses, with the tiny house beyond it all hung with vines; and little Hester Gray would be there, with her soft eyes, and the wind ruffling her dark hair, wandering about, putting her fingertips under the chins of the lilies and whispering secrets with the roses; and I would go forward, oh, so softly, and hold out my hands and say to her, ‘Little Hester Gray, won’t you let me be your playmate, for I love the roses too?’ And we would sit down on the old bench and talk a little and dream a little, or just be beautifully silent together. And then the moon would rise and I would look around me . . . and there would be no Hester Gray and no little vine-hung house, and no roses . . . only an old waste garden starred with June lilies amid the grasses, and the wind sighing, oh, so sorrowfully in the cherry trees. And I would not know whether it had been real or if I had just imagined it all.” Diana crawled up and got her back against the headboard of the bed. When your companion of twilight hour said such spooky things it was just as well not to be able to fancy there was anything behind you.

“Oh, thank you. I meant to ask if you would. And what about little Hester Gray’s too? Please don’t forget hers. You know, I’ve thought and dreamed so much about little Hester Gray that she feels strangely real to me. I picture her back there in her tiny garden in that cool, quiet, green corner; and I have this idea that if I could sneak back there one spring evening, right at that magical time between light and dark, and tiptoe so gently up the beech hill that my footsteps wouldn’t scare her, I would find the garden just as it used to be, all fragrant with June lilies and early roses, with the little house beyond draped in vines; and little Hester Gray would be there, with her soft eyes and the wind tousling her dark hair, wandering around, putting her fingertips under the chins of the lilies and sharing secrets with the roses; and I would move forward, oh, so quietly, and stretch out my hands and say to her, ‘Little Hester Gray, won’t you let me be your playmate, because I love the roses too?’ And we would sit on the old bench and chat a little and dream a little, or just enjoy a beautiful silence together. And then the moon would rise and I would look around me… and there would be no Hester Gray and no little vine-covered house, and no roses… only an old abandoned garden dotted with June lilies among the grasses, and the wind sighing, oh, so sadly in the cherry trees. And I wouldn’t know if it had been real or if I had just imagined it all.” Diana crawled up and leaned against the headboard of the bed. When your companion of the twilight hour said such eerie things, it was just as well not to think there was anything behind you.

“I’m afraid the Improvement Society will go down when you and Gilbert are both gone,” she remarked dolefully.

“I’m worried that the Improvement Society will fall apart when you and Gilbert are both gone,” she said sadly.

“Not a bit of fear of it,” said Anne briskly, coming back from dreamland to the affairs of practical life. “It is too firmly established for that, especially since the older people are becoming so enthusiastic about it. Look what they are doing this summer for their lawns and lanes. Besides, I’ll be watching for hints at Redmond and I’ll write a paper for it next winter and send it over. Don’t take such a gloomy view of things, Diana. And don’t grudge me my little hour of gladness and jubilation now. Later on, when I have to go away, I’ll feel anything but glad.”

“Not at all,” Anne replied cheerfully, coming back from her daydream to the realities of life. “It’s too well established for that, especially since the older folks are getting so excited about it. Just look at what they’re doing this summer for their lawns and roads. Besides, I’ll be on the lookout for ideas at Redmond, and I’ll write a paper for it next winter and send it over. Don’t be so negative, Diana. And don’t begrudge me this little moment of happiness and joy now. Later, when I have to leave, I won't feel happy at all.”

“It’s all right for you to be glad . . . you’re going to college and you’ll have a jolly time and make heaps of lovely new friends.”

“It’s totally fine for you to be happy . . . you’re going to college and you’ll have a great time and make tons of awesome new friends.”

“I hope I shall make new friends,” said Anne thoughtfully. “The possibilities of making new friends help to make life very fascinating. But no matter how many friends I make they’ll never be as dear to me as the old ones . . . especially a certain girl with black eyes and dimples. Can you guess who she is, Diana?”

“I hope I make new friends,” Anne said thoughtfully. “The chance to make new friends really makes life exciting. But no matter how many friends I have, they’ll never be as special to me as the old ones... especially a certain girl with black eyes and dimples. Can you guess who she is, Diana?”

“But there’ll be so many clever girls at Redmond,” sighed Diana, “and I’m only a stupid little country girl who says ‘I seen’ sometimes. . . though I really know better when I stop to think. Well, of course these past two years have really been too pleasant to last. I know somebody who is glad you are going to Redmond anyhow. Anne, I’m going to ask you a question . . . a serious question. Don’t be vexed and do answer seriously. Do you care anything for Gilbert?”

“But there are going to be so many smart girls at Redmond,” Diana sighed, “and I’m just a dumb little country girl who sometimes says ‘I seen’... even though I really know better when I think about it. Well, of course, these last two years have been way too nice to last. I know someone who is happy you're going to Redmond anyway. Anne, I have to ask you something... a serious question. Please don’t get upset and answer honestly. Do you have any feelings for Gilbert?”

“Ever so much as a friend and not a bit in the way you mean,” said Anne calmly and decidedly; she also thought she was speaking sincerely.

“Definitely a friend but not at all in the way you're thinking,” Anne said calmly and firmly; she also believed she was being sincere.

Diana sighed. She wished, somehow, that Anne had answered differently.

Diana sighed. She wished, somehow, that Anne had responded differently.

“Don’t you mean ever to be married, Anne?”

“Don’t you mean ever to get married, Anne?”

“Perhaps . . . some day . . . when I meet the right one,” said Anne, smiling dreamily up at the moonlight.

“Maybe... one day... when I meet the right person,” said Anne, smiling dreamily up at the moonlight.

“But how can you be sure when you do meet the right one?” persisted Diana.

“But how can you be sure when you meet the right person?” Diana continued.

“Oh, I should know him . . . something would tell me. You know what my ideal is, Diana.”

“Oh, I should know him . . . something tells me. You know what my ideal is, Diana.”

“But people’s ideals change sometimes.”

“But people's values change sometimes.”

“Mine won’t. And I couldn’t care for any man who didn’t fulfill it.”

“Mine won’t. And I couldn’t care for any man who didn’t meet that standard.”

“What if you never meet him?”

“What if you never meet him?”

“Then I shall die an old maid,” was the cheerful response. “I daresay it isn’t the hardest death by any means.”

“Then I guess I’ll die alone,” was the cheerful reply. “I suppose it isn’t the worst way to go.”

“Oh, I suppose the dying would be easy enough; it’s the living an old maid I shouldn’t like,” said Diana, with no intention of being humorous. “Although I wouldn’t mind being an old maid very much if I could be one like Miss Lavendar. But I never could be. When I’m forty-five I’ll be horribly fat. And while there might be some romance about a thin old maid there couldn’t possibly be any about a fat one. Oh, mind you, Nelson Atkins proposed to Ruby Gillis three weeks ago. Ruby told me all about it. She says she never had any intention of taking him, because any one who married him will have to go in with the old folks; but Ruby says that he made such a perfectly beautiful and romantic proposal that it simply swept her off her feet. But she didn’t want to do anything rash so she asked for a week to consider; and two days later she was at a meeting of the Sewing Circle at his mother’s and there was a book called ‘The Complete Guide to Etiquette,’ lying on the parlor table. Ruby said she simply couldn’t describe her feelings when in a section of it headed, ‘The Deportment of Courtship and Marriage,’ she found the very proposal Nelson had made, word for word. She went home and wrote him a perfectly scathing refusal; and she says his father and mother have taken turns watching him ever since for fear he’ll drown himself in the river; but Ruby says they needn’t be afraid; for in the Deportment of Courtship and Marriage it told how a rejected lover should behave and there’s nothing about drowning in that. And she says Wilbur Blair is literally pining away for her but she’s perfectly helpless in the matter.”

“Oh, I suppose dying would be easy enough; it’s being an old maid I wouldn’t like,” said Diana, with no intention of being funny. “Although I wouldn’t mind being an old maid too much if I could be like Miss Lavendar. But I could never pull that off. When I’m forty-five, I’ll be horribly overweight. And while there might be some romance about a thin old maid, there couldn’t possibly be any about a fat one. Oh, by the way, Nelson Atkins proposed to Ruby Gillis three weeks ago. Ruby told me all about it. She says she never intended to accept him because anyone who marries him would have to deal with his old folks; but Ruby says he made such a beautifully romantic proposal that it just swept her off her feet. But she didn’t want to rush into anything, so she asked for a week to think it over; and two days later, she was at a Sewing Circle meeting at his mother’s place, and there was a book called ‘The Complete Guide to Etiquette’ lying on the parlor table. Ruby said she couldn’t describe her feelings when she found a section titled ‘The Deportment of Courtship and Marriage’ that had the exact proposal Nelson made, word for word. She went home and wrote him a scathing refusal; and she says his parents have been taking turns watching him ever since for fear he’ll drown himself in the river; but Ruby says they needn’t worry; because in the Deportment of Courtship and Marriage, it said how a rejected lover should behave and there’s nothing about drowning in that. And she says Wilbur Blair is literally pining away for her but she’s totally helpless in the matter.”

Anne made an impatient movement.

Anne moved impatiently.

“I hate to say it . . . it seems so disloyal . . . but, well, I don’t like Ruby Gillis now. I liked her when we went to school and Queen’s together . . . though not so well as you and Jane of course. But this last year at Carmody she seems so different . . . so . . . so . . .”

“I hate to say it . . . it feels so disloyal . . . but, honestly, I don’t like Ruby Gillis anymore. I liked her when we were in school and at Queen’s together . . . though not as much as you and Jane, of course. But this past year at Carmody, she seems so different . . . so . . . so . . .”

“I know,” nodded Diana. “It’s the Gillis coming out in her . . . she can’t help it. Mrs. Lynde says that if ever a Gillis girl thought about anything but the boys she never showed it in her walk and conversation. She talks about nothing but boys and what compliments they pay her, and how crazy they all are about her at Carmody. And the strange thing is, they are, too . . .” Diana admitted this somewhat resentfully. “Last night when I saw her in Mr. Blair’s store she whispered to me that she’d just made a new ‘mash.’ I wouldn’t ask her who it was, because I knew she was dying to be asked. Well, it’s what Ruby always wanted, I suppose. You remember even when she was little she always said she meant to have dozens of beaus when she grew up and have the very gayest time she could before she settled down. She’s so different from Jane, isn’t she? Jane is such a nice, sensible, lady-like girl.”

“I know,” Diana nodded. “It’s the Gillis in her... she can’t help it. Mrs. Lynde says that if a Gillis girl ever thought about anything other than boys, she never showed it in how she walks or talks. All she talks about is boys and the compliments they give her, and how crazy they all are about her in Carmody. And the weird thing is, they really are,” Diana admitted somewhat begrudgingly. “Last night when I saw her at Mr. Blair’s store, she whispered that she’d just made a new ‘crush.’ I wouldn’t ask who it was because I knew she was just itching to tell me. Well, I guess it’s what Ruby always wanted. Remember how even when she was little, she always said she planned to have tons of boyfriends when she grew up and live it up before settling down? She’s so different from Jane, isn’t she? Jane is such a nice, sensible, ladylike girl.”

“Dear old Jane is a jewel,” agreed Anne, “but,” she added, leaning forward to bestow a tender pat on the plump, dimpled little hand hanging over her pillow, “there’s nobody like my own Diana after all. Do you remember that evening we first met, Diana, and ‘swore’ eternal friendship in your garden? We’ve kept that ‘oath,’ I think . . . we’ve never had a quarrel nor even a coolness. I shall never forget the thrill that went over me the day you told me you loved me. I had had such a lonely, starved heart all through my childhood. I’m just beginning to realize how starved and lonely it really was. Nobody cared anything for me or wanted to be bothered with me. I should have been miserable if it hadn’t been for that strange little dream-life of mine, wherein I imagined all the friends and love I craved. But when I came to Green Gables everything was changed. And then I met you. You don’t know what your friendship meant to me. I want to thank you here and now, dear, for the warm and true affection you’ve always given me.”

“Dear old Jane is a gem,” Anne agreed, “but,” she added, leaning forward to give a gentle pat to the chubby, dimpled little hand resting over her pillow, “there’s really no one like my own Diana. Do you remember that evening we first met, Diana, and ‘swore’ eternal friendship in your garden? I think we’ve kept that ‘oath’... we’ve never had a fight or even a falling out. I will never forget the excitement I felt the day you told me you loved me. I had such a lonely, starved heart throughout my childhood. I’m only just starting to realize how lonely and starved it really was. Nobody cared about me or wanted to deal with me. I would have been miserable if it hadn’t been for that strange little dream-life of mine, where I imagined all the friends and love I wished for. But when I came to Green Gables, everything changed. And then I met you. You have no idea what your friendship has meant to me. I want to thank you right now, dear, for the warm and genuine affection you’ve always given me.”

“And always, always will,” sobbed Diana. “I shall never love anybody . . . any girl . . . half as well as I love you. And if I ever do marry and have a little girl of my own I’m going to name her Anne.”

“And always, always will,” cried Diana. “I will never love anyone . . . any girl . . . half as much as I love you. And if I ever do get married and have a little girl of my own, I’m going to name her Anne.”

XXVII
An Afternoon at the Stone House

“Where are you going, all dressed up, Anne?” Davy wanted to know. “You look bully in that dress.”

“Where are you heading all dressed up, Anne?” Davy asked. “You look great in that dress.”

Anne had come down to dinner in a new dress of pale green muslin . . . the first color she had worn since Matthew’s death. It became her perfectly, bringing out all the delicate, flower-like tints of her face and the gloss and burnish of her hair.

Anne had come down to dinner in a new pale green muslin dress . . . the first color she had worn since Matthew’s death. It suited her perfectly, highlighting all the delicate, floral tones of her face and the shine and luster of her hair.

“Davy, how many times have I told you that you mustn’t use that word,” she rebuked. “I’m going to Echo Lodge.”

“Davy, how many times do I have to tell you not to use that word?” she scolded. “I’m going to Echo Lodge.”

“Take me with you,” entreated Davy.

“Take me with you,” Davy pleaded.

“I would if I were driving. But I’m going to walk and it’s too far for your eight-year-old legs. Besides, Paul is going with me and I fear you don’t enjoy yourself in his company.”

“I would if I were driving. But I’m going to walk and it’s too far for your eight-year-old legs. Besides, Paul is coming with me and I’m afraid you won’t have a good time with him.”

“Oh, I like Paul lots better’n I did,” said Davy, beginning to make fearful inroads into his pudding. “Since I’ve got pretty good myself I don’t mind his being gooder so much. If I can keep on I’ll catch up with him some day, both in legs and goodness. ‘Sides, Paul’s real nice to us second primer boys in school. He won’t let the other big boys meddle with us and he shows us lots of games.”

“Oh, I like Paul a lot better than I used to,” said Davy, starting to dig into his pudding. “Now that I’ve improved a bit myself, I don’t mind that he’s doing better so much. If I keep it up, I’ll catch up with him someday, both in running and in being good. Plus, Paul is really nice to us second graders at school. He won’t let the other older boys mess with us, and he teaches us a lot of games.”

“How came Paul to fall into the brook at noon hour yesterday?” asked Anne. “I met him on the playground, such a dripping figure that I sent him promptly home for clothes without waiting to find out what had happened.”

“How did Paul end up falling into the creek at noon yesterday?” asked Anne. “I saw him on the playground, looking so soaked that I immediately sent him home for some dry clothes without waiting to find out what had happened.”

“Well, it was partly a zacksident,” explained Davy. “He stuck his head in on purpose but the rest of him fell in zacksidentally. We was all down at the brook and Prillie Rogerson got mad at Paul about something . . . she’s awful mean and horrid anyway, if she IS pretty . . . and said that his grandmother put his hair up in curl rags every night. Paul wouldn’t have minded what she said, I guess, but Gracie Andrews laughed, and Paul got awful red, ’cause Gracie’s his girl, you know. He’s clean gone on her . . . brings her flowers and carries her books as far as the shore road. He got as red as a beet and said his grandmother didn’t do any such thing and his hair was born curly. And then he laid down on the bank and stuck his head right into the spring to show them. Oh, it wasn’t the spring we drink out of . . .” seeing a horrified look on Marilla’s face . . . “it was the little one lower down. But the bank’s awful slippy and Paul went right in. I tell you he made a bully splash. Oh, Anne, Anne, I didn’t mean to say that . . . it just slipped out before I thought. He made a splendid splash. But he looked so funny when he crawled out, all wet and muddy. The girls laughed more’n ever, but Gracie didn’t laugh. She looked sorry. Gracie’s a nice girl but she’s got a snub nose. When I get big enough to have a girl I won’t have one with a snub nose . . . I’ll pick one with a pretty nose like yours, Anne.”

“Well, it was partly an accident,” explained Davy. “He intentionally stuck his head in, but the rest of him fell in accidentally. We were all down by the brook, and Prillie Rogerson got upset with Paul about something... she's really mean and awful anyway, even if she is pretty... and said that his grandmother put his hair up in curlers every night. Paul wouldn’t have cared what she said, I guess, but Gracie Andrews laughed, and Paul got super embarrassed because Gracie’s his girl, you know. He’s totally into her... brings her flowers and carries her books all the way to the shore road. He turned as red as a beet and said his grandmother didn’t do that and that his hair was naturally curly. Then he laid down on the bank and stuck his head right into the spring to prove it to them. Oh, it wasn’t the spring we drink from...” noticing the horrified look on Marilla’s face... “it was the little one further down. But the bank is really slippery, and Paul went right in. I tell you, he made a huge splash. Oh, Anne, Anne, I didn’t mean to say that... it just slipped out before I thought. He made a fantastic splash. But he looked so funny when he crawled out, all wet and muddy. The girls laughed even more, but Gracie didn’t laugh. She looked concerned. Gracie’s a nice girl, but she has a snub nose. When I’m old enough to have a girlfriend, I won’t pick one with a snub nose... I’ll choose one with a pretty nose like yours, Anne.”

“A boy who makes such a mess of syrup all over his face when he is eating his pudding will never get a girl to look at him,” said Marilla severely.

“A boy who gets syrup all over his face while eating his pudding will never get a girl to notice him,” Marilla said sternly.

“But I’ll wash my face before I go courting,” protested Davy, trying to improve matters by rubbing the back of his hand over the smears. “And I’ll wash behind my ears too, without being told. I remembered to this morning, Marilla. I don’t forget half as often as I did. But . . .” and Davy sighed . . . “there’s so many corners about a fellow that it’s awful hard to remember them all. Well, if I can’t go to Miss Lavendar’s I’ll go over and see Mrs. Harrison. Mrs. Harrison’s an awful nice woman, I tell you. She keeps a jar of cookies in her pantry a-purpose for little boys, and she always gives me the scrapings out of a pan she’s mixed up a plum cake in. A good many plums stick to the sides, you see. Mr. Harrison was always a nice man, but he’s twice as nice since he got married over again. I guess getting married makes folks nicer. Why don’t you get married, Marilla? I want to know.”

“But I’ll wash my face before I go dating,” protested Davy, trying to make things better by rubbing the back of his hand over the smudges. “And I’ll wash behind my ears too, without needing a reminder. I remembered to this morning, Marilla. I don’t forget as often as I used to. But…” and Davy sighed… “there are just so many spots on a guy that it’s really hard to remember them all. Well, if I can’t go to Miss Lavendar’s, I’ll head over to see Mrs. Harrison. Mrs. Harrison’s a really nice woman, I’ll tell you. She keeps a jar of cookies in her pantry just for little boys, and she always gives me the leftovers from the pan she used for mixing a plum cake. A lot of plums stick to the sides, you see. Mr. Harrison was always a great guy, but he’s even nicer since he remarried. I guess getting married makes people nicer. Why don’t you get married, Marilla? I really want to know.”

Marilla’s state of single blessedness had never been a sore point with her, so she answered amiably, with an exchange of significant looks with Anne, that she supposed it was because nobody would have her.

Marilla's single life had never bothered her, so she responded pleasantly, exchanging meaningful glances with Anne, and said she guessed it was because nobody wanted her.

“But maybe you never asked anybody to have you,” protested Davy.

“But maybe you never asked anyone to have you,” protested Davy.

“Oh, Davy,” said Dora primly, shocked into speaking without being spoken to, “it’s the men that have to do the asking.”

“Oh, Davy,” Dora said with a serious tone, surprised into speaking without being addressed, “it’s the men who have to do the asking.”

“I don’t know why they have to do it always,” grumbled Davy. “Seems to me everything’s put on the men in this world. Can I have some more pudding, Marilla?”

“I don’t know why they have to do it always,” Davy complained. “It feels like everything falls on the men in this world. Can I get some more pudding, Marilla?”

“You’ve had as much as was good for you,” said Marilla; but she gave him a moderate second helping.

“You've had just the right amount,” Marilla said; but she gave him a reasonable second helping.

“I wish people could live on pudding. Why can’t they, Marilla? I want to know.”

“I wish people could survive on pudding. Why can’t they, Marilla? I want to know.”

“Because they’d soon get tired of it.”

“Because they’d soon get bored of it.”

“I’d like to try that for myself,” said skeptical Davy. “But I guess it’s better to have pudding only on fish and company days than none at all. They never have any at Milty Boulter’s. Milty says when company comes his mother gives them cheese and cuts it herself . . . one little bit apiece and one over for manners.”

“I’d like to see that for myself,” said skeptical Davy. “But I guess it’s better to have pudding only on fish and company days than to have none at all. They never have any at Milty Boulter’s. Milty says that when company comes, his mom serves them cheese and cuts it herself… one little piece for each person and one extra just for good manners.”

“If Milty Boulter talks like that about his mother at least you needn’t repeat it,” said Marilla severely.

“If Milty Boulter is talking about his mom like that, you definitely don’t need to repeat it,” Marilla said sternly.

“Bless my soul,” . . . Davy had picked this expression up from Mr. Harrison and used it with great gusto . . . “Milty meant it as a compelment. He’s awful proud of his mother, cause folks say she could scratch a living on a rock.”

“Bless my soul,” Davy exclaimed, having picked up this expression from Mr. Harrison and using it with great enthusiasm. “Milty meant it as a compliment. He’s really proud of his mom because people say she could make a living on a rock.”

“I . . . I suppose them pesky hens are in my pansy bed again,” said Marilla, rising and going out hurriedly.

“I... I guess those annoying hens are in my flower bed again,” Marilla said, getting up and rushing outside.

The slandered hens were nowhere near the pansy bed and Marilla did not even glance at it. Instead, she sat down on the cellar hatch and laughed until she was ashamed of herself.

The attacked hens were nowhere near the flower bed, and Marilla didn't even look at it. Instead, she sat down on the cellar door and laughed until she felt embarrassed.

When Anne and Paul reached the stone house that afternoon they found Miss Lavendar and Charlotta the Fourth in the garden, weeding, raking, clipping, and trimming as if for dear life. Miss Lavendar herself, all gay and sweet in the frills and laces she loved, dropped her shears and ran joyously to meet her guests, while Charlotta the Fourth grinned cheerfully.

When Anne and Paul arrived at the stone house that afternoon, they found Miss Lavendar and Charlotta the Fourth in the garden, weeding, raking, clipping, and trimming as if their lives depended on it. Miss Lavendar, cheerful and delightful in the frills and laces she adored, dropped her shears and joyfully ran to greet her guests, while Charlotta the Fourth smiled pleasantly.

“Welcome, Anne. I thought you’d come today. You belong to the afternoon so it brought you. Things that belong together are sure to come together. What a lot of trouble that would save some people if they only knew it. But they don’t . . . and so they waste beautiful energy moving heaven and earth to bring things together that don’t belong. And you, Paul . . . why, you’ve grown! You’re half a head taller than when you were here before.”

“Welcome, Anne. I figured you’d show up today. You’re meant for the afternoon, so it makes sense you came. Things that are meant to be together always find a way to come together. It would save some people a lot of trouble if they only realized that. But they don’t . . . and so they waste so much effort trying to force things that don’t belong together. And you, Paul . . . wow, you’ve grown! You’re half a head taller than the last time you were here.”

“Yes, I’ve begun to grow like pigweed in the night, as Mrs. Lynde says,” said Paul, in frank delight over the fact. “Grandma says it’s the porridge taking effect at last. Perhaps it is. Goodness knows . . .” Paul sighed deeply . . . “I’ve eaten enough to make anyone grow. I do hope, now that I’ve begun, I’ll keep on till I’m as tall as father. He is six feet, you know, Miss Lavendar.”

“Yes, I’ve started to grow like pigweed at night, like Mrs. Lynde says,” said Paul, genuinely happy about it. “Grandma says it’s the porridge finally kicking in. Maybe it is. Goodness knows . . .” Paul sighed deeply . . . “I’ve eaten enough to make anyone grow. I really hope that now that I’ve started, I’ll keep going until I’m as tall as my dad. He’s six feet, you know, Miss Lavendar.”

Yes, Miss Lavendar did know; the flush on her pretty cheeks deepened a little; she took Paul’s hand on one side and Anne’s on the other and walked to the house in silence.

Yes, Miss Lavendar did know; the blush on her pretty cheeks deepened a little; she took Paul’s hand on one side and Anne’s on the other and walked to the house in silence.

“Is it a good day for the echoes, Miss Lavendar?” queried Paul anxiously. The day of his first visit had been too windy for echoes and Paul had been much disappointed.

“Is it a good day for echoes, Miss Lavendar?” Paul asked anxiously. His first visit had been too windy for echoes, and Paul had been really disappointed.

“Yes, just the best kind of a day,” answered Miss Lavendar, rousing herself from her reverie. “But first we are all going to have something to eat. I know you two folks didn’t walk all the way back here through those beechwoods without getting hungry, and Charlotta the Fourth and I can eat any hour of the day . . . we have such obliging appetites. So we’ll just make a raid on the pantry. Fortunately it’s lovely and full. I had a presentiment that I was going to have company today and Charlotta the Fourth and I prepared.”

“Yes, it’s just the best kind of day,” replied Miss Lavendar, pulling herself out of her daydream. “But first, we’re all going to grab something to eat. I know you two didn’t walk all the way back here through those beech woods without getting hungry, and Charlotta the Fourth and I can eat at any hour of the day… we have such accommodating appetites. So let’s go raid the pantry. Luckily, it’s nice and full. I had a feeling I was going to have company today, so Charlotta the Fourth and I got everything ready.”

“I think you are one of the people who always have nice things in their pantry,” declared Paul. “Grandma’s like that too. But she doesn’t approve of snacks between meals. I wonder,” he added meditatively, “if I ought to eat them away from home when I know she doesn’t approve.”

“I think you’re one of those people who always have good stuff in your pantry,” Paul said. “Grandma’s the same way. But she doesn’t like snacks between meals. I wonder,” he said thoughtfully, “if I should eat them when I’m not at home, knowing she doesn’t approve.”

“Oh, I don’t think she would disapprove after you have had a long walk. That makes a difference,” said Miss Lavendar, exchanging amused glances with Anne over Paul’s brown curls. “I suppose that snacks are extremely unwholesome. That is why we have them so often at Echo Lodge. We. . . Charlotta the Fourth and I . . . live in defiance of every known law of diet. We eat all sorts of indigestible things whenever we happen to think of it, by day or night; and we flourish like green bay trees. We are always intending to reform. When we read any article in a paper warning us against something we like we cut it out and pin it up on the kitchen wall so that we’ll remember it. But we never can somehow . . . until after we’ve gone and eaten that very thing. Nothing has ever killed us yet; but Charlotta the Fourth has been known to have bad dreams after we had eaten doughnuts and mince pie and fruit cake before we went to bed.”

“Oh, I don’t think she’d mind after you’ve had a long walk. That makes a difference,” said Miss Lavendar, sharing amused glances with Anne over Paul’s brown curls. “I guess snacks are really unhealthy. That’s why we have them so often at Echo Lodge. We... Charlotta the Fourth and I... live against every known diet rule. We eat all kinds of heavy stuff whenever we feel like it, day or night; and we thrive like green bay trees. We always plan to change our ways. When we read an article in the newspaper warning us about something we enjoy, we cut it out and pin it up on the kitchen wall to remind us. But we never seem to remember... until after we’ve gone and eaten that exact thing. Nothing has ever harmed us yet; but Charlotta the Fourth has been known to have bad dreams after we’ve eaten doughnuts, mince pie, and fruit cake before bed.”

“Grandma lets me have a glass of milk and a slice of bread and butter before I go to bed; and on Sunday nights she puts jam on the bread,” said Paul. “So I’m always glad when it’s Sunday night . . . for more reasons than one. Sunday is a very long day on the shore road. Grandma says it’s all too short for her and that father never found Sundays tiresome when he was a little boy. It wouldn’t seem so long if I could talk to my rock people but I never do that because Grandma doesn’t approve of it on Sundays. I think a good deal; but I’m afraid my thoughts are worldly. Grandma says we should never think anything but religious thoughts on Sundays. But teacher here said once that every really beautiful thought was religious, no matter what it was about, or what day we thought it on. But I feel sure Grandma thinks that sermons and Sunday School lessons are the only things you can think truly religious thoughts about. And when it comes to a difference of opinion between Grandma and teacher I don’t know what to do. In my heart” . . . Paul laid his hand on his breast and raised very serious blue eyes to Miss Lavendar’s immediately sympathetic face . . . “I agree with teacher. But then, you see, Grandma has brought father up her way and made a brilliant success of him; and teacher has never brought anybody up yet, though she’s helping with Davy and Dora. But you can’t tell how they’ll turn out till they are grown up. So sometimes I feel as if it might be safer to go by Grandma’s opinions.”

“Grandma lets me have a glass of milk and a slice of bread and butter before I go to bed; and on Sunday nights she adds jam to the bread,” Paul said. “So I’m always happy when it’s Sunday night... for more reasons than one. Sunday is a really long day on the shore road. Grandma says it’s too short for her and that Dad never found Sundays boring when he was a little boy. It wouldn’t feel so long if I could talk to my rock people, but I never do because Grandma doesn’t think that’s okay on Sundays. I think a lot, but I’m afraid my thoughts are too worldly. Grandma says we should only think religious thoughts on Sundays. But the teacher here once said that every truly beautiful thought is religious, no matter what it’s about or what day we think of it. But I’m sure Grandma believes that sermons and Sunday School lessons are the only things you can have truly religious thoughts about. And when there’s a difference of opinion between Grandma and the teacher, I don’t know what to do. In my heart”... Paul placed his hand on his chest and looked with serious blue eyes at Miss Lavendar’s understanding face... “I agree with the teacher. But then, you see, Grandma raised Dad in her way and made a great success of him; and the teacher hasn’t raised anyone yet, although she’s helping with Davy and Dora. But you can’t tell how they’ll turn out until they are grown up. So sometimes I feel like it might be safer to go with Grandma’s opinions.”

“I think it would,” agreed Anne solemnly. “Anyway, I daresay that if your Grandma and I both got down to what we really do mean, under our different ways of expressing it, we’d find out we both meant much the same thing. You’d better go by her way of expressing it, since it’s been the result of experience. We’ll have to wait until we see how the twins do turn out before we can be sure that my way is equally good.” After lunch they went back to the garden, where Paul made the acquaintance of the echoes, to his wonder and delight, while Anne and Miss Lavendar sat on the stone bench under the poplar and talked.

“I think it would,” agreed Anne seriously. “Anyway, I bet that if your Grandma and I really got to the heart of what we mean, beneath our different ways of saying it, we’d discover we both mean pretty much the same thing. You should definitely go with her way of expressing it since it comes from experience. We’ll have to wait and see how the twins turn out before we can be sure that my way is just as good.” After lunch, they returned to the garden, where Paul became familiar with the echoes, to his amazement and joy, while Anne and Miss Lavendar sat on the stone bench under the poplar and talked.

“So you are going away in the fall?” said Miss Lavendar wistfully. “I ought to be glad for your sake, Anne . . . but I’m horribly, selfishly sorry. I shall miss you so much. Oh, sometimes, I think it is of no use to make friends. They only go out of your life after awhile and leave a hurt that is worse than the emptiness before they came.”

“So you’re leaving in the fall?” Miss Lavendar said, sounding a bit sad. “I should be happy for you, Anne... but I’m really, selfishly upset. I’m going to miss you a lot. Sometimes I think it’s pointless to make friends. They just leave your life after a while and leave a pain that’s worse than the emptiness you felt before they arrived.”

“That sounds like something Miss Eliza Andrews might say but never Miss Lavendar,” said Anne. “Nothing is worse than emptiness . . . and I’m not going out of your life. There are such things as letters and vacations. Dearest, I’m afraid you’re looking a little pale and tired.”

“That sounds like something Miss Eliza Andrews would say, but never Miss Lavendar,” Anne said. “Nothing is worse than emptiness . . . and I’m not leaving your life. There are things like letters and vacations. Dearest, I’m worried you look a little pale and tired.”

“Oh . . . hoo . . . hoo . . . hoo,” went Paul on the dyke, where he had been making noises diligently . . . not all of them melodious in the making, but all coming back transmuted into the very gold and silver of sound by the fairy alchemists over the river. Miss Lavendar made an impatient movement with her pretty hands.

“Oh . . . hoo . . . hoo . . . hoo,” Paul called out on the dyke, where he had been making sounds intently . . . not all of them pleasant, but they all returned transformed into pure gold and silver notes by the magical alchemists across the river. Miss Lavendar fidgeted with her lovely hands in frustration.

“I’m just tired of everything . . . even of the echoes. There is nothing in my life but echoes . . . echoes of lost hopes and dreams and joys. They’re beautiful and mocking. Oh Anne, it’s horrid of me to talk like this when I have company. It’s just that I’m getting old and it doesn’t agree with me. I know I’ll be fearfully cranky by the time I’m sixty. But perhaps all I need is a course of blue pills.” At this moment Charlotta the Fourth, who had disappeared after lunch, returned, and announced that the northeast corner of Mr. John Kimball’s pasture was red with early strawberries, and wouldn’t Miss Shirley like to go and pick some.

“I’m just really tired of everything . . . even the echoes. There’s nothing in my life but echoes . . . echoes of lost hopes, dreams, and joys. They’re beautiful but also mocking. Oh Anne, it’s awful of me to talk like this when I have company. It’s just that I’m getting older, and it doesn’t sit well with me. I know I’ll be incredibly cranky by the time I’m sixty. But maybe all I need is a course of blue pills.” At that moment, Charlotta the Fourth, who had disappeared after lunch, came back and announced that the northeast corner of Mr. John Kimball’s pasture was filled with early strawberries, and wouldn’t Miss Shirley like to go pick some.

“Early strawberries for tea!” exclaimed Miss Lavendar. “Oh, I’m not so old as I thought . . . and I don’t need a single blue pill! Girls, when you come back with your strawberries we’ll have tea out here under the silver poplar. I’ll have it all ready for you with home-grown cream.”

“Early strawberries for tea!” Miss Lavendar exclaimed. “Oh, I’m not as old as I thought . . . and I don’t need a single blue pill! Girls, when you come back with your strawberries, we’ll have tea out here under the silver poplar. I’ll have it all ready for you with home-grown cream.”

Anne and Charlotta the Fourth accordingly betook themselves back to Mr. Kimball’s pasture, a green remote place where the air was as soft as velvet and fragrant as a bed of violets and golden as amber.

Anne and Charlotta the Fourth then made their way back to Mr. Kimball’s pasture, a lush, secluded spot where the air was soft like velvet, fragrant like a bed of violets, and warm like amber.

“Oh, isn’t it sweet and fresh back here?” breathed Anne. “I just feel as if I were drinking in the sunshine.”

“Oh, isn’t it lovely and refreshing back here?” sighed Anne. “I really feel like I’m soaking up the sunshine.”

“Yes, ma’am, so do I. That’s just exactly how I feel too, ma’am,” agreed Charlotta the Fourth, who would have said precisely the same thing if Anne had remarked that she felt like a pelican of the wilderness. Always after Anne had visited Echo Lodge Charlotta the Fourth mounted to her little room over the kitchen and tried before her looking glass to speak and look and move like Anne. Charlotta could never flatter herself that she quite succeeded; but practice makes perfect, as Charlotta had learned at school, and she fondly hoped that in time she might catch the trick of that dainty uplift of chin, that quick, starry outflashing of eyes, that fashion of walking as if you were a bough swaying in the wind. It seemed so easy when you watched Anne. Charlotta the Fourth admired Anne wholeheartedly. It was not that she thought her so very handsome. Diana Barry’s beauty of crimson cheek and black curls was much more to Charlotta the Fourth’s taste than Anne’s moonshine charm of luminous gray eyes and the pale, everchanging roses of her cheeks.

“Yes, ma’am, I feel the same way,” agreed Charlotta the Fourth, who would have said exactly that if Anne had mentioned feeling like a pelican in the wilderness. After every visit from Anne to Echo Lodge, Charlotta the Fourth would go up to her little room above the kitchen and practice in front of her mirror, trying to talk, look, and move like Anne. Charlotta could never convince herself that she really succeeded, but she remembered from school that practice makes perfect, and she hoped that eventually she could master that delicate lift of the chin, that quick, sparkling flash in the eyes, that way of walking as if you were a branch swaying in the breeze. It all seemed so easy when she watched Anne. Charlotta the Fourth admired Anne completely. It wasn’t that she thought Anne was particularly beautiful. Diana Barry’s beauty, with her crimson cheeks and black curls, was much more to Charlotta the Fourth’s taste than Anne’s enchanting charm of luminous gray eyes and the pale, ever-changing roses of her cheeks.

“But I’d rather look like you than be pretty,” she told Anne sincerely.

“But I’d rather look like you than be pretty,” she told Anne honestly.

Anne laughed, sipped the honey from the tribute, and cast away the sting. She was used to taking her compliments mixed. Public opinion never agreed on Anne’s looks. People who had heard her called handsome met her and were disappointed. People who had heard her called plain saw her and wondered where other people’s eyes were. Anne herself would never believe that she had any claim to beauty. When she looked in the glass all she saw was a little pale face with seven freckles on the nose thereof. Her mirror never revealed to her the elusive, ever-varying play of feeling that came and went over her features like a rosy illuminating flame, or the charm of dream and laughter alternating in her big eyes.

Anne laughed, sipped the honey from the tribute, and shrugged off the sting. She was used to receiving her compliments mixed. Public opinion never agreed on Anne’s looks. People who had heard her described as handsome met her and felt let down. Those who’d heard her called plain saw her and wondered where other people’s eyes were. Anne herself would never believe she had any right to beauty. When she looked in the mirror, all she saw was a pale face with seven freckles on her nose. Her mirror never showed her the elusive, ever-changing play of emotions that flickered across her features like a rosy glow, or the charm of dreams and laughter that alternated in her big eyes.

While Anne was not beautiful in any strictly defined sense of the word she possessed a certain evasive charm and distinction of appearance that left beholders with a pleasurable sense of satisfaction in that softly rounded girlhood of hers, with all its strongly felt potentialities. Those who knew Anne best felt, without realizing that they felt it, that her greatest attraction was the aura of possibility surrounding her. . . the power of future development that was in her. She seemed to walk in an atmosphere of things about to happen.

While Anne wasn't beautiful in the conventional sense, she had a certain elusive charm and a unique look that left people feeling satisfied by her softly rounded youth, filled with strong potential. Those who knew Anne well sensed, without quite realizing it, that her biggest draw was the aura of possibility she radiated... the promise of what she could become. She seemed to move in an atmosphere of things that were just on the verge of happening.

As they picked, Charlotta the Fourth confided to Anne her fears regarding Miss Lavendar. The warm-hearted little handmaiden was honestly worried over her adored mistress’ condition.

As they picked, Charlotta the Fourth shared her concerns with Anne about Miss Lavendar. The caring little helper was genuinely worried about her beloved mistress’s well-being.

“Miss Lavendar isn’t well, Miss Shirley, ma’am. I’m sure she isn’t, though she never complains. She hasn’t seemed like herself this long while, ma’am . . . not since that day you and Paul were here together before. I feel sure she caught cold that night, ma’am. After you and him had gone she went out and walked in the garden for long after dark with nothing but a little shawl on her. There was a lot of snow on the walks and I feel sure she got a chill, ma’am. Ever since then I’ve noticed her acting tired and lonesome like. She don’t seem to take an interest in anything, ma’am. She never pretends company’s coming, nor fixes up for it, nor nothing, ma’am. It’s only when you come she seems to chirk up a bit. And the worst sign of all, Miss Shirley, ma’am . . .” Charlotta the Fourth lowered her voice as if she were about to tell some exceedingly weird and awful symptom indeed . . . “is that she never gets cross now when I breaks things. Why, Miss Shirley, ma’am, yesterday I bruk her green and yaller bowl that’s always stood on the bookcase. Her grandmother brought it out from England and Miss Lavendar was awful choice of it. I was dusting it just as careful, Miss Shirley, ma’am, and it slipped out, so fashion, afore I could grab holt of it, and bruk into about forty millyun pieces. I tell you I was sorry and scared. I thought Miss Lavendar would scold me awful, ma’am; and I’d ruther she had than take it the way she did. She just come in and hardly looked at it and said, ‘It’s no matter, Charlotta. Take up the pieces and throw them away.’ Just like that, Miss Shirley, ma’am . . . ‘take up the pieces and throw them away,’ as if it wasn’t her grandmother’s bowl from England. Oh, she isn’t well and I feel awful bad about it. She’s got nobody to look after her but me.”

"Miss Lavendar isn’t feeling well, Miss Shirley, ma’am. I’m certain of it, even though she never complains. She hasn’t seemed like herself for quite a while, ma’am... not since that day you and Paul were here together before. I really think she caught a cold that night, ma’am. After you both left, she went outside and walked in the garden for a long time after dark with just a little shawl on her. There was a lot of snow on the paths, and I’m pretty sure she caught a chill, ma’am. Ever since then, I’ve noticed she acts tired and lonely. She doesn’t seem to care about anything, ma’am. She doesn’t pretend company is coming, nor does she get ready for it, or anything, ma’am. It’s only when you come that she seems to perk up a little. And the worst sign of all, Miss Shirley, ma’am...” Charlotta the Fourth lowered her voice as if she were about to reveal something truly strange and troubling indeed... “is that she never gets upset now when I break things. Why, Miss Shirley, ma’am, yesterday I broke her green and yellow bowl that’s always been on the bookcase. Her grandmother brought it over from England, and Miss Lavendar was very fond of it. I was dusting it as carefully as I could, Miss Shirley, ma’am, and it slipped out of my hands before I could grab it, and shattered into about forty million pieces. I was so sorry and scared. I thought Miss Lavendar would be really mad at me, ma’am; and I’d rather she had than take it the way she did. She just came in, hardly looked at it, and said, 'It doesn’t matter, Charlotta. Pick up the pieces and throw them away.' Just like that, Miss Shirley, ma’am... ‘pick up the pieces and throw them away,’ as if it wasn’t her grandmother’s bowl from England. Oh, she isn’t well, and I feel terrible about it. She’s got nobody to look after her but me."

Charlotta the Fourth’s eyes brimmed up with tears. Anne patted the little brown paw holding the cracked pink cup sympathetically.

Charlotta the Fourth’s eyes filled with tears. Anne gently patted the small brown paw that was holding the chipped pink cup.

“I think Miss Lavendar needs a change, Charlotta. She stays here alone too much. Can’t we induce her to go away for a little trip?”

“I think Miss Lavendar needs a change, Charlotta. She spends too much time here alone. Can’t we convince her to take a little trip?”

Charlotta shook her head, with its rampant bows, disconsolately.

Charlotta shook her head, with its wild bows, sadly.

“I don’t think so, Miss Shirley, ma’am. Miss Lavendar hates visiting. She’s only got three relations she ever visits and she says she just goes to see them as a family duty. Last time when she come home she said she wasn’t going to visit for family duty no more. ‘I’ve come home in love with loneliness, Charlotta,’ she says to me, ‘and I never want to stray from my own vine and fig tree again. My relations try so hard to make an old lady of me and it has a bad effect on me.’ Just like that, Miss Shirley, ma’am. ‘It has a very bad effect on me.’ So I don’t think it would do any good to coax her to go visiting.”

"I don’t think so, Miss Shirley. Miss Lavendar hates visiting. She only has three relatives she ever visits, and she says she does it just out of family obligation. Last time she came home, she said she wasn’t going to visit for family duty anymore. ‘I’ve come home in love with loneliness, Charlotta,’ she told me, ‘and I never want to leave my own vine and fig tree again. My relatives try so hard to make an old lady out of me, and it has a bad effect on me.’ Just like that, Miss Shirley. ‘It has a very bad effect on me.’ So I don’t think it would help to try and persuade her to go visiting."

“We must see what can be done,” said Anne decidedly, as she put the last possible berry in her pink cup. “Just as soon as I have my vacation I’ll come through and spend a whole week with you. We’ll have a picnic every day and pretend all sorts of interesting things, and see if we can’t cheer Miss Lavendar up.”

"We need to figure out what we can do," Anne said confidently, placing the last berry in her pink cup. "As soon as my vacation starts, I'll come over and spend a whole week with you. We'll have a picnic every day, pretend to be involved in all sorts of exciting things, and see if we can cheer Miss Lavendar up."

“That will be the very thing, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” exclaimed Charlotta the Fourth in rapture. She was glad for Miss Lavendar’s sake and for her own too. With a whole week in which to study Anne constantly she would surely be able to learn how to move and behave like her.

“That will be just perfect, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” Charlotta the Fourth exclaimed in delight. She was happy for Miss Lavendar and for herself as well. With a whole week to observe Anne closely, she would definitely learn how to move and act like her.

When the girls got back to Echo Lodge they found that Miss Lavendar and Paul had carried the little square table out of the kitchen to the garden and had everything ready for tea. Nothing ever tasted so delicious as those strawberries and cream, eaten under a great blue sky all curdled over with fluffy little white clouds, and in the long shadows of the wood with its lispings and its murmurings. After tea Anne helped Charlotta wash the dishes in the kitchen, while Miss Lavendar sat on the stone bench with Paul and heard all about his rock people. She was a good listener, this sweet Miss Lavendar, but just at the last it struck Paul that she had suddenly lost interest in the Twin Sailors.

When the girls returned to Echo Lodge, they found that Miss Lavendar and Paul had moved the small square table from the kitchen to the garden and had everything set for tea. Nothing tasted as delicious as those strawberries and cream, enjoyed under a vast blue sky dotted with fluffy white clouds, and in the long shadows of the woods with its sounds and whispers. After tea, Anne helped Charlotta wash the dishes in the kitchen while Miss Lavendar sat on the stone bench with Paul and listened to him talk about his rock people. She was a great listener, this lovely Miss Lavendar, but suddenly Paul noticed that she seemed to have lost interest in the Twin Sailors.

“Miss Lavendar, why do you look at me like that?” he asked gravely.

“Miss Lavendar, why are you looking at me like that?” he asked seriously.

“How do I look, Paul?”

“How do I look, Paul?”

“Just as if you were looking through me at somebody I put you in mind of,” said Paul, who had such occasional flashes of uncanny insight that it wasn’t quite safe to have secrets when he was about.

“It's like you're looking through me at someone I remind you of,” said Paul, who had occasional moments of eerie insight that made it risky to have secrets around him.

“You do put me in mind of somebody I knew long ago,” said Miss Lavendar dreamily.

"You remind me of someone I knew a long time ago," Miss Lavendar said thoughtfully.

“When you were young?”

“When you were a kid?”

“Yes, when I was young. Do I seem very old to you, Paul?”

“Yes, when I was young. Do I look old to you, Paul?”

“Do you know, I can’t make up my mind about that,” said Paul confidentially. “Your hair looks old . . . I never knew a young person with white hair. But your eyes are as young as my beautiful teacher’s when you laugh. I tell you what, Miss Lavendar” . . . Paul’s voice and face were as solemn as a judge’s . . . “I think you would make a splendid mother. You have just the right look in your eyes . . . the look my little mother always had. I think it’s a pity you haven’t any boys of your own.”

“Do you know, I can’t decide about that,” Paul said confidentially. “Your hair looks old... I’ve never seen a young person with white hair. But your eyes are as youthful as my beautiful teacher’s when you laugh. I tell you what, Miss Lavendar...” Paul's voice and face were as serious as a judge's... “I think you would make a fantastic mother. You have just the right look in your eyes... the look my little mom always had. I think it’s a shame you don’t have any boys of your own.”

“I have a little dream boy, Paul.”

“I have a little dream boy, Paul.”

“Oh, have you really? How old is he?”

“Oh, really? How old is he?”

“About your age I think. He ought to be older because I dreamed him long before you were born. But I’ll never let him get any older than eleven or twelve; because if I did some day he might grow up altogether and then I’d lose him.”

“About your age, I think. He should be older because I dreamed him long before you were born. But I’ll never let him get any older than eleven or twelve; because if I did, someday he might grow up completely and then I’d lose him.”

“I know,” nodded Paul. “That’s the beauty of dream-people . . . they stay any age you want them. You and my beautiful teacher and me myself are the only folks in the world that I know of that have dream-people. Isn’t it funny and nice we should all know each other? But I guess that kind of people always find each other out. Grandma never has dream-people and Mary Joe thinks I’m wrong in the upper story because I have them. But I think it’s splendid to have them. You know, Miss Lavendar. Tell me all about your little dream-boy.”

“I know,” Paul nodded. “That’s the amazing thing about dream-people . . . they stay whatever age you want them to be. You, my lovely teacher, and I are the only people I know who have dream-people. Isn’t it funny and nice that we all know each other? I guess people like us always end up finding each other. Grandma never has dream-people, and Mary Joe thinks I’m not quite right in the head because I have them. But I think it’s wonderful to have them. You know, Miss Lavendar. Tell me all about your little dream-boy.”

“He has blue eyes and curly hair. He steals in and wakens me with a kiss every morning. Then all day he plays here in the garden . . . and I play with him. Such games as we have. We run races and talk with the echoes; and I tell him stories. And when twilight comes . . .”

“He has blue eyes and curly hair. He sneaks in and wakes me up with a kiss every morning. Then all day he plays in the garden... and I play with him. We have such fun games. We race and chat with the echoes, and I tell him stories. And when twilight comes...”

I know,” interrupted Paul eagerly. “He comes and sits beside you . . . so . . . because of course at twelve he’d be too big to climb into your lap . . . and lays his head on your shoulder . . . so . . . and you put your arms about him and hold him tight, tight, and rest your cheek on his head . . . yes, that’s the very way. Oh, you do know, Miss Lavendar.”

I know,” interrupted Paul eagerly. “He comes and sits next to you . . . so . . . because at twelve he’d be too big to climb into your lap . . . and lays his head on your shoulder . . . so . . . and you wrap your arms around him and hold him tight, tight, and rest your cheek on his head . . . yes, that’s exactly how it is. Oh, you do know, Miss Lavendar.”

Anne found the two of them there when she came out of the stone house, and something in Miss Lavendar’s face made her hate to disturb them.

Anne found the two of them there when she stepped out of the stone house, and something in Miss Lavendar’s expression made her reluctant to interrupt them.

“I’m afraid we must go, Paul, if we want to get home before dark. Miss Lavendar, I’m going to invite myself to Echo Lodge for a whole week pretty soon.”

“I’m afraid we need to leave, Paul, if we want to make it home before it gets dark. Miss Lavendar, I’m going to invite myself to Echo Lodge for an entire week very soon.”

“If you come for a week I’ll keep you for two,” threatened Miss Lavendar.

“If you come for a week, I’ll keep you for two,” threatened Miss Lavendar.

XXVIII
The Prince Comes Back to the Enchanted Palace

The last day of school came and went. A triumphant “semi-annual examination” was held and Anne’s pupils acquitted themselves splendidly. At the close they gave her an address and a writing desk. All the girls and ladies present cried, and some of the boys had it cast up to them later on that they cried too, although they always denied it.

The last day of school arrived and passed. A triumphant “semi-annual examination” took place, and Anne’s students performed exceptionally well. At the end, they presented her with a speech and a writing desk. All the girls and women present were in tears, and some of the boys were teased later for having cried as well, even though they always denied it.

Mrs. Harmon Andrews, Mrs. Peter Sloane, and Mrs. William Bell walked home together and talked things over.

Mrs. Harmon Andrews, Mrs. Peter Sloane, and Mrs. William Bell walked home together and discussed things.

“I do think it is such a pity Anne is leaving when the children seem so much attached to her,” sighed Mrs. Peter Sloane, who had a habit of sighing over everything and even finished off her jokes that way. “To be sure,” she added hastily, “we all know we’ll have a good teacher next year too.”

“I really think it’s a shame Anne is leaving when the kids are so attached to her,” sighed Mrs. Peter Sloane, who had a habit of sighing about everything and even ended her jokes that way. “Of course,” she added quickly, “we all know we’ll have a good teacher next year too.”

“Jane will do her duty, I’ve no doubt,” said Mrs. Andrews rather stiffly. “I don’t suppose she’ll tell the children quite so many fairy tales or spend so much time roaming about the woods with them. But she has her name on the Inspector’s Roll of Honor and the Newbridge people are in a terrible state over her leaving.”

“Jane will fulfill her responsibilities, I have no doubt,” said Mrs. Andrews rather stiffly. “I don’t think she’ll share as many fairy tales or spend so much time wandering through the woods with the children. But she’s on the Inspector’s Roll of Honor, and the people of Newbridge are really upset about her leaving.”

“I’m real glad Anne is going to college,” said Mrs. Bell. “She has always wanted it and it will be a splendid thing for her.”

“I’m really glad Anne is going to college,” said Mrs. Bell. “She’s always wanted it and it will be a great thing for her.”

“Well, I don’t know.” Mrs. Andrews was determined not to agree fully with anybody that day. “I don’t see that Anne needs any more education. She’ll probably be marrying Gilbert Blythe, if his infatuation for her lasts till he gets through college, and what good will Latin and Greek do her then? If they taught you at college how to manage a man there might be some sense in her going.”

“Well, I don’t know.” Mrs. Andrews was set on not fully agreeing with anyone that day. “I don’t see why Anne needs any more education. She’ll probably be marrying Gilbert Blythe, if his crush on her lasts until he finishes college, and what good will Latin and Greek do her then? If they taught you at college how to handle a man, then it might make sense for her to go.”

Mrs. Harmon Andrews, so Avonlea gossip whispered, had never learned how to manage her “man,” and as a result the Andrews household was not exactly a model of domestic happiness.

Mrs. Harmon Andrews, as the gossip in Avonlea went, had never figured out how to handle her "man," and because of that, the Andrews household wasn't exactly a picture of happiness.

“I see that the Charlottetown call to Mr. Allan is up before the Presbytery,” said Mrs. Bell. “That means we’ll be losing him soon, I suppose.”

“I see that the Charlottetown call to Mr. Allan is up before the Presbytery,” said Mrs. Bell. “That means we’ll be losing him soon, I guess.”

“They’re not going before September,” said Mrs. Sloane. “It will be a great loss to the community . . . though I always did think that Mrs. Allan dressed rather too gay for a minister’s wife. But we are none of us perfect. Did you notice how neat and snug Mr. Harrison looked today? I never saw such a changed man. He goes to church every Sunday and has subscribed to the salary.”

“They’re not leaving until September,” said Mrs. Sloane. “It’ll be a huge loss for the community... although I always thought Mrs. Allan dressed a bit too brightly for a minister’s wife. But none of us are perfect. Did you see how neat and put-together Mr. Harrison looked today? I’ve never seen such a transformed man. He goes to church every Sunday and has committed to the salary.”

“Hasn’t that Paul Irving grown to be a big boy?” said Mrs. Andrews. “He was such a mite for his age when he came here. I declare I hardly knew him today. He’s getting to look a lot like his father.”

“Hasn’t that Paul Irving grown up to be a big boy?” said Mrs. Andrews. “He was such a little thing for his age when he came here. I swear I hardly recognized him today. He’s starting to look a lot like his dad.”

“He’s a smart boy,” said Mrs. Bell.

“He's a smart kid,” Mrs. Bell said.

“He’s smart enough, but” . . . Mrs. Andrews lowered her voice . . . “I believe he tells queer stories. Gracie came home from school one day last week with the greatest rigmarole he had told her about people who lived down at the shore . . . stories there couldn’t be a word of truth in, you know. I told Gracie not to believe them, and she said Paul didn’t intend her to. But if he didn’t what did he tell them to her for?”

“He’s smart enough, but” . . . Mrs. Andrews lowered her voice . . . “I think he tells really strange stories. Gracie came home from school one day last week with the wildest tales he had shared about people who lived by the shore . . . stories that couldn’t possibly be true, you know. I told Gracie not to believe them, and she said Paul didn’t mean for her to. But if he didn’t, then why did he tell her those stories?”

“Anne says Paul is a genius,” said Mrs. Sloane.

“Anne says Paul is a genius,” Mrs. Sloane said.

“He may be. You never know what to expect of them Americans,” said Mrs. Andrews. Mrs. Andrews’ only acquaintance with the word “genius” was derived from the colloquial fashion of calling any eccentric individual “a queer genius.” She probably thought, with Mary Joe, that it meant a person with something wrong in his upper story.

“He might be. You never know what to expect from those Americans,” said Mrs. Andrews. Mrs. Andrews’ only understanding of the word “genius” came from the casual habit of calling any eccentric person “a queer genius.” She probably thought, like Mary Joe, that it meant someone who had something off in their head.

Back in the schoolroom Anne was sitting alone at her desk, as she had sat on the first day of school two years before, her face leaning on her hand, her dewy eyes looking wistfully out of the window to the Lake of Shining Waters. Her heart was so wrung over the parting with her pupils that for a moment college had lost all its charm. She still felt the clasp of Annetta Bell’s arms about her neck and heard the childish wail, “I’ll never love any teacher as much as you, Miss Shirley, never, never.”

Back in the classroom, Anne was sitting alone at her desk, just like she had on her first day of school two years ago. Her face rested on her hand, and her misty eyes stared longingly out the window at the Lake of Shining Waters. She felt so heartbroken about saying goodbye to her students that, for a moment, college lost all its appeal. She could still feel Annetta Bell’s arms around her neck and heard the child's cry, “I’ll never love any teacher as much as you, Miss Shirley, never, never.”

For two years she had worked earnestly and faithfully, making many mistakes and learning from them. She had had her reward. She had taught her scholars something, but she felt that they had taught her much more . . . lessons of tenderness, self-control, innocent wisdom, lore of childish hearts. Perhaps she had not succeeded in “inspiring” any wonderful ambitions in her pupils, but she had taught them, more by her own sweet personality than by all her careful precepts, that it was good and necessary in the years that were before them to live their lives finely and graciously, holding fast to truth and courtesy and kindness, keeping aloof from all that savored of falsehood and meanness and vulgarity. They were, perhaps, all unconscious of having learned such lessons; but they would remember and practice them long after they had forgotten the capital of Afghanistan and the dates of the Wars of the Roses.

For two years, she had worked hard and dedicatedly, making lots of mistakes and learning from them. She had been rewarded. She had taught her students something, but she felt they had taught her so much more... lessons of kindness, self-control, innocent wisdom, and the essence of childhood. Maybe she hadn’t succeeded in “inspiring” any grand ambitions in her pupils, but she had shown them—more through her own gentle nature than through all her careful lessons—that it was important and necessary to live their lives beautifully and graciously in the years ahead, holding on to truth, courtesy, and kindness, steering clear of anything that hinted at falsehood, meanness, or crudeness. They might not have realized they were learning such lessons; but they would remember and apply them long after they had forgotten the capital of Afghanistan and the dates of the Wars of the Roses.

“Another chapter in my life is closed,” said Anne aloud, as she locked her desk. She really felt very sad over it; but the romance in the idea of that “closed chapter” did comfort her a little.

“Another chapter in my life is closed,” Anne said out loud as she locked her desk. She felt really sad about it, but the romance of the idea of that “closed chapter” did comfort her a bit.

Anne spent a fortnight at Echo Lodge early in her vacation and everybody concerned had a good time.

Anne spent two weeks at Echo Lodge early in her vacation, and everyone involved had a great time.

She took Miss Lavendar on a shopping expedition to town and persuaded her to buy a new organdy dress; then came the excitement of cutting and making it together, while the happy Charlotta the Fourth basted and swept up clippings. Miss Lavendar had complained that she could not feel much interest in anything, but the sparkle came back to her eyes over her pretty dress.

She took Miss Lavendar on a shopping trip to town and convinced her to buy a new organdy dress; then came the excitement of cutting and sewing it together, while the cheerful Charlotta the Fourth basted and cleaned up the scraps. Miss Lavendar had said she couldn’t feel much interest in anything, but the sparkle returned to her eyes when she saw her pretty dress.

“What a foolish, frivolous person I must be,” she sighed. “I’m wholesomely ashamed to think that a new dress . . . even it is a forget-me-not organdy . . . should exhilarate me so, when a good conscience and an extra contribution to Foreign Missions couldn’t do it.”

“What a silly, shallow person I must be,” she sighed. “I feel truly ashamed to think that a new dress . . . even if it is a forget-me-not organdy . . . should make me so happy, when a clear conscience and an extra contribution to Foreign Missions couldn’t do the same.”

Midway in her visit Anne went home to Green Gables for a day to mend the twins’ stockings and settle up Davy’s accumulated store of questions. In the evening she went down to the shore road to see Paul Irving. As she passed by the low, square window of the Irving sitting room she caught a glimpse of Paul on somebody’s lap; but the next moment he came flying through the hall.

Midway through her visit, Anne went back home to Green Gables for a day to fix the twins’ stockings and deal with Davy’s long list of questions. In the evening, she walked down to the shore road to see Paul Irving. As she passed by the low, square window of the Irving living room, she caught a glimpse of Paul sitting on someone’s lap; but the next moment, he came rushing through the hall.

“Oh, Miss Shirley,” he cried excitedly, “you can’t think what has happened! Something so splendid. Father is here . . . just think of that! Father is here! Come right in. Father, this is my beautiful teacher. You know, father.”

“Oh, Miss Shirley,” he exclaimed excitedly, “you won’t believe what just happened! Something amazing. Dad is here… can you imagine that? Dad is here! Come on in. Dad, this is my wonderful teacher. You know her, Dad.”

Stephen Irving came forward to meet Anne with a smile. He was a tall, handsome man of middle age, with iron-gray hair, deep-set, dark blue eyes, and a strong, sad face, splendidly modeled about chin and brow. Just the face for a hero of romance, Anne thought with a thrill of intense satisfaction. It was so disappointing to meet someone who ought to be a hero and find him bald or stooped, or otherwise lacking in manly beauty. Anne would have thought it dreadful if the object of Miss Lavendar’s romance had not looked the part.

Stephen Irving came forward to greet Anne with a smile. He was a tall, handsome man in middle age, with iron-gray hair, deep-set dark blue eyes, and a strong, sad face, perfectly shaped around his chin and brow. Just the face for a romantic hero, Anne thought with a thrill of intense satisfaction. It was so disappointing to meet someone who should be heroic and find him bald, stooped, or otherwise lacking in masculinity. Anne would have found it awful if the person Miss Lavendar was romantically interested in hadn’t looked the part.

“So this is my little son’s ‘beautiful teacher,’ of whom I have heard so much,” said Mr. Irving with a hearty handshake. “Paul’s letters have been so full of you, Miss Shirley, that I feel as if I were pretty well acquainted with you already. I want to thank you for what you have done for Paul. I think that your influence has been just what he needed. Mother is one of the best and dearest of women; but her robust, matter-of-fact Scotch common sense could not always understand a temperament like my laddie’s. What was lacking in her you have supplied. Between you, I think Paul’s training in these two past years has been as nearly ideal as a motherless boy’s could be.”

“So this is my little son’s ‘wonderful teacher,’ whom I’ve heard so much about,” said Mr. Irving with a warm handshake. “Paul’s letters have been so filled with you, Miss Shirley, that I feel like I know you quite well already. I want to thank you for everything you’ve done for Paul. I believe your influence has been exactly what he needed. His mother is one of the best and dearest women; but her strong, practical Scottish common sense couldn’t always grasp a sensitive temperament like my boy’s. What she lacked, you have provided. I think Paul’s upbringing in these past two years has been as close to ideal as it can be for a boy without a mother.”

Everybody likes to be appreciated. Under Mr. Irving’s praise Anne’s face “burst flower like into rosy bloom,” and the busy, weary man of the world, looking at her, thought he had never seen a fairer, sweeter slip of girlhood than this little “down east” schoolteacher with her red hair and wonderful eyes.

Everyone loves to be appreciated. Under Mr. Irving’s praise, Anne’s face “burst flower-like into rosy bloom,” and the busy, tired man of the world, looking at her, thought he had never seen a fairer, sweeter young girl than this little “down east” schoolteacher with her red hair and amazing eyes.

Paul sat between them blissfully happy.

Paul sat between them, feeling blissfully happy.

“I never dreamed father was coming,” he said radiantly. “Even Grandma didn’t know it. It was a great surprise. As a general thing . . .” Paul shook his brown curls gravely . . . “I don’t like to be surprised. You lose all the fun of expecting things when you’re surprised. But in a case like this it is all right. Father came last night after I had gone to bed. And after Grandma and Mary Joe had stopped being surprised he and Grandma came upstairs to look at me, not meaning to wake me up till morning. But I woke right up and saw father. I tell you I just sprang at him.”

“I never imagined Dad was coming,” he said excitedly. “Even Grandma didn’t know. It was such a surprise. Usually…” Paul shook his brown curls seriously. “I don’t like being surprised. You lose all the excitement of anticipating things when you get surprised. But in a situation like this, it’s fine. Dad arrived last night after I had gone to bed. Once Grandma and Mary Joe stopped being surprised, he and Grandma came upstairs to check on me, not intending to wake me until morning. But I woke up immediately and saw Dad. I’m telling you, I just jumped at him.”

“With a hug like a bear’s,” said Mr. Irving, putting his arms around Paul’s shoulder smilingly. “I hardly knew my boy, he had grown so big and brown and sturdy.”

“With a hug like a bear’s,” said Mr. Irving, putting his arms around Paul’s shoulders with a smile. “I hardly recognized my boy; he had grown so big, tan, and strong.”

“I don’t know which was the most pleased to see father, Grandma or I,” continued Paul. “Grandma’s been in kitchen all day making the things father likes to eat. She wouldn’t trust them to Mary Joe, she says. That’s her way of showing gladness. I like best just to sit and talk to father. But I’m going to leave you for a little while now if you’ll excuse me. I must get the cows for Mary Joe. That is one of my daily duties.”

“I don’t know who was more excited to see Dad, Grandma or me,” Paul continued. “Grandma’s been in the kitchen all day making all of Dad’s favorite foods. She wouldn’t let Mary Joe handle it, she says. That’s her way of showing she’s happy. I personally prefer just sitting and talking to Dad. But I need to step away for a bit, if that’s okay. I have to go get the cows for Mary Joe. That’s one of my daily chores.”

When Paul had scampered away to do his “daily duty” Mr. Irving talked to Anne of various matters. But Anne felt that he was thinking of something else underneath all the time. Presently it came to the surface.

When Paul had hurried off to do his "daily duty," Mr. Irving talked to Anne about various things. But Anne sensed that he was really focused on something else the whole time. Eventually, it came out.

“In Paul’s last letter he spoke of going with you to visit an old . . . friend of mine . . . Miss Lewis at the stone house in Grafton. Do you know her well?”

“In Paul’s last letter, he mentioned going with you to visit an old . . . friend of mine . . . Miss Lewis at the stone house in Grafton. Do you know her well?”

“Yes, indeed, she is a very dear friend of mine,” was Anne’s demure reply, which gave no hint of the sudden thrill that tingled over her from head to foot at Mr. Irving’s question. Anne “felt instinctively” that romance was peeping at her around a corner.

“Yes, she is a very dear friend of mine,” Anne replied shyly, not revealing the sudden thrill that coursed through her from head to toe at Mr. Irving’s question. Anne “instinctively felt” that romance was lurking just around the corner.

Mr. Irving rose and went to the window, looking out on a great, golden, billowing sea where a wild wind was harping. For a few moments there was silence in the little dark-walled room. Then he turned and looked down into Anne’s sympathetic face with a smile, half-whimsical, half-tender.

Mr. Irving got up and walked to the window, gazing out at a vast, golden, undulating sea where a fierce wind was whistling. For a moment, the small, dimly lit room was silent. Then he turned and looked down at Anne’s caring face with a smile that was both playful and loving.

“I wonder how much you know,” he said.

“I wonder how much you know,” he said.

“I know all about it,” replied Anne promptly. “You see,” she explained hastily, “Miss Lavendar and I are very intimate. She wouldn’t tell things of such a sacred nature to everybody. We are kindred spirits.”

“I know all about it,” Anne replied quickly. “You see,” she added hurriedly, “Miss Lavendar and I are really close. She wouldn’t share things of such a personal nature with just anyone. We are kindred spirits.”

“Yes, I believe you are. Well, I am going to ask a favor of you. I would like to go and see Miss Lavendar if she will let me. Will you ask her if I may come?”

“Yes, I think you are. Well, I’m going to ask you for a favor. I’d like to go visit Miss Lavendar if she’s okay with it. Will you ask her if I can come?”

Would she not? Oh, indeed she would! Yes, this was romance, the very, the real thing, with all the charm of rhyme and story and dream. It was a little belated, perhaps, like a rose blooming in October which should have bloomed in June; but none the less a rose, all sweetness and fragrance, with the gleam of gold in its heart. Never did Anne’s feet bear her on a more willing errand than on that walk through the beechwoods to Grafton the next morning. She found Miss Lavendar in the garden. Anne was fearfully excited. Her hands grew cold and her voice trembled.

Would she? Oh, absolutely she would! Yes, this was romance, the real deal, filled with all the charm of poetry, stories, and dreams. It was a bit late, maybe, like a rose blooming in October that should have blossomed in June; but it was still a rose, full of sweetness and fragrance, with a hint of gold at its core. Never had Anne walked with more enthusiasm than on that morning stroll through the beechwoods to Grafton. She found Miss Lavendar in the garden. Anne was extremely nervous. Her hands felt cold and her voice quivered.

“Miss Lavendar, I have something to tell you . . . something very important. Can you guess what it is?”

“Miss Lavendar, I have something to tell you... something really important. Can you guess what it is?”

Anne never supposed that Miss Lavendar could guess; but Miss Lavendar’s face grew very pale and Miss Lavendar said in a quiet, still voice, from which all the color and sparkle that Miss Lavendar’s voice usually suggested had faded.

Anne never thought that Miss Lavendar could guess; but Miss Lavendar’s face turned very pale and she said in a quiet, emotionless voice, from which all the color and spark that usually filled her voice had disappeared.

“Stephen Irving is home?”

“Is Stephen Irving home?”

“How did you know? Who told you?” cried Anne disappointedly, vexed that her great revelation had been anticipated.

“How did you know? Who told you?” Anne exclaimed with disappointment, frustrated that her big reveal had been spoiled.

“Nobody. I knew that must be it, just from the way you spoke.”

"Nobody. I could tell that was the case just from the way you were talking."

“He wants to come and see you,” said Anne. “May I send him word that he may?”

“He wants to come and see you,” Anne said. “Can I let him know that it’s okay?”

“Yes, of course,” fluttered Miss Lavendar. “There is no reason why he shouldn’t. He is only coming as any old friend might.”

“Yes, of course,” Miss Lavendar said excitedly. “There’s no reason he shouldn’t. He’s just coming like any old friend would.”

Anne had her own opinion about that as she hastened into the house to write a note at Miss Lavendar’s desk.

Anne had her own thoughts on that as she hurried into the house to write a note at Miss Lavendar’s desk.

“Oh, it’s delightful to be living in a storybook,” she thought gaily. “It will come out all right of course . . . it must . . . and Paul will have a mother after his own heart and everybody will be happy. But Mr. Irving will take Miss Lavendar away . . . and dear knows what will happen to the little stone house . . . and so there are two sides to it, as there seems to be to everything in this world.” The important note was written and Anne herself carried it to the Grafton post office, where she waylaid the mail carrier and asked him to leave it at the Avonlea office.

“Oh, it’s so wonderful to be living in a storybook,” she thought cheerfully. “It will all work out, of course... it has to... and Paul will have a mother he really connects with and everyone will be happy. But Mr. Irving will take Miss Lavendar away... and who knows what will happen to the little stone house... so there are two sides to everything, just like there seems to be with everything in this world.” The important note was written, and Anne herself took it to the Grafton post office, where she stopped the mail carrier and asked him to leave it at the Avonlea office.

“It’s so very important,” Anne assured him anxiously. The mail carrier was a rather grumpy old personage who did not at all look the part of a messenger of Cupid; and Anne was none too certain that his memory was to be trusted. But he said he would do his best to remember and she had to be contented with that.

“It’s really important,” Anne said anxiously. The mail carrier was a pretty grumpy old guy who didn’t look at all like a messenger of Cupid; and Anne wasn’t too sure that his memory could be trusted. But he said he would do his best to remember, and she had to be satisfied with that.

Charlotta the Fourth felt that some mystery pervaded the stone house that afternoon . . . a mystery from which she was excluded. Miss Lavendar roamed about the garden in a distracted fashion. Anne, too, seemed possessed by a demon of unrest, and walked to and fro and went up and down. Charlotta the Fourth endured it till patience ceased to be a virtue; then she confronted Anne on the occasion of that romantic young person’s third aimless peregrination through the kitchen.

Charlotta the Fourth sensed that there was something mysterious about the stone house that afternoon... a mystery that she couldn't be part of. Miss Lavendar wandered around the garden absentmindedly. Anne also seemed restless and paced back and forth, going up and down. Charlotta the Fourth put up with it until her patience ran out; then she confronted Anne during the romantic young woman's third aimless stroll through the kitchen.

“Please, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” said Charlotta the Fourth, with an indignant toss of her very blue bows, “it’s plain to be seen you and Miss Lavendar have got a secret and I think, begging your pardon if I’m too forward, Miss Shirley, ma’am, that it’s real mean not to tell me when we’ve all been such chums.”

“Please, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” said Charlotta the Fourth, tossing her very blue bows in indignation, “it’s obvious that you and Miss Lavendar have a secret, and I think, excuse me if I’m being too forward, Miss Shirley, ma’am, that it’s really unfair not to tell me when we’ve all been such good friends.”

“Oh, Charlotta dear, I’d have told you all about it if it were my secret . . . but it’s Miss Lavendar’s, you see. However, I’ll tell you this much . . . and if nothing comes of it you must never breathe a word about it to a living soul. You see, Prince Charming is coming tonight. He came long ago, but in a foolish moment went away and wandered afar and forgot the secret of the magic pathway to the enchanted castle, where the princess was weeping her faithful heart out for him. But at last he remembered it again and the princess is waiting still. . . because nobody but her own dear prince could carry her off.”

“Oh, Charlotta dear, I would have told you everything if it were my secret... but it’s Miss Lavendar’s, you know. However, I’ll share this much with you... and if nothing comes of it, you must never speak of it to anyone. You see, Prince Charming is coming tonight. He came a long time ago, but in a foolish moment, he left and wandered off, forgetting the secret of the magic path to the enchanted castle, where the princess was heartbroken, waiting for him. But finally, he remembered it again, and the princess is still waiting... because only her true prince can take her away.”

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, what is that in prose?” gasped the mystified Charlotta.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, what is that in prose?” gasped the puzzled Charlotta.

Anne laughed.

Anne chuckled.

“In prose, an old friend of Miss Lavendar’s is coming to see her tonight.”

“In prose, an old friend of Miss Lavendar’s is coming to visit her tonight.”

“Do you mean an old beau of hers?” demanded the literal Charlotta.

“Are you talking about an old boyfriend of hers?” asked the literal Charlotta.

“That is probably what I do mean . . . in prose,” answered Anne gravely. “It is Paul’s father . . . Stephen Irving. And goodness knows what will come of it, but let us hope for the best, Charlotta.”

"That's probably what I mean... in prose," Anne replied seriously. "It's Paul’s dad... Stephen Irving. And who knows what will come of it, but let’s hope for the best, Charlotta."

“I hope that he’ll marry Miss Lavendar,” was Charlotta’s unequivocal response. “Some women’s intended from the start to be old maids, and I’m afraid I’m one of them, Miss Shirley, ma’am, because I’ve awful little patience with the men. But Miss Lavendar never was. And I’ve been awful worried, thinking what on earth she’d do when I got so big I’d have to go to Boston. There ain’t any more girls in our family and dear knows what she’d do if she got some stranger that might laugh at her pretendings and leave things lying round out of their place and not be willing to be called Charlotta the Fifth. She might get someone who wouldn’t be as unlucky as me in breaking dishes but she’d never get anyone who’d love her better.”

“I hope he marries Miss Lavendar,” was Charlotta’s clear answer. “Some women are meant to be old maids from the start, and I’m afraid I’m one of them, Miss Shirley, because I have very little patience with men. But Miss Lavendar never was. I’ve been really worried, thinking about what she would do when I got so big that I’d have to go to Boston. There aren’t any more girls in our family, and God knows what she’d do if she got some stranger who might laugh at her pretendings and leave things lying around out of place and wouldn’t want to be called Charlotta the Fifth. She might find someone who wouldn’t be as unlucky as I am at breaking dishes, but she’d never get anyone who would love her more.”

And the faithful little handmaiden dashed to the oven door with a sniff.

And the loyal little servant hurried to the oven door with a sniff.

They went through the form of having tea as usual that night at Echo Lodge; but nobody really ate anything. After tea Miss Lavendar went to her room and put on her new forget-me-not organdy, while Anne did her hair for her. Both were dreadfully excited; but Miss Lavendar pretended to be very calm and indifferent.

They went through the usual routine of having tea that night at Echo Lodge, but nobody actually ate anything. After tea, Miss Lavendar went to her room and put on her new forget-me-not organdy dress while Anne styled her hair. Both were extremely excited, but Miss Lavendar acted very calm and indifferent.

“I must really mend that rent in the curtain tomorrow,” she said anxiously, inspecting it as if it were the only thing of any importance just then. “Those curtains have not worn as well as they should, considering the price I paid. Dear me, Charlotta has forgotten to dust the stair railing again. I really must speak to her about it.”

“I really need to fix that tear in the curtain tomorrow,” she said anxiously, looking at it as if it were the only thing that mattered at that moment. “Those curtains haven't held up as well as they should, given how much I paid. Oh dear, Charlotta has forgotten to dust the stair railing again. I really have to talk to her about it.”

Anne was sitting on the porch steps when Stephen Irving came down the lane and across the garden.

Anne was sitting on the porch steps when Stephen Irving walked down the lane and across the garden.

“This is the one place where time stands still,” he said, looking around him with delighted eyes. “There is nothing changed about this house or garden since I was here twenty-five years ago. It makes me feel young again.”

“This is the one place where time stands still,” he said, looking around with delighted eyes. “Nothing has changed about this house or garden since I was here twenty-five years ago. It makes me feel young again.”

“You know time always does stand still in an enchanted palace,” said Anne seriously. “It is only when the prince comes that things begin to happen.”

“You know time always stands still in a magical palace,” said Anne seriously. “It’s only when the prince arrives that things start to happen.”

Mr. Irving smiled a little sadly into her uplifted face, all astar with its youth and promise.

Mr. Irving smiled a little sadly into her lifted face, shining with its youth and promise.

“Sometimes the prince comes too late,” he said. He did not ask Anne to translate her remark into prose. Like all kindred spirits he “understood.”

“Sometimes the prince shows up too late,” he said. He didn’t ask Anne to put her comment into words. Like all kindred spirits, he “got it.”

“Oh, no, not if he is the real prince coming to the true princess,” said Anne, shaking her red head decidedly, as she opened the parlor door. When he had gone in she shut it tightly behind him and turned to confront Charlotta the Fourth, who was in the hall, all “nods and becks and wreathed smiles.”

“Oh, no, definitely not if he’s the real prince coming for the true princess,” said Anne, shaking her red head firmly as she opened the parlor door. Once he went in, she shut it tightly behind him and turned to face Charlotta the Fourth, who was in the hall, full of “nods and gestures and beaming smiles.”

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” she breathed, “I peeked from the kitchen window . . . and he’s awful handsome . . . and just the right age for Miss Lavendar. And oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, do you think it would be much harm to listen at the door?”

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma'am,” she whispered, “I looked out from the kitchen window... and he's really handsome... and just the right age for Miss Lavendar. And oh, Miss Shirley, ma'am, do you think it would be too much trouble to listen at the door?”

“It would be dreadful, Charlotta,” said Anne firmly, “so just you come away with me out of the reach of temptation.”

“It would be awful, Charlotta,” said Anne firmly, “so just come away with me, away from temptation.”

“I can’t do anything, and it’s awful to hang round just waiting,” sighed Charlotta. “What if he don’t propose after all, Miss Shirley, ma’am? You can never be sure of them men. My older sister, Charlotta the First, thought she was engaged to one once. But it turned out he had a different opinion and she says she’ll never trust one of them again. And I heard of another case where a man thought he wanted one girl awful bad when it was really her sister he wanted all the time. When a man don’t know his own mind, Miss Shirley, ma’am, how’s a poor woman going to be sure of it?”

“I can’t do anything, and it’s terrible to just sit around waiting,” sighed Charlotta. “What if he doesn’t propose after all, Miss Shirley? You can never be sure about those men. My older sister, Charlotta the First, thought she was engaged to one guy once. But it turned out he had a different idea, and she says she’ll never trust another one again. I also heard about another situation where a guy thought he wanted one girl really badly when it was actually her sister he wanted all along. When a man doesn’t know what he wants, Miss Shirley, how’s a poor woman supposed to feel secure?”

“We’ll go to the kitchen and clean the silver spoons,” said Anne. “That’s a task which won’t require much thinking fortunately . . . for I couldn’t think tonight. And it will pass the time.”

“We’ll head to the kitchen and clean the silver spoons,” said Anne. “That’s a job that won’t take much thought, luckily . . . because I can’t think tonight. And it will help pass the time.”

It passed an hour. Then, just as Anne laid down the last shining spoon, they heard the front door shut. Both sought comfort fearfully in each other’s eyes.

It had been an hour. Then, just as Anne finished laying down the last shiny spoon, they heard the front door close. Both looked to each other’s eyes for comfort, filled with fear.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” gasped Charlotta, “if he’s going away this early there’s nothing into it and never will be.” They flew to the window. Mr. Irving had no intention of going away. He and Miss Lavendar were strolling slowly down the middle path to the stone bench.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” gasped Charlotta, “if he’s leaving this early, there’s nothing to it and never will be.” They rushed to the window. Mr. Irving had no plans of leaving. He and Miss Lavendar were walking slowly down the middle path to the stone bench.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, he’s got his arm around her waist,” whispered Charlotta the Fourth delightedly. “He must have proposed to her or she’d never allow it.”

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, he’s got his arm around her waist,” whispered Charlotta the Fourth excitedly. “He must have proposed to her or she’d never let him do that.”

Anne caught Charlotta the Fourth by her own plump waist and danced her around the kitchen until they were both out of breath.

Anne grabbed Charlotta the Fourth by her plump waist and twirled her around the kitchen until they were both breathless.

“Oh, Charlotta,” she cried gaily, “I’m neither a prophetess nor the daughter of a prophetess but I’m going to make a prediction. There’ll be a wedding in this old stone house before the maple leaves are red. Do you want that translated into prose, Charlotta?”

“Oh, Charlotta,” she said cheerfully, “I’m not a fortune-teller or the daughter of one, but I’m going to make a prediction. There will be a wedding in this old stone house before the maple leaves turn red. Do you want that in regular words, Charlotta?”

“No, I can understand that,” said Charlotta. “A wedding ain’t poetry. Why, Miss Shirley, ma’am, you’re crying! What for?”

“No, I get that,” said Charlotta. “A wedding isn’t poetry. Why are you crying, Miss Shirley?”

“Oh, because it’s all so beautiful . . . and story bookish . . . and romantic . . . and sad,” said Anne, winking the tears out of her eyes. “It’s all perfectly lovely . . . but there’s a little sadness mixed up in it too, somehow.”

“Oh, because it’s all so beautiful . . . and like a storybook . . . and romantic . . . and sad,” said Anne, blinking the tears out of her eyes. “It’s all perfectly lovely . . . but there’s a bit of sadness mixed in too, somehow.”

“Oh, of course there’s a resk in marrying anybody,” conceded Charlotta the Fourth, “but, when all’s said and done, Miss Shirley, ma’am, there’s many a worse thing than a husband.”

“Oh, of course there’s a risk in marrying anyone,” admitted Charlotta the Fourth, “but, when all’s said and done, Miss Shirley, ma’am, there are plenty of worse things than having a husband.”

XXIX
Poetry and Prose

For the next month Anne lived in what, for Avonlea, might be called a whirl of excitement. The preparation of her own modest outfit for Redmond was of secondary importance. Miss Lavendar was getting ready to be married and the stone house was the scene of endless consultations and plannings and discussions, with Charlotta the Fourth hovering on the outskirts of things in agitated delight and wonder. Then the dressmaker came, and there was the rapture and wretchedness of choosing fashions and being fitted. Anne and Diana spent half their time at Echo Lodge and there were nights when Anne could not sleep for wondering whether she had done right in advising Miss Lavendar to select brown rather than navy blue for her traveling dress, and to have her gray silk made princess.

For the next month, Anne experienced what could be called a whirlwind of excitement for Avonlea. Preparing her own simple outfit for Redmond took a backseat. Miss Lavendar was getting ready to marry, and the stone house was filled with endless meetings, planning sessions, and discussions, with Charlotta the Fourth anxiously observing from the sidelines. Then the dressmaker arrived, bringing both joy and frustration as they chose styles and fit the dresses. Anne and Diana spent a lot of time at Echo Lodge, and there were nights when Anne couldn’t sleep, wondering if she made the right call advising Miss Lavendar to pick brown instead of navy blue for her traveling dress, and to have her gray silk made in a princess style.

Everybody concerned in Miss Lavendar’s story was very happy. Paul Irving rushed to Green Gables to talk the news over with Anne as soon as his father had told him.

Everybody involved in Miss Lavendar’s story was really happy. Paul Irving rushed to Green Gables to discuss the news with Anne as soon as his father told him.

“I knew I could trust father to pick me out a nice little second mother,” he said proudly. “It’s a fine thing to have a father you can depend on, teacher. I just love Miss Lavendar. Grandma is pleased, too. She says she’s real glad father didn’t pick out an American for his second wife, because, although it turned out all right the first time, such a thing wouldn’t be likely to happen twice. Mrs. Lynde says she thoroughly approves of the match and thinks its likely Miss Lavendar will give up her queer notions and be like other people, now that she’s going to be married. But I hope she won’t give her queer notions up, teacher, because I like them. And I don’t want her to be like other people. There are too many other people around as it is. You know, teacher.”

“I knew I could trust Dad to pick me a nice second mom,” he said proudly. “It’s great to have a dad you can count on, teacher. I really love Miss Lavendar. Grandma is happy, too. She says she’s really glad Dad didn’t choose an American for his second wife, because, even though it worked out okay the first time, it probably wouldn’t happen like that again. Mrs. Lynde says she totally approves of the match and thinks Miss Lavendar will probably give up her quirky ideas and act like everyone else now that she’s getting married. But I hope she doesn’t give up her quirky ideas, teacher, because I like them. And I don’t want her to be like everyone else. There are already too many people like that around. You know, teacher.”

Charlotta the Fourth was another radiant person.

Charlotta the Fourth was another bright person.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, it has all turned out so beautiful. When Mr. Irving and Miss Lavendar come back from their tower I’m to go up to Boston and live with them . . . and me only fifteen, and the other girls never went till they were sixteen. Ain’t Mr. Irving splendid? He just worships the ground she treads on and it makes me feel so queer sometimes to see the look in his eyes when he’s watching her. It beggars description, Miss Shirley, ma’am. I’m awful thankful they’re so fond of each other. It’s the best way, when all’s said and done, though some folks can get along without it. I’ve got an aunt who has been married three times and says she married the first time for love and the last two times for strictly business, and was happy with all three except at the times of the funerals. But I think she took a resk, Miss Shirley, ma’am.”

“Oh, Miss Shirley, it all turned out so beautiful. When Mr. Irving and Miss Lavendar come back from their trip, I’m going to go to Boston and live with them... and I’m only fifteen, while the other girls never went until they were sixteen. Isn’t Mr. Irving amazing? He totally adores her, and it makes me feel so strange sometimes to see the look in his eyes when he’s watching her. It’s hard to describe, Miss Shirley. I’m really thankful they’re so in love. It’s the best way, really, even though some people can manage without it. I have an aunt who’s been married three times and says she married the first time for love and the last two times purely for practical reasons, and she was happy with all three except during the funerals. But I think she took a risk, Miss Shirley.”

“Oh, it’s all so romantic,” breathed Anne to Marilla that night. “If I hadn’t taken the wrong path that day we went to Mr. Kimball’s I’d never have known Miss Lavendar; and if I hadn’t met her I’d never have taken Paul there . . . and he’d never have written to his father about visiting Miss Lavendar just as Mr. Irving was starting for San Francisco. Mr. Irving says whenever he got that letter he made up his mind to send his partner to San Francisco and come here instead. He hadn’t heard anything of Miss Lavendar for fifteen years. Somebody had told him then that she was to be married and he thought she was and never asked anybody anything about her. And now everything has come right. And I had a hand in bringing it about. Perhaps, as Mrs. Lynde says, everything is foreordained and it was bound to happen anyway. But even so, it’s nice to think one was an instrument used by predestination. Yes indeed, it’s very romantic.”

“Oh, it’s all so romantic,” Anne said to Marilla that night. “If I hadn’t taken the wrong path that day we went to Mr. Kimball’s, I’d never have met Miss Lavendar; and if I hadn’t met her, I’d never have taken Paul there . . . and he would never have written to his dad about visiting Miss Lavendar just as Mr. Irving was leaving for San Francisco. Mr. Irving says that when he got that letter, he decided to send his partner to San Francisco and come here instead. He hadn’t heard anything about Miss Lavendar for fifteen years. Someone had told him back then that she was going to get married, and he thought she was, so he never asked anyone about her. And now everything has worked out. I played a part in making it happen. Maybe, as Mrs. Lynde says, everything is predetermined and it was meant to happen anyway. But even so, it’s nice to think you were an instrument used by fate. Yes, it’s very romantic.”

“I can’t see that it’s so terribly romantic at all,” said Marilla rather crisply. Marilla thought Anne was too worked up about it and had plenty to do with getting ready for college without “traipsing” to Echo Lodge two days out of three helping Miss Lavendar. “In the first place two young fools quarrel and turn sulky; then Steve Irving goes to the States and after a spell gets married up there and is perfectly happy from all accounts. Then his wife dies and after a decent interval he thinks he’ll come home and see if his first fancy’ll have him. Meanwhile, she’s been living single, probably because nobody nice enough came along to want her, and they meet and agree to be married after all. Now, where is the romance in all that?”

“I don’t see what’s so incredibly romantic about it,” said Marilla rather sharply. Marilla thought Anne was making too big of a deal out of it and had enough to focus on getting ready for college without “running off” to Echo Lodge two days out of three to help Miss Lavendar. “First, two young fools argue and get moody; then Steve Irving goes to the States and after a while gets married there and is supposedly very happy. Then his wife dies, and after a reasonable amount of time, he decides to come back and see if his first crush will take him back. Meanwhile, she’s been single, probably because no one good enough showed up to want her, and they meet and decide to get married after all. Now, where’s the romance in any of that?”

“Oh, there isn’t any, when you put it that way,” gasped Anne, rather as if somebody had thrown cold water over her. “I suppose that’s how it looks in prose. But it’s very different if you look at it through poetry . . . and I think it’s nicer . . .” Anne recovered herself and her eyes shone and her cheeks flushed . . . “to look at it through poetry.”

“Oh, there isn’t any when you put it that way,” gasped Anne, as if someone had just splashed her with cold water. “I guess that’s how it seems in prose. But it’s really different when you see it through poetry... and I think it’s nicer... ” Anne regained her composure, her eyes shining and her cheeks flushed... “to see it through poetry.”

Marilla glanced at the radiant young face and refrained from further sarcastic comments. Perhaps some realization came to her that after all it was better to have, like Anne, “the vision and the faculty divine” . . . that gift which the world cannot bestow or take away, of looking at life through some transfiguring . . . or revealing? . . . medium, whereby everything seemed apparelled in celestial light, wearing a glory and a freshness not visible to those who, like herself and Charlotta the Fourth, looked at things only through prose.

Marilla looked at the shining young face and held back any more sarcastic remarks. Maybe she started to realize that it was better to have, like Anne, “the vision and the faculty divine”... that special gift which the world can neither give nor take away, of seeing life through some transforming... or revealing?... lens, making everything appear draped in heavenly light, exuding a glory and freshness that wasn't visible to those who, like her and Charlotta the Fourth, viewed things only through plain reality.

“When’s the wedding to be?” she asked after a pause.

“When’s the wedding?” she asked after a pause.

“The last Wednesday in August. They are to be married in the garden under the honeysuckle trellis . . . the very spot where Mr. Irving proposed to her twenty-five years ago. Marilla, that is romantic, even in prose. There’s to be nobody there except Mrs. Irving and Paul and Gilbert and Diana and I, and Miss Lavendar’s cousins. And they will leave on the six o’clock train for a trip to the Pacific coast. When they come back in the fall Paul and Charlotta the Fourth are to go up to Boston to live with them. But Echo Lodge is to be left just as it is. . . only of course they’ll sell the hens and cow, and board up the windows . . . and every summer they’re coming down to live in it. I’m so glad. It would have hurt me dreadfully next winter at Redmond to think of that dear stone house all stripped and deserted, with empty rooms . . . or far worse still, with other people living in it. But I can think of it now, just as I’ve always seen it, waiting happily for the summer to bring life and laughter back to it again.”

“The last Wednesday in August. They’re getting married in the garden under the honeysuckle trellis... the exact spot where Mr. Irving proposed to her twenty-five years ago. Marilla, that is romantic, even in writing. There will be nobody there except Mrs. Irving, Paul, Gilbert, Diana, and me, along with Miss Lavendar’s cousins. They’ll leave on the six o’clock train for a trip to the Pacific coast. When they return in the fall, Paul and Charlotta the Fourth will move to Boston to live with them. But Echo Lodge will stay just as it is... except of course they’ll sell the hens and cow and board up the windows... and every summer they’ll come back to live in it. I’m so glad. It would have broken my heart next winter at Redmond to think of that dear stone house all empty and abandoned, with vacant rooms... or even worse, with other people living in it. But I can picture it now, just as I’ve always seen it, waiting joyfully for summer to bring life and laughter back to it again.”

There was more romance in the world than that which had fallen to the share of the middle-aged lovers of the stone house. Anne stumbled suddenly on it one evening when she went over to Orchard Slope by the wood cut and came out into the Barry garden. Diana Barry and Fred Wright were standing together under the big willow. Diana was leaning against the gray trunk, her lashes cast down on very crimson cheeks. One hand was held by Fred, who stood with his face bent toward her, stammering something in low earnest tones. There were no other people in the world except their two selves at that magic moment; so neither of them saw Anne, who, after one dazed glance of comprehension, turned and sped noiselessly back through the spruce wood, never stopping till she gained her own gable room, where she sat breathlessly down by her window and tried to collect her scattered wits.

There was more romance in the world than what the middle-aged lovers in the stone house experienced. One evening, Anne unexpectedly encountered it when she went over to Orchard Slope by the woodcut and stepped into the Barry garden. Diana Barry and Fred Wright were standing together beneath the big willow tree. Diana leaned against the gray trunk, her lashes lowered over very crimson cheeks. Fred held one of her hands, leaning in to her as he nervously stammered something in hushed tones. In that magical moment, there was no one else in the world but the two of them; neither noticed Anne, who, after one stunned glance of realization, turned and quietly hurried back through the spruce wood, not stopping until she reached her own gable room. There, she sat breathlessly by her window, trying to gather her scattered thoughts.

“Diana and Fred are in love with each other,” she gasped. “Oh, it does seem so . . . so . . . so hopelessly grown up.”

“Diana and Fred are in love with each other,” she gasped. “Oh, it really does feel so . . . so . . . so hopelessly grown up.”

Anne, of late, had not been without her suspicions that Diana was proving false to the melancholy Byronic hero of her early dreams. But as “things seen are mightier than things heard,” or suspected, the realization that it was actually so came to her with almost the shock of perfect surprise. This was succeeded by a queer, little lonely feeling . . . as if, somehow, Diana had gone forward into a new world, shutting a gate behind her, leaving Anne on the outside.

Anne had recently suspected that Diana was betraying the brooding Byronic hero of her early dreams. But, as the saying goes, “seeing is believing,” the moment she realized it was true hit her like a surprising shock. This was followed by a strange, lonely feeling... as if, somehow, Diana had stepped into a new world, closing a gate behind her and leaving Anne on the outside.

“Things are changing so fast it almost frightens me,” Anne thought, a little sadly. “And I’m afraid that this can’t help making some difference between Diana and me. I’m sure I can’t tell her all my secrets after this . . . she might tell Fred. And what can she see in Fred? He’s very nice and jolly . . . but he’s just Fred Wright.”

“Things are changing so quickly it almost scares me,” Anne thought, feeling a bit sad. “And I’m worried that this will create some distance between Diana and me. I just know I can’t share all my secrets with her anymore... she might tell Fred. And what does she even see in Fred? He’s really nice and cheerful... but he’s just Fred Wright.”

It is always a very puzzling question . . . what can somebody see in somebody else? But how fortunate after all that it is so, for if everybody saw alike . . . well, in that case, as the old Indian said, “Everybody would want my squaw.” It was plain that Diana did see something in Fred Wright, however Anne’s eyes might be holden. Diana came to Green Gables the next evening, a pensive, shy young lady, and told Anne the whole story in the dusky seclusion of the east gable. Both girls cried and kissed and laughed.

It’s always a really confusing question... what can someone see in someone else? But how lucky it is that it’s like this, because if everyone saw things the same way… well, as the old Indian said, “Everyone would want my squaw.” It was clear that Diana did see something in Fred Wright, even if Anne couldn’t. Diana came to Green Gables the next evening, a thoughtful, shy young woman, and shared the whole story with Anne in the quiet dimness of the east gable. Both girls cried, kissed, and laughed.

“I’m so happy,” said Diana, “but it does seem ridiculous to think of me being engaged.”

“I’m so happy,” Diana said, “but it does seem silly to think about me being engaged.”

“What is it really like to be engaged?” asked Anne curiously.

“What is it really like to be engaged?” Anne asked with curiosity.

“Well, that all depends on who you’re engaged to,” answered Diana, with that maddening air of superior wisdom always assumed by those who are engaged over those who are not. “It’s perfectly lovely to be engaged to Fred . . . but I think it would be simply horrid to be engaged to anyone else.”

“Well, that all depends on who you’re engaged to,” Diana replied, with that annoying sense of superiority that those who are engaged always seem to have over those who aren’t. “It’s absolutely lovely to be engaged to Fred . . . but I think it would be just awful to be engaged to anyone else.”

“There’s not much comfort for the rest of us in that, seeing that there is only one Fred,” laughed Anne.

“There's not much comfort for the rest of us in that, considering there’s only one Fred,” laughed Anne.

“Oh, Anne, you don’t understand,” said Diana in vexation. “I didn’t mean that . . . it’s so hard to explain. Never mind, you’ll understand sometime, when your own turn comes.”

“Oh, Anne, you don’t get it,” Diana said, frustrated. “I didn’t mean that . . . it’s really hard to explain. Forget it, you’ll understand someday when it’s your turn.”

“Bless you, dearest of Dianas, I understand now. What is an imagination for if not to enable you to peep at life through other people’s eyes?”

“Bless you, dearest Diana, I get it now. What’s imagination for if not to let you see life through other people’s eyes?”

“You must be my bridesmaid, you know, Anne. Promise me that . . . wherever you may be when I’m married.”

“You have to be my bridesmaid, okay, Anne? Promise me that... wherever you are when I get married.”

“I’ll come from the ends of the earth if necessary,” promised Anne solemnly.

“I’ll come from the ends of the earth if I have to,” Anne promised seriously.

“Of course, it won’t be for ever so long yet,” said Diana, blushing. “Three years at the very least . . . for I’m only eighteen and mother says no daughter of hers shall be married before she’s twenty-one. Besides, Fred’s father is going to buy the Abraham Fletcher farm for him and he says he’s got to have it two thirds paid for before he’ll give it to him in his own name. But three years isn’t any too much time to get ready for housekeeping, for I haven’t a speck of fancy work made yet. But I’m going to begin crocheting doilies tomorrow. Myra Gillis had thirty-seven doilies when she was married and I’m determined I shall have as many as she had.”

“Of course, it won’t be for a while yet,” said Diana, blushing. “At least three years... because I’m only eighteen and my mom says no daughter of hers can get married before she’s twenty-one. Plus, Fred’s dad is buying the Abraham Fletcher farm for him, and he says Fred needs to have two-thirds of it paid off before it can be in his name. But three years isn’t too long to prepare for housekeeping since I haven’t made any fancy work yet. I’m going to start crocheting doilies tomorrow. Myra Gillis had thirty-seven doilies when she got married, and I’m determined to have at least as many as she did.”

“I suppose it would be perfectly impossible to keep house with only thirty-six doilies,” conceded Anne, with a solemn face but dancing eyes.

“I guess it would be totally impossible to manage a household with just thirty-six doilies,” Anne admitted, looking serious but her eyes sparkling with joy.

Diana looked hurt.

Diana looked upset.

“I didn’t think you’d make fun of me, Anne,” she said reproachfully.

“I didn’t think you’d make fun of me, Anne,” she said, feeling hurt.

“Dearest, I wasn’t making fun of you,” cried Anne repentantly. “I was only teasing you a bit. I think you’ll make the sweetest little housekeeper in the world. And I think it’s perfectly lovely of you to be planning already for your home o’dreams.”

“Sweetheart, I wasn’t mocking you,” Anne exclaimed apologetically. “I was just teasing you a little. I truly believe you’ll be the sweetest housekeeper ever. And I think it’s absolutely wonderful that you’re already planning for your dream home.”

Anne had no sooner uttered the phrase, “home o’dreams,” than it captivated her fancy and she immediately began the erection of one of her own. It was, of course, tenanted by an ideal master, dark, proud, and melancholy; but oddly enough, Gilbert Blythe persisted in hanging about too, helping her arrange pictures, lay out gardens, and accomplish sundry other tasks which a proud and melancholy hero evidently considered beneath his dignity. Anne tried to banish Gilbert’s image from her castle in Spain but, somehow, he went on being there, so Anne, being in a hurry, gave up the attempt and pursued her aerial architecture with such success that her “home o’dreams” was built and furnished before Diana spoke again.

Anne had barely said the words, “home of dreams,” when it captivated her imagination, and she immediately started building one of her own. Naturally, it was inhabited by an ideal master, dark, proud, and brooding; but strangely enough, Gilbert Blythe kept hanging around too, helping her arrange pictures, plan gardens, and handle other tasks that a proud and moody hero obviously thought were beneath him. Anne tried to push Gilbert’s image out of her dream house, but somehow he remained, so Anne, in a rush, gave up on that and continued her imaginative building with such success that her “home of dreams” was completed and furnished before Diana spoke again.

“I suppose, Anne, you must think it’s funny I should like Fred so well when he’s so different from the kind of man I’ve always said I would marry . . . the tall, slender kind? But somehow I wouldn’t want Fred to be tall and slender . . . because, don’t you see, he wouldn’t be Fred then. Of course,” added Diana rather dolefully, “we will be a dreadfully pudgy couple. But after all that’s better than one of us being short and fat and the other tall and lean, like Morgan Sloane and his wife. Mrs. Lynde says it always makes her think of the long and short of it when she sees them together.”

“I guess, Anne, you must think it’s funny that I like Fred so much even though he’s so different from the type of guy I’ve always said I’d marry… the tall, slender type? But honestly, I wouldn’t want Fred to be tall and slender… because, don’t you see, he wouldn’t be Fred then. Of course,” Diana added a bit sadly, “we’ll be a pretty pudgy couple. But still, that’s better than one of us being short and fat and the other tall and skinny, like Morgan Sloane and his wife. Mrs. Lynde says it always reminds her of the long and short of it when she sees them together.”

“Well,” said Anne to herself that night, as she brushed her hair before her gilt framed mirror, “I am glad Diana is so happy and satisfied. But when my turn comes . . . if it ever does . . . I do hope there’ll be something a little more thrilling about it. But then Diana thought so too, once. I’ve heard her say time and again she’d never get engaged any poky commonplace way . . . he’d have to do something splendid to win her. But she has changed. Perhaps I’ll change too. But I won’t . . . and I’m determined I won’t. Oh, I think these engagements are dreadfully unsettling things when they happen to your intimate friends.”

“Well,” Anne said to herself that night, as she brushed her hair in front of her gilded mirror, “I’m really happy for Diana and how satisfied she is. But when my time comes… if it ever does… I hope there’s something a bit more exciting about it. But then again, Diana thought that way once too. I’ve heard her say over and over that she’d never get engaged in any boring, ordinary way… he’d have to do something amazing to win her. But she has changed. Maybe I’ll change too. But I won’t… and I’m determined not to. Oh, I think these engagements are just terribly unsettling when they happen to people you’re close to.”

XXX
A Wedding at the Stone House

The last week in August came. Miss Lavendar was to be married in it. Two weeks later Anne and Gilbert would leave for Redmond College. In a week’s time Mrs. Rachel Lynde would move to Green Gables and set up her lares and penates in the erstwhile spare room, which was already prepared for her coming. She had sold all her superfluous household plenishings by auction and was at present reveling in the congenial occupation of helping the Allans pack up. Mr. Allan was to preach his farewell sermon the next Sunday. The old order was changing rapidly to give place to the new, as Anne felt with a little sadness threading all her excitement and happiness.

The last week of August arrived. Miss Lavendar was getting married that week. Two weeks later, Anne and Gilbert would leave for Redmond College. In a week, Mrs. Rachel Lynde would move to Green Gables and settle into the former spare room, which was already ready for her arrival. She had sold all her unnecessary household items at auction and was currently enjoying the fitting task of helping the Allans pack up. Mr. Allan was set to give his farewell sermon the following Sunday. The old ways were quickly changing to make room for the new, and Anne felt a hint of sadness mixed in with her excitement and happiness.

“Changes ain’t totally pleasant but they’re excellent things,” said Mr. Harrison philosophically. “Two years is about long enough for things to stay exactly the same. If they stayed put any longer they might grow mossy.”

“Changes aren’t always pleasant, but they’re great things,” Mr. Harrison said thoughtfully. “Two years is about long enough for things to remain exactly the same. If they stayed that way much longer, they might get all mossy.”

Mr. Harrison was smoking on his veranda. His wife had self-sacrificingly told that he might smoke in the house if he took care to sit by an open window. Mr. Harrison rewarded this concession by going outdoors altogether to smoke in fine weather, and so mutual goodwill reigned.

Mr. Harrison was smoking on his porch. His wife had selflessly told him that he could smoke in the house if he made sure to sit by an open window. Mr. Harrison appreciated this compromise by choosing to go outside to smoke during nice weather, and as a result, there was a spirit of goodwill between them.

Anne had come over to ask Mrs. Harrison for some of her yellow dahlias. She and Diana were going through to Echo Lodge that evening to help Miss Lavendar and Charlotta the Fourth with their final preparations for the morrow’s bridal. Miss Lavendar herself never had dahlias; she did not like them and they would not have suited the fine retirement of her old-fashioned garden. But flowers of any kind were rather scarce in Avonlea and the neighboring districts that summer, thanks to Uncle Abe’s storm; and Anne and Diana thought that a certain old cream-colored stone jug, usually kept sacred to doughnuts, brimmed over with yellow dahlias, would be just the thing to set in a dim angle of the stone house stairs, against the dark background of red hall paper.

Anne had come over to ask Mrs. Harrison for some of her yellow dahlias. She and Diana were heading to Echo Lodge that evening to help Miss Lavendar and Charlotta the Fourth with their final preparations for tomorrow's wedding. Miss Lavendar herself never grew dahlias; she didn't like them and they wouldn’t have suited the refined charm of her old-fashioned garden. However, flowers of any kind were pretty scarce in Avonlea and the surrounding areas that summer, thanks to Uncle Abe’s storm. Anne and Diana thought that an old cream-colored stone jug, usually reserved for doughnuts, filled to the brim with yellow dahlias, would be perfect to place in a quiet corner of the stone house stairs, contrasting beautifully against the dark red wallpaper.

“I s’pose you’ll be starting off for college in a fortnight’s time?” continued Mr. Harrison. “Well, we’re going to miss you an awful lot, Emily and me. To be sure, Mrs. Lynde’ll be over there in your place. There ain’t nobody but a substitute can be found for them.”

“I guess you’ll be heading off to college in two weeks?” Mr. Harrison continued. “Well, Emily and I are really going to miss you. Of course, Mrs. Lynde will be over there in your place. No one can replace them except a substitute.”

The irony of Mr. Harrison’s tone is quite untransferable to paper. In spite of his wife’s intimacy with Mrs. Lynde, the best that could be said of the relationship between her and Mr. Harrison even under the new regime, was that they preserved an armed neutrality.

The irony of Mr. Harrison's tone is hard to capture on paper. Despite his wife's closeness with Mrs. Lynde, the best that could be said about the relationship between her and Mr. Harrison, even with the new setup, was that they maintained a tense peace.

“Yes, I’m going,” said Anne. “I’m very glad with my head . . . and very sorry with my heart.”

“Yes, I’m going,” said Anne. “I’m really happy in my head . . . and really sad in my heart.”

“I s’pose you’ll be scooping up all the honors that are lying round loose at Redmond.”

“I guess you’ll be collecting all the awards that are just hanging around at Redmond.”

“I may try for one or two of them,” confessed Anne, “but I don’t care so much for things like that as I did two years ago. What I want to get out of my college course is some knowledge of the best way of living life and doing the most and best with it. I want to learn to understand and help other people and myself.”

“I might go for one or two of them,” Anne admitted, “but I'm not as interested in things like that as I was two years ago. What I want to gain from my college experience is some understanding of how to live life well and make the most out of it. I want to learn how to understand and help both other people and myself.”

Mr. Harrison nodded.

Mr. Harrison nodded.

“That’s the idea exactly. That’s what college ought to be for, instead of for turning out a lot of B.A.‘s, so chock full of book-learning and vanity that there ain’t room for anything else. You’re all right. College won’t be able to do you much harm, I reckon.”

"That’s exactly the point. College should be about that, not just cranking out a bunch of B.A.s who are so loaded with book smarts and arrogance that there’s no space for anything else. You’re right. I don’t think college will do you much harm, I guess."

Diana and Anne drove over to Echo Lodge after tea, taking with them all the flowery spoil that several predatory expeditions in their own and their neighbors’ gardens had yielded. They found the stone house agog with excitement. Charlotta the Fourth was flying around with such vim and briskness that her blue bows seemed really to possess the power of being everywhere at once. Like the helmet of Navarre, Charlotta’s blue bows waved ever in the thickest of the fray.

Diana and Anne drove over to Echo Lodge after tea, bringing along all the beautiful flowers they had gathered from their own and their neighbors' gardens. They found the stone house buzzing with excitement. Charlotta the Fourth was darting around with such energy and speed that her blue bows seemed to be everywhere at once. Just like the helmet of Navarre, Charlotta's blue bows waved in the thick of the action.

“Praise be to goodness you’ve come,” she said devoutly, “for there’s heaps of things to do . . . and the frosting on that cake won’t harden . . . and there’s all the silver to be rubbed up yet . . . and the horsehair trunk to be packed . . . and the roosters for the chicken salad are running out there beyant the henhouse yet, crowing, Miss Shirley, ma’am. And Miss Lavendar ain’t to be trusted to do a thing. I was thankful when Mr. Irving came a few minutes ago and took her off for a walk in the woods. Courting’s all right in its place, Miss Shirley, ma’am, but if you try to mix it up with cooking and scouring everything’s spoiled. That’s my opinion, Miss Shirley, ma’am.”

“Thank goodness you’re here,” she said earnestly, “because there’s so much to do . . . and the frosting on that cake won’t harden . . . and all the silver still needs polishing . . . and the horsehair trunk has to be packed . . . and the roosters for the chicken salad are out there beyond the henhouse, crowing, Miss Shirley, ma’am. And Miss Lavendar can’t be trusted to do anything. I was relieved when Mr. Irving came a few minutes ago and took her for a walk in the woods. Courting's fine in its place, Miss Shirley, ma’am, but mixing it up with cooking and cleaning just ruins everything. That’s my opinion, Miss Shirley, ma’am.”

Anne and Diana worked so heartily that by ten o’clock even Charlotta the Fourth was satisfied. She braided her hair in innumerable plaits and took her weary little bones off to bed.

Anne and Diana worked so hard that by ten o’clock even Charlotta the Fourth was pleased. She braided her hair into countless plaits and took her tired little body off to bed.

“But I’m sure I shan’t sleep a blessed wink, Miss Shirley, ma’am, for fear that something’ll go wrong at the last minute . . . the cream won’t whip . . . or Mr. Irving’ll have a stroke and not be able to come.”

“But I’m sure I won’t get a wink of sleep, Miss Shirley, ma’am, because I’m worried something will go wrong at the last minute... the cream won’t whip... or Mr. Irving will have a stroke and won’t be able to come.”

“He isn’t in the habit of having strokes, is he?” asked Diana, the dimpled corners of her mouth twitching. To Diana, Charlotta the Fourth was, if not exactly a thing of beauty, certainly a joy forever.

“He's not the kind of person who has strokes, right?” asked Diana, the dimpled corners of her mouth twitching. To Diana, Charlotta the Fourth was, if not exactly beautiful, definitely a joy forever.

“They’re not things that go by habit,” said Charlotta the Fourth with dignity. “They just happen . . . and there you are. Anybody can have a stroke. You don’t have to learn how. Mr. Irving looks a lot like an uncle of mine that had one once just as he was sitting down to dinner one day. But maybe everything’ll go all right. In this world you’ve just got to hope for the best and prepare for the worst and take whatever God sends.”

“They're not things you get used to,” said Charlotta the Fourth with dignity. “They just happen . . . and that's it. Anyone can have a stroke. You don’t need to learn how. Mr. Irving looks a lot like an uncle of mine who had one right when he was about to sit down for dinner one day. But maybe everything will turn out okay. In this world, you just have to hope for the best, prepare for the worst, and take whatever comes your way.”

“The only thing I’m worried about is that it won’t be fine tomorrow,” said Diana. “Uncle Abe predicted rain for the middle of the week, and ever since the big storm I can’t help believing there’s a good deal in what Uncle Abe says.”

“The only thing I’m worried about is that it won’t be nice tomorrow,” said Diana. “Uncle Abe predicted rain for the middle of the week, and ever since the big storm, I can’t help thinking there’s a lot of truth in what Uncle Abe says.”

Anne, who knew better than Diana just how much Uncle Abe had to do with the storm, was not much disturbed by this. She slept the sleep of the just and weary, and was roused at an unearthly hour by Charlotta the Fourth.

Anne, who understood better than Diana how much Uncle Abe was involved with the storm, wasn't too bothered by it. She slept soundly, exhausted but at peace, until she was woken at an ungodly hour by Charlotta the Fourth.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, it’s awful to call you so early,” came wailing through the keyhole, “but there’s so much to do yet . . . and oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, I’m skeered it’s going to rain and I wish you’d get up and tell me you think it ain’t.” Anne flew to the window, hoping against hope that Charlotta the Fourth was saying this merely by way of rousing her effectually. But alas, the morning did look unpropitious. Below the window Miss Lavendar’s garden, which should have been a glory of pale virgin sunshine, lay dim and windless; and the sky over the firs was dark with moody clouds.

“Oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, I’m so sorry to call you this early,” came a wail through the keyhole, “but there’s so much to do and… oh, Miss Shirley, ma’am, I’m scared it’s going to rain and I wish you’d get up and tell me you think it won’t.” Anne rushed to the window, hoping against hope that Charlotta the Fourth was just trying to wake her up effectively. But unfortunately, the morning did look gloomy. Below the window, Miss Lavendar’s garden, which should have been glowing in soft morning sunlight, appeared dim and still; and the sky over the firs was heavy with dark clouds.

“Isn’t it too mean!” said Diana.

“Isn’t that just too harsh!” said Diana.

“We must hope for the best,” said Anne determinedly. “If it only doesn’t actually rain, a cool, pearly gray day like this would really be nicer than hot sunshine.”

“We have to hope for the best,” said Anne with determination. “As long as it doesn’t actually rain, a cool, misty gray day like this would be so much nicer than hot sunshine.”

“But it will rain,” mourned Charlotta, creeping into the room, a figure of fun, with her many braids wound about her head, the ends, tied up with white thread, sticking out in all directions. “It’ll hold off till the last minute and then pour cats and dogs. And all the folks will get sopping . . . and track mud all over the house . . . and they won’t be able to be married under the honeysuckle . . . and it’s awful unlucky for no sun to shine on a bride, say what you will, Miss Shirley, ma’am. I knew things were going too well to last.”

“But it’s going to rain,” complained Charlotta, sneaking into the room, looking silly with her many braids wrapped around her head, the ends tied with white thread sticking out in all directions. “It’ll hold off until the last minute and then it’ll pour. Everyone will get soaked... and track mud all over the house... and they won’t be able to get married under the honeysuckle... and it’s really bad luck for a bride not to have sunshine on her wedding day, no matter what you say, Miss Shirley, ma’am. I knew things were going too well to last.”

Charlotta the Fourth seemed certainly to have borrowed a leaf out of Miss Eliza Andrews’ book.

Charlotta the Fourth definitely seemed to have taken a page out of Miss Eliza Andrews' book.

It did not rain, though it kept on looking as if it meant to. By noon the rooms were decorated, the table beautifully laid; and upstairs was waiting a bride, “adorned for her husband.”

It didn’t rain, even though it still looked like it might. By noon, the rooms were decorated, the table was beautifully set; and upstairs, a bride was waiting, “dressed up for her husband.”

“You do look sweet,” said Anne rapturously.

“You look really sweet,” Anne said enthusiastically.

“Lovely,” echoed Diana.

"Nice," echoed Diana.

“Everything’s ready, Miss Shirley, ma’am, and nothing dreadful has happened yet,” was Charlotta’s cheerful statement as she betook herself to her little back room to dress. Out came all the braids; the resultant rampant crinkliness was plaited into two tails and tied, not with two bows alone, but with four, of brand-new ribbon, brightly blue. The two upper bows rather gave the impression of overgrown wings sprouting from Charlotta’s neck, somewhat after the fashion of Raphael’s cherubs. But Charlotta the Fourth thought them very beautiful, and after she had rustled into a white dress, so stiffly starched that it could stand alone, she surveyed herself in her glass with great satisfaction . . . a satisfaction which lasted until she went out in the hall and caught a glimpse through the spare room door of a tall girl in some softly clinging gown, pinning white, star-like flowers on the smooth ripples of her ruddy hair.

“Everything’s ready, Miss Shirley, ma’am, and nothing awful has happened yet,” was Charlotta’s cheerful remark as she headed to her little back room to get dressed. She took out all the braids; the resulting wild curls were braided into two tails and tied with not just two bows, but four, made of brand-new, bright blue ribbon. The two upper bows gave the impression of oversized wings sprouting from Charlotta’s neck, much like Raphael’s cherubs. But Charlotta the Fourth thought they looked very pretty, and after she rustled into a white dress, so stiffly starched that it could stand on its own, she admired herself in the mirror with great satisfaction . . . a satisfaction that lasted until she stepped into the hallway and caught a glimpse through the spare room door of a tall girl in a softly draping gown, pinning white, star-like flowers into the smooth waves of her reddish hair.

“Oh, I’ll never be able to look like Miss Shirley,” thought poor Charlotta despairingly. “You just have to be born so, I guess . . . don’t seem’s if any amount of practice could give you that air.”

“Oh, I’ll never be able to look like Miss Shirley,” thought poor Charlotta in despair. “I guess you just have to be born that way... it doesn’t seem like any amount of practice could give you that air.”

By one o’clock the guests had come, including Mr. and Mrs. Allan, for Mr. Allan was to perform the ceremony in the absence of the Grafton minister on his vacation. There was no formality about the marriage. Miss Lavendar came down the stairs to meet her bridegroom at the foot, and as he took her hand she lifted her big brown eyes to his with a look that made Charlotta the Fourth, who intercepted it, feel queerer than ever. They went out to the honeysuckle arbor, where Mr. Allan was awaiting them. The guests grouped themselves as they pleased. Anne and Diana stood by the old stone bench, with Charlotta the Fourth between them, desperately clutching their hands in her cold, tremulous little paws.

By one o’clock, the guests had arrived, including Mr. and Mrs. Allan, since Mr. Allan was going to officiate the ceremony because the Grafton minister was on vacation. There was no formality to the wedding. Miss Lavendar came down the stairs to meet her groom at the bottom, and as he took her hand, she raised her big brown eyes to his in a way that made Charlotta the Fourth, who caught the moment, feel more unsettled than ever. They went out to the honeysuckle arbor, where Mr. Allan was waiting for them. The guests arranged themselves however they wanted. Anne and Diana stood by the old stone bench, with Charlotta the Fourth between them, desperately clutching their hands in her cold, shaky little paws.

Mr. Allan opened his blue book and the ceremony proceeded. Just as Miss Lavendar and Stephen Irving were pronounced man and wife a very beautiful and symbolic thing happened. The sun suddenly burst through the gray and poured a flood of radiance on the happy bride. Instantly the garden was alive with dancing shadows and flickering lights.

Mr. Allan opened his blue book, and the ceremony continued. Just as Miss Lavendar and Stephen Irving were pronounced husband and wife, something very beautiful and symbolic occurred. The sun suddenly broke through the gray clouds and sent a wave of light onto the happy bride. Instantly, the garden came alive with dancing shadows and flickering lights.

“What a lovely omen,” thought Anne, as she ran to kiss the bride. Then the three girls left the rest of the guests laughing around the bridal pair while they flew into the house to see that all was in readiness for the feast.

“What a lovely sign,” thought Anne, as she ran to kiss the bride. Then the three girls left the other guests laughing around the couple while they hurried into the house to make sure everything was ready for the feast.

“Thanks be to goodness, it’s over, Miss Shirley, ma’am,” breathed Charlotta the Fourth, “and they’re married safe and sound, no matter what happens now. The bags of rice are in the pantry, ma’am, and the old shoes are behind the door, and the cream for whipping is on the sullar steps.”

“Thank goodness it’s over, Miss Shirley,” sighed Charlotta the Fourth. “They’re married safe and sound, no matter what happens now. The bags of rice are in the pantry, and the old shoes are behind the door, and the cream for whipping is on the cellar steps.”

At half past two Mr. and Mrs. Irving left, and everybody went to Bright River to see them off on the afternoon train. As Miss Lavendar . . . I beg her pardon, Mrs. Irving . . . stepped from the door of her old home Gilbert and the girls threw the rice and Charlotta the Fourth hurled an old shoe with such excellent aim that she struck Mr. Allan squarely on the head. But it was reserved for Paul to give the prettiest send-off. He popped out of the porch ringing furiously a huge old brass dinner bell which had adorned the dining room mantel. Paul’s only motive was to make a joyful noise; but as the clangor died away, from point and curve and hill across the river came the chime of “fairy wedding bells,” ringing clearly, sweetly, faintly and more faint, as if Miss Lavendar’s beloved echoes were bidding her greeting and farewell. And so, amid this benediction of sweet sounds, Miss Lavendar drove away from the old life of dreams and make-believes to a fuller life of realities in the busy world beyond.

At two-thirty, Mr. and Mrs. Irving left, and everyone went to Bright River to see them off on the afternoon train. As Miss Lavendar... I mean, Mrs. Irving... stepped out of her old home, Gilbert and the girls threw rice, and Charlotta the Fourth tossed an old shoe with such precision that it hit Mr. Allan right on the head. But it was Paul who gave the best send-off. He burst out onto the porch, ringing a huge old brass dinner bell that used to sit on the dining room mantel. Paul's only goal was to make a joyful noise; but as the ringing faded, from across the river, the sound of “fairy wedding bells” echoed back—clear, sweet, faint, and fainter still, as if Miss Lavendar’s cherished echoes were saying hello and goodbye. And so, surrounded by this blessing of lovely sounds, Miss Lavendar drove away from her old life of dreams and fantasies to embrace a fuller life of realities in the busy world ahead.

Two hours later Anne and Charlotta the Fourth came down the lane again. Gilbert had gone to West Grafton on an errand and Diana had to keep an engagement at home. Anne and Charlotta had come back to put things in order and lock up the little stone house. The garden was a pool of late golden sunshine, with butterflies hovering and bees booming; but the little house had already that indefinable air of desolation which always follows a festivity.

Two hours later, Anne and Charlotta the Fourth walked down the lane again. Gilbert had gone to West Grafton on an errand, and Diana had to keep a commitment at home. Anne and Charlotta had returned to tidy up and lock the little stone house. The garden was bathed in late golden sunshine, with butterflies fluttering and bees buzzing; yet the little house already had that unmistakable feeling of emptiness that always comes after a celebration.

“Oh dear me, don’t it look lonesome?” sniffed Charlotta the Fourth, who had been crying all the way home from the station. “A wedding ain’t much cheerfuller than a funeral after all, when it’s all over, Miss Shirley, ma’am.”

“Oh dear, doesn’t it look lonely?” sniffed Charlotta the Fourth, who had been crying all the way home from the station. “A wedding isn’t much happier than a funeral after all, when it’s all over, Miss Shirley, ma’am.”

A busy evening followed. The decorations had to be removed, the dishes washed, the uneaten delicacies packed into a basket for the delectation of Charlotta the Fourth’s young brothers at home. Anne would not rest until everything was in apple-pie order; after Charlotta had gone home with her plunder Anne went over the still rooms, feeling like one who trod alone some banquet hall deserted, and closed the blinds. Then she locked the door and sat down under the silver poplar to wait for Gilbert, feeling very tired but still unweariedly thinking “long, long thoughts.”

A busy evening followed. The decorations had to be taken down, the dishes washed, and the uneaten treats packed into a basket for the enjoyment of Charlotta the Fourth’s younger brothers at home. Anne wouldn’t relax until everything was perfectly in order; after Charlotta left with her haul, Anne walked through the empty rooms, feeling like someone wandering alone through a deserted banquet hall, and closed the blinds. Then she locked the door and sat down under the silver poplar to wait for Gilbert, feeling very tired yet still tirelessly thinking “long, long thoughts.”

“What are you thinking of, Anne?” asked Gilbert, coming down the walk. He had left his horse and buggy out at the road.

“What are you thinking about, Anne?” asked Gilbert, walking down the path. He had left his horse and carriage by the road.

“Of Miss Lavendar and Mr. Irving,” answered Anne dreamily. “Isn’t it beautiful to think how everything has turned out . . . how they have come together again after all the years of separation and misunderstanding?”

“About Miss Lavendar and Mr. Irving,” Anne replied dreamily. “Isn’t it beautiful to think about how everything has turned out... how they’ve reunited after all the years apart and all the misunderstandings?”

“Yes, it’s beautiful,” said Gilbert, looking steadily down into Anne’s uplifted face, “but wouldn’t it have been more beautiful still, Anne, if there had been NO separation or misunderstanding . . . if they had come hand in hand all the way through life, with no memories behind them but those which belonged to each other?”

“Yeah, it’s beautiful,” Gilbert said, gazing down at Anne’s face, “but wouldn’t it have been even more beautiful, Anne, if there had been NO separation or misunderstanding… if they had walked hand in hand through life, with no memories other than the ones they shared?”

For a moment Anne’s heart fluttered queerly and for the first time her eyes faltered under Gilbert’s gaze and a rosy flush stained the paleness of her face. It was as if a veil that had hung before her inner consciousness had been lifted, giving to her view a revelation of unsuspected feelings and realities. Perhaps, after all, romance did not come into one’s life with pomp and blare, like a gay knight riding down; perhaps it crept to one’s side like an old friend through quiet ways; perhaps it revealed itself in seeming prose, until some sudden shaft of illumination flung athwart its pages betrayed the rhythm and the music, perhaps . . . perhaps . . . love unfolded naturally out of a beautiful friendship, as a golden-hearted rose slipping from its green sheath.

For a moment, Anne's heart raced strangely, and for the first time, she couldn't hold Gilbert's gaze; a rosy blush warmed her pale face. It felt like a veil that had hung over her thoughts was lifted, revealing unexpected feelings and realities. Maybe romance doesn’t enter your life with fanfare like a dashing knight on a horse; maybe it sneaks up beside you like an old friend in quiet moments. Perhaps it shows itself in what seems like ordinary prose until a sudden flash of insight reveals the rhythm and beauty hidden within it. Perhaps love naturally blossoms from a beautiful friendship, like a golden rose emerging from its green bud.

Then the veil dropped again; but the Anne who walked up the dark lane was not quite the same Anne who had driven gaily down it the evening before. The page of girlhood had been turned, as by an unseen finger, and the page of womanhood was before her with all its charm and mystery, its pain and gladness.

Then the veil fell again; but the Anne who walked up the dark lane was not quite the same Anne who had happily driven down it the night before. The chapter of girlhood had been turned, as if by an invisible hand, and the chapter of womanhood was in front of her with all its allure and mystery, its pain and joy.

Gilbert wisely said nothing more; but in his silence he read the history of the next four years in the light of Anne’s remembered blush. Four years of earnest, happy work . . . and then the guerdon of a useful knowledge gained and a sweet heart won.

Gilbert wisely said nothing more; but in his silence, he envisioned the next four years based on Anne’s remembered blush. Four years of dedicated, joyful work... and then the reward of valuable knowledge gained and a loving heart won.

Behind them in the garden the little stone house brooded among the shadows. It was lonely but not forsaken. It had not yet done with dreams and laughter and the joy of life; there were to be future summers for the little stone house; meanwhile, it could wait. And over the river in purple durance the echoes bided their time.

Behind them in the garden, the little stone house sat quietly in the shadows. It was lonely but not abandoned. It still held onto dreams and laughter and the joy of life; there were more summers ahead for the little stone house; for now, it could wait. And across the river, the echoes lingered, waiting for their moment.


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!